This is a modern-English version of Jo's Boys, originally written by Alcott, Louisa May. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.





JO'S BOYS





By Louisa M. Alcott










CONTENTS


Chapter 1.   TEN YEARS LATER

Chapter 2.   PARNASSUS

Chapter 3.   JO'S LAST SCRAPE

Chapter 4.   DAN

Chapter 5.   VACATION

Chapter 6.   LAST WORDS

Chapter 7.   THE LION AND THE LAMB

Chapter 8.   JOSIE PLAYS MERMAID

Chapter 9.   THE WORM TURNS

Chapter 10.   DEMI SETTLES

Chapter 11.   EMIL'S THANKSGIVING

Chapter 12.   DAN'S CHRISTMAS

Chapter 13.   NAT'S NEW YEAR

Chapter 14.   PLAYS AT PLUMFIELD

Chapter 15.   WAITING

Chapter 16.   IN THE TENNIS-COURT

Chapter 17.   AMONG THE MAIDS

Chapter 18.   CLASS DAY

Chapter 19.   WHITE ROSES

Chapter 20.   LIFE FOR LIFE

Chapter 21.   ASLAUGA'S KNIGHT

Chapter 22.     POSITIVELY LAST APPEARANCE

TABLE OF CONTENTS


__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ TEN YEARS LATER

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ PARNASSUS

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__ JO'S LAST SCRAPE

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__ DAN

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ VACATION

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__ LAST WORDS

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__ THE LION AND THE LAMB

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__ JOSIE PLAYS MERMAID

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__ THE WORM TURNS

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__ DEMI SETTLES

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__ EMIL'S THANKSGIVING

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__ DAN'S CHRISTMAS

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__ NAT'S NEW YEAR

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__ PLAYS AT PLUMFIELD

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__ WAITING

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__ IN THE TENNIS COURT

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__ AMONG THE MAIDS

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__ CLASS DAY

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__ WHITE ROSES

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__ LIFE FOR LIFE

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__ ASLAUGA'S KNIGHT

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__ POSITIVELY LAST APPEARANCE






Chapter 1. TEN YEARS LATER

'If anyone had told me what wonderful changes were to take place here in ten years, I wouldn't have believed it,' said Mrs Jo to Mrs Meg, as they sat on the piazza at Plumfield one summer day, looking about them with faces full of pride and pleasure.

'If someone had told me what amazing changes would happen here in ten years, I wouldn't have believed it,' said Mrs. Jo to Mrs. Meg, as they sat on the porch at Plumfield one summer day, looking around with expressions full of pride and joy.

'This is the sort of magic that money and kind hearts can work. I am sure Mr Laurence could have no nobler monument than the college he so generously endowed; and a home like this will keep Aunt March's memory green as long as it lasts,' answered Mrs Meg, always glad to praise the absent.

'This is the kind of magic that money and generous hearts can create. I'm sure Mr. Laurence couldn't have a better legacy than the college he so generously supported; and a home like this will keep Aunt March's memory alive for as long as it stands,' replied Mrs. Meg, always happy to speak well of those who are not present.

'We used to believe in fairies, you remember, and plan what we'd ask for if we could have three wishes. Doesn't it seem as if mine had been really granted at last? Money, fame, and plenty of the work I love,' said Mrs Jo, carelessly rumpling up her hair as she clasped her hands over her head just as she used to do when a girl.

'We used to believe in fairies, remember? We would plan what we’d wish for if we got three wishes. Doesn’t it feel like mine have finally come true? Money, fame, and lots of the work I love,' said Mrs. Jo, casually messing up her hair as she clasped her hands over her head just like she used to when she was a girl.

'I have had mine, and Amy is enjoying hers to her heart's content. If dear Marmee, John, and Beth were here, it would be quite perfect,' added Meg, with a tender quiver in her voice; for Marmee's place was empty now.

'I’ve had my turn, and Amy is enjoying hers to the fullest. If dear Marmee, John, and Beth were here, it would be absolutely perfect,' added Meg, her voice trembling with emotion; because Marmee’s spot was empty now.

Jo put her hand on her sister's, and both sat silent for a little while, surveying the pleasant scene before them with mingled sad and happy thoughts.

Jo placed her hand on her sister's, and they both sat quietly for a while, taking in the lovely view in front of them with a mix of sad and happy thoughts.

It certainly did look as if magic had been at work, for quiet Plumfield was transformed into a busy little world. The house seemed more hospitable than ever, refreshed now with new paint, added wings, well-kept lawn and garden, and a prosperous air it had not worn when riotous boys swarmed everywhere and it was rather difficult for the Bhaers to make both ends meet. On the hill, where kites used to be flown, stood the fine college which Mr Laurence's munificent legacy had built. Busy students were going to and fro along the paths once trodden by childish feet, and many young men and women were enjoying all the advantages that wealth, wisdom, and benevolence could give them.

It really did seem like magic was at work, because quiet Plumfield was transformed into a bustling little world. The house looked more inviting than ever, now refreshed with new paint, additional wings, a well-kept lawn and garden, and a sense of prosperity that it hadn’t had when rowdy boys were everywhere, making it hard for the Bhaers to make ends meet. On the hill, where kites used to soar, stood the impressive college built by Mr. Laurence's generous legacy. Busy students were moving along the paths once walked by children, and many young men and women were enjoying all the benefits that wealth, knowledge, and kindness could provide them.

Just inside the gates of Plumfield a pretty brown cottage, very like the Dovecote, nestled among the trees, and on the green slope westward Laurie's white-pillared mansion glittered in the sunshine; for when the rapid growth of the city shut in the old house, spoilt Meg's nest, and dared to put a soap-factory under Mr Laurence's indignant nose, our friends emigrated to Plumfield, and the great changes began.

Just inside the gates of Plumfield, a charming brown cottage, similar to the Dovecote, sat tucked among the trees. On the green slope to the west, Laurie's white-pillared mansion sparkled in the sunlight. When the city's rapid expansion surrounded the old house, ruined Meg's home, and boldly placed a soap factory right under Mr. Laurence's nose, our friends moved to Plumfield, and the big changes started.

These were the pleasant ones; and the loss of the dear old people was sweetened by the blessings they left behind; so all prospered now in the little community, and Mr Bhaer as president, and Mr March as chaplain of the college, saw their long-cherished dream beautifully realized. The sisters divided the care of the young people among them, each taking the part that suited her best. Meg was the motherly friend of the young women, Jo the confidante and defender of all the youths, and Amy the lady Bountiful who delicately smoothed the way for needy students, and entertained them all so cordially that it was no wonder they named her lovely home Mount Parnassus, so full was it of music, beauty, and the culture hungry young hearts and fancies long for.

These were the happy days; and the loss of the beloved older generation was softened by the blessings they left behind. Now, the small community thrived, and Mr. Bhaer, as president, and Mr. March, as chaplain of the college, saw their long-held dream beautifully come to life. The sisters took turns caring for the young people, with each picking the role that suited her best. Meg was the nurturing friend to the young women, Jo the trusted confidante and defender of all the young men, and Amy the generous hostess who graciously helped needy students and welcomed them so warmly that it’s no surprise they called her lovely home Mount Parnassus, filled as it was with music, beauty, and the cultural richness that young hearts and imaginations crave.

The original twelve boys had of course scattered far and wide during these years, but all that lived still remembered old Plumfield, and came wandering back from the four quarters of the earth to tell their various experiences, laugh over the pleasures of the past, and face the duties of the present with fresh courage; for such home-comings keep hearts tender and hands helpful with the memories of young and happy days. A few words will tell the history of each, and then we can go on with the new chapter of their lives.

The original twelve boys had, of course, spread out over the years, but everyone who was still alive remembered old Plumfield and returned from all corners of the earth to share their experiences, reminisce about the joys of the past, and tackle their present responsibilities with renewed determination; these homecomings keep hearts warm and hands ready to help, filled with memories of their youthful and happy days. A few words will cover each of their stories, and then we can move on to the new chapter of their lives.

Franz was with a merchant kinsman in Hamburg, a man of twenty-six now, and doing well. Emil was the jolliest tar that ever 'sailed the ocean blue'. His uncle sent him on a long voyage to disgust him with this adventurous life; but he came home so delighted with it that it was plain this was his profession, and the German kinsman gave him a good chance in his ships; so the lad was happy. Dan was a wanderer still; for after the geological researches in South America he tried sheep-farming in Australia, and was now in California looking up mines. Nat was busy with music at the Conservatory, preparing for a year or two in Germany to finish him off. Tom was studying medicine and trying to like it. Jack was in business with his father, bent on getting rich. Dolly was in college with Stuffy and Ned reading law. Poor little Dick was dead, so was Billy; and no one could mourn for them, since life would never be happy, afflicted as they were in mind and body.

Franz was with a merchant relative in Hamburg, a man now twenty-six years old and doing well. Emil was the happiest sailor who ever sailed the ocean. His uncle sent him on a long voyage to make him tired of this adventurous life, but he came back so thrilled with it that it was clear this was his calling, and the German relative gave him a great opportunity on his ships; so the young man was happy. Dan was still a wanderer; after his geological studies in South America, he tried sheep farming in Australia and was now in California looking for mines. Nat was busy with music at the Conservatory, preparing for a year or two in Germany to complete his training. Tom was studying medicine and trying to enjoy it. Jack was in business with his father, determined to get rich. Dolly was in college with Stuffy and Ned studying law. Poor little Dick was dead, and so was Billy; and no one could mourn for them, since life would never be joyful, burdened as they were in mind and body.

Rob and Teddy were called the 'Lion and the Lamb'; for the latter was as rampant as the king of beasts, and the former as gentle as any sheep that ever baaed. Mrs Jo called him 'my daughter', and found him the most dutiful of children, with plenty of manliness underlying the quiet manners and tender nature. But in Ted she seemed to see all the faults, whims, aspirations, and fun of her own youth in a new shape. With his tawny locks always in wild confusion, his long legs and arms, loud voice, and continual activity, Ted was a prominent figure at Plumfield. He had his moods of gloom, and fell into the Slough of Despond about once a week, to be hoisted out by patient Rob or his mother, who understood when to let him alone and when to shake him up. He was her pride and joy as well as torment, being a very bright lad for his age, and so full of all sorts of budding talent, that her maternal mind was much exercised as to what this remarkable boy would become.

Rob and Teddy were known as the 'Lion and the Lamb'; Teddy was as wild as the king of beasts, while Rob was as gentle as any sheep. Mrs. Jo called Rob 'my daughter' and found him to be the most dutiful of kids, with a lot of masculinity beneath his quiet demeanor and caring nature. But in Teddy, she seemed to see all the faults, quirks, dreams, and fun of her own youth in a different form. With his messy, tawny hair, long limbs, loud voice, and constant energy, Teddy was a standout at Plumfield. He had his moody moments, slipping into a funk about once a week, only to be pulled out by patient Rob or his mom, who knew when to give him space and when to shake him out of it. He was her pride and joy as well as a headache, being a very bright kid for his age and full of all kinds of emerging talent, which kept her wondering what this extraordinary boy would grow up to be.

Demi had gone through College with honour, and Mrs Meg had set her heart on his being a minister—picturing in her fond fancy the first sermon her dignified young parson would preach, as well as the long, useful, and honoured life he was to lead. But John, as she called him now, firmly declined the divinity school, saying he had had enough of books, and needed to know more of men and the world, and caused the dear woman much disappointment by deciding to try a journalist's career. It was a blow; but she knew that young minds cannot be driven, and that experience is the best teacher; so she let him follow his own inclinations, still hoping to see him in the pulpit. Aunt Jo raged when she found that there was to be a reporter in the family, and called him 'Jenkins' on the spot. She liked his literary tendencies, but had reason to detest official Paul Prys, as we shall see later. Demi knew his own mind, however, and tranquilly carried out his plans, unmoved by the tongues of the anxious mammas or the jokes of his mates. Uncle Teddy encouraged him, and painted a splendid career, mentioning Dickens and other celebrities who began as reporters and ended as famous novelists or newspaper men.

Demi had completed college with honors, and Mrs. Meg was determined for him to become a minister—imagining in her loving mind the first sermon her respectable young pastor would deliver, along with the long, meaningful, and respected life he would lead. But John, as she now called him, firmly declined attending divinity school, saying he had had enough of books and needed to learn more about people and the world. This decision brought her a lot of disappointment as he chose to pursue a career in journalism. It was a setback; but she understood that young minds can't be forced, and that experience is the best teacher, so she allowed him to follow his own path, still hoping to see him in the pulpit. Aunt Jo was furious when she found out there would be a reporter in the family, immediately referring to him as 'Jenkins.' She appreciated his literary interests but had reasons to dislike official busybodies, as we will explore later. However, Demi was confident in his choices and calmly pursued his plans, unaffected by the concerns of the anxious mothers or the jokes from his friends. Uncle Teddy supported him, painting a bright future by mentioning Dickens and other famous figures who started as reporters and became well-known novelists or journalists.

The girls were all flourishing. Daisy, as sweet and domestic as ever, was her mother's comfort and companion. Josie at fourteen was a most original young person, full of pranks and peculiarities, the latest of which was a passion for the stage, which caused her quiet mother and sister much anxiety as well as amusement. Bess had grown into a tall, beautiful girl looking several years older than she was, with the same graceful ways and dainty tastes which the little Princess had, and a rich inheritance of both the father's and mother's gifts, fostered by every aid love and money could give. But the pride of the community was naughty Nan; for, like so many restless, wilful children, she was growing into a woman full of the energy and promise that suddenly blossoms when the ambitious seeker finds the work she is fitted to do well. Nan began to study medicine at sixteen, and at twenty was getting on bravely; for now, thanks to other intelligent women, colleges and hospitals were open to her. She had never wavered in her purpose from the childish days when she shocked Daisy in the old willow by saying: 'I don't want any family to fuss over. I shall have an office, with bottles and pestle things in it, and drive round and cure folks.' The future foretold by the little girl the young woman was rapidly bringing to pass, and finding so much happiness in it that nothing could win her from the chosen work. Several worthy young gentlemen had tried to make her change her mind and choose, as Daisy did, 'a nice little house and family to take care of'. But Nan only laughed, and routed the lovers by proposing to look at the tongue which spoke of adoration, or professionally felt the pulse in the manly hand offered for her acceptance. So all departed but one persistent youth, who was such a devoted Traddles it was impossible to quench him.

The girls were all thriving. Daisy, as sweet and homey as ever, was her mom's comfort and companion. Josie, at fourteen, was a unique young person, full of tricks and quirks, the latest being her passion for the stage, which caused her quiet mom and sister both anxiety and amusement. Bess had grown into a tall, beautiful girl who looked several years older than she was, with the same graceful manners and refined tastes that the little Princess had, along with a rich inheritance of both her parents' talents, supported by every bit of love and money available. But the pride of the community was naughty Nan; like so many restless, willful children, she was becoming a woman full of energy and promise, blossoming when the ambitious seeker finds the work she’s meant to do. Nan started studying medicine at sixteen, and by twenty, she was doing really well; thanks to other intelligent women, colleges and hospitals were open to her. She had never wavered in her goal since she shocked Daisy in the old willow by saying, "I don’t want any family to fuss over. I’ll have an office with bottles and pestle things in it, and drive around to heal people." The future she envisioned as a little girl was rapidly coming to fruition, and she was finding so much happiness in it that nothing could pull her away from her chosen path. Several well-meaning young men had tried to make her change her mind and choose, like Daisy, "a nice little house and family to take care of." But Nan just laughed and dismissed the suitors by suggesting she look at the tongue that spoke of devotion, or professionally checked the pulse in the manly hand they offered for her acceptance. So, all but one persistent guy left, who was such a devoted Traddles that it was impossible to get rid of him.

This was Tom, who was as faithful to his child sweetheart as she to her 'pestle things', and gave a proof of fidelity that touched her very much. He studied medicine for her sake alone, having no taste for it, and a decided fancy for a mercantile life. But Nan was firm, and Tom stoutly kept on, devoutly hoping he might not kill many of his fellow-beings when he came to practise. They were excellent friends, however, and caused much amusement to their comrades, by the vicissitudes of this merry love-chase.

This was Tom, who was as committed to his childhood sweetheart as she was to her 'little things,' and he showed his loyalty in a way that really touched her. He studied medicine just for her, even though he had no interest in it and strongly preferred a business life. But Nan was determined, so Tom stubbornly carried on, hoping he wouldn't harm too many people when he finally practiced. They were great friends, though, and brought a lot of laughs to their friends with the ups and downs of their playful love pursuit.

Both were approaching Plumfield on the afternoon when Mrs Meg and Mrs Jo were talking on the piazza. Not together; for Nan was walking briskly along the pleasant road alone, thinking over a case that interested her, and Tom was pegging on behind to overtake her, as if by accident, when the suburbs of the city were past—a little way of his, which was part of the joke.

Both were heading toward Plumfield that afternoon while Mrs. Meg and Mrs. Jo were chatting on the porch. Not together, though; Nan was walking quickly down the lovely road by herself, focused on a case that caught her interest, and Tom was trailing behind, trying to catch up with her as if by accident once they were out of the city suburbs—a little trick of his, which was part of the fun.

Nan was a handsome girl, with a fresh colour, clear eye, quick smile, and the self-poised look young women with a purpose always have. She was simply and sensibly dressed, walked easily, and seemed full of vigour, with her broad shoulders well back, arms swinging freely, and the elasticity of youth and health in every motion. The few people she met turned to look at her, as if it was a pleasant sight to see a hearty, happy girl walking countryward that lovely day; and the red-faced young man steaming along behind, hat off and every tight curl wagging with impatience, evidently agreed with them.

Nan was a beautiful girl, with a fresh complexion, bright eyes, a quick smile, and the confident look that young women with a purpose always have. She was dressed simply and sensibly, walked easily, and seemed full of energy, with her broad shoulders held back, arms swinging freely, and the spring of youth and health in every movement. The few people she passed turned to look at her, as if it was a nice sight to see a strong, happy girl walking towards the countryside on that lovely day; and the red-faced young man hurrying along behind her, hat off and every tight curl bouncing with impatience, clearly agreed.

Presently a mild 'Hallo!' was borne upon the breeze, and pausing, with an effort to look surprised that was an utter failure, Nan said affably:

Currently, a gentle 'Hello!' floated on the breeze, and pausing, with a failed attempt to look surprised, Nan said cheerfully:

'Oh, is that you, Tom?'

'Oh, is that you, Tom?'

'Looks like it. Thought you might be walking out today'; and Tom's jovial face beamed with pleasure.

"Looks like it. I thought you might be leaving today," and Tom's cheerful face lit up with joy.

'You knew it. How is your throat?' asked Nan in her professional tone, which was always a quencher to undue raptures.

'You knew it. How's your throat?' Nan asked in her professional tone, which always dampened any excessive excitement.

'Throat? Oh, ah! yes, I remember. It is well. The effect of that prescription was wonderful. I'll never call homoeopathy a humbug again.'

'Throat? Oh, ah! yes, I remember. It's all good. The impact of that prescription was amazing. I'll never call homeopathy a scam again.'

'You were the humbug this time, and so were the unmedicated pellets I gave you. If sugar or milk can cure diphtheria in this remarkable manner, I'll make a note of it. O Tom, Tom, will you never be done playing tricks?'

'You were the fake this time, and so were the unmedicated pills I gave you. If sugar or milk can cure diphtheria like this, I'll definitely remember it. Oh Tom, Tom, will you ever stop playing pranks?'

'O Nan, Nan, will you never be done getting the better of me?' And the merry pair laughed at one another just as they did in the old times, which always came back freshly when they went to Plumfield.

'O Nan, Nan, will you ever stop getting the better of me?' And the cheerful duo laughed at each other just like they used to, memories of the past flooding back every time they went to Plumfield.

'Well, I knew I shouldn't see you for a week if I didn't scare up some excuse for a call at the office. You are so desperately busy all the time I never get a word,' explained Tom.

'Well, I knew I couldn't see you for a week if I didn't come up with some excuse to call the office. You're always so incredibly busy that I never get to say a word,' Tom explained.

'You ought to be busy too, and above such nonsense. Really, Tom, if you don't give your mind to your lectures, you'll never get on,' said Nan soberly.

'You should be busy too, and above this nonsense. Honestly, Tom, if you don't focus on your lectures, you'll never succeed,' said Nan seriously.

'I have quite enough of them as it is,' answered Tom with an air of disgust. 'A fellow must lark a bit after dissecting corpuses all day. I can't stand it long at a time, though some people seem to enjoy it immensely.'

'I have more than enough of them as it is,' Tom replied with a look of disgust. 'A guy needs to mess around a bit after cutting up bodies all day. I can't handle it for too long, even though some people seem to really enjoy it.'

'Then why not leave it, and do what suits you better? I always thought it a foolish thing, you know,' said Nan, with a trace of anxiety in the keen eyes that searched for signs of illness in a face as ruddy as a Baldwin apple.

'So why not just leave it and do what works better for you? I always thought it was a silly thing, you know,' said Nan, her keen eyes showing a hint of worry as they searched for any signs of illness in a face as red as a Baldwin apple.

'You know why I chose it, and why I shall stick to it if it kills me. I may not look delicate, but I've a deep-seated heart complaint, and it will carry me off sooner or later; for only one doctor in the world can cure it, and she won't.'

'You know why I picked it, and why I’m going to stick with it even if it kills me. I might not seem fragile, but I have a serious heart condition, and it’s going to get me eventually; there’s only one doctor in the world who can fix it, and she won’t.'

There was an air of pensive resignation about Tom that was both comic and pathetic; for he was in earnest, and kept on giving hints of this sort, without the least encouragement.

There was a vibe of thoughtful acceptance about Tom that was both funny and sad; he was serious and kept dropping hints like this, without any encouragement at all.

Nan frowned; but she was used to it, and knew how to treat him.

Nan frowned, but she was used to it and knew how to handle him.

'She is curing it in the best and only way; but a more refractory patient never lived. Did you go to that ball, as I directed?'

'She is treating it in the best and only way possible, but there has never been a more stubborn patient. Did you go to that ball, as I instructed?'

'I did.'

"I did."

'And devote yourself to pretty Miss West?'

'And dedicate yourself to lovely Miss West?'

'Danced with her the whole evening.'

'Danced with her all night.'

'No impression made on that susceptible organ of yours?'

'No impression made on that sensitive heart of yours?'

'Not the slightest. I gaped in her face once, forgot to feed her, and gave a sigh of relief when I handed her over to her mamma.'

'Not at all. I stared at her for a moment, forgot to feed her, and felt a wave of relief when I handed her back to her mom.'

'Repeat the dose as often as possible, and note the symptoms. I predict that you'll “cry for it” by and by.'

'Take the dose as often as you can, and keep track of the symptoms. I have a feeling you’ll “want it” eventually.'

'Never! I'm sure it doesn't suit my constitution.'

'Never! I'm sure it doesn't agree with my constitution.'

'We shall see. Obey orders!' sternly.

'We'll see. Follow the orders!' sternly.

'Yes, Doctor,' meekly.

'Yes, Doctor,' submissively.

Silence reigned for a moment; then, as if the bone of contention was forgotten in the pleasant recollections called up by familiar objects, Nan said suddenly:

Silence filled the room for a moment; then, as if the argument had faded away in the warm memories brought up by familiar things, Nan suddenly said:

'What fun we used to have in that wood! Do you remember how you tumbled out of the big nut-tree and nearly broke your collar-bones?'

'Remember how much fun we had in that woods? Do you recall when you fell out of the big nut tree and almost broke your collarbones?'

'Don't I! and how you steeped me in wormwood till I was a fine mahogany colour, and Aunt Jo wailed over my spoilt jacket,' laughed Tom, a boy again in a minute.

"Don’t I! And you really soaked me in wormwood until I was a deep brown color, and Aunt Jo cried over my ruined jacket," laughed Tom, instantly feeling like a kid again.

'And how you set the house afire?'

'And how did you set the house on fire?'

'And you ran off for your band-box?'

'So, you ran off for your little box?'

'Do you ever say “Thunder-turtles” now?'

'Do you ever say “Thunder-turtles” anymore?'

'Do people ever call you “Giddy-gaddy”?'

'Do people ever call you “Giddy-gaddy”?'

'Daisy does. Dear thing, I haven't seen her for a week.'

'Daisy does. Poor thing, I haven't seen her for a week.'

'I saw Demi this morning, and he said she was keeping house for Mother Bhaer.'

'I saw Demi this morning, and he said she was taking care of things for Mother Bhaer.'

'She always does when Aunt Jo gets into a vortex. Daisy is a model housekeeper; and you couldn't do better than make your bow to her, if you can't go to work and wait till you are grown up before you begin lovering.'

'She always does when Aunt Jo gets caught up in a whirlwind. Daisy is the perfect housekeeper, and you couldn't go wrong by acknowledging her, especially if you can't dive into things and wait until you're older before you start dating.'

'Nat would break his fiddle over my head if I suggested such a thing. No, thank you. Another name is engraved upon my heart as indelibly as the blue anchor on my arm. “Hope” is my motto, and “No surrender”, yours; see who will hold out longest.'

'Nat would smash his fiddle over my head if I even hinted at something like that. No, thanks. Another name is etched into my heart as permanently as the blue anchor on my arm. “Hope” is my motto, and “No surrender” is yours; let’s see who can last the longest.'

'You silly boys think we must pair off as we did when children; but we shall do nothing of the kind. How well Parnassus looks from here!' said Nan, abruptly changing the conversation again.

'You silly boys think we should pair up like we did when we were kids; but we’re not doing that. Parnassus looks amazing from here!' said Nan, abruptly changing the topic again.

'It is a fine house; but I love old Plum best. Wouldn't Aunt March stare if she could see the changes here?' answered Tom, as they both paused at the great gate to look at the pleasant landscape before them.

'It’s a nice house; but I love old Plum the most. Wouldn't Aunt March be shocked if she saw the changes here?' replied Tom, as they both stopped at the big gate to take in the lovely scenery ahead.

A sudden whoop startled them, as a long boy with a wild yellow head came leaping over a hedge like a kangaroo, followed by a slender girl, who stuck in the hawthorn, and sat there laughing like a witch. A pretty little lass she was, with curly dark hair, bright eyes, and a very expressive face. Her hat was at her back, and her skirts a good deal the worse for the brooks she had crossed, the trees she had climbed, and the last leap, which added several fine rents.

A sudden shout startled them as a tall boy with wild yellow hair jumped over a hedge like a kangaroo, followed by a slim girl who got stuck in the hawthorn and sat there laughing like a witch. She was a pretty little girl with curly dark hair, bright eyes, and a very expressive face. Her hat was at her back, and her skirts were pretty torn up from the brooks she had crossed, the trees she had climbed, and the last leap, which added several nice rips.

'Take me down, Nan, please. Tom, hold Ted; he's got my book, and I will have it,' called Josie from her perch, not at all daunted by the appearance of her friends.

'Take me down, Nan, please. Tom, hold Ted; he's got my book, and I'm getting it,' called Josie from her spot, completely unfazed by her friends' arrival.

Tom promptly collared the thief, while Nan picked Josie from among the thorns and set her on her feet without a word of reproof; for having been a romp in her own girlhood, she was very indulgent to like tastes in others. 'What's the matter, dear?' she asked, pinning up the longest rip, while Josie examined the scratches on her hands. 'I was studying my part in the willow, and Ted came slyly up and poked the book out of my hands with his rod. It fell in the brook, and before I could scrabble down he was off. You wretch, give it back this moment or I'll box your ears,' cried Josie, laughing and scolding in the same breath.

Tom quickly caught the thief, while Nan helped Josie up from among the thorns and set her on her feet without a word of criticism; since she had been a playful child herself, she was very forgiving of similar behavior in others. 'What's wrong, dear?' she asked, fixing the biggest tear while Josie looked at the scratches on her hands. 'I was practicing my lines by the willow, and Ted sneaked up and knocked the book out of my hands with his stick. It fell in the creek, and before I could climb down, he was gone. You little rascal, give it back right now or I'll give you a whack,' Josie exclaimed, laughing and scolding at the same time.

Escaping from Tom, Ted struck a sentimental attitude, and with tender glances at the wet, torn young person before him, delivered Claude Melnotte's famous speech in a lackadaisical way that was irresistibly funny, ending with 'Dost like the picture, love?' as he made an object of himself by tying his long legs in a knot and distorting his face horribly.

Escaping from Tom, Ted took on a sentimental vibe, and with soft looks at the wet, torn person in front of him, delivered Claude Melnotte's famous speech in a lazy way that was undeniably funny, ending with, 'Do you like the picture, darling?' as he made a fool of himself by twisting his long legs into a knot and making a ridiculous face.

The sound of applause from the piazza put a stop to these antics, and the young folks went up the avenue together very much in the old style when Tom drove four in hand and Nan was the best horse in the team. Rosy, breathless, and merry, they greeted the ladies and sat down on the steps to rest, Aunt Meg sewing up her daughter's rags while Mrs Jo smoothed the Lion's mane, and rescued the book. Daisy appeared in a moment to greet her friend, and all began to talk.

The sound of applause from the square interrupted their antics, and the young people walked up the avenue together, just like in the old days when Tom drove a team of four and Nan was the best horse. Out of breath and cheerful, they greeted the ladies and sat down on the steps to take a break, with Aunt Meg sewing up her daughter's torn clothes while Mrs. Jo brushed the Lion's mane and saved the book. Daisy showed up a moment later to greet her friend, and they all started chatting.

'Muffins for tea; better stay and eat 'em; Daisy's never fail,' said Ted hospitably.

'Muffins for tea; you should stick around and eat them; Daisy's are always delicious,' Ted said kindly.

'He's a judge; he ate nine last time. That's why he's so fat,' added Josie, with a withering glance at her cousin, who was as thin as a lath.

'He's a judge; he ate nine last time. That's why he's so fat,' added Josie, giving her cousin a scathing look, who was as thin as a stick.

'I must go and see Lucy Dove. She has a whitlow, and it's time to lance it. I'll tea at college,' answered Nan, feeling in her pocket to be sure she had not forgotten her case of instruments.

'I need to go see Lucy Dove. She has an infection, and it's time to treat it. I'll have tea at college,' answered Nan, checking her pocket to make sure she hadn't forgotten her instrument kit.

'Thanks, I'm going there also. Tom Merryweather has granulated lids, and I promised to touch them up for him. Save a doctor's fee and be good practice for me. I'm clumsy with my thumbs,' said Tom, bound to be near his idol while he could.

"Thanks, I'm going there too. Tom Merryweather has some crusty eyelids, and I promised to help him out. It'll save him a doctor's fee and give me some good practice. I'm a bit clumsy with my hands," said Tom, eager to be close to his idol while he could.

'Hush! Daisy doesn't like to hear you saw-bones talk of your work. Muffins suit us better'; and Ted grinned sweetly, with a view to future favours in the eating line.

'Hush! Daisy doesn't want to hear you guys talk about your work. Muffins work better for us'; and Ted grinned sweetly, hoping for future favors when it comes to food.

'Any news of the Commodore?' asked Tom.

'Any news about the Commodore?' Tom asked.

'He is on his way home, and Dan hopes to come soon. I long to see my boys together, and have begged the wanderers to come to Thanksgiving, if not before,' answered Mrs Jo, beaming at the thought.

'He’s on his way home, and Dan hopes to arrive soon. I can't wait to see my boys together, and I’ve asked the wanderers to come for Thanksgiving, if not sooner,' replied Mrs. Jo, glowing at the thought.

'They'll come, every man of them, if they can. Even Jack will risk losing a dollar for the sake of one of our jolly old dinners,' laughed Tom.

"They'll all show up, every single one of them, if they can. Even Jack will risk losing a buck just for one of our fun dinners," laughed Tom.

'There's the turkey fattening for the feast. I never chase him now, but feed him well; and he's “swellin' wisibly”, bless his drumsticks!' said Ted, pointing out the doomed fowl proudly parading in a neighbouring field.

'There's the turkey getting fat for the feast. I don't chase him anymore, but I feed him well; and he's “swelling visibly”, bless his drumsticks!' said Ted, proudly pointing out the doomed bird strutting in a nearby field.

'If Nat goes the last of the month we shall want a farewell frolic for him. I suppose the dear old Chirper will come home a second Ole Bull,' said Nan to her friend.

'If Nat leaves at the end of the month, we should plan a farewell party for him. I guess the dear old Chirper will come back as a second Ole Bull,' said Nan to her friend.

A pretty colour came into Daisy's cheek, and the folds of muslin on her breast rose and fell with a quick breath; but she answered placidly: 'Uncle Laurie says he has real talent, and after the training he will get abroad he can command a good living here, though he may never be famous.'

A lovely color appeared in Daisy's cheeks, and the fabric of her dress moved with her quick breaths; but she replied calmly, "Uncle Laurie says he has real talent, and after the training he'll get overseas, he can make a good living here, even if he might never be famous."

'Young people seldom turn out as one predicts, so it is of little use to expect anything,' said Mrs Meg with a sigh. 'If our children are good and useful men and women, we should be satisfied; yet it's very natural to wish them to be brilliant and successful.'

"Young people rarely become what you expect, so it's not really helpful to have those expectations," Mrs. Meg sighed. "If our children grow up to be good and contributing individuals, we should be pleased; still, it's completely normal to hope they'll be exceptional and successful."

'They are like my chickens, mighty uncertain. Now, that fine-looking cockerel of mine is the stupidest one of the lot, and the ugly, long-legged chap is the king of the yard, he's so smart; crows loud enough to wake the Seven Sleepers; but the handsome one croaks, and is no end of a coward. I get snubbed; but you wait till I grow up, and then see'; and Ted looked so like his own long-legged pet that everyone laughed at his modest prediction.

'They're like my chickens, really unpredictable. Now, that handsome rooster of mine is the dumbest of the bunch, and the ugly, long-legged one is the king of the yard because he's so clever; crows loudly enough to wake the Seven Sleepers; but the good-looking one just makes noise and is a total coward. I get teased, but just wait until I grow up and then see; and Ted looked so much like his own long-legged pet that everyone laughed at his humble prediction.

'I want to see Dan settled somewhere. “A rolling stone gathers no moss”, and at twenty-five he is still roaming about the world without a tie to hold him, except this'; and Mrs Meg nodded towards her sister.

'I want to see Dan settled down somewhere. “A rolling stone gathers no moss,” and at twenty-five, he’s still wandering around the world without anything tying him down, except this'; and Mrs. Meg nodded toward her sister.

'Dan will find his place at last, and experience is his best teacher. He is rough still, but each time he comes home I see a change for the better, and never lose my faith in him. He may never do anything great, or get rich; but if the wild boy makes an honest man, I'm satisfied,' said Mrs Jo, who always defended the black sheep of her flock.

"Dan will finally find his place, and experience is his best teacher. He’s still a bit rough around the edges, but every time he comes home, I notice some positive change, and I never lose faith in him. He might never achieve anything monumental or become wealthy, but if the wild boy turns into an honest man, I’m happy," said Mrs. Jo, who always stood up for the black sheep of her group.

'That's right, mother, stand by Dan! He's worth a dozen Jacks and Neds bragging about money and trying to be swells. You see if he doesn't do something to be proud of and take the wind out of their sails,' added Ted, whose love for his 'Danny' was now strengthened by a boy's admiration for the bold, adventurous man.

"That's right, Mom, support Dan! He's worth more than a dozen Jacks and Neds who just brag about their money and try to show off. You'll see that he will do something that makes us proud and take the wind out of their sails," added Ted, whose affection for his 'Danny' was now deepened by a boy's admiration for the daring, adventurous man.

'Hope so, I'm sure. He's just the fellow to do rash things and come to glory—climbing the Matterhorn, taking a “header” into Niagara, or finding a big nugget. That's his way of sowing wild oats, and perhaps it's better than ours,' said Tom thoughtfully; for he had gained a good deal of experience in that sort of agriculture since he became a medical student.

"Hope so, I’m sure. He’s exactly the kind of guy to do reckless things and end up famous—climbing the Matterhorn, diving into Niagara, or discovering a huge gold nugget. That’s his way of living life to the fullest, and maybe it’s better than ours," said Tom thoughtfully; he had learned quite a bit about that kind of lifestyle since becoming a medical student.

'Much better!' said Mrs Jo emphatically. 'I'd rather send my boys off to see the world in that way than leave them alone in a city full of temptations, with nothing to do but waste time, money, and health, as so many are left. Dan has to work his way, and that teaches him courage, patience, and self-reliance. I don't worry about him as much as I do about George and Dolly at college, no more fit than two babies to take care of themselves.'

"Much better!" Mrs. Jo said emphatically. "I’d rather send my boys off to see the world like that than leave them alone in a city full of temptations, with nothing to do but waste time, money, and health, like so many are left to do. Dan has to make his own way, and that teaches him courage, patience, and independence. I don’t worry about him as much as I do about George and Dolly at college, who are hardly more capable than two babies when it comes to taking care of themselves."

'How about John? He's knocking round town as a newspaper man, reporting all sorts of things, from sermons to prize-fights,' asked Tom, who thought that sort of life would be much more to his own taste than medical lectures and hospital wards.

"How about John? He's out and about in town as a journalist, covering everything from sermons to prize fights," Tom asked, thinking that kind of life would suit him much better than medical lectures and hospital wards.

'Demi has three safeguards—good principles, refined tastes, and a wise mother. He won't come to harm, and these experiences will be useful to him when he begins to write, as I'm sure he will in time,' began Mrs Jo in her prophetic tone; for she was anxious to have some of her geese turn out swans.

'Demi has three protections—strong values, good judgment, and a wise mother. He won't get hurt, and these experiences will be helpful when he starts to write, which I'm sure he will eventually,' Mrs. Jo began in her prophetic tone, as she hoped some of her geese would turn out to be swans.

'Speak of Jenkins, and you'll hear the rustling of his paper,' cried Tom, as a fresh-faced, brown-eyed young man came up the avenue, waving a newspaper over his head.

"Just mention Jenkins, and you'll hear his papers rustling," shouted Tom, as a bright-eyed, brown-haired young man walked up the street, waving a newspaper above his head.

'Here's your Evening Tattler! Latest Edition! Awful murder! Bank clerk absconded! Powder-mill explosion, and great strike of the Latin School boys!' roared Ted, going to meet his cousin with the graceful gait of a young giraffe.

'Here's your Evening Tattler! Latest Edition! Terrible murder! Bank clerk disappeared! Powder-mill explosion, and a major strike by the Latin School boys!' shouted Ted, walking towards his cousin with the elegant stride of a young giraffe.

'The Commodore is in, and will cut his cable and run before the wind as soon as he can get off,' called Demi, with 'a nice derangement of nautical epitaphs', as he came up smiling over his good news.

'The Commodore is in, and he’ll cut his cable and sail away as soon as he can get going,' shouted Demi, with 'a charming mix of nautical phrases,' as he came up beaming with his good news.

Everyone talked together for a moment, and the paper passed from hand to hand that each eye might rest on the pleasant fact that the Brenda, from Hamburg, was safe in port.

Everyone chatted for a moment, and the paper moved from hand to hand so that everyone could see the good news that the Brenda from Hamburg had arrived safely in port.

'He'll come lurching out by tomorrow with his usual collection of marine monsters and lively yarns. I saw him, jolly and tarry and brown as a coffee-berry. Had a good run, and hopes to be second mate, as the other chap is laid up with a broken leg,' added Demi.

'He'll be stumbling out by tomorrow with his usual bunch of sea creatures and lively stories. I saw him, cheerful and salty and tanned like a coffee bean. He had a good trip and hopes to be the second mate since the other guy is out with a broken leg,' Demi added.

'Wish I had the setting of it,' said Nan to herself, with a professional twist of her hand.

'Wish I knew the details of it,' said Nan to herself, with a professional flick of her hand.

'How's Franz?' asked Mrs Jo.

"How's Franz?" asked Mrs. Jo.

'He's going to be married! There's news for you. The first of the flock, Aunty, so say good-bye to him. Her name is Ludmilla Heldegard Blumenthal; good family, well-off, pretty, and of course an angel. The dear old boy wants Uncle's consent, and then he will settle down to be a happy and an honest burgher. Long life to him!'

'He's getting married! That's some news for you. The first one from the group, Aunty, so say goodbye to him. Her name is Ludmilla Heldegard Blumenthal; good family, well-off, beautiful, and of course, an angel. The dear old guy wants Uncle's approval, and then he'll settle down to be a happy and honest citizen. Long life to him!'

'I'm glad to hear it. I do so like to settle my boys with a good wife and a nice little home. Now, if all is right, I shall feel as if Franz was off my mind,' said Mrs Jo, folding her hands contentedly; for she often felt like a distracted hen with a large brood of mixed chickens and ducks upon her hands.

"I'm really happy to hear that. I love helping my boys find a great wife and a cozy little home. Now, if everything is in order, I’ll feel like I can finally stop worrying about Franz," said Mrs. Jo, folding her hands happily; she often felt like a frazzled hen trying to manage a bunch of mixed chicks and ducklings.

'So do I,' sighed Tom, with a sly glance at Nan. 'That's what a fellow needs to keep him steady; and it's the duty of nice girls to marry as soon as possible, isn't it, Demi?'

"Me too," Tom sighed, giving Nan a playful look. "That's what a guy needs to stay grounded; and it's nice girls' job to get married as soon as they can, right, Demi?"

'If there are enough nice fellows to go round. The female population exceeds the male, you know, especially in New England; which accounts for the high state of culture we are in, perhaps,' answered John, who was leaning over his mother's chair, telling his day's experiences in a whisper.

'If there are enough good guys to go around. The number of women is greater than that of men, you know, especially in New England; which might explain the high level of culture we have, perhaps,' replied John, who was leaning over his mother's chair, sharing his day's experiences in a whisper.

'It is a merciful provision, my dears; for it takes three or four women to get each man into, through, and out of the world. You are costly creatures, boys; and it is well that mothers, sisters, wives, and daughters love their duty and do it so well, or you would perish off the face of the earth,' said Mrs Jo solemnly, as she took up a basket filled with dilapidated hose; for the good Professor was still hard on his socks, and his sons resembled him in that respect.

'It's a kind arrangement, my dears; because it takes three or four women to help each man navigate through life. You boys are expensive creatures, and it's a good thing that mothers, sisters, wives, and daughters take their responsibilities seriously and do it so well, or you would be wiped off the planet,' said Mrs. Jo seriously, as she picked up a basket full of worn-out socks; for the kind Professor was still working on his socks, and his sons took after him in that regard.

'Such being the case, there is plenty for the “superfluous women” to do, in taking care of these helpless men and their families. I see that more clearly every day, and am very glad and grateful that my profession will make me a useful, happy, and independent spinster.'

'With that in mind, there's a lot for the “extra women” to do, taking care of these helpless men and their families. I see that more clearly every day and I'm really glad and thankful that my job will allow me to be a useful, happy, and independent single woman.'

Nan's emphasis on the last word caused Tom to groan, and the rest to laugh.

Nan's emphasis on the last word made Tom groan, and everyone else laughed.

'I take great pride and solid satisfaction in you, Nan, and hope to see you very successful; for we do need just such helpful women in the world. I sometimes feel as if I've missed my vocation and ought to have remained single; but my duty seemed to point this way, and I don't regret it,' said Mrs Jo, folding a large and very ragged blue sock to her bosom.

'I’m really proud of you, Nan, and I hope you become very successful because we need more women like you in the world. Sometimes I feel like I missed my calling and should have stayed single, but it felt like my duty to go this way, and I don’t regret it,' said Mrs. Jo, folding a large and very frayed blue sock to her chest.

'Neither do I. What should I ever have done without my dearest Mum?' added Ted, with a filial hug which caused both to disappear behind the newspaper in which he had been mercifully absorbed for a few minutes.

'Me neither. What would I have done without my beloved Mom?' added Ted, giving her a hug that made both of them vanish behind the newspaper he had been thankfully engrossed in for a few minutes.

'My darling boy, if you would wash your hands semi-occasionally, fond caresses would be less disastrous to my collar. Never mind, my precious touslehead, better grass stains and dirt than no cuddlings at all'; and Mrs Jo emerged from that brief eclipse looking much refreshed, though her back hair was caught in Ted's buttons and her collar under one ear.

'My dear boy, if you could wash your hands every now and then, gentle hugs would be less of a disaster for my collar. But it’s okay, my sweet little mess, better to have grass stains and dirt than no cuddles at all'; and Mrs. Jo came out from that brief moment looking much more refreshed, although her hair was caught in Ted's buttons and her collar was askew.

Here Josie, who had been studying her part at the other end of the piazza, suddenly burst forth with a smothered shriek, and gave Juliet's speech in the tomb so effectively that the boys applauded, Daisy shivered, and Nan murmured: 'Too much cerebral excitement for one of her age.'

Here Josie, who had been practicing her lines at the other end of the piazza, suddenly let out a muffled scream and delivered Juliet's speech in the tomb so powerfully that the boys clapped, Daisy shivered, and Nan murmured, "That's too much mental stimulation for someone her age."

'I'm afraid you'll have to make up your mind to it, Meg. That child is a born actress. We never did anything so well, not even the Witch's Curse,' said Mrs Jo, casting a bouquet of many-coloured socks at the feet of her flushed and panting niece, when she fell gracefully upon the door-mat.

"I'm afraid you'll have to come to terms with it, Meg. That kid is a natural actress. We never did anything as well, not even the Witch's Curse," said Mrs. Jo, tossing a bunch of colorful socks at the feet of her flushed and out-of-breath niece as she gracefully collapsed onto the doormat.

'It is a sort of judgement upon me for my passion for the stage when a girl. Now I know how dear Marmee felt when I begged to be an actress. I never can consent, and yet I may be obliged to give up my wishes, hopes, and plans again.'

'It's kind of a judgment on me for my love of the stage when I was a girl. Now I understand how much Marmee cared when I begged to be an actress. I can never agree to it, and yet I might have to abandon my desires, hopes, and dreams once more.'

There was an accent of reproach in his mother's voice, which made Demi pick up his sister with a gentle shake, and the stern command to 'drop that nonsense in public'.

There was a hint of disappointment in his mother's voice, which made Demi gently shake his sister and firmly tell her to "stop that nonsense in public."

'Drop me, Minion, or I'll give you the Maniac Bride, with my best Ha-ha!' cried Josie, glaring at him like an offended kitten. Being set on her feet, she made a splendid courtesy, and dramatically proclaiming, 'Mrs Woffington's carriage waits,' swept down the steps and round the corner, trailing Daisy's scarlet shawl majestically behind her.

'Put me down, Minion, or I'll unleash the Maniac Bride, with my best Ha-ha!' cried Josie, glaring at him like a miffed kitten. Once back on her feet, she performed a grand curtsy and dramatically announced, 'Mrs. Woffington's carriage is waiting,' as she swept down the steps and around the corner, trailing Daisy's bright red shawl behind her.

'Isn't she great fun? I couldn't stop in this dull place if I hadn't that child to make it lively for me. If ever she turns prim, I'm off; so mind how you nip her in the bud,' said Teddy, frowning at Demi, who was now writing out shorthand notes on the steps.

'Isn't she a blast? I couldn’t stay in this boring place if I didn’t have that kid to liven things up for me. If she ever gets all uptight, I’m outta here; so be careful not to squash her spirit,' said Teddy, scowling at Demi, who was now jotting down shorthand notes on the steps.

'You two are a team, and it takes a strong hand to drive you, but I rather like it. Josie ought to have been my child, and Rob yours, Meg. Then your house would have been all peace and mine all Bedlam. Now I must go and tell Laurie the news. Come with me, Meg, a little stroll will do us good'; and sticking Ted's straw hat on her head, Mrs Jo walked off with her sister, leaving Daisy to attend to the muffins, Ted to appease Josie, and Tom and Nan to give their respective patients a very bad quarter of an hour.

"You two are a team, and it takes a strong hand to manage you, but I really like it. Josie should have been my child, and Rob should have been yours, Meg. Then your house would have been all peaceful and mine would have been total chaos. Now I need to go tell Laurie the news. Come with me, Meg; a little walk will do us good." With that, Mrs. Jo put Ted's straw hat on her head and walked off with her sister, leaving Daisy to handle the muffins, Ted to calm down Josie, and Tom and Nan to give their patients a very rough time.





Chapter 2. PARNASSUS

It was well named; and the Muses seemed to be at home that day, for as the newcomers went up the slope appropriate sights and sounds greeted them. Passing an open window, they looked in upon a library presided over by Clio, Calliope, and Urania; Melpomene and Thalia were disporting themselves in the hall, where some young people were dancing and rehearsing a play; Erato was walking in the garden with her lover, and in the music-room Phoebus himself was drilling a tuneful choir.

It was aptly named; and the Muses seemed to be present that day, for as the newcomers made their way up the hill, they were greeted by fitting sights and sounds. Passing an open window, they glanced inside a library where Clio, Calliope, and Urania were in charge; Melpomene and Thalia were having fun in the hall, where some young people were dancing and practicing a play; Erato was strolling in the garden with her partner, and in the music room, Phoebus himself was instructing a melodious choir.

A mature Apollo was our old friend Laurie, but comely and genial as ever; for time had ripened the freakish boy into a noble man. Care and sorrow, as well as ease and happiness, had done much for him; and the responsibility of carrying out his grandfather's wishes had been a duty most faithfully performed. Prosperity suits some people, and they blossom best in a glow of sunshine; others need the shade, and are the sweeter for a touch of frost. Laurie was one of the former sort, and Amy was another; so life had been a kind of poem to them since they married—not only harmonious and happy, but earnest, useful, and rich in the beautiful benevolence which can do so much when wealth and wisdom go hand in hand with charity. Their house was full of unostentatious beauty and comfort, and here the art-loving host and hostess attracted and entertained artists of all kinds. Laurie had music enough now, and was a generous patron to the class he most liked to help. Amy had her proteges among ambitious young painters and sculptors, and found her own art double dear as her daughter grew old enough to share its labours and delights with her; for she was one of those who prove that women can be faithful wives and mothers without sacrificing the special gift bestowed upon them for their own development and the good of others.

A grown-up Apollo was our old friend Laurie, still charming and friendly as ever; time had turned the quirky boy into a remarkable man. Both challenges and joys, along with comfort and happiness, had shaped him well; and he took his responsibility of fulfilling his grandfather's wishes seriously. Some people thrive in prosperity and shine in the sunlight; others flourish in the shade and sweeten with a touch of hardship. Laurie was one of the former, and Amy was another; so life had felt like a poem for them since they got married—not just harmonious and joyful, but also meaningful, productive, and rich in the kind generosity that can achieve so much when wealth and wisdom work together with charity. Their home was filled with understated beauty and comfort, where the art-loving couple welcomed and inspired all kinds of artists. Laurie now had plenty of music and actively supported the musicians he loved to help. Amy had her mentees among aspiring young painters and sculptors and found her own art even more precious as her daughter grew old enough to share in its efforts and joys with her; she was one of those who show that women can be devoted wives and mothers without giving up the unique gifts they possess for their own growth and the benefit of others.

Her sisters knew where to find her, and Jo went at once to the studio, where mother and daughter worked together. Bess was busy with the bust of a little child, while her mother added the last touches to a fine head of her husband. Time seemed to have stood still with Amy, for happiness had kept her young and prosperity given her the culture she needed. A stately, graceful woman, who showed how elegant simplicity could be made by the taste with which she chose her dress and the grace with which she wore it. As someone said: 'I never know what Mrs Laurence has on, but I always receive the impression that she is the best-dressed lady in the room.'

Her sisters knew where to find her, so Jo went straight to the studio, where mother and daughter worked side by side. Bess was focused on sculpting a bust of a little child, while her mom put the finishing touches on a fine bust of her husband. Time seemed to stand still for Amy, as happiness kept her youthful and prosperity provided her with the culture she needed. She was a poised, elegant woman, showcasing how elegantly simple style could be achieved through her careful choice of clothing and the grace with which she wore it. As someone remarked, "I never know what Mrs. Laurence is wearing, but I always get the impression that she’s the best-dressed lady in the room."

It was evident that she adored her daughter, and well she might; for the beauty she had longed for seemed, to her fond eyes at least, to be impersonated in this younger self. Bess inherited her mother's Diana-like figure, blue eyes, fair skin, and golden hair, tied up in the same classic knot of curls. Also—ah! never-ending source of joy to Amy—she had her father's handsome nose and mouth, cast in a feminine mould. The severe simplicity of a long linen pinafore suited her; and she worked away with the entire absorption of the true artist, unconscious of the loving eyes upon her, till Aunt Jo came in exclaiming eagerly:

It was clear that she loved her daughter, and who could blame her? The beauty she had always wished for seemed to be embodied in this younger version of herself, at least in her loving gaze. Bess had her mother's striking figure, blue eyes, fair skin, and golden hair, styled in the same classic knot of curls. And—oh, the endless joy for Amy—she also had her father's handsome nose and mouth, shaped in a feminine way. The simple, long linen pinafore looked great on her, and she worked with the total focus of a true artist, unaware of the adoring eyes watching her, until Aunt Jo came in, exclaiming eagerly:

'My dear girls, stop your mud-pies and hear the news!'

'My dear girls, stop making your mud pies and listen to the news!'

Both artists dropped their tools and greeted the irrepressible woman cordially, though genius had been burning splendidly and her coming spoilt a precious hour. They were in the full tide of gossip when Laurie, who had been summoned by Meg, arrived, and sitting down between the sisters, with no barricade anywhere, listened with interest to the news of Franz and Emil.

Both artists put down their tools and warmly greeted the unstoppable woman, even though their creative spark had been thriving and her arrival cut into a valuable hour. They were deep into their gossip when Laurie, who had been called by Meg, showed up and sat down between the sisters, with no barriers in between, listening intently to the latest about Franz and Emil.

'The epidemic has broke out, and now it will rage and ravage your flock. Be prepared for every sort of romance and rashness for the next ten years, Jo. Your boys are growing up and will plunge headlong into a sea of worse scrapes than any you have had yet,' said Laurie, enjoying her look of mingled delight and despair.

'The epidemic has broken out, and now it will spread and destroy your group. Get ready for all kinds of romance and impulsiveness over the next ten years, Jo. Your boys are growing up and will dive straight into even worse trouble than anything you've faced so far,' said Laurie, enjoying her expression of mixed joy and despair.

'I know it, and I hope I shall be able to pull them through and land them safely; but it's an awful responsibility, for they will come to me and insist that I can make their poor little loves run smoothly. I like it, though, and Meg is such a mush of sentiment she revels in the prospect,' answered Jo, feeling pretty easy about her own boys, whose youth made them safe for the present.

"I know it, and I hope I can help them out and get them through safely; but it’s a huge responsibility because they will come to me and expect that I can make their little romances run smoothly. I actually enjoy it, though, and Meg is so sentimental that she loves the idea," Jo replied, feeling pretty relaxed about her own boys, whose young age kept them safe for now.

'I'm afraid she won't revel when our Nat begins to buzz too near her Daisy. Of course you see what all that means? As musical director I am also his confidante, and would like to know what advice to give,' said Laurie soberly. 'Hush! you forget that child,' began Jo, nodding towards Bess, who was at work again.

'I'm worried she won't enjoy it when our Nat starts to get too close to her Daisy. Of course, you understand what that means, right? As the musical director, I'm also his confidant, and I’d like to know what advice to give,' said Laurie seriously. 'Shh! You're forgetting about that child,' Jo started, nodding towards Bess, who was busy working again.

'Bless you! she's in Athens, and doesn't hear a word. She ought to leave off, though, and go out. My darling, put the baby to sleep, and go for a run. Aunt Meg is in the parlour; go and show her the new pictures till we come,' added Laurie, looking at his tall girl as Pygmalion might have looked at Galatea; for he considered her the finest statue in the house.

"Bless you! She's in Athens and doesn't hear a thing. She should really stop and go outside. My dear, put the baby to sleep and go for a run. Aunt Meg is in the living room; go show her the new pictures until we get back," added Laurie, admiring his tall girl the way Pygmalion might have admired Galatea, as he thought she was the most beautiful figure in the house.

'Yes, papa; but please tell me if it is good'; and Bess obediently put down her tools, with a lingering glance at the bust.

'Yes, Dad; but please tell me if it's good'; and Bess obediently set down her tools, casting a lingering look at the bust.

'My cherished daughter, truth compels me to confess that one cheek is plumper than the other; and the curls upon its infant brow are rather too much like horns for perfect grace; otherwise it rivals Raphael's Chanting Cherubs, and I'm proud of it.'

'My beloved daughter, I must honestly admit that one cheek is fuller than the other; and the curls on her little forehead are somewhat too reminiscent of horns for complete elegance; otherwise, she rivals Raphael's Chanting Cherubs, and I'm proud of her.'

Laurie was laughing as he spoke; for these first attempts were so like Amy's early ones, it was impossible to regard them as soberly as the enthusiastic mamma did.

Laurie was laughing as he spoke; these first attempts were so similar to Amy's early ones that it was impossible to take them as seriously as the excited mom did.

'You can't see beauty in anything but music,' answered Bess, shaking the golden head that made the one bright spot in the cool north lights of the great studio.

'You can't see beauty in anything except music,' replied Bess, shaking her golden hair that created the one bright spot in the cool northern lights of the big studio.

'Well, I see beauty in you, dear. And if you are not art, what is? I wish to put a little more nature into you, and get you away from this cold clay and marble into the sunshine, to dance and laugh as the others do. I want a flesh-and-blood girl, not a sweet statue in a grey pinafore, who forgets everything but her work.' As he spoke, two dusty hands came round his neck, and Bess said earnestly, punctuating her words with soft touches of her lips:

'Well, I see beauty in you, dear. And if you aren't art, what is? I want to add a bit more life to you and take you away from this cold clay and marble into the sunshine, to dance and laugh like the others do. I want a real girl, not a sweet statue in a gray pinafore, who forgets everything except her work.' As he spoke, two dusty hands came around his neck, and Bess said earnestly, punctuating her words with soft kisses:

'I never forget you, papa; but I do want to do something beautiful that you may be proud of me by and by. Mamma often tells me to stop; but when we get in here we forget there is any world outside, we are so busy and so happy. Now I'll go and run and sing, and be a girl to please you.' And throwing away the apron, Bess vanished from the room, seeming to take all the light with her.

'I never forget you, Dad; but I really want to do something beautiful that you can be proud of me for later. Mom often tells me to stop; but when we’re in here, we forget there’s a world outside because we’re so busy and so happy. Now I'll go run and sing, and just be a girl to make you happy.' And with that, Bess tossed aside the apron and disappeared from the room, as if she took all the light with her.

'I'm glad you said that. The dear child is too much absorbed in her artistic dreams for one so young. It is my fault; but I sympathize so deeply in it all, I forget to be wise,' sighed Amy, carefully covering the baby with a wet towel.

"I'm glad you said that. The sweet child is too caught up in her artistic dreams for someone so young. It's my fault; but I care so much about it all that I forget to be sensible," sighed Amy, carefully covering the baby with a wet towel.

'I think this power of living in our children is one of the sweetest things in the world; but I try to remember what Marmee once said to Meg—that fathers should have their share in the education of both girls and boys; so I leave Ted to his father all I can, and Fritz lends me Rob, whose quiet ways are as restful and good for me as Ted's tempests are for his father. Now I advise you, Amy, to let Bess drop the mud-pies for a time, and take up music with Laurie; then she won't be one-sided, and he won't be jealous.'

'I think the joy of seeing ourselves in our children is one of the most beautiful things in the world; but I try to remember what Marmee once told Meg—that dads should be involved in the education of both girls and boys; so I let Ted spend as much time as possible with his father, and Fritz helps me with Rob, whose calm demeanor is just as soothing and good for me as Ted's wild energy is for his dad. Now I recommend, Amy, that you encourage Bess to put the mud-pies aside for a while and focus on music with Laurie; that way she won't become one-dimensional, and he won't feel jealous.'

'Hear, hear! A Daniel—a very Daniel!' cried Laurie, well pleased. 'I thought you'd lend a hand, Jo, and say a word for me. I am a little jealous of Amy, and want more of a share in my girl. Come, my lady, let me have her this summer, and next year, when we go to Rome, I'll give her up to you and high art. Isn't that a fair bargain?'

"Hear, hear! A true Daniel—a real Daniel!" Laurie exclaimed, clearly happy. "I was hoping you'd step in and say something for me, Jo. I’m a bit jealous of Amy and want more time with my girl. Come on, my lady, let me have her this summer, and next year, when we go to Rome, I’ll let her go to you and your fancy art. Isn't that a fair deal?"

'I agree; but in trying your hobby, nature, with music thrown in, don't forget that, though only fifteen, our Bess is older than most girls of that age, and cannot be treated like a child. She is so very precious to me, I feel as if I wanted to keep her always as pure and beautiful as the marble she loves so well.'

'I agree; but in pursuing your hobby, nature, with music mixed in, don't forget that, even though she's only fifteen, our Bess is more mature than most girls her age and shouldn't be treated like a child. She's really precious to me, and I want to keep her as pure and beautiful as the marble she loves so much.'

Amy spoke regretfully as she looked about the lovely room where she had spent so many happy hours with this dear child of hers.

Amy spoke with regret as she looked around the beautiful room where she had spent so many happy hours with her beloved child.

'“Turn and turn about is fair play”, as we used to say when we all wanted to ride on Ellen Tree or wear the russet boots,' said Jo briskly; 'so you must share your girl between you, and see who will do the most for her.'

“Taking turns is fair play,” as we used to say when we all wanted to ride on Ellen Tree or wear the russet boots,” Jo said cheerfully; “so you have to share your girl and see who does the most for her.”

'We will,' answered the fond parents, laughing at the recollections Jo's proverb brought up to them.

“We will,” replied the loving parents, chuckling at the memories Jo's saying reminded them of.

'How I did use to enjoy bouncing on the limbs of that old apple-tree! No real horse ever gave me half the pleasure or the exercise,' said Amy, looking out of the high window as if she saw the dear old orchard again and the little girls at play there.

'How I used to love bouncing on the branches of that old apple tree! No real horse ever gave me as much joy or exercise,' said Amy, looking out of the tall window as if she could see the precious old orchard again and the little girls playing there.

'And what fun I had with those blessed boots!' laughed Jo. 'I've got the relics now. The boys reduced them to rags; but I love them still, and would enjoy a good theatrical stalk in them if it were possible.'

'And man, I had such a blast with those awesome boots!' Jo laughed. 'I've still got what's left of them. The boys turned them into rags, but I still love them and would totally enjoy a good dramatic strut in them if I could.'

'My fondest memories twine about the warming-pan and the sausage. What larks we had! And how long ago it seems!' said Laurie, staring at the two women before him as if he found it hard to realize that they ever had been little Amy and riotous Jo.

'My favorite memories are wrapped up in the warming pan and the sausage. We had such a blast! And it feels like ages ago!' said Laurie, looking at the two women in front of him as if it was hard to believe they had ever been little Amy and wild Jo.

'Don't suggest that we are growing old, my Lord. We have only bloomed; and a very nice bouquet we make with our buds about us,' answered Mrs Amy, shaking out the folds of her rosy muslin with much the air of dainty satisfaction the girl used to show in a new dress.

"Don't say we're getting old, my Lord. We've just blossomed, and we make a beautiful bouquet with our buds around us," replied Mrs. Amy, shaking out the folds of her pink muslin with the same dainty satisfaction the girl used to show in a new dress.

'Not to mention our thorns and dead leaves,' added Jo, with a sigh; for life had never been very easy to her, and even now she had her troubles both within and without.

'Not to mention our thorns and dead leaves,' Jo added with a sigh; life had never been easy for her, and even now she was dealing with troubles both inside and out.

'Come and have a dish of tea, old dear, and see what the young folks are about. You are tired, and want to be “stayed with flagons and comforted with apples”,' said Laurie, offering an arm to each sister, and leading them away to afternoon tea, which flowed as freely on Parnassus as the nectar of old.

"Come and have some tea, dear, and see what the young people are up to. You're tired and could use some refreshment and comfort," said Laurie, offering an arm to each sister and guiding them to afternoon tea, which flowed as freely on Parnassus as nectar did in the past.

They found Meg in the summer-parlour, an airy and delightful room, full now of afternoon sunshine and the rustle of trees; for the three long windows opened on the garden. The great music-room was at one end, and at the other, in a deep alcove hung with purple curtains, a little household shrine had been made. Three portraits hung there, two marble busts stood in the corners, and a couch, an oval table, with its urn of flowers, were the only articles of furniture the nook contained. The busts were John Brooke and Beth—Amy's work—both excellent likenesses, and both full of the placid beauty which always recalls the saying, that 'Clay represents life; plaster, death; marble, immortality'. On the right, as became the founder of the house, hung the portrait of Mr Laurence, with its expression of mingled pride and benevolence, as fresh and attractive as when he caught the girl Jo admiring it. Opposite was Aunt March—a legacy to Amy—in an imposing turban, immense sleeves, and long mittens decorously crossed on the front of her plum-coloured satin gown. Time had mellowed the severity of her aspect; and the fixed regard of the handsome old gentleman opposite seemed to account for the amiable simper on lips that had not uttered a sharp word for years.

They found Meg in the summer parlor, a bright and lovely room, now filled with afternoon sunlight and the sound of rustling trees, because the three large windows opened to the garden. The grand music room was at one end, and at the other, in a deep alcove draped with purple curtains, a small family shrine had been set up. Three portraits hung there, two marble busts stood in the corners, and a couch and an oval table with a vase of flowers were the only pieces of furniture in the nook. The busts were of John Brooke and Beth—Amy's creations—both excellent likenesses and embodying the serene beauty that reminds one of the saying, 'Clay represents life; plaster, death; marble, immortality.' On the right, as suited the founder of the house, hung the portrait of Mr. Laurence, showing a mix of pride and kindness, as fresh and appealing as when he caught Jo admiring it. Opposite was Aunt March—a legacy for Amy—wearing a grand turban, huge sleeves, and long mittens neatly crossed over the front of her deep plum satin gown. Time had softened the sternness of her expression, and the steady gaze of the handsome old gentleman across from her seemed to explain the pleasant smile on lips that hadn't spoken a harsh word in years.

In the place of honour, with the sunshine warm upon it, and a green garland always round it, was Marmee's beloved face, painted with grateful skill by a great artist whom she had befriended when poor and unknown. So beautifully lifelike was it that it seemed to smile down upon her daughters, saying cheerfully:

In the honored spot, basking in the warm sunlight and surrounded by a green garland, was Marmee's cherished face, expertly painted by a talented artist she had helped when he was poor and unknown. It looked so lifelike that it seemed to smile down at her daughters, cheerfully saying:

'Be happy; I am with you still.'

'Be happy; I'm still with you.'

The three sisters stood a moment looking up at the beloved picture with eyes full of tender reverence and the longing that never left them; for this noble mother had been so much to them that no one could ever fill her place. Only two years since she had gone away to live and love anew, leaving such a sweet memory behind her that it was both an inspiration and a comforter to all the household. They felt this as they drew closer to one another, and Laurie put it into words as he said earnestly:

The three sisters stood for a moment, gazing up at the cherished picture with eyes full of warm respect and a longing that never faded; for this amazing mother had meant so much to them that no one could ever take her place. It had only been two years since she had passed away to live and love again, leaving behind such a sweet memory that it served as both an inspiration and a comfort to everyone in the house. They felt this as they moved closer to each other, and Laurie voiced it when he said earnestly:

'I can ask nothing better for my child than that she may be a woman like our mother. Please God, she shall be, if I can do it; for I owe the best I have to this dear saint.'

'I can wish for nothing better for my child than that she becomes a woman like our mother. If it's God's will, she will be, if I have any say in it; because I owe everything I have to this dear saint.'

Just then a fresh voice began to sing 'Ave Maria' in the music-room, and Bess unconsciously echoed her father's prayer for her as she dutifully obeyed his wishes. The soft sound of the air Marmee used to sing led the listeners back into the world again from that momentary reaching after the loved and lost, and they sat down together near the open windows enjoying the music, while Laurie brought them tea, making the little service pleasant by the tender care he gave to it.

Just then, a bright voice started singing 'Ave Maria' in the music room, and Bess unknowingly echoed her father's prayer for her as she responsibly followed his wishes. The gentle sound of the melody Marmee used to sing pulled the listeners back into reality after their brief moment of longing for the loved ones they had lost. They settled down together by the open windows, enjoying the music, while Laurie brought them tea, making the little gesture nice with the thoughtful care he put into it.

Nat came in with Demi, soon followed by Ted and Josie, the Professor and his faithful Rob, all anxious to hear more about 'the boys'. The rattle of cups and tongues grew brisk, and the setting sun saw a cheerful company resting in the bright room after the varied labours of the day.

Nat came in with Demi, soon followed by Ted and Josie, the Professor and his loyal Rob, all eager to hear more about 'the boys'. The clatter of cups and chatter picked up pace, and the setting sun found a happy group relaxing in the bright room after the day's diverse activities.

Professor Bhaer was grey now, but robust and genial as ever; for he had the work he loved, and did it so heartily that the whole college felt his beautiful influence. Rob was as much like him as it was possible for a boy to be, and was already called the 'young Professor', he so adored study and closely imitated his honoured father in all ways.

Professor Bhaer was now grey, but still strong and cheerful as ever; he was doing the work he loved, and he did it with such passion that the entire college felt his wonderful influence. Rob was as much like him as a boy could be, and he was already being called the 'young Professor' because he loved studying so much and closely followed his respected father's example in every way.

'Well, heart's dearest, we go to have our boys again, all two, and may rejoice greatly,' said Mr Bhaer, seating himself beside Jo with a beaming face and a handshake of congratulation.

'Well, my heart's dearest, we're going to have our boys again, both of them, and we can rejoice greatly,' said Mr. Bhaer, sitting down next to Jo with a beaming smile and a congratulatory handshake.

'Oh, Fritz, I'm so delighted about Emil, and if you approve about Franz also. Did you know Ludmilla? Is it a wise match?' asked Mrs Jo, handing him her cup of tea and drawing closer, as if she welcomed her refuge in joy as well as sorrow.

'Oh, Fritz, I’m so happy about Emil, and I hope you feel good about Franz too. Did you know Ludmilla? Is it a smart choice?' asked Mrs. Jo, handing him her cup of tea and moving closer, as if she found comfort in sharing both joy and sorrow.

'It all goes well. I saw the Madchen when I went over to place Franz. A child then, but most sweet and charming. Blumenthal is satisfied, I think, and the boy will be happy. He is too German to be content away from Vaterland, so we shall have him as a link between the new and the old, and that pleases me much.'

'Everything is going well. I saw the girl when I went over to see Franz. She was just a child then, but very sweet and charming. I think Blumenthal is satisfied, and the boy will be happy. He’s too German to be happy away from his homeland, so we’ll have him as a connection between the new and the old, and that makes me very happy.'

'And Emil, he is to be second mate next voyage; isn't that fine? I'm so happy that both your boys have done well; you gave up so much for them and their mother. You make light of it, dear, but I never forget it,' said Jo, with her hand in his as sentimentally as if she was a girl again and her Fritz had come a-wooing.

'And Emil is going to be the second mate on the next voyage; isn’t that great? I’m really happy that both your boys are doing well; you gave up so much for them and their mother. You downplay it, dear, but I never forget it,' said Jo, with her hand in his, feeling as sentimental as if she were a girl again and her Fritz had come to court her.

He laughed his cheery laugh, and whispered behind her fan: 'If I had not come to America for the poor lads, I never should have found my Jo. The hard times are very sweet now, and I bless Gott for all I seemed to lose, because I gained the blessing of my life.'

He laughed his cheerful laugh and whispered behind her fan, "If I hadn't come to America for the poor boys, I never would have found my Jo. The tough times feel really sweet now, and I thank God for everything I seemed to lose because I gained the greatest blessing of my life."

'Spooning! spooning! Here's an awful flirtation on the sly,' cried Teddy, peering over the fan just at that interesting moment, much to his mother's confusion and his father's amusement; for the Professor never was ashamed of the fact that he still considered his wife the dearest woman in the world. Rob promptly ejected his brother from one window, to see him skip in at the other, while Mrs Jo shut her fan and held it ready to rap her unruly boy's knuckles if he came near her again.

'Spooning! Spooning! There's some sneaky flirting going on,' Teddy exclaimed, peeking over the fan at just the right moment, much to his mother's embarrassment and his father's delight; the Professor was never shy about the fact that he still thought of his wife as the most wonderful woman in the world. Rob quickly pushed his brother out of one window, only to see him enter through the other, while Mrs. Jo closed her fan and kept it ready to swat her misbehaving son's knuckles if he came close again.

Nat approached in answer to Mr Bhaer's beckoning teaspoon, and stood before them with a face full of the respectful affection he felt for the excellent man who had done so much for him.

Nat came over in response to Mr. Bhaer's waving teaspoon and stood before them, his face filled with the respectful affection he felt for the great man who had done so much for him.

'I have the letters ready for thee, my son. They are two old friends of mine in Leipzig, who will befriend thee in that new life. It is well to have them, for thou wilt be heartbroken with Heimweh at the first, Nat, and need comforting,' said the Professor, giving him several letters.

'I have the letters ready for you, my son. They are two old friends of mine in Leipzig who will help you in this new life. It's good to have them because you will feel homesick at first, Nat, and you'll need some comfort,' said the Professor, handing him several letters.

'Thanks, sir. Yes, I expect to be pretty lonely till I get started, then my music and the hope of getting on will cheer me up,' answered Nat, who both longed and dreaded to leave all these friends behind him and make new ones.

'Thanks, sir. Yeah, I know I’ll be pretty lonely until I get going, but my music and the hope of moving forward will lift my spirits,' replied Nat, who both craved and feared leaving all his friends behind and making new ones.

He was a man now; but the blue eyes were as honest as ever, the mouth still a little weak, in spite of the carefully cherished moustache over it, and the broad forehead more plainly than ever betrayed the music-loving nature of the youth. Modest, affectionate, and dutiful, Nat was considered a pleasant though not a brilliant success by Mrs Jo. She loved and trusted him, and was sure he would do his best, but did not expect that he would be great in any way, unless the stimulus of foreign training and self-dependence made him a better artist and a stronger man than now seemed likely.

He was a man now, but his blue eyes were still as honest as ever, and his mouth remained a bit weak despite the carefully maintained mustache above it. His broad forehead more clearly than ever revealed his music-loving nature from his youth. Modest, affectionate, and dutiful, Nat was seen by Mrs. Jo as a pleasant, though not particularly impressive, success. She loved and trusted him, confident that he would put in his best effort, but she didn't expect him to achieve greatness unless the motivation of foreign training and independence helped him become a better artist and a stronger man than it seemed likely he would be.

'I've marked all your things—or rather, Daisy did—and as soon as your books are collected, we can see about the packing,' said Mrs Jo, who was so used to fitting boys off for all quarters of the globe that a trip to the North Pole would not have been too much for her.

"I've labeled all your stuff—or actually, Daisy did—and as soon as we gather your books, we can start figuring out the packing," said Mrs. Jo, who was so accustomed to sending boys off to all corners of the world that a trip to the North Pole wouldn't have been too much for her.

Nat grew red at mention of that name—or was it the last glow of sunset on his rather pale cheek?—and his heart beat happily at the thought of the dear girl working Ns and Bs on his humble socks and handkerchiefs; for Nat adored Daisy, and the cherished dream of his life was to earn a place for himself as a musician and win this angel for his wife. This hope did more for him than the Professor's counsels, Mrs Jo's care, or Mr Laurie's generous help. For her sake he worked, waited, and hoped, finding courage and patience in the dream of that happy future when Daisy should make a little home for him and he fiddle a fortune into her lap. Mrs Jo knew this; and though he was not exactly the man she would have chosen for her niece, she felt that Nat would always need just the wise and loving care Daisy could give him, and that without it there was danger of his being one of the amiable and aimless men who fail for want of the right pilot to steer them safely through the world. Mrs Meg decidedly frowned upon the poor boy's love, and would not hear of giving her dear girl to any but the best man to be found on the face of the earth. She was very kind, but as firm as such gentle souls can be; and Nat fled for comfort to Mrs Jo, who always espoused the interests of her boys heartily. A new set of anxieties was beginning now that the aforesaid boys were growing up, and she foresaw no end of worry as well as amusement in the love-affairs already budding in her flock. Mrs Meg was usually her best ally and adviser, for she loved romances as well now as when a blooming girl herself. But in this case she hardened her heart, and would not hear a word of entreaty. 'Nat was not man enough, never would be, no one knew his family, a musician's life was a hard one; Daisy was too young, five or six years hence when time had proved both perhaps. Let us see what absence will do for him.' And that was the end of it, for when the maternal Pelican was roused she could be very firm, though for her precious children she would have plucked her last feather and given the last drop of her blood.

Nat turned red at the mention of that name—or maybe it was just the last light of sunset on his pale cheek?—and his heart raced with joy at the thought of the dear girl stitching Ns and Bs on his plain socks and handkerchiefs; because Nat adored Daisy, and his biggest dream was to become a musician and win this angel as his wife. This hope motivated him more than the Professor's advice, Mrs. Jo's support, or Mr. Laurie's generous help. For her sake, he worked, waited, and hoped, finding strength and patience in his dream of a happy future when Daisy would create a little home for him while he played music to make her dreams come true. Mrs. Jo understood this; and although he wasn't exactly the man she would have picked for her niece, she believed that Nat would always need the wise and loving support Daisy could provide, and that without it, he might become one of those kind but aimless men who fail without the right guidance to navigate life. Mrs. Meg strongly disapproved of the poor boy's love and wouldn’t entertain the idea of giving her dear girl to anyone but the best man she could find. She was kind, but as resolute as gentle souls can be; and Nat sought comfort from Mrs. Jo, who always fully supported her boys. A new set of worries was beginning now that those boys were growing up, and she anticipated both worry and amusement from the budding romances within her group. Mrs. Meg was usually her best ally and advisor because she loved romantic stories as much as she did when she was a blooming girl herself. But in this case, she hardened her heart and would not listen to any pleas. 'Nat wasn't man enough, he never would be, nobody knew his family, a musician's life is tough; Daisy is too young, maybe in five or six years when time has shown them both.’ And that was the end of it, for when the maternal Pelican was roused, she could be very firm, although for her precious children she would have plucked her last feather and given her last drop of blood.

Mrs Jo was thinking of this as she looked at Nat while he talked with her husband about Leipzig, and she resolved to have a clear understanding with him before he went; for she was used to confidences, and talked freely with her boys about the trials and temptations that beset all lives in the beginning, and so often mar them, for want of the right word at the right moment.

Mrs. Jo was thinking about this as she watched Nat chatting with her husband about Leipzig, and she decided to have a straightforward conversation with him before he left; she was accustomed to sharing secrets and spoke openly with her boys about the challenges and temptations that everyone faces in the beginning, which often spoil their lives for lack of the right words at the right time.

This is the first duty of parents, and no false delicacy should keep them from the watchful care, the gentle warning, which makes self-knowledge and self-control the compass and pilot of the young as they leave the safe harbour of home.

This is the primary responsibility of parents, and no unnecessary embarrassment should stop them from providing the vigilant care and gentle guidance that help young people develop self-awareness and self-discipline as they set out from the safe haven of home.

'Plato and his disciples approach,' announced irreverent Teddy, as Mr March came in with several young men and women about him; for the wise old man was universally beloved, and ministered so beautifully to his flock that many of them thanked him all their lives for the help given to both hearts and souls.

'Plato and his disciples are coming,' announced irreverent Teddy, as Mr. March walked in with several young men and women around him; the wise old man was universally loved and took such great care of his group that many of them thanked him for the support he provided to both their hearts and souls throughout their lives.

Bess went to him at once; for since Marmee died, Grandpapa was her special care, and it was sweet to see the golden head bend over the silver one as she rolled out his easy-chair and waited on him with tender alacrity.

Bess went to him right away; since Marmee passed away, Grandpapa was her main focus, and it was heartwarming to see her golden head lean over his silvery one as she pulled out his easy chair and attended to him with gentle eagerness.

'Aesthetic tea always on tap here, sir; will you have a flowing bowl or a bit of ambrosia?' asked Laurie, who was wandering about with a sugar-basin in one hand and a plate of cake in the other; for sweetening cups and feeding the hungry was work he loved.

'Aesthetic tea always available here, sir; would you like a bowl of it or a taste of some ambrosia?' asked Laurie, who was moving around with a sugar bowl in one hand and a plate of cake in the other; for sweetening cups and feeding the hungry was work he enjoyed.

'Neither, thanks; this child has taken care of me'; and Mr March turned to Bess, who sat on one arm of his chair, holding a glass of fresh milk.

'No, thanks; this child has taken care of me,' Mr. March said, turning to Bess, who was sitting on one arm of his chair, holding a glass of fresh milk.

'Long may she live to do it, sir, and I be here to see this pretty contradiction of the song that “youth and age cannot live together”!' answered Laurie, smiling at the pair. '“Crabbed age”, papa; that makes all the difference in the world,' said Bess quickly; for she loved poetry, and read the best.

'May she live long enough to do it, sir, and I hope to be here to witness this nice contradiction of the saying that “youth and age cannot coexist!”' answered Laurie, smiling at the couple. '“Crabbed age,” dad; that changes everything,' said Bess quickly, as she loved poetry and read the best.

    'Wouldst thou see fresh roses grow
     In a reverend bed of snow?'
'Would you like to see fresh roses grow  
In a respected bed of snow?'

quoted Mr March, as Josie came and perched on the other arm, looking like a very thorny little rose; for she had been having a hot discussion with Ted, and had got the worst of it.

quoted Mr. March, as Josie came and sat on the other arm, looking like a very prickly little rose; because she had just had a heated argument with Ted and didn’t come out on top.

'Grandpa, must women always obey men and say they are the wisest, just because they are the strongest?' she cried, looking fiercely at her cousin, who came stalking up with a provoking smile on the boyish face that was always very comical atop of that tall figure.

"Grandpa, do women always have to obey men and claim they're the smartest just because they're the strongest?" she shouted, glaring at her cousin, who was walking over with an annoying grin on his boyish face that always looked pretty funny on that tall frame.

'Well, my dear, that is the old-fashioned belief, and it will take some time to change it. But I think the woman's hour has struck; and it looks to me as if the boys must do their best, for the girls are abreast now, and may reach the goal first,' answered Mr March, surveying with paternal satisfaction the bright faces of the young women, who were among the best students in the college.

"Well, my dear, that's an outdated belief, and it will take some time to change it. But I believe the time for women has arrived; and it seems to me that the guys need to step up their game because the girls are right there with them and might reach the finish line first," replied Mr. March, looking with parental pride at the bright faces of the young women, who were some of the top students in the college.

'The poor little Atalantas are sadly distracted and delayed by the obstacles thrown in their way—not golden apples, by any means—but I think they will stand a fair chance when they have learned to run better,' laughed Uncle Laurie, stroking Josie's breezy hair, which stood up like the fur of an angry kitten.

'The poor little Atalantas are really thrown off and delayed by the obstacles in their path—not golden apples, by any means—but I think they’ll have a good shot once they learn to run better,' laughed Uncle Laurie, stroking Josie's messy hair, which stuck up like the fur of an angry kitten.

'Whole barrels of apples won't stop me when I start, and a dozen Teds won't trip me up, though they may try. I'll show him that a woman can act as well, if not better, than a man. It has been done, and will be again; and I'll never own that my brain isn't as good as his, though it may be smaller,' cried the excited young person.

'Whole barrels of apples won't hold me back once I get going, and a dozen Teds won’t throw me off, even if they try. I'll prove that a woman can act just as well, if not better, than a man. It's been done before, and it will happen again; and I’ll never admit that my brain isn’t as good as his, even if it might be smaller,' exclaimed the enthusiastic young person.

'If you shake your head in that violent way you'll addle what brains you have got; and I'd take care of 'em, if I were you,' began teasing Ted.

'If you keep shaking your head like that, you'll mess up whatever brains you've got; and I'd protect them, if I were you,' started teasing Ted.

'What started this civil war?' asked Grandpapa, with a gentle emphasis on the adjective, which caused the combatants to calm their ardour a little.

'What started this civil war?' asked Grandpapa, putting a gentle emphasis on the adjective, which made the fighters cool down their passion a bit.

'Why, we were pegging away at the Iliad and came to where Zeus tells Juno not to inquire into his plans or he'll whip her, and Jo was disgusted because Juno meekly hushed up. I said it was all right, and agreed with the old fellow that women didn't know much and ought to obey men,' explained Ted, to the great amusement of his hearers.

'We were working through the Iliad and got to the part where Zeus tells Juno not to ask about his plans or he'll punish her, and Jo was appalled because Juno just went quiet. I said it was fine and agreed with the old guy that women didn’t know much and should listen to men,' Ted explained, to the great amusement of his audience.

'Goddesses may do as they like, but those Greek and Trojan women were poor-spirited things if they minded men who couldn't fight their own battles and had to be hustled off by Pallas, and Venus, and Juno, when they were going to get beaten. The idea of two armies stopping and sitting down while a pair of heroes flung stones at one another! I don't think much of your old Homer. Give me Napoleon or Grant for my hero.'

'Goddesses can do whatever they want, but those Greek and Trojan women were pretty weak if they cared about men who couldn’t fight their own battles and needed to be saved by Pallas, Venus, and Juno when they were about to lose. The thought of two armies taking a break while a couple of heroes threw stones at each other! I’m not impressed with your old Homer. I’d rather have Napoleon or Grant as my hero.'

Josie's scorn was as funny as if a humming-bird scolded at an ostrich, and everyone laughed as she sniffed at the immortal poet and criticized the gods.

Josie's disdain was as amusing as if a hummingbird was scolding an ostrich, and everyone laughed as she dismissed the immortal poet and critiqued the gods.

'Napoleon's Juno had a nice time; didn't she? That's just the way girls argue—first one way and then the other,' jeered Ted.

"Napoleon's Juno had a great time; didn't she? That's how girls argue—first one way and then the other," teased Ted.

'Like Johnson's young lady, who was “not categorical, but all wiggle-waggle”,' added Uncle Laurie, enjoying the battle immensely.

'Like Johnson's young lady, who was “not straightforward, but all over the place,”' added Uncle Laurie, enjoying the fight immensely.

'I was only speaking of them as soldiers. But if you come to the woman side of it, wasn't Grant a kind husband and Mrs Grant a happy woman? He didn't threaten to whip her if she asked a natural question; and if Napoleon did do wrong about Josephine, he could fight, and didn't want any Minerva to come fussing over him. They were a stupid set, from dandified Paris to Achilles sulking in his ships, and I won't change my opinion for all the Hectors and Agamemnons in Greece,' said Josie, still unconquered.

'I was just talking about them as soldiers. But if you look at the personal side, wasn't Grant a caring husband and Mrs. Grant a happy woman? He didn't threaten her if she asked a reasonable question; and even if Napoleon messed up with Josephine, he could fight and didn't want any Minerva hovering over him. They were a silly bunch, from stylish Paris to Achilles sulking in his ships, and I won't change my mind for all the Hectors and Agamemnons in Greece,' said Josie, still unbent.

'You can fight like a Trojan, that's evident; and we will be the two obedient armies looking on while you and Ted have it out,' began Uncle Laurie, assuming the attitude of a warrior leaning on his spear.

'You can fight like a champ, that's clear; and we’ll just be the two loyal armies watching while you and Ted go at it,' started Uncle Laurie, taking the stance of a warrior resting on his spear.

'I fear we must give it up, for Pallas is about to descend and carry off our Hector,' said Mr March, smiling, as Jo came to remind her son that suppertime was near.

"I think we have to let it go, because Pallas is about to come down and take our Hector," Mr. March said with a smile as Jo came in to remind her son that it was almost time for supper.

'We will fight it out later when there are no goddesses to interfere,' said Teddy, as he turned away with unusual alacrity, remembering the treat in store.

"We'll settle this later when there are no goddesses around to mess things up," said Teddy, turning away with surprising energy, excited about the treat ahead.

'Conquered by a muffin, by Jove!' called Josie after him, exulting in an opportunity to use the classical exclamation forbidden to her sex.

"Defeated by a muffin, no way!" shouted Josie after him, relishing the chance to use the classic exclamation not allowed for her gender.

But Ted shot a Parthian arrow as he retired in good order by replying, with a highly virtuous expression:

But Ted shot back a quick, clever response as he left gracefully, saying with a very righteous look:

'Obedience is a soldier's first duty.'

'Obedience is a soldier's top responsibility.'

Bent on her woman's privilege of having the last word, Josie ran after him, but never uttered the scathing speech upon her lips, for a very brown young man in a blue suit came leaping up the steps with a cheery 'Ahoy! ahoy! where is everybody?'

Determined to have the last word, Josie chased after him but never spoke the biting words she had ready. Instead, a very tan young man in a blue suit came bounding up the steps, happily exclaiming, 'Hey! Hey! Where is everyone?'

'Emil! Emil!' cried Josie, and in a moment Ted was upon him, and the late enemies ended their fray in a joyful welcome to the newcomer.

'Emil! Emil!' shouted Josie, and in an instant, Ted was on him, and the former rivals ended their fight with a happy greeting for the newcomer.

Muffins were forgotten, and towing their cousin like two fussy little tugs with a fine merchantman, the children returned to the parlour, where Emil kissed all the women and shook hands with all the men except his uncle; him he embraced in the good old German style, to the great delight of the observers.

Muffins were overlooked, and pulling their cousin like two picky little tugs with a big merchant ship, the kids went back to the living room, where Emil kissed all the women and shook hands with all the men except for his uncle; he hugged him in the traditional German way, much to the delight of the onlookers.

'Didn't think I could get off today, but found I could, and steered straight for old Plum. Not a soul there, so I luffed and bore away for Parnassus, and here is every man Jack of you. Bless your hearts, how glad I am to see you all!' exclaimed the sailor boy, beaming at them, as he stood with his legs apart as if he still felt the rocking deck under his feet.

"Didn't think I could get off today, but found I could, and headed straight for old Plum. Not a soul there, so I adjusted my course for Parnassus, and here is every one of you. Bless your hearts, how happy I am to see you all!" exclaimed the sailor boy, smiling at them, as he stood with his legs apart as if he still felt the rocking deck under his feet.

'You ought to “shiver your timbers”, not “bless our hearts”, Emil; it's not nautical at all. Oh, how nice and shippy and tarry you do smell!' said Josie, sniffing at him with great enjoyment of the fresh sea odours he brought with him. This was her favourite cousin, and she was his pet; so she knew that the bulging pockets of the blue jacket contained treasures for her at least.

'You should “shiver your timbers,” not “bless our hearts,” Emil; that's not nautical at all. Oh, you smell so nice and ship-like with that salty sea scent!' said Josie, sniffing him with delight at the fresh ocean smells he brought along. He was her favorite cousin, and she was his little favorite; so she knew that the bulging pockets of his blue jacket held treasures just for her.

'Avast, my hearty, and let me take soundings before you dive,' laughed Emil, understanding her affectionate caresses, and holding her off with one hand while with the other he rummaged out sundry foreign little boxes and parcels marked with different names, and handed them round with appropriate remarks, which caused much laughter; for Emil was a wag.

"Hold on, my dear, let me check the depth before you jump in," laughed Emil, recognizing her loving touches and gently pushing her away with one hand while he used the other to pull out various little boxes and packages from different places, passing them around with witty comments that made everyone laugh; Emil was quite the jokester.

'There's a hawser that will hold our little cock-boat still about five minutes,' he said, throwing a necklace of pretty pink coral over Josie's head; 'and here's something the mermaids sent to Undine,' he added, handing Bess a string of pearly shells on a silver chain.

"There's a rope that will keep our little boat stable for about five minutes," he said, tossing a necklace of pretty pink coral over Josie's head; "and here's something the mermaids sent to Undine," he added, giving Bess a string of pearly shells on a silver chain.

I thought Daisy would like a fiddle, and Nat can find her a beau,' continued the sailor, with a laugh, as he undid a dainty filigree brooch in the shape of a violin.

"I thought Daisy might enjoy a fiddle, and Nat can help her find a guy," continued the sailor with a laugh as he unfastened a delicate filigree brooch shaped like a violin.

'I know she will, and I'll take it to her,' answered Nat, as he vanished, glad of an errand, and sure that he could find Daisy though Emil had missed her.

"I know she will, and I'll deliver it to her," Nat replied as he disappeared, happy to have a task, and confident that he could track down Daisy even though Emil had overlooked her.

Emil chuckled, and handed out a quaintly carved bear whose head opened, showing a capacious ink-stand. This he presented, with a scrape, to Aunt Jo.

Emil chuckled and handed over a charmingly carved bear whose head opened to reveal a spacious ink stand. He presented it, with a bow, to Aunt Jo.

'Knowing your fondness for these fine animals, I brought this one to your pen.'

"Since I know how much you love these amazing animals, I brought this one to your pen."

'Very good, Commodore! Try again,' said Mrs Jo, much pleased with her gift, which caused the Professor to prophesy 'works of Shakespeare' from its depths, so great would be the inspiration of the beloved bruin.

'Very good, Commodore! Try again,' said Mrs. Jo, very pleased with her gift, which made the Professor predict 'works of Shakespeare' would come from its depths, so great would be the inspiration of the beloved bear.

'As Aunt Meg will wear caps, in spite of her youth, I got Ludmilla to get me some bits of lace. Hope you'll like 'em'; and out of a soft paper came some filmy things, one of which soon lay like a net of snowflakes on Mrs Meg's pretty hair.

'Since Aunt Meg is going to wear caps, despite her youth, I had Ludmilla get me some lace. Hope you'll like them; and out of a soft paper came some delicate pieces, one of which soon rested like a net of snowflakes in Mrs. Meg's lovely hair.'

'I couldn't find anything swell enough for Aunt Amy, because she has everything she wants, so I brought a little picture that always makes me think of her when Bess was a baby'; and he handed her an oval ivory locket, on which was painted a goldenhaired Madonna, with a rosy child folded in her blue mantle.

'I couldn't find anything good enough for Aunt Amy since she has everything she wants, so I brought a small picture that always reminds me of her when Bess was a baby'; and he handed her an oval ivory locket, on which was painted a golden-haired Madonna, with a rosy child wrapped in her blue mantle.

'How lovely!' cried everyone; and Aunt Amy at once hung it about her neck on the blue ribbon from Bess's hair, charmed with her gift; for it recalled the happiest year of her life.

"How lovely!" everyone exclaimed, and Aunt Amy immediately put it around her neck on the blue ribbon from Bess's hair, delighted with her gift; it reminded her of the happiest year of her life.

'Now, I flatter myself I've got just the thing for Nan, neat but not gaudy, a sort of sign you see, and very appropriate for a doctor,' said Emil, proudly displaying a pair of lava earrings shaped like little skulls.

'Now, I think I've found the perfect thing for Nan, stylish but not flashy, a kind of sign you see, and very fitting for a doctor,' said Emil, proudly showing off a pair of lava earrings shaped like tiny skulls.

'Horrid!' And Bess, who hated ugly things, turned her eyes to her own pretty shells.

'Horrible!' And Bess, who couldn't stand ugly things, turned her gaze to her own beautiful shells.

'She won't wear earrings,' said Josie.

'She won't wear earrings,' said Josie.

'Well, she'll enjoy punching your ears then. She's never so happy as when she's overhauling her fellow creatures and going for 'em with a knife,' answered Emil, undisturbed. 'I've got a lot of plunder for you fellows in my chest, but I knew I should have no peace till my cargo for the girls was unloaded. Now tell me all the news.' And, seated on Amy's best marbletopped table, the sailor swung his legs and talked at the rate of ten knots an hour, till Aunt Jo carried them all off to a grand family tea in honour of the Commodore.

'Well, she's going to love giving you a hard time then. She's never happier than when she's putting her fellow beings in their place and going at them with a knife,' replied Emil, unfazed. 'I've got a lot of stuff for you guys in my chest, but I knew I wouldn't get any peace until I unloaded my cargo for the girls. Now, tell me all the news.' And, sitting on Amy's best marble-top table, the sailor swung his legs and talked at lightning speed until Aunt Jo took them all off to a big family tea in honor of the Commodore.





Chapter 3. JO'S LAST SCRAPE

The March family had enjoyed a great many surprises in the course of their varied career, but the greatest of all was when the Ugly Duckling turned out to be, not a swan, but a golden goose, whose literary eggs found such an unexpected market that in ten years Jo's wildest and most cherished dream actually came true. How or why it happened she never clearly understood, but all of a sudden she found herself famous in a small way, and, better still, with a snug little fortune in her pocket to clear away the obstacles of the present and assure the future of her boys.

The March family had experienced a lot of surprises throughout their different adventures, but the biggest one was when the Ugly Duckling turned out to be, not a swan, but a golden goose. Its literary gems found such an unexpected audience that in ten years, Jo's wildest and most cherished dream actually came true. She never fully grasped how or why it happened, but suddenly she found herself somewhat famous and, even better, with a nice little fortune to eliminate the challenges of the present and secure her boys' future.

It began during a bad year when everything went wrong at Plumfield; times were hard, the school dwindled, Jo overworked herself and had a long illness; Laurie and Amy were abroad, and the Bhaers too proud to ask help even of those as near and dear as this generous pair. Confined to her room, Jo got desperate over the state of affairs, till she fell back upon the long-disused pen as the only thing she could do to help fill up the gaps in the income. A book for girls being wanted by a certain publisher, she hastily scribbled a little story describing a few scenes and adventures in the lives of herself and sisters, though boys were more in her line, and with very slight hopes of success sent it out to seek its fortune.

It all started during a rough year when everything went downhill at Plumfield; times were tough, the school was struggling, Jo pushed herself too hard and ended up sick for a long time; Laurie and Amy were overseas, and the Bhaers were too proud to ask for help even from close friends like this generous couple. Stuck in her room, Jo became desperate about the situation until she picked up her long-neglected pen, the only thing she could do to help boost the income. A publisher was looking for a book for girls, so she quickly wrote a little story about some scenes and adventures from her life and her sisters', even though she usually wrote more for boys, and with very little hope of success, she sent it out to find its way.

Things always went by contraries with Jo. Her first book, laboured over for years, and launched full of the high hopes and ambitious dreams of youth, foundered on its voyage, though the wreck continued to float long afterward, to the profit of the publisher at least. The hastily written story, sent away with no thought beyond the few dollars it might bring, sailed with a fair wind and a wise pilot at the helm into public favour, and came home heavily laden with an unexpected cargo of gold and glory.

Things always went against the grain for Jo. Her first book, worked on for years and released with all the high hopes and ambitious dreams of youth, sank without a trace, though the remains continued to linger long after, benefiting the publisher at least. The quickly written story, sent off without any thought beyond the few bucks it might earn, set sail with a favorable breeze and a skilled pilot at the helm into public favor, returning home loaded down with an unexpected bounty of money and recognition.

A more astonished woman probably never existed than Josephine Bhaer when her little ship came into port with flags flying, cannon that had been silent before now booming gaily, and, better than all, many kind faces rejoicing with her, many friendly hands grasping hers with cordial congratulations. After that it was plain sailing, and she merely had to load her ships and send them off on prosperous trips, to bring home stores of comfort for all she loved and laboured for.

A more astonished woman probably never existed than Josephine Bhaer when her little ship came into port with flags waving, cannons that had been silent before now celebrating loudly, and, best of all, many kind faces celebrating with her, many friendly hands shaking hers with warm congratulations. After that, it was smooth sailing, and she just had to load her ships and send them off on successful journeys to bring back supplies of comfort for everyone she loved and worked for.

The fame she never did quite accept; for it takes very little fire to make a great deal of smoke nowadays, and notoriety is not real glory. The fortune she could not doubt, and gratefully received; though it was not half so large a one as a generous world reported it to be. The tide having turned continued to rise, and floated the family comfortably into a snug harbour where the older members could rest secure from storms, and whence the younger ones could launch their boats for the voyage of life.

The fame she never fully embraced; it takes very little effort to create a lot of noise these days, and being famous isn't the same as having true glory. She couldn't deny the fortune and accepted it with gratitude, even though it wasn't nearly as big as people claimed it was. The tide had turned and continued to rise, allowing the family to settle into a safe harbor where the older members could rest easily from life's storms, while the younger ones could set out on their own journeys.

All manner of happiness, peace, and plenty came in those years to bless the patient waiters, hopeful workers, and devout believers in the wisdom and justice of Him who sends disappointment, poverty, and sorrow to try the love of human hearts and make success the sweeter when it comes. The world saw the prosperity, and kind souls rejoiced over the improved fortunes of the family; but the success Jo valued most, the happiness that nothing could change or take away, few knew much about.

All kinds of happiness, peace, and abundance came in those years to bless the patient waiters, hopeful workers, and devoted believers in the wisdom and justice of Him who sends disappointment, poverty, and sorrow to test the love of human hearts and make success even sweeter when it finally arrives. The world witnessed the prosperity, and kind people celebrated the family's improved fortunes; however, the success that Jo valued most, the happiness that nothing could change or take away, was known by only a few.

It was the power of making her mother's last years happy and serene; to see the burden of care laid down for ever, the weary hands at rest, the dear face untroubled by any anxiety, and the tender heart free to pour itself out in the wise charity which was its delight. As a girl, Jo's favourite plan had been a room where Marmee could sit in peace and enjoy herself after her hard, heroic life. Now the dream had become a happy fact, and Marmee sat in her pleasant chamber with every comfort and luxury about her, loving daughters to wait on her as infirmities increased, a faithful mate to lean upon, and grand-children to brighten the twilight of life with their dutiful affection. A very precious time to all, for she rejoiced as only mothers can in the good fortunes of their children. She had lived to reap the harvest she sowed; had seen prayers answered, hopes blossom, good gifts bear fruit, peace and prosperity bless the home she had made; and then, like some brave, patient angel, whose work was done, turned her face heavenward, glad to rest.

It was the joy of making her mother's final years happy and peaceful; to see the burden of caregiving lifted forever, the tired hands at rest, the beloved face free from any worry, and the gentle heart open to express the kindness that brought her joy. As a girl, Jo had always dreamed of a room where Marmee could relax and enjoy herself after her challenging, heroic life. Now that dream had become a wonderful reality, and Marmee sat in her cozy room surrounded by every comfort and luxury, with loving daughters tending to her as she grew frailer, a devoted partner to lean on, and grandchildren to brighten the later years of her life with their loving attentions. It was a very special time for everyone, as she rejoiced in the good fortunes of her children as only a mother can. She had lived to see the rewards of her labor; watched prayers come true, hopes flourish, good gifts bear fruit, and peace and prosperity bless the home she had created; and then, like a brave, patient angel whose work was done, she looked up towards heaven, content to rest.

This was the sweet and sacred side of the change; but it had its droll and thorny one, as all things have in this curious world of ours. After the first surprise, incredulity, and joy, which came to Jo, with the ingratitude of human nature, she soon tired of renown, and began to resent her loss of liberty. For suddenly the admiring public took possession of her and all her affairs, past, present, and to come. Strangers demanded to look at her, question, advise, warn, congratulate, and drive her out of her wits by well-meant but very wearisome attentions. If she declined to open her heart to them, they reproached her; if she refused to endow her pet charities, relieve private wants, or sympathize with every ill and trial known to humanity, she was called hard-hearted, selfish, and haughty; if she found it impossible to answer the piles of letters sent her, she was neglectful of her duty to the admiring public; and if she preferred the privacy of home to the pedestal upon which she was requested to pose, 'the airs of literary people' were freely criticized.

This was the sweet and special side of the change; but it also had its funny and prickly side, like everything in this strange world of ours. After the initial shock, disbelief, and happiness that Jo experienced, she quickly grew tired of fame and started to resent losing her freedom. Suddenly, the adoring public took over her life and everything related to her—her past, her present, and her future. Strangers wanted to see her, ask her questions, give her advice, warn her, congratulate her, and drive her crazy with their well-meaning but exhausting attention. If she didn’t open up to them, they scolded her; if she didn’t financially support her favorite charities, help those in need, or sympathize with every hardship and struggle faced by humanity, she was labeled cold-hearted, selfish, and snobbish; if she couldn’t respond to the mountain of letters sent to her, she was seen as neglecting her duty to her fans; and if she preferred the quiet of home over the spotlight she was expected to stand in, “the pretentiousness of literary types” was heavily criticized.

She did her best for the children, they being the public for whom she wrote, and laboured stoutly to supply the demand always in the mouths of voracious youth—'More stories; more right away!' Her family objected to this devotion at their expense, and her health suffered; but for a time she gratefully offered herself up on the altar of juvenile literature, feeling that she owed a good deal to the little friends in whose sight she had found favour after twenty years of effort.

She worked hard for the kids, who were the audience she wrote for, and she tirelessly tried to meet the constant demand from eager young readers—'More stories; we want more now!' Her family disapproved of her dedication at their cost, and her health took a hit; but for a while, she willingly sacrificed herself for children's literature, feeling she owed a lot to the little fans who had finally embraced her after twenty years of trying.

But a time came when her patience gave out; and wearying of being a lion, she became a bear in nature as in name, and returning to her den, growled awfully when ordered out. Her family enjoyed the fun, and had small sympathy with her trials, but Jo came to consider it the worse scrape of her life; for liberty had always been her dearest possession, and it seemed to be fast going from her. Living in a lantern soon loses its charm, and she was too old, too tired, and too busy to like it. She felt that she had done all that could reasonably be required of her when autographs, photographs, and autobiographical sketches had been sown broadcast over the land; when artists had taken her home in all its aspects, and reporters had taken her in the grim one she always assumed on these trying occasions; when a series of enthusiastic boarding-schools had ravaged her grounds for trophies, and a steady stream of amiable pilgrims had worn her doorsteps with their respectful feet; when servants left after a week's trial of the bell that rang all day; when her husband was forced to guard her at meals, and the boys to cover her retreat out of back windows on certain occasions when enterprising guests walked in unannounced at unfortunate moments.

But there came a time when her patience ran out; tired of being a lion, she turned into a bear both in nature and in name, and when she returned to her den, she growled menacingly when ordered to come out. Her family found it amusing and had little sympathy for her struggles, but Jo saw it as the worst situation of her life; freedom had always been her most cherished possession, and it seemed to be slipping away. Living in a spotlight soon loses its appeal, and she was too old, too exhausted, and too busy to enjoy it. She felt she had done everything reasonably expected of her; autographs, photographs, and personal stories had been spread all over the country; artists had depicted her home in every way possible, and reporters had captured her in her typical grim demeanor during these tough times; a series of eager boarding schools had torn through her grounds for keepsakes, and a continuous line of friendly visitors had worn down her doorstep with their respectful visits; when staff left after just a week of dealing with the bell that rang all day; when her husband had to protect her during meals, and the boys had to help her escape out back windows on certain occasions when unexpected guests arrived at awkward times.

A sketch of one day may perhaps explain the state of things, offer some excuse for the unhappy woman, and give a hint to the autograph-fiend now rampant in the land; for it is a true tale.

A snapshot of one day might help clarify the situation, provide some understanding for the troubled woman, and offer a clue to the autograph collector who is everywhere these days; because this is a real story.

'There ought to be a law to protect unfortunate authors,' said Mrs Jo one morning soon after Emil's arrival, when the mail brought her an unusually large and varied assortment of letters. 'To me it is a more vital subject than international copyright; for time is money, peace is health, and I lose both with no return but less respect for my fellow creatures and a wild desire to fly into the wilderness, since I cannot shut my doors even in free America.'

"There should be a law to protect struggling writers," said Mrs. Jo one morning shortly after Emil arrived, when she received a surprisingly large and diverse batch of letters in the mail. "To me, this is a more important issue than international copyright; because time is money, peace is health, and I lose both, with nothing to show for it except less respect for my fellow humans and an overwhelming urge to escape into the wild, since I can't even close my doors in free America."

'Lion-hunters are awful when in search of their prey. If they could change places for a while it would do them good; and they'd see what bores they were when they “do themselves the honour of calling to express their admiration of our charming work”,' quoted Ted, with a bow to his parent, now frowning over twelve requests for autographs.

'Lion hunters are terrible when they're out looking for their prey. If they could swap places for a bit, it would do them some good; and they'd realize how dull they are when they “do themselves the honor of calling to express their admiration for our delightful work,”' quoted Ted, with a nod to his parent, who was now frowning over twelve requests for autographs.

'I have made up my mind on one point,' said Mrs Jo with great firmness. 'I will not answer this kind of letter. I've sent at least six to this boy, and he probably sells them. This girl writes from a seminary, and if I send her one all the other girls will at once write for more. All begin by saying they know they intrude, and that I am of course annoyed by these requests; but they venture to ask because I like boys, or they like the books, or it is only one. Emerson and Whittier put these things in the wastepaper-basket; and though only a literary nursery-maid who provides moral pap for the young, I will follow their illustrious example; for I shall have no time to eat or sleep if I try to satisfy these dear unreasonable children'; and Mrs Jo swept away the entire batch with a sigh of relief.

"I've made up my mind about one thing," said Mrs. Jo firmly. "I won’t respond to this kind of letter. I've sent at least six to this boy, and he probably sells them. This girl is writing from a seminary, and if I respond to her, all the other girls will start writing for more. They all start by saying they know they're intruding and that I'm obviously annoyed by these requests; but they dare to ask because I like boys, or they like the books, or it’s just one. Emerson and Whittier would toss these things in the trash; and even though I’m just a literary babysitter providing moral lessons for the young, I’ll follow their great example because I won’t even have time to eat or sleep if I try to satisfy these dear, unreasonable kids." With that, Mrs. Jo swept the entire batch away with a sigh of relief.

'I'll open the others and let you eat your breakfast in peace, liebe Mutter,' said Rob, who often acted as her secretary. 'Here's one from the South'; and breaking an imposing seal, he read:

"I'll open the others and let you eat your breakfast in peace, dear Mom," said Rob, who often acted as her secretary. "Here's one from the South"; and breaking an impressive seal, he read:

'MADAM, As it has pleased Heaven to bless your efforts with a large fortune, I feel no hesitation in asking you to supply funds to purchase a new communion-service for our church. To whatever denomination you belong, you will of course respond with liberality to such a request,

'MADAM, Since it has pleased Heaven to bless your efforts with a large fortune, I have no hesitation in asking you to provide funds to purchase a new communion service for our church. No matter your denomination, I trust you will generously respond to such a request,

'Respectfully yours,

Sincerely yours,

'MRS X.Y. ZAVIER'

'MRS X.Y. ZAVIER'

'Send a civil refusal, dear. All I have to give must go to feed and clothe the poor at my gates. That is my thank-offering for success. Go on,' answered his mother, with a grateful glance about her happy home.

'Send a polite no, dear. Everything I have to give needs to go towards feeding and clothing the poor at my door. That's my way of showing gratitude for my success. Go ahead,' his mother replied, with a thankful look around her cheerful home.

'A literary youth of eighteen proposes that you put your name to a novel he has written; and after the first edition your name is to be taken off and his put on. There's a cool proposal for you. I guess you won't agree to that, in spite of your soft-heartedness towards most of the young scribblers.'

'A literary teenager of eighteen suggests that you lend your name to a novel he has written; and after the first edition, your name will be removed and his will be put on. What a bold proposal! I doubt you’ll go for that, even with your kindness towards most of the young writers.'

'Couldn't be done. Tell him so kindly, and don't let him send the manuscript. I have seven on hand now, and barely time to read my own,' said Mrs Jo, pensively fishing a small letter out of the slop-bowl and opening it with care, because the down-hill address suggested that a child wrote it.

"There's no way. Tell him that politely, and don’t let him send the manuscript. I already have seven to deal with, and I barely have time to read my own," said Mrs. Jo, thoughtfully pulling a small letter out of the wastebasket and opening it carefully, since the crooked address indicated that a child had written it.

'I will answer this myself. A little sick girl wants a book, and she shall have it, but I can't write sequels to all the rest to please her. I should never come to an end if I tried to suit these voracious little Oliver Twists, clamouring for more. What next, Robin?'

'I’ll answer this myself. A little sick girl wants a book, and she’s going to get it, but I can’t write sequels to all the others just to please her. I’d never finish if I tried to satisfy these greedy little Oliver Twists, asking for more. What’s next, Robin?'

'This is short and sweet.

This is brief and nice.

'DEAR MRS BHAER, I am now going to give you my opinion of your works. I have read them all many times, and call them first-rate. Please go ahead.

'DEAR MRS BHAER, I’m going to share my thoughts on your work. I’ve read everything you’ve written multiple times and consider them top-notch. Please go ahead.

'Your admirer,

'Your fan,

'BILLY BABCOCK'

'Billy Babcock'

'Now that is what I like. Billy is a man of sense and a critic worth having, since he had read my works many times before expressing his opinion. He asks for no answer, so send my thanks and regards.'

'Now that's what I appreciate. Billy is a sensible guy and a critic worth listening to, since he’s read my work multiple times before sharing his thoughts. He doesn't need a reply, so just send my thanks and best wishes.'

'Here's a lady in England with seven girls, and she wishes to know your views upon education. Also what careers they shall follow the oldest being twelve. Don't wonder she's worried,' laughed Rob.

'Here's a woman in England with seven daughters, and she wants to know your thoughts on education. Also, what careers they should pursue, the oldest being twelve. Don't be surprised she's concerned,' laughed Rob.

'I'll try to answer it. But as I have no girls, my opinion isn't worth much and will probably shock her, as I shall tell her to let them run and play and build up good, stout bodies before she talks about careers. They will soon show what they want, if they are let alone, and not all run in the same mould.'

"I'll give it a shot. But since I don't have daughters, my opinion doesn't carry much weight and will probably surprise her. I'll suggest she should let them run around, play, and develop healthy, strong bodies before discussing careers. They'll quickly reveal what they want if she's not trying to shape them all into the same thing."

'Here's a fellow who wants to know what sort of a girl he shall marry, and if you know of any like those in your stories.'

'Here's someone who wants to know what kind of girl he should marry, and if you know any like the ones in your stories.'

'Give him Nan's address, and see what he'll get,' proposed Ted, privately resolving to do it himself if possible.

"Give him Nan's address and see what he finds out," suggested Ted, secretly deciding he would do it himself if he could.

'This is from a lady who wants you to adopt her child and lend her money to study art abroad for a few years. Better take it, and try your hand at a girl, mother.'

'This is from a woman who wants you to adopt her child and lend her money to study art overseas for a few years. You might as well take it and give it a shot, Mom.'

'No, thank you, I will keep to my own line of business. What is that blotted one? It looks rather awful, to judge by the ink,' asked Mrs Jo, who beguiled her daily task by trying to guess from the outside what was inside her many letters. This proved to be a poem from an insane admirer, to judge by its incoherent style.

'No, thanks, I’ll stick to my own work. What’s that smeared one? It looks pretty terrible, judging by the ink,' asked Mrs. Jo, who passed the time during her daily tasks by trying to guess what was inside her many letters. This one turned out to be a poem from a crazed admirer, judging by its jumbled style.

         'TO J.M.B.

    'Oh, were I a heliotrope,
     I would play poet,
     And blow a breeze of fragrance
     To you; and none should know it.

    'Your form like the stately elm
     When Phoebus gilds the morning ray;
     Your cheeks like the ocean bed
     That blooms a rose in May.

    'Your words are wise and bright,
     I bequeath them to you a legacy given;
     And when your spirit takes its flight,
     May it bloom aflower in heaven.

    'My tongue in flattering language spoke,
     And sweeter silence never broke
     in busiest street or loneliest glen.
     I take you with the flashes of my pen.

    'Consider the lilies, how they grow;
     They toil not, yet are fair,
     Gems and flowers and Solomon's seal.
     The geranium of the world is J. M. Bhaer.

        'JAMES'
         'TO J.M.B.

    'Oh, if I were a heliotrope,
     I would be a poet,
     And send a breeze of fragrance
     Your way; and no one would ever know it.

    'Your figure like the grand elm
     When the sun brightens the morning light;
     Your cheeks like the ocean floor
     That blooms a rose in May.

    'Your words are wise and shining,
     I give them to you as a legacy;
     And when your spirit soars,
     May it bloom in heaven.

    'My tongue spoke in flattering words,
     And sweeter silence was never found
     in the busiest street or the loneliest glen.
     I carry you with the strokes of my pen.

    'Look at the lilies, how they grow;
     They don’t toil, yet are lovely,
     Gems and flowers and Solomon's seal.
     The gem of the world is J. M. Bhaer.

        'JAMES'

While the boys shouted over this effusion—which is a true one—their mother read several liberal offers from budding magazines for her to edit them gratis; one long letter from a young girl inconsolable because her favourite hero died, and 'would dear Mrs Bhaer rewrite the tale, and make it end good?' another from an irate boy denied an autograph, who darkly foretold financial ruin and loss of favour if she did not send him and all other fellows who asked autographs, photographs, and auto-biographical sketches; a minister wished to know her religion; and an undecided maiden asked which of her two lovers she should marry. These samples will suffice to show a few of the claims made on a busy woman's time, and make my readers pardon Mrs Jo if she did not carefully reply to all.

While the boys yelled over this excitement—which is definitely real— their mother read several generous offers from up-and-coming magazines for her to edit them for free; one long letter from a young girl who was heartbroken because her favorite hero died, asking 'would dear Mrs. Bhaer rewrite the story and give it a happy ending?' Another letter was from an angry boy who was denied an autograph, ominously predicting financial disaster and loss of popularity if she didn't send him, along with all the other guys who requested autographs, photos, and autobiographical sketches; a minister wanted to know her religion; and a confused girl asked which of her two suitors she should marry. These examples are enough to show some of the demands on a busy woman's time and to help my readers understand if Mrs. Jo didn’t manage to respond to everyone carefully.

'That job is done. Now I will dust a bit, and then go to my work. I'm all behind-hand, and serials can't wait; so deny me to everybody, Mary. I won't see Queen Victoria if she comes today.' And Mrs Bhaer threw down her napkin as if defying all creation.

'That job is done. Now I’ll do some dusting, and then get to my work. I’m really behind, and the serials can’t wait; so keep me away from everyone, Mary. I won’t see Queen Victoria if she comes today.' And Mrs. Bhaer dropped her napkin as if she was defying the whole world.

'I hope the day will go well with thee, my dearest,' answered her husband, who had been busy with his own voluminous correspondence. 'I will dine at college with Professor Plock, who is to visit us today. The Junglings can lunch on Parnassus; so thou shalt have a quiet time.' And smoothing the worried lines out of her forehead with his good-bye kiss, the excellent man marched away, both pockets full of books, an old umbrella in one hand, and a bag of stones for the geology class in the other.

"I hope your day goes well, my dearest," her husband replied, having been occupied with his extensive correspondence. "I'm having dinner at the college with Professor Plock, who is visiting us today. The Junglings can have lunch at Parnassus, so you'll have some peace and quiet." After smoothing the worried lines from her forehead with a goodbye kiss, the wonderful man set off, with his pockets full of books, an old umbrella in one hand, and a bag of stones for the geology class in the other.

'If all literary women had such thoughtful angels for husbands, they would live longer and write more. Perhaps that wouldn't be a blessing to the world though, as most of us write too much now,' said Mrs Jo, waving her feather duster to her spouse, who responded with flourishes of the umbrella as he went down the avenue.

'If all women writers had such considerate partners, they would live longer and write more. But maybe that wouldn't be good for the world, since most of us write too much already,' said Mrs. Jo, waving her feather duster at her husband, who responded with dramatic gestures of his umbrella as he walked down the street.

Rob started for school at the same time, looking so much like him with his books and bag and square shoulders and steady air that his mother laughed as she turned away, saying heartily: 'Bless both my dear professors, for better creatures never lived!'

Rob headed off to school at the same time, looking so much like him with his books, bag, square shoulders, and confident demeanor that his mother chuckled as she turned away, saying with warmth: 'Bless both my dear professors, for better people never existed!'

Emil was already gone to his ship in the city; but Ted lingered to steal the address he wanted, ravage the sugar-bowl, and talk with 'Mum'; for the two had great larks together. Mrs Jo always arranged her own parlour, refilled her vases, and gave the little touches that left it cool and neat for the day. Going to draw down the curtain, she beheld an artist sketching on the lawn, and groaned as she hastily retired to the back window to shake her duster.

Emil had already left for his ship in the city, but Ted hung back to grab the address he wanted, raid the sugar bowl, and chat with 'Mum'; the two always had a great time together. Mrs. Jo always tidied up her own parlor, refilled her vases, and added little touches to keep it cool and neat throughout the day. As she went to pull down the curtain, she noticed an artist sketching on the lawn and groaned as she quickly retreated to the back window to shake out her duster.

At that moment the bell rang and the sound of wheels was heard in the road.

At that moment, the bell rang and the sound of wheels could be heard on the road.

'I'll go; Mary lets 'em in'; and Ted smoothed his hair as he made for the hall.

'I'll go; Mary lets them in'; and Ted smoothed his hair as he headed for the hall.

'Can't see anyone. Give me a chance to fly upstairs,' whispered Mrs Jo, preparing to escape. But before she could do so, a man appeared at the door with a card in his hand. Ted met him with a stern air, and his mother dodged behind the window-curtains to bide her time for escape.

'Can't see anyone. Give me a chance to go upstairs,' whispered Mrs. Jo, preparing to make her escape. But before she could, a man showed up at the door with a card in his hand. Ted faced him with a serious look, while his mother hid behind the window curtains, waiting for the right moment to escape.

'I am doing a series of articles for the Saturday Tattler, and I called to see Mrs Bhaer the first of all,' began the newcomer in the insinuating tone of his tribe, while his quick eyes were taking in all they could, experience having taught him to make the most of his time, as his visits were usually short ones.

"I'm writing a series of articles for the Saturday Tattler, and I wanted to see Mrs. Bhaer first," the newcomer said in a charming tone that was typical of his kind, as his sharp eyes quickly scanned everything they could. Experience had taught him to make the most of his time since his visits were usually brief.

'Mrs Bhaer never sees reporters, sir.'

'Mrs. Bhaer never meets with reporters, sir.'

'But a few moments will be all I ask,' said the man, edging his way farther in.

'Just a few moments is all I ask,' said the man, moving further inside.

'You can't see her, for she is out,' replied Teddy, as a backward glance showed him that his unhappy parent had vanished—through the window, he supposed, as she sometimes did when hard bestead.

"You can't see her because she's out," Teddy replied, glancing back and noticing that his unhappy parent had disappeared—he assumed through the window, as she sometimes did when things were tough.

'Very sorry. I'll call again. Is this her study? Charming room!' And the intruder fell back on the parlour, bound to see something and bag a fact if he died in the attempt. 'It is not,' said Teddy, gently but firmly backing him down the hall, devoutly hoping that his mother had escaped round the corner of the house.

"Sorry about that. I'll call again. Is this her study? What a lovely room!" And the intruder stepped back into the parlor, determined to see something and gather a fact, even if it killed him. "It's not," Teddy said, gently but firmly guiding him down the hall, praying that his mother had managed to get around the corner of the house.

'If you could tell me Mrs Bhaer's age and birthplace, date of marriage, and number of children, I should be much obliged,' continued the unabashed visitor as he tripped over the door-mat.

'If you could tell me Mrs. Bhaer's age, where she was born, the date of her marriage, and how many kids she has, I'd really appreciate it,' the unflustered visitor continued as he stumbled over the doormat.

'She is about sixty, born in Nova Zembla, married just forty years ago today, and has eleven daughters. Anything else, sir?' And Ted's sober face was such a funny contrast to his ridiculous reply that the reporter owned himself routed, and retired laughing just as a lady followed by three beaming girls came up the steps.

'She’s about sixty, born in Nova Zembla, married just forty years ago today, and has eleven daughters. Anything else, sir?' And Ted's serious face was such a funny contrast to his silly reply that the reporter admitted defeat and walked away laughing just as a lady followed by three smiling girls came up the steps.

'We are all the way from Oshkosh, and couldn't go home without seein' dear Aunt Jo. My girls just admire her works, and lot on gettin' a sight of her. I know it's early; but we are goin' to see Holmes and Longfeller, and the rest of the celebrities, so we ran out here fust thing. Mrs Erastus Kingsbury Parmalee, of Oshkosh, tell her. We don't mind waitin'; we can look round a spell if she ain't ready to see folks yet.'

'We came all the way from Oshkosh and couldn't go home without seeing dear Aunt Jo. My girls really admire her work and are eager to see her. I know it’s early, but we’re planning to see Holmes and Longfellow and the other celebrities, so we came out here first thing. Just tell her it’s Mrs. Erastus Kingsbury Parmalee from Oshkosh. We don’t mind waiting; we can look around for a bit if she’s not ready to see people yet.'

All this was uttered with such rapidity that Ted could only stand gazing at the buxom damsels, who fixed their six blue eyes upon him so beseechingly that his native gallantry made it impossible to deny them a civil reply at least.

All of this was said so quickly that Ted could only stand there staring at the attractive girls, who looked at him with their six blue eyes so pleadingly that his natural sense of politeness made it impossible for him to not at least give them a polite response.

'Mrs Bhaer is not visible today—out just now, I believe; but you can see the house and grounds if you like,' he murmured, falling back as the four pressed in gazing rapturously about them.

'Mrs. Bhaer isn’t around today—she just stepped out, I think; but you can check out the house and the grounds if you’d like,' he said softly, stepping back as the four of them moved in, gazing around in awe.

'Oh, thank you! Sweet, pretty place I'm sure! That's where she writes, ain't it? Do tell me if that's her picture! Looks just as I imagined her!'

'Oh, thank you! It's such a lovely, charming place, I can tell! That's where she writes, right? Please tell me if that’s her picture! She looks just like I pictured her!'

With these remarks the ladies paused before a fine engraving of the Hon. Mrs Norton, with a pen in her hand and a rapt expression of countenance, likewise a diadem and pearl necklace.

With these comments, the ladies stopped in front of a beautiful engraving of the Hon. Mrs. Norton, holding a pen and looking completely absorbed, also wearing a tiara and a pearl necklace.

Keeping his gravity with an effort, Teddy pointed to a very bad portrait of Mrs Jo, which hung behind the door, and afforded her much amusement, it was so dismal, in spite of a curious effect of light upon the end of the nose and cheeks as red as the chair she sat in.

Maintaining his serious demeanor with some effort, Teddy pointed to a terrible portrait of Mrs. Jo that was hanging behind the door. It provided her a lot of amusement because it was so gloomy, despite the strange light effect on the tip of the nose and cheeks that were as red as the chair she was sitting in.

'This was taken for my mother; but it is not very good,' he said, enjoying the struggles of the girls not to look dismayed at the sad difference between the real and the ideal. The youngest, aged twelve, could not conceal her disappointment, and turned away, feeling as so many of us have felt when we discover that our idols are very ordinary men and women.

'This was for my mom; but it’s not great,' he said, relishing the girls' attempts to hide their disappointment at the stark contrast between reality and expectations. The youngest, who was twelve, couldn't hide her letdown and turned away, feeling like so many of us do when we realize our idols are just regular people.

'I thought she'd be about sixteen and have her hair braided in two tails down her back. I don't care about seeing her now,' said the honest child, walking off to the hall door, leaving her mother to apologize, and her sisters to declare that the bad portrait was 'perfectly lovely, so speaking and poetic, you know, 'specially about the brow'.

"I thought she’d be around sixteen with her hair in two braids down her back. I don’t care about seeing her now," said the honest child, heading toward the hall door, leaving her mother to apologize and her sisters to insist that the bad portrait was "perfectly lovely, so expressive and poetic, you know, especially about the brow."

'Come girls, we must be goin', if we want to get through today. You can leave your albums and have them sent when Mrs Bhaer has written a sentiment in 'em. We are a thousand times obliged. Give our best love to your ma, and tell her we are so sorry not to see her.' Just as Mrs. Erastus Kingsbury Parmalee uttered the words her eye fell upon a middle-aged woman in a large checked apron, with a handkerchief tied over her head, busily dusting an end room which looked like a study.

"Come on, girls, we need to go if we want to get through today. You can leave your albums here and have them sent when Mrs. Bhaer writes a message in them. We’re really grateful. Please send our love to your mom, and let her know we’re sorry we couldn’t see her." Just as Mrs. Erastus Kingsbury Parmalee said this, her gaze landed on a middle-aged woman in a big checked apron, with a handkerchief tied over her head, busy dusting a room that looked like a study.

'One peep at her sanctum since she is out,' cried the enthusiastic lady, and swept across the hall with her flock before Teddy could warn his mother, whose retreat had been cut off by the artist in front, the reporter at the back of the house—for he hadn't gone and the ladies in the hall.

'Just one look at her private space since she's gone out,' exclaimed the excited lady, and rushed across the hall with her group before Teddy could alert his mother, whose escape had been blocked by the artist in front and the reporter at the back of the house—since he hadn't left—along with the ladies in the hall.

'They've got her!' thought Teddy, in comical dismay. 'No use for her to play housemaid since they've seen the portrait.'

'They've got her!' thought Teddy, in humorous distress. 'There's no point in her pretending to be a housemaid now that they've seen the portrait.'

Mrs Jo did her best, and being a good actress, would have escaped if the fatal picture had not betrayed her. Mrs Parmalee paused at the desk, and regardless of the meerschaum that lay there, the man's slippers close by, and a pile of letters directed to 'Prof. F. Bhaer', she clasped her hands, exclaiming impressively: 'Girls, this is the spot where she wrote those sweet, those moral tales which have thrilled us to the soul! Could I—ah, could I take one morsel of paper, an old pen, a postage stamp even, as a memento of this gifted woman?'

Mrs. Jo did her best, and being a great actress, she might have gotten away with it if the deadly picture hadn’t given her away. Mrs. Parmalee stopped at the desk, and ignoring the meerschaum pipe resting there, the man's slippers nearby, and a stack of letters addressed to 'Prof. F. Bhaer', she clasped her hands and exclaimed dramatically: 'Girls, this is the place where she wrote those sweet, moral tales that have touched our hearts! Could I—oh, could I take just a scrap of paper, an old pen, or even a postage stamp as a keepsake from this talented woman?'

'Yes'm, help yourselves,' replied the maid, moving away with a glance at the boy, whose eyes were now full of merriment he could not suppress.

"Sure, help yourselves," the maid said, stepping back while glancing at the boy, whose eyes were now brimming with uncontainable joy.

The oldest girl saw it, guessed the truth, and a quick look at the woman in the apron confirmed her suspicion. Touching her mother, she whispered: 'Ma, it's Mrs Bhaer herself. I know it is.'

The oldest girl noticed it, figured out the truth, and a quick glance at the woman in the apron confirmed her suspicion. Touching her mother, she whispered, "Mom, it's Mrs. Bhaer herself. I know it is."

'No? yes? it is! Well, I do declare, how nice that is!' And hastily pursuing the unhappy woman, who was making for the door, Mrs Parmalee cried eagerly:

'No? Yes? It is! Well, I must say, how nice that is!' And quickly chasing after the unhappy woman, who was heading for the door, Mrs. Parmalee called out eagerly:

'Don't mind us! I know you're busy, but just let me take your hand and then we'll go.'

'Don't worry about us! I know you're busy, but just let me take your hand, and then we'll go.'

Giving herself up for lost, Mrs Jo turned and presented her hand like a tea-tray, submitting to have it heartily shaken, as the matron said, with somewhat alarming hospitality:

Giving up all hope, Mrs. Jo turned and held out her hand like a tea tray, allowing it to be vigorously shaken, as the matron said, with a somewhat overwhelming sense of hospitality:

'If ever you come to Oshkosh, your feet won't be allowed to touch the pavement; for you'll be borne in the arms of the populace, we shall be so dreadful glad to see you.'

'If you ever come to Oshkosh, you won't have to touch the pavement; the people here will carry you in their arms because we’ll be so incredibly happy to see you.'

Mentally resolving never to visit that effusive town, Jo responded as cordially as she could; and having written her name in the albums, provided each visitor with a memento, and kissed them all round, they at last departed, to call on 'Longfeller, Holmes, and the rest'—who were all out, it is devoutly to be hoped.

Mentally deciding she would never go back to that overly friendly town, Jo tried her best to be polite; after writing her name in the guest books, she gave each visitor a little keepsake, and kissed them all goodbye. Finally, they left to visit 'Longfellow, Holmes, and the others'—who, hopefully, were all out.

'You villain, why didn't you give me a chance to whip away? Oh, my dear, what fibs you told that man! I hope we shall be forgiven our sins in this line, but I don't know what is to become of us if we don't dodge. So many against one isn't fair play.' And Mrs Jo hung up her apron in the hall closet, with a groan at the trials of her lot.

"You villain, why didn’t you give me a chance to escape? Oh, my dear, what lies you told that man! I hope we can be forgiven for our misdeeds, but I don’t know what’s going to happen to us if we don’t avoid this. It’s not fair to have so many against one." And Mrs. Jo hung up her apron in the hall closet, letting out a groan at the struggles of her life.

'More people coming up the avenue! Better dodge while the coast is clear! I'll head them off!' cried Teddy, looking back from the steps, as he was departing to school.

'More people coming up the street! Better get out of the way while it's clear! I'll intercept them!' shouted Teddy, glancing back from the steps as he was leaving for school.

Mrs Jo flew upstairs, and having locked her door, calmly viewed a young ladies' seminary camp on the lawn, and being denied the house, proceed to enjoy themselves by picking the flowers, doing up their hair, eating lunch, and freely expressing their opinion of the place and its possessors before they went.

Mrs. Jo ran upstairs, locked her door, and watched a girls' camp on the lawn. Since they were denied access to the house, they made the most of it by picking flowers, fixing their hair, having lunch, and openly sharing their thoughts about the place and its owners before they left.

A few hours of quiet followed, and she was just settling down to a long afternoon of hard work, when Rob came home to tell her that the Young Men's Christian Union would visit the college, and two or three of the fellows whom she knew wanted to pay their respects to her on the way.

A few hours of silence passed, and she was just getting ready for a long afternoon of hard work when Rob came home to tell her that the Young Men's Christian Union would be visiting the college, and two or three of the guys she knew wanted to stop by and say hello on their way.

'It is going to rain, so they won't come, I dare say; but father thought you'd like to be ready, in case they do call. You always see the boys, you know, though you harden your heart to the poor girls,' said Rob, who had heard from his brother about the morning visitations.

'It’s going to rain, so I bet they won’t come; but Dad thought you’d want to be prepared, just in case they do stop by. You always see the guys, even though you turn a blind eye to the poor girls,' said Rob, who had heard from his brother about the morning visits.

'Boys don't gush, so I can stand it. The last time I let in a party of girls one fell into my arms and said, “Darling, love me!” I wanted to shake her,' answered Mrs Jo, wiping her pen with energy.

"Boys don’t get overly emotional, so I can handle that. The last time I had a group of girls around, one of them literally fell into my arms and said, 'Darling, love me!' I wanted to shake her," replied Mrs. Jo, wiping her pen with determination.

'You may be sure the fellows won't do it, but they will want autographs, so you'd better be prepared with a few dozen,' said Rob, laying out a quire of notepaper, being a hospitable youth and sympathizing with those who admired his mother.

"You can bet the guys won’t actually do it, but they’re definitely going to want autographs, so you should probably have a bunch ready," said Rob, laying out a stack of notepaper, being a friendly guy and understanding those who admired his mom.

'They can't outdo the girls. At X College I really believe I wrote three hundred during the day I was there, and I left a pile of cards and albums on my table when I came away. It is one of the most absurd and tiresome manias that ever afflicted the world.'

'They can't compete with the girls. At X College, I genuinely think I wrote three hundred while I was there for the day, and I left a stack of cards and albums on my table when I left. It's one of the most ridiculous and exhausting obsessions that has ever plagued the world.'

Nevertheless Mrs Jo wrote her name a dozen times, put on her black silk, and resigned herself to the impending call, praying for rain, however, as she returned to her work.

Nevertheless, Mrs. Jo wrote her name a dozen times, put on her black silk dress, and accepted the upcoming visit, hoping for rain, however, as she went back to her work.

The shower came, and feeling quite secure, she rumpled up her hair, took off her cuffs, and hurried to finish her chapter; for thirty pages a day was her task, and she liked to have it well done before evening. Josie had brought some flowers for the vases, and was just putting the last touches when she saw several umbrellas bobbing down the hill.

The shower started, and feeling pretty secure, she messed up her hair, took off her cuffs, and rushed to finish her chapter; thirty pages a day was her goal, and she liked to have it done well before evening. Josie had brought some flowers for the vases and was just adding the final touches when she noticed several umbrellas bobbing down the hill.

'They are coming, Aunty! I see uncle hurrying across the field to receive them,' she called at the stair-foot.

'They're coming, Aunty! I see Uncle hurrying across the field to greet them,' she called from the bottom of the stairs.

'Keep an eye on them, and let me know when they enter the avenue. It will take but a minute to tidy up and run down,' answered Mrs Jo, scribbling away for dear life, because serials wait for no man, not even the whole Christian Union en masse.

"Keep an eye on them and let me know when they hit the avenue. It’ll only take a minute to tidy up and head out," Mrs. Jo replied, writing furiously, because serials wait for no one, not even the entire Christian Union combined.

'There are more than two or three. I see half a dozen at least,' called sister Ann from the hall door. 'No! a dozen, I do believe; Aunty, look out; they are all coming! What shall we do?' And Josie quailed at the idea of facing the black throng rapidly approaching.

'There are more than two or three. I see at least half a dozen,' called sister Ann from the hallway door. 'No! I actually think it’s a dozen; Aunty, look out; they’re all coming! What should we do?' And Josie felt scared at the thought of facing the crowd rapidly approaching.

'Mercy on us, there are hundreds! Run and put a tub in the back entry for their umbrellas to drip into. Tell them to go down the hall and leave them, and pile their hats on the table; the tree won't hold them all. No use to get mats; my poor carpets!' And down went Mrs Jo to prepare for the invasion, while Josie and the maids flew about dismayed at the prospect of so many muddy boots.

'Oh no, there are hundreds of them! Go put a tub in the back entry to catch their umbrellas. Tell them to go down the hall and leave them there, and stack their hats on the table; the tree won't hold all of them. No point in getting mats; my poor carpets!' And down went Mrs. Jo to get ready for the crowd, while Josie and the maids rushed around, worried about so many muddy boots.

On they came, a long line of umbrellas, with splashed legs and flushed faces underneath; for the gentlemen had been having a good time all over the town, undisturbed by the rain. Professor Bhaer met them at the gate, and was making a little speech of welcome, when Mrs Jo, touched by their bedraggled state, appeared at the door, beckoning them in. Leaving their host to orate bareheaded in the wet, the young men hastened up the steps, merry, warm, and eager, clutching off their hats as they came, and struggling with their umbrellas, as the order was passed to march in and stack arms.

In they came, a long line of umbrellas, with splashed legs and flushed faces underneath; the guys had been having a great time all over town, completely unfazed by the rain. Professor Bhaer greeted them at the gate and was giving a little welcome speech when Mrs. Jo, noticing their soaked appearance, appeared at the door, inviting them inside. Leaving their host to speak without his hat in the wet, the young men hurried up the steps, cheerful, warm, and eager, taking off their hats as they entered and wrestling with their umbrellas as they were told to come in and put them away.

Tramp, tramp, tramp, down the hall went seventy-five pairs of boots; soon seventy-five umbrellas dripped sociably in the hospitable tub, while their owners swarmed all over the lower part of the house; and seventy-five hearty hands were shaken by the hostess without a murmur, though some were wet, some very warm, and nearly all bore trophies of the day's ramble. One impetuous party flourished a small turtle as he made his compliments; another had a load of sticks cut from noted spots; and all begged for some memento of Plumfield. A pile of cards mysteriously appeared on the table, with a written request for autographs; and despite her morning vow, Mrs Jo wrote everyone, while her husband and boys did the honours of the house.

Tramp, tramp, tramp, down the hall went seventy-five pairs of boots; soon seventy-five umbrellas dripped cheerfully in the welcoming tub, while their owners crowded the lower part of the house; and seventy-five enthusiastic hands were shaken by the hostess without complaint, even though some were wet, some very warm, and nearly all had souvenirs from the day's adventures. One eager guest proudly displayed a small turtle as he expressed his thanks; another carried a bunch of sticks cut from famous places; and everyone asked for a keepsake from Plumfield. A stack of cards suddenly appeared on the table, with a note requesting autographs; and despite her earlier promise, Mrs. Jo wrote for everyone, while her husband and sons took care of the guests.

Josie fled to the back parlour, but was discovered by exploring youths, and mortally insulted by one of them, who innocently inquired if she was Mrs Bhaer. The reception did not last long, and the end was better than the beginning; for the rain ceased, and a rainbow shone beautifully over them as the good fellows stood upon the lawn singing sweetly for a farewell. A happy omen, that bow of promise arched over the young heads, as if Heaven smiled upon their union, and showed them that above the muddy earth and rainy skies the blessed sun still shone for all. Three cheers, and then away they went, leaving a pleasant recollection of their visit to amuse the family as they scraped the mud off the carpets with shovels and emptied the tub half-full of water.

Josie ran to the back room, but was found by some curious young guys who, without realizing it, seriously embarrassed her by asking if she was Mrs. Bhaer. The visit didn't last long, and the end turned out better than the start; the rain stopped, and a beautiful rainbow appeared overhead as the good friends stood on the lawn, sweetly singing their farewell. That bow of promise was a happy sign for the young couple, as if Heaven was smiling on their union, showing them that above the muddy ground and cloudy skies, the sun was still shining for everyone. After three cheers, they left, leaving behind a nice memory of their visit to keep the family entertained while they scraped the mud off the carpets with shovels and emptied the half-full tub of water.

'Nice, honest, hard-working fellows, and I don't begrudge my half-hour at all; but I must finish, so don't let anyone disturb me till tea-time,' said Mrs Jo, leaving Mary to shut up the house; for papa and the boys had gone off with the guests, and Josie had run home to tell her mother about the fun at Aunt Jo's.

"Nice, honest, hard-working guys, and I don’t mind spending my half-hour at all; but I have to finish, so don’t let anyone bother me until tea-time," said Mrs. Jo, leaving Mary to lock up the house; because dad and the boys had gone off with the guests, and Josie had run home to tell her mom about the fun at Aunt Jo's.

Peace reigned for an hour, then the bell rang and Mary came giggling up to say: 'A queer kind of a lady wants to know if she can catch a grasshopper in the garden.'

Peace lasted for an hour, then the bell rang and Mary came running over, giggling, to say: 'A strange lady wants to know if she can catch a grasshopper in the garden.'

'A what?' cried Mrs Jo, dropping her pen with a blot; for of all the odd requests ever made, this was the oddest.

"A what?" cried Mrs. Jo, dropping her pen with a blot; because of all the strange requests ever made, this was the strangest.

'A grasshopper, ma'am. I said you was busy, and asked what she wanted, and says she: “I've got grasshoppers from the grounds of several famous folks, and I want one from Plumfield to add to my collection.” Did you ever?' And Mary giggled again at the idea.

"A grasshopper, ma'am. I said you were busy and asked what she wanted, and she said: 'I've got grasshoppers from the grounds of several famous people, and I want one from Plumfield to add to my collection.' Can you believe it?" And Mary giggled again at the thought.

'Tell her to take all there are and welcome. I shall be glad to get rid of them; always bouncing in my face and getting in my dress,' laughed Mrs Jo.

"Tell her to take all of them and welcome. I’ll be glad to get rid of them; always bouncing in my face and getting in my dress," laughed Mrs. Jo.

Mary retired, to return in a moment nearly speechless with merriment.

Mary stepped away for a moment and returned, almost unable to speak from laughing so hard.

'She's much obliged, ma'am, and she'd like an old gown or a pair of stockings of yours to put in a rug she's making. Got a vest of Emerson's, she says, and a pair of Mr. Holmes's trousers, and a dress of Mrs Stowe's. She must be crazy!'

"She's really grateful, ma'am, and she would love an old gown or a pair of your stockings to use in a rug she's making. She says she's got a vest from Emerson, a pair of trousers from Mr. Holmes, and a dress from Mrs. Stowe. She must be out of her mind!"

'Give her that old red shawl, then I shall make a gay show among the great ones in that astonishing rug. Yes, they are all lunatics, these lion-hunters; but this seems to be a harmless maniac, for she doesn't take my time, and gives me a good laugh,' said Mrs Jo, returning to her work after a glance from the window, which showed her a tall, thin lady in rusty black, skipping wildly to and fro on the lawn in pursuit of the lively insect she wanted.

"Give her that old red shawl, then I’ll have a great appearance among the important people on that amazing rug. Yeah, these lion-hunters are all crazy, but this one seems to be a harmless lunatic because she doesn’t waste my time and gives me a good laugh," said Mrs. Jo, getting back to her work after glancing out the window, which showed her a tall, thin woman in worn black, darting back and forth on the lawn chasing after the lively insect she was after.

No more interruptions till the light began to fade, then Mary popped her head in to say a gentleman wished to see Mrs Bhaer, and wouldn't take no for an answer.

No more interruptions until the light started to fade, then Mary popped her head in to say a gentleman wanted to see Mrs. Bhaer and wouldn’t take no for an answer.

'He must. I shall not go down. This has been an awful day, and I won't be disturbed again,' replied the harassed authoress, pausing in the midst of the grand finale of her chapter.

'He has to. I won't back down. It's been a terrible day, and I refuse to be disturbed again,' replied the stressed-out author, pausing in the middle of the grand finale of her chapter.

'I told him so, ma'am; but he walked right in as bold as brass. I guess he's another crazy one, and I declare I'm 'most afraid of him, he's so big and black, and cool as cucumbers, though I will say he's good-looking,' added Mary, with a simper; for the stranger had evidently found favour in her sight despite his boldness.

"I told him that, ma'am; but he walked right in like he owned the place. I guess he’s just another crazy person, and honestly, I'm almost scared of him—he's so big and dark, and calm as can be. Though I have to admit, he is good-looking," Mary added, smiling, since the stranger had clearly caught her attention despite his boldness.

'My day has been ruined, and I will have this last half-hour to finish. Tell him to go away; I won't go down,' cried Mrs Jo, fiercely.

'My day is ruined, and I only have this last half hour to finish. Tell him to leave; I'm not coming down,' Mrs. Jo yelled, angrily.

Mary went; and listening, in spite of herself, her mistress heard first a murmur of voices, then a cry from Mary, and remembering the ways of reporters, also that her maid was both pretty and timid, Mrs Bhaer flung down her pen and went to the rescue. Descending with her most majestic air she demanded in an awe-inspiring voice, as she paused to survey the somewhat brigandish intruder, who seemed to be storming the staircase which Mary was gallantly defending:

Mary left; and despite herself, her mistress listened and first heard a murmur of voices, then a cry from Mary. Remembering how reporters often behaved, and noting that her maid was both pretty and timid, Mrs. Bhaer dropped her pen and rushed to help. Striding down with her most authoritative presence, she called out in a commanding tone as she paused to look at the somewhat threatening intruder, who appeared to be forcing their way up the staircase that Mary was courageously defending:

'Who is this person who insists on remaining when I have declined to see him?'

'Who is this person who keeps insisting on staying when I've said I don't want to see him?'

'I'm sure I don't know, ma'am. He won't give no name, and says you'll be sorry if you don't see him,' answered Mary, retiring flushed and indignant from her post.

"I'm not sure, ma'am. He won't give his name and says you'll regret it if you don't meet him," replied Mary, stepping back, embarrassed and angry from her position.

'Won't you be sorry?' asked the stranger, looking up with a pair of black eyes full of laughter, the flash of white teeth through a long beard, and both hands out as he boldly approached the irate lady.

"Won't you be sorry?" asked the stranger, looking up with a pair of black eyes full of laughter, the flash of white teeth through a long beard, and both hands out as he confidently approached the angry woman.

Mrs Jo gave one keen look, for the voice was familiar; then completed Mary's bewilderment by throwing both arms round the brigand's neck, exclaiming joyfully: 'My dearest boy, where did you come from?'

Mrs. Jo took a sharp look, recognizing the voice; then she confused Mary even more by throwing her arms around the brigand's neck and joyfully exclaiming, "My dearest boy, where did you come from?"

'California, on purpose to see you, Mother Bhaer. Now won't you be sorry if I go away?' answered Dan, with a hearty kiss.

'California, just to see you, Mother Bhaer. Now won’t you be sad if I leave?' answered Dan, giving her a big kiss.

'To think of my ordering you out of the house when I've been longing to see you for a year,' laughed Mrs Jo, and she went down to have a good talk with her returned wanderer, who enjoyed the joke immensely.

"Can you believe I told you to leave the house when I've missed you so much for a year?" laughed Mrs. Jo, and she went downstairs to have a nice chat with her traveler, who found the joke hilarious.





Chapter 4. DAN

Mrs Jo often thought that Dan had Indian blood in him, not only because of his love of a wild, wandering life, but his appearance; for as he grew up, this became more striking. At twenty-five he was very tall, with sinewy limbs, a keen, dark face, and the alert look of one whose senses were all alive; rough in manner, full of energy, quick with word and blow, eyes full of the old fire, always watchful as if used to keep guard, and a general air of vigour and freshness very charming to those who knew the dangers and delights of his adventurous life. He was looking his best as he sat talking with 'Mother Bhaer', one strong brown hand in hers, and a world of affection in his voice as he said:

Mrs. Jo often thought that Dan had Indian heritage, not just because he loved a wild, roaming lifestyle, but also because of his looks; as he grew up, this became even more apparent. At twenty-five, he was very tall, with strong limbs, a sharp, dark face, and the keen expression of someone whose senses were fully engaged; rough around the edges, full of energy, quick with both words and action, his eyes sparkled with an old fire, always alert as if he were used to keeping watch, and he had an overall aura of vitality and freshness that was very appealing to those who understood the risks and joys of his adventurous life. He was looking his best as he sat talking with 'Mother Bhaer', one strong brown hand in hers, and a world of affection in his voice as he said:

'Forget old friends! How could I forget the only home I ever knew? Why, I was in such a hurry to come and tell my good luck that I didn't stop to fix up, you see; though I knew you'd think I looked more like a wild buffalo than ever,' with a shake of his shaggy black head, a tug at his beard, and a laugh that made the room ring.

'Forget old friends! How could I forget the only home I ever knew? I was so eager to come and share my good luck that I didn't take the time to clean up, you know; even though I figured you'd think I looked more like a wild buffalo than ever,' he said, shaking his shaggy black head, tugging at his beard, and laughing in a way that made the room echo.

'I like it; I always had a fancy for banditti—and you look just like one. Mary, being a newcomer, was frightened at your looks and manners. Josie won't know you, but Ted will recognize his Danny in spite of the big beard and flowing mane. They will all be here soon to welcome you; so before they come tell me more about yourself. Why, Dan, dear! it's nearly two years since you were here! Has it gone well with you?' asked Mrs Jo, who had been listening with maternal interest to his account of life in California, and the unexpected success of a small investment he had made.

"I like it; I've always had a thing for outlaws—and you look just like one. Mary, being new here, was scared by your looks and behavior. Josie won't recognize you, but Ted will see his Danny in spite of the big beard and long hair. They'll all be here soon to welcome you, so before they arrive, tell me more about yourself. Wow, Dan, dear! It's almost two years since you were last here! Has everything been going well for you?" asked Mrs. Jo, who had been listening with maternal interest to his story about life in California and the unexpected success of a small investment he made.

'First-rate! I don't care for the money, you know. I only want a trifle to pay my way—rather earn as I go, and not be bothered with the care of a lot. It's the fun of the thing coming to me, and my being able to give away, that I like. No use to lay up; I shan't live to be old and need it,—my sort never do,' said Dan, looking as if his little fortune rather oppressed him.

'First-rate! I don't care about the money, you know. I just want a little to cover my expenses—I’d rather earn as I go and not deal with the hassle of a lot. It's the excitement of it all coming to me, and my ability to give away, that I enjoy. There's no point in saving up; I won’t live long enough to need it—people like me never do,' said Dan, looking like his small fortune was weighing him down.

'But if you marry and settle somewhere, as I hope you will, you must have something to begin with, my son. So be prudent and invest your money; don't give it away, for rainy days come to all of us, and dependence would be very hard for you to bear,' answered Mrs Jo with a sage air, though she liked to see that the money-making fever had not seized her lucky boy yet.

'But if you get married and settle down somewhere, as I hope you will, you need to start off with something, my son. So be smart and invest your money; don't just give it away, because tough times come for all of us, and being dependent on others will be really hard for you to handle,' Mrs. Jo replied wisely, though she was pleased to see that her lucky boy hadn’t caught the money-making bug yet.

Dan shook his head, and glanced about the room as if he already found it rather confined and longed for all out-of-doors again.

Dan shook his head and looked around the room, as if he already found it a bit cramped and was eager to be outside again.

'Who would marry a jack-o'-lantern like me? Women like a steady-going man; I shall never be that.'

'Who would marry a pumpkin like me? Women prefer a reliable guy; I’ll never be that.'

'My dear boy, when I was a girl I liked just such adventurous fellows as you are. Anything fresh and daring, free and romantic, is always attractive to us womenfolk. Don't be discouraged; you'll find an anchor some day, and be content to take shorter voyages and bring home a good cargo.'

'My dear boy, when I was a girl I liked adventurous guys like you. Anything new and daring, free and romantic, is always appealing to us women. Don't be discouraged; you'll find your anchor someday and be happy to take shorter trips and bring home a good haul.'

'What should you say if I brought you an Indian squaw some day?' asked Dan, with a glimmer of mischief in the eyes that rested on a marble bust of Galatea gleaming white and lovely in the corner.

"What would you say if I brought you an Indian woman someday?" asked Dan, with a hint of mischief in his eyes as they landed on a marble bust of Galatea, shining white and beautiful in the corner.

'Welcome her heartily, if she was a good one. Is there a prospect of it?' and Mrs Jo peered at him with the interest which even literary ladies take in love affairs.

'Welcome her warmly if she's a good one. Is there a chance of that?' and Mrs. Jo looked at him with the interest that even literary women have in love stories.

'Not at present, thank you. I'm too busy “to gallivant”, as Ted calls it. How is the boy?' asked Dan, skilfully turning the conversation, as if he had had enough of sentiment.

'Not right now, thanks. I'm too busy “to gallivant,” as Ted puts it. How's the boy?' Dan asked, smoothly shifting the conversation, as if he was done with all the sentiment.

Mrs Jo was off at once, and expatiated upon the talents and virtues of her sons till they came bursting in and fell upon Dan like two affectionate young bears, finding a vent for their joyful emotions in a sort of friendly wrestling-match; in which both got worsted, of course, for the hunter soon settled them. The Professor followed, and tongues went like mill-clappers while Mary lighted up and cook devoted herself to an unusually good supper, instinctively divining that this guest was a welcome one.

Mrs. Jo immediately started talking about the talents and qualities of her sons until they came rushing in and tackled Dan like two excited young bears, releasing their happy energy in a friendly wrestling match; of course, both ended up losing, as the hunter quickly put them in their place. The Professor followed, and everyone was chatting away while Mary brightened up and the cook focused on preparing an especially nice dinner, sensing that this guest was a welcome addition.

After tea Dan was walking up and down the long rooms as he talked, with occasional trips into the hall for a fresher breath of air, his lungs seeming to need more than those of civilized people. In one of these trips he saw a white figure framed in the dark doorway, and paused to look at it. Bess paused also, not recognizing her old friend, and quite unconscious of the pretty picture she made standing, tall and slender, against the soft gloom of the summer night, with her golden hair like a halo round her head, and the ends of a white shawl blown out like wings by the cool wind sweeping through the hail. 'Is it Dan?' she asked, coming in with a gracious smile and outstretched hand.

After tea, Dan was pacing back and forth in the long rooms as he spoke, occasionally stepping into the hall for a breath of fresh air, as if his lungs needed more than those of regular people. During one of these trips, he spotted a white figure framed in the dark doorway and stopped to take a look. Bess also paused, not recognizing her old friend and completely unaware of the lovely picture she created, standing tall and slender against the soft gloom of the summer night, with her golden hair creating a halo around her head, and the ends of a white shawl billowing out like wings in the cool breeze sweeping through the hall. "Is it Dan?" she asked, stepping in with a warm smile and outstretched hand.

'Looks like it; but I didn't know you, Princess. I thought it was a spirit,' answered Dan, looking down at her with a curious softness and wonder in his face.

"Seems like it; but I didn't know you, Princess. I thought you were a spirit," replied Dan, gazing down at her with a curious tenderness and amazement on his face.

'I've grown very much, but two years have changed you entirely'; and Bess looked up with girlish pleasure at the picturesque figure before her—for it was a decided contrast to the well-dressed people about her.

"I've changed a lot, but two years have completely transformed you"; and Bess looked up with youthful delight at the striking figure in front of her—because it was a clear contrast to the stylish people surrounding her.

Before they could say more, Josie rushed in, and, forgetfull of the newly acquired dignity of her teens, let Dan catch her up and kiss her like a child. Not till he set her down did he discover she also was changed, and exclaimed in comic dismay:

Before they could say more, Josie rushed in, and, forgetting the newfound dignity of her teenage years, let Dan pick her up and kiss her like a child. Only when he set her down did he realize she had also changed, and he exclaimed in comic dismay:

'Hallo! Why, you are growing up too! What am I going to do, with no young one to play with? Here's Ted going it like a beanstalk, and Bess a young lady, and even you, my mustard-seed, letting down your frocks and putting on airs.'

'Hello! Wow, you're growing up too! What am I going to do without a young one to play with? Look at Ted shooting up like a beanstalk, Bess turning into a young lady, and even you, my little mustard seed, letting your dresses down and acting all fancy.'

The girls laughed, and Josie blushed as she stared at the tall man, conscious that she had leaped before she looked. They made a pretty contrast, these two young cousins—one as fair as a lily, the other a little wild rose. And Dan gave a nod of satisfaction as he surveyed them; for he had seen many bonny girls in his travels, and was glad that these old friends were blooming so beautifully.

The girls laughed, and Josie blushed as she looked up at the tall man, realizing she had jumped in without thinking. They made a lovely contrast, these two young cousins—one as fair as a lily, the other a bit like a wild rose. And Dan nodded in satisfaction as he checked them out; he had seen many pretty girls during his travels and was pleased that these old friends were thriving so beautifully.

'Here! we can't allow any monopoly of Dan!' called Mrs Jo. 'Bring him back and keep an eye on him, or he will be slipping off for another little run of a year or two before we have half seen him.'

'Hey! We can't let Dan take over!' shouted Mrs. Jo. 'Bring him back and keep an eye on him, or he'll be off on another little adventure for a year or two before we even get to see him half as much.'

Led by these agreeable captors, Dan returned to the parlour to receive a scolding from Josie for getting ahead of all the other boys and looking like a man first.

Guided by these friendly captors, Dan went back to the living room to get a lecture from Josie for outpacing all the other boys and looking like a man before them.

'Emil is older; but he's only a boy, and dances jigs and sings sailor songs just as he used to. You look about thirty, and as big and black as a villain in a play. Oh, I've got a splendid idea! You are just the thing for Arbaces in The Last Days of Pompeii. We want to act it; have the lion and the gladiators and the eruption. Tom and Ted are going to shower bushels of ashes down and roll barrels of stones about. We wanted a dark man for the Egyptian; and you will be gorgeous in red and white shawls. Won't he, Aunt Jo?'

'Emil is older now, but he’s still just a kid, dancing jigs and singing sailor songs like he always has. You look about thirty, and as big and dark as a villain in a play. Oh, I have a fantastic idea! You’re perfect for Arbaces in The Last Days of Pompeii. We want to perform it; we’ll have the lion, the gladiators, and the eruption. Tom and Ted are going to shower down heaps of ashes and roll barrels of stones around. We needed a dark guy for the Egyptian part, and you’ll look amazing in red and white shawls. Won't he, Aunt Jo?'

This deluge of words made Dan clap his hands over his ears; and before Mrs Bhaer could answer her impetuous niece the Laurences, with Meg and her family, arrived, soon followed by Tom and Nan, and all sat down to listen to Dan's adventures—told in brief yet effective manner, as the varying expressions of interest, wonder, merriment, and suspense painted on the circle of faces round him plainly showed. The boys all wanted to start at once for California and make fortunes; the girls could hardly wait for the curious and pretty things he had picked up for them in his travels; while the elders rejoiced heartily over the energy and good prospects of their wild boy.

This flood of words made Dan cover his ears with his hands; and before Mrs. Bhaer could respond to her impulsive niece, the Laurences, along with Meg and her family, arrived, soon followed by Tom and Nan, and everyone settled in to listen to Dan's adventures—shared in a brief yet impactful way, as the different expressions of interest, amazement, amusement, and suspense on the faces around him clearly showed. The boys were all eager to rush off to California and strike it rich; the girls could barely wait to see the interesting and pretty things he had collected for them during his travels; while the adults were genuinely happy about the energy and good prospects of their wild boy.

'Of course you will want to go back for another stroke of luck; and I hope you will have it. But speculation is a dangerous game, and you may lose all you've won,' said Mr Laurie, who had enjoyed the stirring tale as much as any of the boys, and would have liked to rough it with Dan as well as they.

"Of course, you'll want to try your luck again, and I hope you do well. But gambling is risky, and you might lose everything you've won," said Mr. Laurie, who had enjoyed the exciting story just as much as the boys and would have loved to take on the adventure with Dan as they did.

'I've had enough of it, for a while at least; too much like gambling. The excitement is all I care for, and it isn't good for me. I have a notion to try farming out West. It's grand on a large scale; and I feel as if steady work would be rather jolly after loafing round so long. I can make a beginning, and you can send me your black sheep to stock my place with. I tried sheep-farming in Australia, and know something about black ones, any way.'

I’ve had enough of this, at least for now; it feels too much like gambling. The thrill is all I care about, and it’s not good for me. I’m thinking about trying farming out West. It's impressive on a big scale, and I think steady work would be pretty nice after lounging around for so long. I can get started, and you can send me your black sheep to fill my land. I tried sheep farming in Australia, so I know a bit about black ones, at least.

A laugh chased away the sober look in Dan's face as he ended; and those who knew him best guessed that he had learned a lesson there in San Francisco, and dared not try again.

A laugh replaced the serious look on Dan's face as he finished, and those who knew him well suspected that he had learned a lesson in San Francisco and wouldn't try again.

'That is a capital idea, Dan!' cried Mrs Jo, seeing great hope in this desire to fix himself somewhere and help others. 'We shall know where you are, and can go and see you, and not have half the world between us. I'll send my Ted for a visit. He's such a restless spirit, it would do him good. With you he would be safe while he worked off his surplus energies and learned a wholesome business.'

"That's a fantastic idea, Dan!" exclaimed Mrs. Jo, seeing a lot of promise in his desire to settle down and help others. "We'll know where you are, we can come visit you, and we won't have half the world between us. I'll send my Ted for a visit. He's such a restless soul; it would be good for him. He would be safe with you while he burns off his excess energy and learns a useful trade."

'I'll use the “shubble and de hoe” like a good one, if I get a chance out there; but the Speranza mines sound rather jollier,' said Ted, examining the samples of ore Dan had brought for the Professor.

"I'll use the 'shovel and the hoe' like a pro if I get the chance out there; but the Speranza mines sound way more fun," said Ted, looking at the ore samples Dan had brought for the Professor.

'You go and start a new town, and when we are ready to swarm we will come out and settle there. You will want a newspaper very soon, and I like the idea of running one myself much better than grinding away as I do now,' observed Demi, panting to distinguish himself in the journalistic line.

'You go ahead and start a new town, and when we're ready to move, we'll come out and settle there. You'll need a newspaper pretty soon, and I really like the idea of running one myself way more than slaving away like I am now,' Demi said, eager to make a name for himself in journalism.

'We could easily plant a new college there. These sturdy Westerners are hungry for learning, and very quick to see and choose the best,' added ever-young Mr March, beholding with his prophetic eye many duplicates of their own flourishing establishment springing up in the wide West.

'We could easily set up a new college there. These determined Westerners are eager to learn and quick to identify and choose the best,' added the ever-young Mr. March, envisioning with his prophetic eye many copies of their successful institution emerging in the vast West.

'Go on, Dan. It is a fine plan, and we will back you up. I shouldn't mind investing in a few prairies and cowboys myself,' said Mr Laurie, always ready to help the lads to help themselves, both by his cheery words and ever-open purse.

"Go ahead, Dan. It's a great plan, and we’ll support you. I wouldn’t mind investing in a few prairies and cowboys myself," said Mr. Laurie, always eager to help the guys help themselves, both with his encouraging words and his always-open wallet.

'A little money sort of ballasts a fellow, and investing it in land anchors him—for a while, at least. I'd like to see what I can do, but I thought I'd consult you before I decided. Have my doubts about it suiting me for many years; but I can cut loose when I'm tired,' answered Dan, both touched and pleased at the eager interest of these friends in his plans.

'A little bit of money helps keep a guy steady, and putting it into land holds him down—for a while, at least. I want to see what I can achieve, but I thought I should talk to you first before making a choice. I have my doubts about it being right for me long-term, but I can walk away when I'm ready,' Dan replied, feeling both moved and happy by his friends' enthusiastic interest in his plans.

'I know you won't like it. After having the whole world to roam over, one farm will seem dreadfully small and stupid,' said Josie, who much preferred the romance of the wandering life which brought her thrilling tales and pretty things at each return.

"I know you won't like it. After having the entire world to explore, one farm will feel incredibly small and boring," said Josie, who much preferred the excitement of a wandering life that brought her thrilling stories and beautiful things every time she returned.

'Is there any art out there?' asked Bess, thinking what a good study in black and white Dan would make as he stood talking, half turned from the light.

"Is there any art out there?" Bess asked, considering how interesting Dan would look in black and white as he talked, half-turned away from the light.

'Plenty of nature, dear; and that is better. You will find splendid animals to model, and scenery such as you never saw in Europe to paint. Even prosaic pumpkins are grand out there. You can play Cinderella in one of them, Josie, when you open your theatre in Dansville,' said Mr Laurie, anxious that no cold water should be thrown on the new plan.

"There's a lot of nature, my dear, and that's a good thing. You’ll find amazing animals to model and scenery that you’ve never seen in Europe to paint. Even ordinary pumpkins look stunning out there. You can play Cinderella in one of them, Josie, when you open your theater in Dansville," Mr. Laurie said, eager to make sure no one dampened the enthusiasm for the new plan.

Stage-struck Josie was caught at once, and being promised all the tragic parts on the yet unbuilt stage, she felt a deep interest in the project and begged Dan to lose no time in beginning his experiment. Bess also confessed that studies from nature would be good for her, and wild scenery improve her taste, which might grow over-nice if only the delicate and beautiful were set before her.

Stage-struck Josie was instantly captivated, and with the promise of all the dramatic roles on the stage that had yet to be built, she developed a keen interest in the project and urged Dan to start his experiment without delay. Bess also admitted that studying nature would benefit her, and that immersing herself in rugged landscapes would enhance her taste, which might become overly refined if only delicate and beautiful things were presented to her.

'I speak for the practice of the new town,' said Nan, always eager for fresh enterprises. 'I shall be ready by the time you get well started—towns grow so fast out there.'

"I represent the development of the new town," said Nan, always excited about new ventures. "I’ll be ready by the time you really get going—towns grow so quickly out there."

'Dan isn't going to allow any woman under forty in his place. He doesn't like them, 'specially young and pretty ones,' put in Tom, who was raging with jealousy, because he read admiration for Nan in Dan's eyes.

'Dan isn't going to let any woman under forty in his place. He doesn't like them, especially young and pretty ones,' said Tom, who was furious with jealousy because he saw admiration for Nan in Dan's eyes.

'That won't affect me, because doctors are exceptions to all rules. There won't be much sickness in Dansville, everyone will lead such active, wholesome lives, and only energetic young people will go there. But accidents will be frequent, owing to wild cattle, fast riding, Indian scrimmages, and the recklessness of Western life. That will just suit me. I long for broken bones, surgery is so interesting and I get so little here,' answered Nan, yearning to put out her shingle and begin.

'That won't bother me, because doctors are exceptions to all the rules. There won't be much illness in Dansville; everyone will live such active, healthy lives, and only energetic young people will move there. But accidents will be common because of wild cattle, fast riding, Indian skirmishes, and the recklessness of life in the West. That will be perfect for me. I crave broken bones; surgery is so fascinating, and I rarely get to see it here,' Nan replied, eager to put out her shingle and get started.

'I'll have you, Doctor, and be glad of such a good sample of what we can do in the East. Peg away, and I'll send for you as soon as I have a roof to cover you. I'll scalp a few red fellows or smash up a dozen or so of cowboys for your special benefit,' laughed Dan, well pleased with the energy and fine physique which made Nan a conspicuous figure among other girls.

'I’ll have you, Doctor, and I’ll be happy to have such a great example of what we can do in the East. Keep at it, and I’ll call for you as soon as I have a place for you. I’ll take down a few Native Americans or take out a dozen cowboys just for you,’ Dan laughed, clearly impressed with the energy and strong physique that made Nan stand out among the other girls.

'Thanks. I'll come. Would you just let me feel your arm? Splendid biceps! Now, boys, see here: this is what I call muscle.' And Nan delivered a short lecture with Dan's sinewy arm to illustrate it. Tom retired to the alcove and glowered at the stars, while he swung his own right arm with a vigour suggestive of knocking someone down.

'Thanks. I'll be there. Could you just let me feel your arm? Fantastic biceps! Now, guys, check this out: this is what I call muscle.' And Nan gave a brief lecture while using Dan's toned arm as an example. Tom went to the alcove and glared at the stars, swinging his own right arm with energy that suggested he wanted to knock someone out.

'Make Tom sexton; he'll enjoy burying the patients Nan kills. He's trying to get up the glum expression proper to the business. Don't forget him, Dan,' said Ted, directing attention to the blighted being in the corner.

'Make Tom sexton; he'll have fun burying the patients Nan kills. He's working on getting the gloomy expression that's suitable for the job. Don't forget about him, Dan,' said Ted, pointing out the unfortunate figure in the corner.

But Tom never sulked long, and came out from his brief eclipse with the cheerful proposition:

But Tom never stayed upset for long, and emerged from his short mood with the cheerful suggestion:

'Look here, we'll get the city to ship out to Dansville all the cases of yellow fever, smallpox, and cholera that arrive; then Nan will be happy and her mistakes won't matter much with emigrants and convicts.'

"Listen, we’ll have the city send all the cases of yellow fever, smallpox, and cholera to Dansville; then Nan will be happy, and her mistakes won’t really matter with immigrants and criminals."

'I should advise settling near Jacksonville, or some such city, that you might enjoy the society of cultivated persons. The Plato Club is there, and a most ardent thirst for philosophy. Everything from the East is welcomed hospitably, and new enterprises would flourish in such kindly soil,' observed Mr March, mildly offering a suggestion, as he sat among the elders enjoying the lively scene.

"I recommend settling near Jacksonville, or a similar city, so you can enjoy the company of educated people. The Plato Club is there, and there's a strong desire for philosophy. Everything from the East is warmly welcomed, and new ventures would thrive in such a supportive environment," Mr. March said, gently making a suggestion while sitting among the older crowd and enjoying the lively scene.

The idea of Dan studying Plato was very funny; but no one except naughty Ted smiled, and Dan made haste to unfold another plan seething in that active brain of his.

The thought of Dan studying Plato was pretty amusing; but no one other than mischievous Ted smiled, and Dan quickly set about revealing another idea brewing in his busy mind.

'I'm not sure the farming will succeed, and have a strong leaning towards my old friends the Montana Indians. They are a peaceful tribe, and need help awfully; hundreds have died of starvation because they don't get their share. The Sioux are fighters, thirty thousand strong, so Government fears 'em, and gives 'em all they want. I call that a damned shame!' Dan stopped short as the oath slipped out, but his eyes flashed, and he went on quickly: 'It is just that, and I won't beg pardon. If I'd had any money when I was there I'd have given every cent to those poor devils, cheated out of everything, and waiting patiently, after being driven from their own land to places where nothing will grow. Now, honest agents could do much, and I've a feeling that I ought to go and lend a hand. I know their lingo, and I like 'em. I've got a few thousands, and I ain't sure I have any right to spend it on myself and settle down to enjoy it. Hey?'

"I'm not sure farming will work out, and I really feel for my old friends, the Montana Indians. They’re a peaceful tribe that desperately needs help; hundreds have died from starvation because they aren’t getting their fair share. The Sioux are fighters, thirty thousand strong, so the government is scared of them and gives them everything they want. I think that’s just a damn shame!" Dan caught himself after the curse slipped out, but his eyes were intense, and he quickly continued, "That’s exactly what it is, and I won’t apologize. If I’d had any money when I was there, I would have given every cent to those poor folks, robbed of everything, just waiting patiently after being pushed off their own land to places where nothing grows. Now, honest agents could make a big difference, and I feel like I should go and help out. I know their language, and I like them. I’ve got a few thousand bucks, and I’m not sure I have the right to spend it on myself and just settle down to enjoy life. Right?"

Dan looked very manly and earnest as he faced his friends, flushed and excited by the energy of his words; and all felt that little thrill of sympathy which links hearts together by the tie of pity for the wronged.

Dan looked really tough and sincere as he faced his friends, flushed and energized by his words; and everyone felt that little rush of empathy that connects hearts through a shared sense of pity for the wronged.

'Do it, do it!' cried Mrs Jo, fired at once; for misfortune was much more interesting to her than good luck.

"Do it, do it!" shouted Mrs. Jo, instantly excited; because misfortune was a lot more interesting to her than good luck.

'Do it, do it!' echoed Ted, applauding as if at a play, 'and take me along to help. I'm just raging to get among those fine fellows and hunt.'

"Do it, do it!" Ted shouted, clapping like he was at a show. "And take me with you to help. I can't wait to get in there with those great guys and go hunting."

'Let us hear more and see if it is wise,' said Mr Laurie, privately resolving to people his as yet unbought prairies with Montana Indians, and increase his donations to the society that sent missionaries to this much wronged people.

"Let's listen more and see if it makes sense," said Mr. Laurie, secretly planning to fill his yet-to-be-purchased prairies with Montana Indians and boost his contributions to the organization that sent missionaries to this greatly wronged community.

Dan plunged at once into the history of what he saw among the Dakotas, and other tribes in the Northwest, telling of their wrongs, patience, and courage as if they were his brothers.

Dan immediately dove into the history of what he witnessed among the Dakotas and other tribes in the Northwest, sharing their struggles, patience, and bravery as if they were his own family.

'They called me Dan Fire Cloud, because my rifle was the best they ever saw. And Black Hawk was as good a friend as a fellow would want; saved my life more than once, and taught me just what will be useful if I go back. They are down on their luck, now, and I'd like to pay my debts.'

'They called me Dan Fire Cloud because my rifle was the best they’d ever seen. And Black Hawk was as good a friend as anyone could ask for; he saved my life more than once and taught me what would be useful if I ever go back. They’re having a tough time now, and I’d like to repay my debts.'

By this time everyone was interested, and Dansville began to lose its charm. But prudent Mr Bhaer suggested that one honest agent among many could not do much, and noble as the effort would be, it was wiser to think over the matter carefully, get influence and authority from the right quarters, and meantime look at lands before deciding.

By this time, everyone was interested, and Dansville started to lose its charm. But cautious Mr. Bhaer suggested that having just one honest agent among many wouldn’t make much of a difference. As noble as the effort would be, it was smarter to think the matter through carefully, gain influence and authority from the right people, and in the meantime, check out some lands before making a decision.

'Well, I will. I'm going to take a run to Kansas and see how that promises. Met a fellow in 'Frisco who'd been there, and he spoke well of it. The fact is, there's so much to be done every where that I don't know where to catch on, and half wish I hadn't any money,' answered Dan, knitting his brows in the perplexity all kind souls feel when anxious to help at the great task of the world's charity.

'Well, I will. I'm going to take a trip to Kansas and see how it goes. I met a guy in San Francisco who had been there, and he had good things to say about it. The truth is, there’s so much to do everywhere that I don't even know where to start, and I half wish I didn’t have any money,' answered Dan, furrowing his brows in the confusion that everyone feels when they genuinely want to contribute to the important work of helping others.

'I'll keep it for you till you decide. You are such an impetuous lad you'll give it to the first beggar that gets hold of you. I'll turn it over while you are prospecting, and hand it back when you are ready to invest, shall I?' asked Mr Laurie, who had learned wisdom since the days of his own extravagant youth.

"I'll hold onto it for you until you make a decision. You're such an impulsive guy that you'll probably give it to the first beggar who asks. I'll look after it while you're out looking for opportunities, and I’ll give it back when you’re ready to invest, okay?" asked Mr. Laurie, who had gained some wisdom since his own reckless youth.

'Thanky, sir, I'd be glad to get rid of it. You just hold on till I say the word; and if anything happens to me this time, keep it to help some other scamp as you helped me. This is my will, and you all witness it. Now I feel better.' And Dan squared his shoulders as if relieved of a burden, after handing over the belt in which he carried his little fortune.

"Thanks, sir, I'd be happy to get rid of it. Just wait until I say the word; and if anything happens to me this time, keep it to help some other troublemaker like you helped me. This is my will, and you all witness it. Now I feel better." And Dan squared his shoulders as if he was relieved of a burden after handing over the belt where he kept his little fortune.

No one dreamed how much was to happen before Dan came to take his money back, nor how nearly that act was his last will and testament; and while Mr Laurie was explaining how he would invest it, a cheery voice was heard singing:

No one could have imagined how much would happen before Dan came to get his money back, nor how close that moment was to being his final act; and while Mr. Laurie was explaining how he would invest it, a cheerful voice was heard singing:

    'Oh, Peggy was a jolly lass,
     Ye heave ho, boys, ye heave ho!
     She never grudged her Jack a glass,
     Ye heave ho, boys, ye heave ho!
     And when he sailed the raging main,
     She faithful was unto her swain,
     Ye heave ho, boys, ye heave ho!'
'Oh, Peggy was a cheerful girl,  
     Heave ho, boys, heave ho!  
     She never denied her Jack a drink,  
     Heave ho, boys, heave ho!  
     And when he sailed the stormy sea,  
     She stayed true to her love,  
     Heave ho, boys, heave ho!'

Emil always announced his arrival in that fashion, and in a moment he came hurrying in with Nat, who had been giving lessons in town all day. It was good to see the latter beam at his friend as he nearly shook his hand off; better still to see how Dan gratefully remembered all he owed Nat, and tried to pay the debt in his rough way; and best of all to hear the two travellers compare notes and reel off yarns to dazzle the land-lubbers and home-keepers.

Emil always announced his arrival like that, and soon he hurried in with Nat, who had been giving lessons in town all day. It was great to see Nat smile at his friend as he nearly shook his hand off; even better to see how Dan gratefully acknowledged everything he owed Nat and tried to repay it in his own rough way; and best of all to hear the two travelers share stories and entertain the landlubbers and homebodies.

After this addition the house would not contain the gay youngsters, so they migrated to the piazza and settled on the steps, like a flock of night-loving birds. Mr March and the Professor retired to the study, Meg and Amy went to look after the little refection of fruit and cake which was to come, and Mrs Jo and Mr Laurie sat in the long window listening to the chat that went on outside.

After this addition, the house couldn’t hold the lively young people, so they moved to the porch and settled on the steps, like a group of night-loving birds. Mr. March and the Professor went to the study, Meg and Amy went to prepare the small spread of fruit and cake that was about to come, and Mrs. Jo and Mr. Laurie sat in the long window, listening to the conversation happening outside.

'There they are, the flower of our flock!' she said, pointing to the group before them. 'The others are dead or scattered, but these seven boys and four girls are my especial comfort and pride. Counting Alice Heath, my dozen is made up, and my hands are full trying to guide these young lives as far as human skill can do it.'

'There they are, the best of our group!' she said, pointing to the crowd in front of them. 'The others are gone or lost, but these seven boys and four girls are my greatest comfort and pride. Including Alice Heath, I've got my dozen, and I'm busy trying to guide these young lives as much as I can.'

'When we remember how different they are, from what some of them came, and the home influences about others, I think we may feel pretty well satisfied so far,' answered Mr Laurie soberly, as his eyes rested on one bright head among the black and brown ones, for the young moon shone alike on all.

'When we think about how different they all are, from where some of them came, and the family influences on others, I believe we can feel pretty satisfied so far,' Mr. Laurie replied seriously, as his gaze landed on one bright head among the black and brown ones, since the young moon shone equally on everyone.

'I don't worry about the girls; Meg sees to them, and is so wise and patient and tender they can't help doing well; but my boys are more care every year, and seem to drift farther away from me each time they go,' sighed Mrs Jo. 'They will grow up, and I can only hold them by one little thread, which may snap at any time, as it has with Jack and Ned. Dolly and George still like to come back, and I can say my word to them; and dear old Franz is too true ever to forget his own. But the three who are soon going out into the world again I can't help worrying about. Emil's good heart will keep him straight, I hope, and

'I don't worry about the girls; Meg takes care of them, and she's so wise, patient, and caring that they can't help but do well. But my boys are becoming more of a concern each year, and it feels like they're drifting further away from me every time they leave,' sighed Mrs. Jo. 'They will grow up, and I can only hold on to them by a thin thread, which could break at any moment, just like it has with Jack and Ned. Dolly and George still like to come back, and I can still give them my advice; and dear old Franz is too loyal to ever forget his own. But I'm really worried about the three who are about to go out into the world again. I hope Emil's good heart will keep him on the right path, and

    '“A sweet little cherub sits up aloft,
    To look out for the life of poor Jack.”'
    '“A sweet little angel looks down from above,  
    Watching over the life of poor Jack.”'

Nat is to make his first flight, and he's weak in spite of your strengthening influence; and Dan is still untamed. I fear it will take some hard lesson to do that.'

Nat is about to make his first flight, and he's feeling weak despite your encouraging influence; and Dan is still wild. I worry it will take a tough lesson to change that.

'He's a fine fellow, Jo, and I almost regret this farming project. A little polish would make a gentleman of him, and who knows what he might become here among us,' answered Mr Laurie, leaning over Mrs Bhaer's chair, just as he used to do years ago when they had mischievous secrets together.

'He's a great guy, Jo, and I almost regret this farming project. A little refinement would really elevate him, and who knows what he could become here with us,' Mr. Laurie replied, leaning over Mrs. Bhaer's chair, just like he used to do years ago when they shared mischievous secrets together.

'It wouldn't be safe, Teddy. Work and the free life he loves will make a good man of him, and that is better than any amount of polish, with the dangers an easy life in a city would bring him. We can't change his nature—only help it to develop in the right direction. The old impulses are there, and must be controlled, or he will go wrong. I see that; but his love for us is a safeguard, and we must keep a hold on him till he is older or has a stronger tie to help him.'

"It wouldn't be safe, Teddy. Working and living freely will make him a good person, and that's better than any amount of refinement, considering the dangers an easy life in the city could bring. We can't change who he is—only help him grow in the right way. The old instincts are there, and they need to be kept in check, or he’ll go off course. I understand that; but his love for us is a protection, and we need to hold on to him until he’s older or has a stronger bond to support him."

Mrs Jo spoke earnestly, for, knowing Dan better than anyone else, she saw that her colt was not thoroughly broken yet, and feared while she hoped, knowing that life would always be hard for one like him. She was sure that before he went away again, in some quiet moment he would give her a glimpse of his inner self, and then she could say the word of warning or encouragement that he needed. So she bided her time, studying him meanwhile, glad to see all that was promising, and quick to detect the harm the world was doing him. She was very anxious to make a success of her 'firebrand' because others predicted failure; but having learned that people cannot be moulded like clay, she contented herself with the hope that this neglected boy might become a good man, and asked no more. Even that was much to expect, so full was he of wayward impulses, strong passions, and the lawless nature born in him. Nothing held him but the one affection of his life—the memory of Plumfield, the fear of disappointing these faithful friends, the pride, stronger than principle, that made him want to keep the regard of the mates who always had admired and loved him in spite of all his faults.

Mrs. Jo spoke earnestly, for, knowing Dan better than anyone else, she realized that her colt wasn’t completely broken yet, and she feared while she hoped, understanding that life would always be tough for someone like him. She was certain that before he left again, in some quiet moment, he would show her a glimpse of his true self, and then she could say the word of warning or encouragement he needed. So she waited for the right moment, studying him in the meantime, pleased to see everything promising, and quick to notice the damage the world was doing to him. She was very eager to make a success of her 'firebrand' because others expected failure; but having learned that people can’t be shaped like clay, she settled for the hope that this neglected boy might become a good man, and asked for nothing more. Even that was a lot to hope for, given how full he was of unpredictable impulses, strong passions, and the lawless nature within him. Nothing held him except the one affection of his life—the memory of Plumfield, the fear of disappointing these loyal friends, and the pride, stronger than principle, that made him want to maintain the respect of the friends who had always admired and loved him despite all his faults.

'Don't fret, old dear; Emil is one of the happy-go-lucky sort who always fall on their legs. I'll see to Nat, and Dan is in a good way now. Let him take a look at Kansas, and if the farm plan loses its charm, he can fall back on poor Lo, and really do good out there. He's unusually fitted for that peculiar task and I hope he'll decide to do it. Fighting oppressors, and befriending the oppressed will keep those dangerous energies of his busy, and the life will suit him better than sheep-folds and wheat-fields.'

'Don't worry, dear; Emil is the carefree type who always lands on his feet. I’ll take care of Nat, and Dan is doing well now. Let him check out Kansas, and if the farm idea loses its appeal, he can rely on poor Lo and really do some good out there. He's especially suited for that unique task, and I hope he'll choose to pursue it. Battling oppressors and supporting the oppressed will keep his restless energies occupied, and that life will fit him better than pastures and fields of wheat.'

'I hope so. What is that?' and Mrs Jo leaned forward to listen, as exclamations from Ted and Josie caught her ear.

'I hope so. What is that?' Mrs. Jo leaned in closer to listen as Ted and Josie’s exclamations grabbed her attention.

'A mustang! a real, live one; and we can ride it. Dan, you are a first-class trump!' cried the boy.

"A mustang! A real, live one; and we can ride it. Dan, you’re awesome!" shouted the boy.

'A whole Indian dress for me! Now I can play Namioka, if the boys act Metamora,' added Josie, clapping her hands.

"A complete Indian outfit for me! Now I can play Namioka if the boys perform Metamora," Josie added, clapping her hands.

'A buffalo's head for Bess! Good gracious, Dan, why did you bring such a horrid thing as that to her?' asked Nan.

'A buffalo's head for Bess! Good grief, Dan, why did you bring something so awful for her?' asked Nan.

'Thought it would do her good to model something strong and natural. She'll never amount to anything if she keeps on making namby-pamby gods and pet kittens,' answered irreverent Dan, remembering that when he was last here Bess was vibrating distractedly between a head of Apollo and her Persian cat as models.

'Thought it would be good for her to model something strong and natural. She'll never get anywhere if she keeps creating soft, fluffy gods and pet kittens,' replied irreverent Dan, recalling that the last time he was here, Bess was nervously switching between a statue of Apollo and her Persian cat as inspirations.

'Thank you; I'll try it, and if I fail we can put the buffalo up in the hall to remind us of you,' said Bess, indignant at the insult offered the gods of her idolatry, but too well bred to show it except in her voice, which was as sweet and as cold as ice-cream.

'Thank you; I'll give it a shot, and if I don't succeed, we can put the buffalo in the hall to remind us of you,' Bess said, angered by the disrespect shown to the gods she idolized, but she was too well-mannered to reveal her feelings except through her voice, which was as sweet and cold as ice cream.

'I suppose you won't come out to see our new settlement when the rest do? Too rough for you?' asked Dan, trying to assume the deferential air all the boys used when addressing their Princess.

"I guess you won't come out to check out our new settlement when everyone else does? Too rough for

'I am going to Rome to study for years. All the beauty and art of the world is there, and a lifetime isn't long enough to enjoy it,' answered Bess.

'I’m going to Rome to study for years. All the beauty and art of the world is there, and a lifetime isn’t long enough to take it all in,' Bess replied.

'Rome is a mouldy old tomb compared to the “Garden of the gods” and my magnificent Rockies. I don't care a hang for art; nature is as much as I can stand, and I guess I could show you things that would knock your old masters higher than kites. Better come, and while Josie rides the horses you can model 'em. If a drove of a hundred or so of wild ones can't show you beauty, I'll give up,' cried Dan, waxing enthusiastic over the wild grace and vigour which he could enjoy but had no power to describe.

'Rome is like a dusty old grave compared to the “Garden of the gods” and my stunning Rockies. I don’t care at all about art; nature is more than enough for me, and I bet I could show you things that would make your old masters look pathetic. You should come, and while Josie rides the horses, you can model them. If a herd of a hundred wild ones can’t show you beauty, then I’ll give up,' Dan exclaimed, getting excited about the wild beauty and energy that he appreciated but couldn’t find the words to describe.

'I'll come some day with papa, and see if they are better than the horses of St Mark and those on Capitol Hill. Please don't abuse my gods, and I will try to like yours,' said Bess, beginning to think the West might be worth seeing, though no Raphael or Angelo had yet appeared there.

"I'll come someday with Dad and see if they're better than the horses of St. Mark and those on Capitol Hill. Please don't trash my favorites, and I’ll try to like yours," said Bess, starting to think the West might be worth visiting, even though no Raphael or Angelo had shown up there yet.

'That's a bargain! I do think people ought to see their own country before they go scooting off to foreign parts, as if the new world wasn't worth discovering,' began Dan, ready to bury the hatchet.

"That's a great deal! I really think people should explore their own country before rushing off to foreign places, as if the new world isn't worth discovering," started Dan, eager to make peace.

'It has some advantages, but not all. The women of England can vote, and we can't. I'm ashamed of America that she isn't ahead in all good things,' cried Nan, who held advanced views on all reforms, and was anxious about her rights, having had to fight for some of them.

'It has its benefits, but not all of them. The women in England can vote, and we can’t. I’m embarrassed for America that she isn’t leading in all the right things,' cried Nan, who had progressive views on all reforms and was concerned about her rights, as she had to fight for some of them.

'Oh, please don't begin on that. People always quarrel over that question, and call names, and never agree. Do let us be quiet and happy tonight,' pleaded Daisy, who hated discussion as much as Nan loved it.

'Oh, please don't start with that. People always argue about that question, throw insults, and never agree. Let's just be quiet and happy tonight,' begged Daisy, who hated discussions as much as Nan loved them.

'You shall vote as much as you like in our new town, Nan; be mayor and aldermen, and run the whole concern. It's going to be as free as air, or I can't live in it,' said Dan, adding, with a laugh, 'I see Mrs Giddygaddy and Mrs Shakespeare Smith don't agree any better than they used to.'

'You can vote as much as you want in our new town, Nan; be mayor and city council members, and run the whole thing. It's going to be as free as can be, or I can't live here,' said Dan, adding with a laugh, 'I see Mrs. Giddygaddy and Mrs. Shakespeare Smith still aren't getting along any better than before.'

'If everyone agreed, we should never get on. Daisy is a dear, but inclined to be an old fogy; so I stir her up; and next fall she will go and vote with me. Demi will escort us to do the one thing we are allowed to do as yet.'

'If everyone agreed, we would never get anywhere. Daisy is sweet, but tends to be a bit old-fashioned; so I motivate her; and next fall she will go and vote with me. Demi will take us to do the one thing we are still allowed to do.'

'Will you take 'em, Deacon?' asked Dan, using the old name as if he liked it. 'It works capitally in Wyoming.'

'Will you take them, Deacon?' Dan asked, using the old name as if he liked it. 'It works really well in Wyoming.'

'I shall be proud to do it. Mother and the aunts go every year, and Daisy will come with me. She is my better half still; and I don't mean to leave her behind in anything,' said Demi, with an arm round his sister of whom he was fonder than ever.

'I’ll be proud to do it. Mom and the aunts go every year, and Daisy will come with me. She’s still my better half; and I don’t plan to leave her out of anything,' said Demi, with an arm around his sister, whom he was fonder of than ever.

Dan looked at them wistfully, thinking how sweet it must be to have such a tie; and his lonely youth seemed sadder than ever as he recalled its struggles. A gusty sigh from Tom made sentiment impossible, as he said pensively:

Dan looked at them with a hint of longing, thinking about how nice it must be to have such a connection; and his lonely youth felt even more tragic as he remembered its challenges. A heavy sigh from Tom broke the mood, as he said thoughtfully:

'I always wanted to be a twin. It's so sociable and so cosy to have someone glad to lean on a fellow and comfort him, if other girls are cruel.'

'I always wanted to be a twin. It's so friendly and comforting to have someone to rely on and support each other, especially when other girls can be cruel.'

As Tom's unrequited passion was the standing joke of the family, this allusion produced a laugh, which Nan increased by whipping out a bottle of Nux, saying, with her professional air:

As Tom's one-sided crush was the ongoing joke of the family, this reference got a laugh, which Nan made even bigger by pulling out a bottle of Nux and saying, with her confident manner:

'I knew you ate too much lobster for tea. Take four pellets, and your dyspepsia will be all right. Tom always sighs and is silly when he's overeaten.'

'I knew you had too much lobster for dinner. Just take four pills, and your upset stomach will be fine. Tom always sighs and acts silly when he’s overindulged.'

'I'll take 'em. These are the only sweet things you ever give me.' And Tom gloomily crunched his dose.

"I'll take them. These are the only nice things you ever give me." And Tom sadly crunched his dose.

'“Who can minister to a mind diseased, or pluck out a rooted sorrow?” quoted Josie tragically from her perch on the railing.

“Who can help a troubled mind, or remove a deep-rooted sadness?” quoted Josie sadly from her spot on the railing.

'Come with me, Tommy, and I'll make a man of you. Drop your pills and powders, and cavort round the world a spell, and you'll soon forget you've got a heart, or a stomach either,' said Dan, offering his one panacea for all ills.

"Come with me, Tommy, and I'll make a man out of you. Forget your pills and powders, and have some fun traveling the world for a while, and you'll quickly forget you even have a heart or a stomach," said Dan, offering his one cure-all for every problem.

'Ship with me, Tom. A good fit of seasickness will set you up, and a stiff north-easter blow your blue-devils away. Come along as surgeon—easy berth, and no end of larks.'

'Come sail with me, Tom. A good dose of seasickness will toughen you up, and a strong north-east wind will blow your blues away. Join me as a surgeon—it's an easy job, and you'll have plenty of fun.'

    '“And if your Nancy frowns, my lad,
      And scorns a jacket blue,
      Just hoist your sails for other ports,
      And find a maid more true.”'
 “And if your Nancy frowns, my guy,  
And turns her nose up at a blue jacket,  
Just set your sails for other shores,  
And find a girl who's more loyal.”

added Emil, who had a fragment of song to cheer every care and sorrow, and freely offered them to his friends.

added Emil, who had a piece of music to lift every worry and sadness, and freely shared them with his friends.

'Perhaps I'll think of it when I've got my diploma. I'm not going to grind three mortal years and have nothing to show for it. Till then,—'

'Maybe I'll consider it once I have my diploma. I'm not going to work through three tough years and have nothing to show for it. Until then,—'

'I'll never desert Mrs Micawber,' interrupted Teddy, with a gurgling sob. Tom immediately rolled him off the step into the wet grass below; and by the time this slight skirmish was over, the jingle of teaspoons suggested refreshments of a more agreeable sort. In former times the little girls waited on the boys, to save confusion; now the young men flew to serve the ladies, young and old; and that slight fact showed plainly how the tables were turned by time. And what a pleasant arrangement it was! Even Josie sat still, and let Emil bring her berries; enjoying her young lady-hood, till Ted stole her cake, when she forgot manners, and chastised him with a rap on the knuckles. As guest of honour, Dan was only allowed to wait on Bess, who still held the highest place in this small world. Tom carefully selected the best of everything for Nan, to be crushed by the remark:

"I'll never abandon Mrs. Micawber," Teddy interrupted, choking back a sob. Tom promptly rolled him off the step and onto the wet grass below; by the time this little scuffle ended, the clinking of spoons indicated snacks of a more pleasant kind. In the past, the little girls served the boys to avoid confusion; now, the young men eagerly served the ladies, both young and old; that small change clearly showed how times had shifted. And what a nice arrangement it was! Even Josie sat still and let Emil bring her berries, enjoying her youth, until Ted swiped her cake, which made her lose her composure and give him a light smack on the knuckles. As the guest of honor, Dan was only allowed to serve Bess, who still held the top spot in this little world. Tom carefully picked the best of everything for Nan, only for her to be taken aback by the comment:

'I never eat at this hour; and you will have a nightmare if you do.'

'I never eat at this time; and you’ll have a nightmare if you do.'

So, dutifully curbing the pangs of hunger, he gave the plate to Daisy, and chewed rose-leaves for his supper.

So, holding back his hunger, he handed the plate to Daisy and chewed on rose leaves for dinner.

When a surprising quantity of wholesome nourishment had been consumed, someone said, 'Let's sing!' and a tuneful hour followed. Nat fiddled, Demi piped, Dan strummed the old banjo, and Emil warbled a doleful ballad about the wreck of the Bounding Betsey; then everybody joined in the old songs till there was very decidedly 'music in the air'; and passers-by said, as they listened smiling: 'Old Plum is gay tonight!'

When a surprising amount of good food had been eaten, someone said, 'Let's sing!' and an enjoyable hour followed. Nat played the fiddle, Demi played the pipe, Dan strummed the old banjo, and Emil sang a sad song about the wreck of the Bounding Betsey; then everyone joined in the classic songs until there was definitely 'music in the air'; and passers-by said, as they listened with smiles: 'Old Plum is lively tonight!'

When all had gone Dan lingered on the piazza, enjoying the balmy wind that blew up from the hayfields, and brought the breath of flowers from Parnassus; and as he leaned there romantically in the moonlight, Mrs Jo came to shut the door.

When everyone had left, Dan hung out on the piazza, soaking in the gentle breeze from the hayfields, which carried the fragrance of flowers from Parnassus. As he leaned there dreamily in the moonlight, Mrs. Jo came to close the door.

'Dreaming dreams, Dan?' she asked, thinking the tender moment might have come. Imagine the shock when, instead of some interesting confidence or affectionate word, Dan swung round, saying bluntly:

'Dreaming dreams, Dan?' she asked, hoping that the tender moment had arrived. Imagine her surprise when, instead of sharing something interesting or saying something sweet, Dan turned around and replied bluntly:

'I was wishing I could smoke.'

'I wish I could smoke.'

Mrs Jo laughed at the downfall of her hopes, and answered kindly:

Mrs. Jo laughed at the collapse of her hopes and replied warmly:

'You may, in your room; but don't set the house afire.'

'You can do that in your room, but don’t set the house on fire.'

Perhaps Dan saw a little disappointment in her face, or the memory of the sequel of that boyish frolic touched his heart; for he stooped and kissed her, saying in a whisper: 'Good night, mother.' And Mrs Jo was half satisfied.

Maybe Dan noticed a hint of disappointment on her face, or the memory of their playful moments tugged at his heart; so he leaned down and kissed her, whispering, 'Good night, Mom.' And Mrs. Jo felt somewhat satisfied.





Chapter 5. VACATION

Everyone was glad of a holiday next morning, and all lingered over the breakfast-table, till Mrs Jo suddenly exclaimed:

Everyone was happy about having a day off the next morning, and they all took their time at the breakfast table until Mrs. Jo suddenly exclaimed:

'Why, there's a dog!' And on the threshold of the door appeared a great deer-hound, standing motionless, with his eyes fixed on Dan.

'Look, there's a dog!' And in the doorway stood a huge deer-hound, completely still, his eyes locked on Dan.

'Hallo, old boy! Couldn't you wait till I came for you? Have you cut away on the sly? Own up now, and take your whipping like a man,' said Dan, rising to meet the dog, who reared on his hind legs to look his master in the face and bark as if uttering an indignant denial of any disobedience.

'Hey, buddy! Couldn't you wait for me to come get you? Did you sneak off on your own? Just admit it, and take your punishment like a man,' said Dan, standing up to face the dog, who stood on his hind legs to look Dan in the eye and barked as if to indignantly deny any wrongdoing.

'All right; Don never lies.' And Dan gave the tall beast a hug, adding as he glanced out of the window, where a man and horse were seen approaching:

'Okay; Don never lies.' And Dan hugged the tall creature, adding as he looked out the window, where a man and a horse were approaching:

'I left my plunder at the hotel over night, not knowing how I should find you. Come out and see Octoo, my mustang; she's a beauty.' And Dan was off, with the family streaming after him, to welcome the newcomer.

'I left my stuff at the hotel overnight, unsure how I would find you. Come out and see Octoo, my mustang; she's beautiful.' And Dan took off, with the family trailing behind him, to greet the newcomer.

They found her preparing to go up the steps in her eagerness to reach her master, to the great dismay of the man, who was holding her back.

They found her getting ready to go up the steps in her eagerness to reach her master, much to the distress of the man who was trying to hold her back.

'Let her come,' called Dan; 'she climbs like a cat and jumps like a deer. Well, my girl, do you want a gallop?' he asked, as the pretty creature clattered up to him and whinnied with pleasure as he rubbed her nose and slapped her glossy flank.

'Let her come,' called Dan; 'she climbs like a cat and jumps like a deer. Well, my girl, do you want to run?' he asked, as the pretty creature trotted up to him and whinnied with delight as he rubbed her nose and slapped her shiny flank.

'That's what I call a horse worth having,' said Ted, full of admiration and delight; for he was to have the care of her during Dan's absence.

"That's what I call a horse worth having," said Ted, filled with admiration and excitement, because he was going to take care of her while Dan was away.

'What intelligent eyes! She looks as if she would speak,' said Mrs Jo.

"What intelligent eyes! She looks like she would speak," said Mrs. Jo.

'She talks like a human in her way. Very little that she don't know. Hey, old Lass?' and Dan laid his cheek to hers as if the little black mare was very dear to him.

'She talks like a person in her own way. There’s hardly anything she doesn’t know. Hey, old girl?' and Dan pressed his cheek to hers as if the little black mare meant a lot to him.

'What does “Octoo” mean?' asked Rob.

'What does “Octoo” mean?' Rob asked.

'Lightning; she deserves it, as you'll see. Black Hawk gave her to me for my rifle, and we've had high times together out yonder. She's saved my life more than once. Do you see that scar?'

'Lightning; she deserves it, as you'll see. Black Hawk gave her to me for my rifle, and we’ve had great times together out there. She’s saved my life more than once. Do you see that scar?'

Dan pointed to a small one, half hidden by the long mane; and standing with his arm about Octoo's neck, he told the story of it.

Dan pointed to a small one, partly hidden by the long mane; and standing with his arm around Octoo's neck, he told the story of it.

'Black Hawk and I were after buffalo one time, but didn't find 'em as soon as we expected; so our food gave out, and there we were a hundred miles from Red Deer River, where our camp was. I thought we were done for, but my brave pal says: “Now I'll show you how we can live till we find the herds.” We were unsaddling for the night by a little pond; there wasn't a living creature in sight anywhere, not even a bird, and we could see for miles over the prairies. What do you think we did?' And Dan looked into the faces round him.

'Black Hawk and I were out hunting buffalo once, but we didn't find them as quickly as we thought we would; so we ran out of food, and there we were a hundred miles from Red Deer River, where our camp was. I thought we were finished, but my brave friend said, “Now I’ll show you how we can survive until we find the herds.” We were taking off our saddles for the night by a small pond; there wasn't a single living creature in sight, not even a bird, and we could see for miles across the prairies. What do you think we did?' And Dan looked at the faces around him.

'Ate worms like the Australian fellows,' said Rob. 'Boiled grass or leaves,' added Mrs Jo.

"Ate worms like the Australians," said Rob. "Boiled grass or leaves," added Mrs. Jo.

'Perhaps filled the stomach with clay, as we read of savages doing?' suggested Mr Bhaer.

"Maybe they filled their stomachs with clay, like we read about savages doing?" suggested Mr. Bhaer.

'Killed one of the horses,' cried Ted, eager for bloodshed of some sort.

" killed one of the horses," shouted Ted, eager for some kind of violence.

'No; but we bled one of them. See, just here; filled a tin cup, put some wild sage leaves in it, with water, and heated it over a fire of sticks. It was good, and we slept well.'

'No; but we bled one of them. Look, right here; we filled a tin cup, added some wild sage leaves, with water, and heated it over a fire made of sticks. It was good, and we slept well.'

'I guess Octoo didn't.' And Josie patted the animal, with a face full of sympathy.

'I guess Octoo didn't.' Josie patted the animal, her face full of sympathy.

'Never minded it a bit. Black Hawk said we could live on the horses several days and still travel before they felt it. But by another morning we found the buffalo, and I shot the one whose head is in my box, ready to hang up and scare brats into fits. He's a fierce old fellow, you bet.'

'Never cared about it at all. Black Hawk said we could survive on the horses for several days and still move on before they felt it. But by the next morning, we found the buffalo, and I shot the one whose head is in my box, all set to hang up and scare kids to death. He's a tough old guy, you know.'

'What is this strap for?' asked Ted, who was busily examining the Indian saddle, the single rein and snaffle, with lariat, and round the neck the leather band he spoke of.

'What’s this strap for?' asked Ted, who was busy checking out the Indian saddle, the single rein and snaffle, along with the lariat, and the leather band around the neck that he mentioned.

'We hold on to that when we lie along the horse's flank farthest from the enemy, and fire under the neck as we gallop round and round. I'll show you.' And springing into the saddle, Dan was off down the steps, tearing over the lawn at a great pace, sometimes on Octoo's back, sometimes half hidden as he hung by stirrup and strap, and sometimes off altogether, running beside her as she loped along, enjoying the fun immensely; while Don raced after, in a canine rapture at being free again and with his mates.

'We cling to that when we lie against the horse's side farthest from the enemy and shoot under the neck as we gallop in circles. I'll show you.' With that, Dan jumped into the saddle and took off down the steps, racing across the lawn at high speed, sometimes riding on Octoo's back, sometimes half hidden as he hung by the stirrup and strap, and sometimes off altogether, running alongside her as she loped along, having a blast; while Don raced after them, ecstatic to be free and with his friends.

It was a fine sight—the three wild things at play, so full of vigour, grace, and freedom, that for the moment the smooth lawn seemed a prairie; and the spectators felt as if this glimpse of another life made their own seem rather tame and colourless.

It was a beautiful sight—the three wild creatures playing, so full of energy, elegance, and freedom, that for a moment the smooth lawn felt like an open field; and the onlookers felt as if this peek into another way of living made their own seem rather dull and lifeless.

'This is better than a circus!' cried Mrs Jo, wishing she were a girl again, that she might take a gallop on this chained lightning of a horse. 'I foresee that Nan will have her hands full setting bones, for Ted will break every one of his trying to rival Dan.'

'This is better than a circus!' yelled Mrs. Jo, wishing she could be a girl again so she could race on this lightning-fast horse. 'I can already tell that Nan will have her hands full setting broken bones because Ted is going to break every one of his trying to compete with Dan.'

'A few falls will not harm, and this new care and pleasure will be good for him in all ways. But I fear Dan will never follow a plough after riding a Pegasus like that,' answered Mr Bhaer, as the black mare leaped the gate and came flying up the avenue, to stop at a word and stand quivering with excitement, while Dan swung himself off and looked up for applause.

'A few falls won't hurt, and this new care and enjoyment will be good for him in every way. But I'm afraid Dan will never go back to plowing after riding a Pegasus like that,' replied Mr. Bhaer, as the black mare jumped over the gate and raced up the avenue, stopping on command and standing there, quivering with excitement, while Dan swung himself off and looked up for applause.

He received plenty of it, and seemed more pleased for his pet's sake than for his own. Ted clamoured for a lesson at once, and was soon at ease in the queer saddle, finding Octoo gentle as a lamb, as he trotted away to show off at college. Bess came hastening down the hill, having seen the race from afar; and all collected on the piazza while Dan 'yanked' the cover off the big box the express had 'dumped' before the door—to borrow his own words.

He got a lot of it and seemed happier for his pet than for himself. Ted immediately wanted a lesson and quickly got comfortable in the strange saddle, discovering that Octoo was as gentle as a lamb as he trotted off to show off at college. Bess rushed down the hill after seeing the race from a distance, and they all gathered on the porch while Dan pulled the cover off the big box that the delivery had dropped off at the door—to borrow his own words.

Dan usually travelled in light marching order, and hated to have more luggage than he could carry in his well-worn valise. But now that he had a little money of his own, he had cumbered himself with a collection of trophies won by his bow and spear, and brought them home to bestow upon his friends.

Dan usually traveled with a light load and hated to have more luggage than he could carry in his well-used suitcase. But now that he had a bit of money of his own, he had burdened himself with a collection of trophies earned by his bow and spear and brought them home to give to his friends.

'We shall be devoured with moths,' thought Mrs Jo, as the shaggy head appeared, followed by a wolf-skin rug for her feet, a bear-skin ditto for the Professor's study, and Indian garments bedecked with foxes' tails for the boys.

'We're going to be swarmed by moths,' thought Mrs. Jo, as the shaggy head appeared, followed by a wolf-skin rug for her feet, a bear-skin one for the Professor's study, and Indian clothes decorated with fox tails for the boys.

All nice and warm for a July day, but received with delight nevertheless. Ted and Josie immediately 'dressed up', learned the war-whoop, and proceeded to astonish their friends by a series of skirmishes about the house and grounds, with tomahawks and bows and arrows, till weariness produced a lull.

All nice and warm for a July day, but welcomed with excitement anyway. Ted and Josie immediately "got into costume," learned the war cry, and went on to impress their friends with a series of skirmishes around the house and yard, using tomahawks and bows and arrows, until exhaustion brought a pause.

Gay birds' wings, plumy pampas grass, strings of wampum, and pretty work in beads, bark, and feathers, pleased the girls. Minerals, arrow-heads, and crude sketches interested the Professor; and when the box was empty, Dan gave Mr Laurie, as his gift, several plaintive Indian songs written on birch-bark.

Gay birds' wings, fluffy pampas grass, strings of beads, and beautiful pieces made from beads, bark, and feathers delighted the girls. Minerals, arrowheads, and rough drawings caught the Professor's attention; and when the box was empty, Dan gifted Mr. Laurie several poignant Indian songs written on birch bark.

'We only want a tent over us to be quite perfect. I feel as if I ought to give you parched corn and dried meat for dinner, my braves. Nobody will want lamb and green peas after this splendid pow-wow,' said Mrs Jo, surveying the picturesque confusion of the long hall, where people lay about on the rugs, all more or less bedecked with feathers, moccasins, or beads.

'We just want a tent above us to be totally perfect. I feel like I should serve you toasted corn and dried meat for dinner, my warriors. No one will want lamb and green peas after this amazing gathering,' said Mrs. Jo, looking over the vibrant chaos of the long hall, where people lounged on the rugs, each adorned with feathers, moccasins, or beads.

'Moose noses, buffalo tongues, bear steaks, and roasted marrow-bones would be the thing, but I don't mind a change; so bring on your baa-baa and green meat,' answered Dan from the box, where he sat in state like a chief among his tribe, with the great hound at his feet.

'Moose noses, buffalo tongues, bear steaks, and roasted marrow bones would be great, but I don't mind switching it up; so bring on your lamb and fresh meat,' replied Dan from the box, where he sat like a chief among his group, with the big hound at his feet.

The girls began to clear up, but made little headway; for everything they touched had a story, and all were thrilling, comical, or wild; so they found it hard to settle to their work, till Dan was carried off by Mr Laurie.

The girls started to clean up, but didn't get very far; everything they picked up had a story, and each one was exciting, funny, or crazy; so they found it difficult to focus on their task until Mr. Laurie took Dan away.

This was the beginning of the summer holiday, and it was curious to see what a pleasant little stir Dan's and Emil's coming made in the quiet life of the studious community; for they seemed to bring a fresh breeze with them that enlivened everyone. Many of the collegians remained during vacation; and Plumfield and Parnassus did their best to make these days pleasant for them, since most came from distant States, were poor, and had few opportunities but this for culture or amusement. Emil was hail-fellow-well-met with men and maids, and went rollicking about in true sailor fashion; but Dan stood rather in awe of the 'fair girl-graduates', and was silent when among them, eyeing them as an eagle might a flock of doves. He got on better with the young men, and was their hero at once. Their admiration for his manly accomplishments did him good; because he felt his educational defects keenly, and often wondered if he could find anything in books to satisfy him as thoroughly as did the lessons he was learning from Nature's splendidly illustrated volume. In spite of his silence, the girls found out his good qualities, and regarded 'the Spaniard', as they named him, with great favour; for his black eyes were more eloquent than his tongue, and the kind creatures tried to show their friendly interests in many charming ways.

This marked the start of summer vacation, and it was interesting to see how Dan's and Emil's arrival stirred up the calm life of the studious community; they seemed to bring a refreshing vibe that uplifted everyone. Many of the students stayed during the break, and Plumfield and Parnassus did their best to make these days enjoyable for them since most came from faraway states, were struggling financially, and had few chances for culture or entertainment. Emil was friendly with both guys and girls, happily roaming around like a true sailor; but Dan felt a bit intimidated by the 'fair girl-graduates' and stayed quiet around them, watching them like an eagle would eye a group of doves. He connected better with the young men, quickly becoming their hero. Their admiration for his masculine skills boosted his confidence; he was keenly aware of his educational shortcomings and often wondered if he could find anything in books that would satisfy him as much as the lessons he was learning from Nature's beautifully illustrated book. Despite his quietness, the girls noticed his good traits and regarded 'the Spaniard'—as they called him—with great fondness; his dark eyes were more expressive than his words, and the kind girls tried to show their friendly interest in many delightful ways.

He saw this, and endeavoured to be worthy of it—curbing his free speech, toning down his rough manners, and watching the effect of all he said and did, anxious to make a good impression. The social atmosphere warmed his lonely heart, the culture excited him to do his best, and the changes which had taken place during his absence, both in himself and others, made the old home seem like a new world. After the life in California, it was sweet and restful to be here, with these familiar faces round him, helping him to forget much that he regretted, and to resolve to deserve more entirely the confidence of these good fellows, the respect of these innocent girls.

He saw this and tried hard to be deserving of it—holding back his blunt speech, softening his rough manners, and paying attention to how his words and actions affected others, eager to make a good impression. The social environment warmed his lonely heart, the culture motivated him to do his best, and the changes that had occurred during his time away, both within himself and in others, made the old home feel like a whole new world. After life in California, it was nice and relaxing to be here, surrounded by these familiar faces, helping him forget much of what he regretted and making him determined to earn the trust of these good guys and the respect of these innocent girls.

So there was riding, rowing, and picnicking by day, music, dancing, and plays by night; and everyone said there had not been so gay a vacation for years. Bess kept her promise, and let the dust gather on her beloved clay while she went pleasuring with her mates or studied music with her father, who rejoiced over the fresh roses in her cheeks and the laughter which chased away the dreamy look she used to wear. Josie quarrelled less with Ted; for Dan had a way of looking at her which quelled her instantly, and had almost as good an effect upon her rebellious cousin. But Octoo did even more for the lively youth, who found that her charms entirely eclipsed those of the bicycle which had been his heart's delight before. Early and late he rode this untiring beast, and began to gain flesh—to the great joy of his mother, who feared that her beanstalk was growing too fast for health.

So there was riding, rowing, and picnicking during the day, and music, dancing, and plays at night; everyone said it was the most fun vacation in years. Bess kept her promise and let the dust settle on her favorite clay while she enjoyed time with her friends or practiced music with her dad, who was thrilled to see fresh color in her cheeks and laughter replacing the dreamy look she used to have. Josie argued less with Ted because Dan had a way of looking at her that instantly calmed her down, and it worked almost just as well on her stubborn cousin. But Octoo did even more for the lively guy, who found that her charms completely overshadowed the bicycle that had once been his favorite. From dawn till dusk, he rode this tireless machine and started to gain weight—much to his mother's delight, as she worried her beanstalk was growing too quickly for her health.

Demi, finding business dull, solaced his leisure by photographing everybody he could induce to sit or stand to him, producing some excellent pictures among many failures; for he had a pretty taste in grouping, and endless patience. He might be said to view the world through the lens of his camera, and seemed to enjoy himself very much squinting at his fellow beings from under a bit of black cambric. Dan was a treasure to him; for he took well, and willingly posed in his Mexican costume, with horse and hound, and all wanted copies of these effective photographs. Bess, also, was a favourite sitter; and Demi received a prize at the Amateur Photographic Exhibition for one of his cousin with all her hair about her face, which rose from the cloud of white lace draping the shoulders. These were freely handed round by the proud artist; and one copy had a tender little history yet to be told.

Demi, finding work boring, filled his free time by taking photos of everyone he could convince to pose for him, producing some great pictures among many failures; he had a good eye for composition and tons of patience. He seemed to see the world through his camera lens and really enjoyed peering at people from beneath a piece of black fabric. Dan was a gem for him; he took great photos and happily posed in his Mexican outfit, with a horse and a dog, and everyone wanted copies of these striking pictures. Bess was also a favorite model; Demi even won a prize at the Amateur Photographic Exhibition for one of his cousin, which showed her hair wild around her face, rising from a cloud of white lace draping her shoulders. The proud artist enthusiastically shared these copies, and one of them had a sweet little story still to be told.

Nat was snatching every minute he could get with Daisy before the long parting; and Mrs Meg relented somewhat, feeling sure that absence would quite cure this unfortunate fancy. Daisy said little; but her gentle face was sad when she was alone, and a few quiet tears dropped on the handkerchiefs she marked so daintily with her own hair. She was sure Nat would not forget her; and life looked rather forlorn without the dear fellow who had been her friend since the days of patty-pans and confidences in the willow-tree. She was an old-fashioned daughter, dutiful and docile, with such love and reverence for her mother that her will was law; and if love was forbidden, friendship must suffice. So she kept her little sorrow to herself, smiled cheerfully at Nat, and made his last days of home-life very happy with every comfort and pleasure she could give, from sensible advice and sweet words to a well-filled work-bag for his bachelor establishment and a box of goodies for the voyage.

Nat was grabbing every moment he could with Daisy before their long separation, and Mrs. Meg softened a bit, convinced that being apart would completely cure this unfortunate crush. Daisy didn’t say much, but her gentle face was sad when she was alone, and a few quiet tears fell on the handkerchiefs she decorated so delicately with her own hair. She knew Nat wouldn’t forget her, and life felt pretty empty without the dear guy who had been her friend since the days of play and secrets beneath the willow tree. She was a traditional daughter, respectful and compliant, with such love and admiration for her mother that her wishes were law; if love was off-limits, then friendship would have to do. So she kept her little sadness to herself, smiled warmly at Nat, and made his last days at home really happy with every comfort and joy she could provide, from wise advice and sweet words to a well-stocked work bag for his bachelor life and a box of treats for the journey.

Tom and Nan took all the time they could spare from their studies to enjoy high jinks at Plumfield with their old friends; for Emil's next voyage was to be a long one, Nat's absence was uncertain, and no one ever knew when Dan would turn up again. They all seemed to feel that life was beginning to grow serious; and even while they enjoyed those lovely summer days together they were conscious that they were children no longer, and often in the pauses of their fun talked soberly of their plans and hopes, as if anxious to know and help one another before they drifted farther apart on their different ways.

Tom and Nan took every moment they could from their studies to have fun at Plumfield with their old friends. Emil's next trip was going to be a long one, Nat's return was uncertain, and no one ever knew when Dan would show up again. They all felt like life was starting to get serious; and even while they enjoyed those beautiful summer days together, they were aware that they were no longer kids. Often, in between their fun, they talked seriously about their plans and hopes, eager to know and support each other before they drifted further apart on their separate paths.

A few weeks were all they had; then the Brenda was ready, Nat was to sail from New York, and Dan went along to see him off; for his own plans fermented in his head, and he was eager to be up and doing. A farewell dance was given on Parnassus in honour of the travellers, and all turned out in their best array and gayest spirits. George and Dolly came with the latest Harvard airs and graces, radiant to behold, in dress-suits and 'crushed hats', as Josie called the especial pride and joy of their boyish souls. Jack and Ned sent regrets and best wishes, and no one mourned their absence; for they were among what Mrs Jo called her failures. Poor Tom got into trouble, as usual, by deluging his head with some highly scented preparation in the vain hope of making his tight curls lie flat and smooth, as was the style. Unhappily, his rebellious crop only kinked the closer, and the odour of many barbers' shops clung to him in spite of his frantic efforts to banish it. Nan wouldn't allow him near her, and flapped her fan vigorously whenever he was in sight; which cut him to the heart, and made him feel like the Peri shut out from Paradise. Of course his mates jeered at him, and nothing but the unquenchable jollity of his nature kept him from despair.

A few weeks was all they had; then Brenda was ready, Nat was set to sail from New York, and Dan went along to see him off, since he had his own plans brewing and was eager to get started. A farewell dance was held on Parnassus in honor of the travelers, and everyone showed up in their finest outfits and best spirits. George and Dolly arrived with the latest Harvard styles, looking radiant in their tuxedos and "crushed hats," as Josie called the special pride and joy of their youthful souls. Jack and Ned sent their regrets and best wishes, and no one missed them; they were among what Mrs. Jo referred to as her failures. Poor Tom got into trouble, as usual, by drowning his head in some heavily scented product in a futile attempt to make his tight curls lie flat and smooth, as was the trend. Unfortunately, his stubborn hair only curled more tightly, and the smell of various barber shops clung to him despite his desperate attempts to rid himself of it. Nan wouldn’t let him near her and waved her fan vigorously whenever he was in sight, which crushed him and made him feel like the Peri shut out from Paradise. Of course, his friends teased him, but only the unquenchable cheerfulness of his nature kept him from despair.

Emil was resplendent in his new uniform, and danced with an abandon which only sailors know. His pumps seemed to be everywhere, and his partners soon lost breath trying to keep up with him; but the girls all declared he steered like an angel, and in spite of his pace no collisions took place; so he was happy, and found no lack of damsels to ship with him.

Emil looked amazing in his new uniform and danced with a freedom that only sailors have. His moves were everywhere, and his partners quickly lost their breath trying to keep up with him; but the girls all said he led like a pro, and even with his speed, there were no crashes; so he was happy and had no shortage of girls to dance with him.

Having no dress-suit, Dan had been coaxed to wear his Mexican costume, and feeling at ease in the many-buttoned trousers, loose jacket, and gay sash, flung his serape over his shoulder with a flourish and looked his best, doing great execution with his long spurs, as he taught Josie strange steps or rolled his black eyes admiringly after certain blonde damsels whom he dared not address.

Having no formal suit, Dan was encouraged to wear his Mexican costume, and feeling comfortable in the buttoned trousers, loose jacket, and colorful sash, he tossed his serape over his shoulder with flair and looked his best, impressing everyone with his long spurs as he taught Josie unusual dance steps or gazed admirably at certain blonde women he didn’t have the courage to talk to.

The mammas sat in the alcove, supplying pins, smiles, and kindly words to all, especially the awkward youths new to such scenes, and the bashful girls conscious of faded muslins and cleaned gloves. It was pleasant to see stately Mrs Amy promenade on the arm of a tall country boy, with thick boots and a big forehead, or Mrs Jo dance like a girl with a shy fellow whose arms went like pump-handles, and whose face was scarlet with confusion and pride at the honour of treading on the toes of the president's wife. Mrs Meg always had room on her sofa for two or three girls, and Mr Laurie devoted himself to these plain, poorly dressed damsels with a kindly grace that won their hearts and made them happy. The good Professor circulated like refreshments, and his cheerful face shone on all alike, while Mr March discussed Greek comedy in the study with such serious gentlemen as never unbent their mighty minds to frivolous joys.

The moms sat in the alcove, providing pins, smiles, and encouraging words to everyone, especially the awkward guys new to these events and the shy girls self-conscious about their old dresses and cleaned gloves. It was nice to see elegant Mrs. Amy walking arm in arm with a tall country boy, wearing thick boots and having a big forehead, or Mrs. Jo dancing like a girl with a bashful guy whose arms moved like pump handles, his face red with embarrassment and pride at the honor of stepping on the president's wife’s toes. Mrs. Meg always had space on her sofa for two or three girls, and Mr. Laurie paid special attention to these plain, poorly dressed girls with a kindness that won their hearts and made them happy. The good Professor mingled like refreshments, and his cheerful face lit up everyone, while Mr. March talked about Greek comedy in the study with serious gentlemen who never relaxed their intense minds for lighter joys.

The long music-room, parlour, hall, and piazza were full of white-gowned maidens with attendant shadows; the air was full of lively voices, and hearts and feet went lightly together as the home band played vigorously, and the friendly moon did her best to add enchantment to the scene.

The long music room, parlor, hall, and porch were filled with maidens in white gowns, accompanied by their shadows. The air was alive with cheerful voices, and hearts and feet moved lightly as the home band played energetically, while the friendly moon worked its magic to enhance the scene.

'Pin me up, Meg; that dear Dunbar boy has nearly rent me “in sunder”, as Mr Peggotty would say. But didn't he enjoy himself, bumping against his fellow men and swinging me round like a mop. On these occasions I find that I'm not as young as I was, nor as light of foot. In ten years more we shall be meal-bags, sister; so be resigned.' And Mrs Jo subsided into a corner, much dishevelled by her benevolent exertions.

'Pin me up, Meg; that dear Dunbar boy has almost torn me apart, as Mr. Peggotty would say. But didn't he have a great time, bumping into the other guys and swinging me around like a mop? I realize on these occasions that I'm not as young as I used to be, nor as spry. In ten more years, we’ll be like bags of flour, sister; so just accept it.' And Mrs. Jo settled into a corner, looking quite disheveled from her kind efforts.

'I know I shall be stout; but you won't keep still long enough to get much flesh on your bones, dear; and Amy will always keep her lovely figure. She looks about eighteen tonight, in her white gown and roses,' answered Meg, busily pinning up one sister's torn frills, while her eyes fondly followed the other's graceful movements; for Meg still adored Amy in the old fashion.

'I know I'll be stout, but you won't sit still long enough to put on any weight, dear; and Amy will always have her beautiful figure. She looks about eighteen tonight in her white gown and roses,' replied Meg, busy pinning up one sister's torn frills, while her eyes affectionately followed the other's graceful movements; for Meg still adored Amy in the same old way.

It was one of the family jokes that Jo was getting fat, and she kept it up, though as yet she had only acquired a matronly outline, which was very becoming. They were laughing over the impending double chins, when Mr Laurie came off duty for a moment.

It was a running family joke that Jo was gaining weight, and she played along, though she had only developed a curvy figure, which looked quite nice. They were laughing about the possibility of double chins when Mr. Laurie took a break for a moment.

'Repairing damages as usual, Jo? You never could take a little gentle exercise without returning in rags. Come and have a quiet stroll with me and cool off before supper. I've a series of pretty tableaux to show you while Meg listens to the raptures of lisping Miss Carr, whom I made happy by giving her Demi for a partner.'

'Fixing things up again, Jo? You always manage to get a little workout and come back looking like a mess. Come take a relaxing walk with me and unwind before dinner. I have a bunch of lovely scenes to show you while Meg enjoys the sweet talk of Miss Carr, whom I made happy by pairing her with Demi.'

As he spoke, Laurie led Jo to the music-room, nearly empty now after a dance which sent the young people into garden and hall. Pausing before the first of the four long windows that opened on a very wide piazza, he pointed to a group outside, saying: 'The name of this is “Jack Ashore”.'

As he talked, Laurie guided Jo to the music room, which was almost empty now after a dance that had sent the young people outside to the garden and hallway. Pausing in front of the first of the four long windows that opened onto a wide porch, he pointed to a group outside and said, "This is called 'Jack Ashore'."

A pair of long, blue legs, ending in very neat pumps, hung from the veranda roof among the vines; and roses, gathered by unseen hands, evidently appertaining to aforesaid legs, were being dropped into the laps of several girls perched like a flock of white birds on the railing below; while a manly voice 'fell like a falling star', as it sung this pensive ditty to a most appreciative audience:

A pair of long, blue legs, ending in very neat pumps, dangled from the veranda roof among the vines; roses, gathered by unseen hands, clearly belonging to those legs, were being dropped into the laps of several girls sitting like a flock of white birds on the railing below; while a strong voice 'fell like a falling star' as it sang this thoughtful tune to a very appreciative audience:

             MARY'S DREAM

    The moon had climbed the eastern hill
    Which rises o'er the sands of Dee,
    And from its highest summit shed
    A silver light on tower and tree,
    When Mary laid her down to sleep
    (Her thoughts on Sandy far at sea);
    When soft and low a voice was heard,
    Saying, 'Mary, weep no more for me.'

    She from her pillow gently raised
    Her head, to see who there might be,
    And saw young Sandy, shivering stand
    With visage pale and hollow e'e.
    'Oh Mary dear, cold is my clay;
    It lies beneath the stormy sea;
    Far, far from thee, I sleep in death.
    Dear Mary, weep no more for me.

    'Three stormy nights and stormy days
    We tossed upon the raging main.
    And long we strove our bark to save;
    But all our striving was in vain.
    E'en then, when terror chilled my blood,
    My heart was filled with love of thee.
    The storm is past, and I'm at rest;
    So, Mary, weep no more for me.

    'Oh maiden dear, yourself prepare;
    We soon shall meet upon that shore
    Where love is free from doubt and care,
    And you and I shall part no more.'
    Loud crew the cock, the shadow fled;
    No more her Sandy did she see;
    But soft the passing spirit said,
    'Sweet Mary, weep no more for me.'
             MARY'S DREAM

    The moon had risen over the eastern hill
    That looks over the sands of Dee,
    And from its highest point shed
    A silver light on tower and tree,
    When Mary laid down to sleep
    (Her thoughts on Sandy far at sea);
    When softly a voice was heard,
    Saying, 'Mary, weep no more for me.'

    She gently lifted her head from the pillow
    To see who might be there,
    And saw young Sandy, shivering,
    With a pale face and hollow eyes.
    'Oh Mary dear, my body is cold;
    It lies beneath the stormy sea;
    Far, far from you, I sleep in death.
    Dear Mary, weep no more for me.

    'Three stormy nights and stormy days
    We battled on the raging sea.
    And for a long time we tried to save our boat;
    But all our efforts were in vain.
    Even then, when fear chilled my blood,
    My heart was filled with love for you.
    The storm has passed, and I'm at peace;
    So, Mary, weep no more for me.

    'Oh dear maiden, prepare yourself;
    We will soon meet on that shore
    Where love is free from doubt and care,
    And you and I will part no more.'
    The rooster crowed, and the shadow vanished;
    No longer could she see Sandy;
    But softly the passing spirit said,
    'Sweet Mary, weep no more for me.'

'The constant jollity of that boy is worth a fortune to him. He'll never sink with such a buoyant spirit to keep him afloat through life,' said Mrs Jo, as the roses were tossed back with much applause when the song ended.

"The constant cheerfulness of that boy is priceless to him. He'll never drown with such a lively spirit to keep him going through life," said Mrs. Jo, as the roses were thrown back with much applause when the song finished.

'Not he; and it's a blessing to be grateful for, isn't it? We moody people know its worth. Glad you like my first tableau. Come and see number two. Hope it isn't spoilt; it was very pretty just now. This is “Othello telling his adventures to Desdemona”.'

'Not him; and it’s something to be thankful for, right? We emotional people know its value. Glad you liked my first scene. Come check out the second one. I hope it’s not ruined; it was really lovely just a moment ago. This one is “Othello sharing his stories with Desdemona.”'

The second window framed a very picturesque group of three. Mr March in an arm-chair, with Bess on a cushion at his feet, was listening to Dan, who, leaning against a pillar, was talking with unusual animation. The old man was in shadow, but little Desdemona was looking up with the moonlight full upon her into young Othello's face, quite absorbed in the story he was telling so well. The gay drapery over Dan's shoulder, his dark colouring, and the gesture of his arm made the picture very striking, and both spectators enjoyed it with silent pleasure, till Mrs Jo said in a quick whisper:

The second window showcased a lovely scene of three people. Mr. March was sitting in an armchair with Bess resting on a cushion at his feet, listening to Dan, who was leaning against a pillar and speaking with unusual excitement. The old man was in shadow, but little Desdemona was looking up at young Othello's face, completely absorbed in the story he was telling so well, with the moonlight shining down on her. The colorful drapery draped over Dan's shoulder, his dark features, and the gesture of his arm made the scene really striking, and both spectators enjoyed it silently until Mrs. Jo suddenly whispered:

'I'm glad he's going away. He's too picturesque to have here among so many romantic girls. Afraid his “grand, gloomy, and peculiar” style will be too much for our simple maids.'

'I'm glad he's leaving. He's too striking to be here around so many romantic girls. I'm worried his “grand, gloomy, and peculiar” vibe will overwhelm our simple ladies.'

'No danger; Dan is in the rough as yet, and always will be, I fancy; though he is improving in many ways. How well Queenie looks in that soft light!'

'No danger; Dan is still in a tough spot, and I think he always will be; although he’s improving in many ways. Queenie looks great in that soft light!'

'Dear little Goldilocks looks well everywhere.' And with a backward glance full of pride and fondness, Mrs Jo went on. But that scene returned to her long afterward and her own prophetic words also.

'Dear little Goldilocks looks good everywhere.' And with a proud and affectionate glance back, Mrs. Jo continued. But that moment came back to her long after, along with her own prophetic words.

Number three was a tragical tableau at first sight; and Mr Laurie stifled a laugh as he whispered 'The Wounded Knight', pointing to Tom with his head enveloped in a large handkerchief, as he knelt before Nan, who was extracting a thorn or splinter from the palm of his hand with great skill, to judge from the patient's blissful expression of countenance.

Number three looked like a tragic scene at first glance, and Mr. Laurie held back a laugh as he whispered, 'The Wounded Knight,' pointing to Tom, whose head was wrapped in a large handkerchief. Tom knelt before Nan, who was skillfully removing a thorn or splinter from his palm, judging by the blissful expression on his face.

'Do I hurt you?' she asked, turning the hand to the moonlight for a better view.

"Do I hurt you?" she asked, turning her hand to the moonlight for a better look.

'Not a bit; dig away; I like it,' answered Tom, regardless of his aching knees and the damage done to his best trousers.

'Not at all; keep going; I enjoy it,' replied Tom, ignoring his sore knees and the damage to his favorite pants.

'I won't keep you long.'

"I won't take up much time."

'Hours, if you please. Never so happy as here.'

'Hours, if you please. I’ve never been as happy as I am here.'

Quite unmoved by this tender remark, Nan put on a pair of large, round-eyed glasses, saying in a matter-of-fact tone: 'Now I see it. Only a splinter, and there it is.

Quite unaffected by this sweet comment, Nan put on a pair of large, round glasses and said in a straightforward tone: 'Now I see it. Just a splinter, and there it is.'

'My hand is bleeding; won't you bind it up?' asked Tom, wishing to prolong the situation.

"My hand is bleeding; can you please help me wrap it up?" asked Tom, hoping to draw out the moment.

'Nonsense; suck it. Only take care of it tomorrow if you dissect. Don't want any more blood-poisoning.'

'Nonsense; deal with it. Only take care of it tomorrow if you analyze it. Don't want any more blood poisoning.'

'That was the only time you were kind to me. Wish I'd lost my arm.'

'That was the only time you were nice to me. I wish I'd lost my arm.'

'I wish you'd lost your head; it smells more like turpentine and kerosene than ever. Do take a run in the garden and air it.'

'I wish you'd lost your mind; it smells more like turpentine and kerosene than ever. Go take a run in the garden and air it out.'

Fearing to betray themselves by laughter, the watchers went on, leaving the Knight to rush away in despair, and the Lady to bury her nose in the cup of a tall lily for refreshment.

Fearing they'd expose themselves by laughing, the onlookers moved on, leaving the Knight to flee in despair and the Lady to hide her face in the cup of a tall lily for a bit of comfort.

'Poor Tom, his fate is a hard one, and he's wasting his time! Do advise him to quit philandering and go to work, Jo.'

'Poor Tom, his fate is rough, and he's just wasting his time! Please tell him to stop messing around and get to work, Jo.'

'I have, Teddy, often; but it will take some great shock to make that boy wise. I wait with interest to see what it will be. Bless me! what is all this?'

'I have, Teddy, often; but it will take some big shock to make that boy wise. I'm curious to see what it will be. Goodness! What’s all this?'

She might well ask; for on a rustic stool stood Ted trying to pose on one foot, with the other extended, and both hands waving in the air. Josie, with several young mates, was watching his contortions with deep interest as they talked about 'little wings', 'gilded wire twisted', and a 'cunning skull-cap'.

She might ask that; because on a simple stool stood Ted trying to balance on one foot, with the other leg extended, and both hands waving in the air. Josie, along with several young friends, was watching his antics with great interest as they discussed 'little wings', 'twisted gilded wire', and a 'clever skull-cap'.

'This might be called “Mercury Trying to Fly”,' said Mr Laurie, as they peeped through the lace curtains.

"This could be called 'Mercury Trying to Fly,'" said Mr. Laurie, as they looked through the lace curtains.

'Bless the long legs of that boy! how does he expect to manage them? They are planning for the Owlsdark Marbles, and a nice muddle they will make of my gods and goddesses with no one to show them how,' answered Mrs Jo, enjoying this scene immensely. 'Now, he's got it!' 'That's perfectly splendid!' 'See how long you can keep so!' cried the girls, as Ted managed to maintain his equilibrium a moment by resting one toe on the trellis. Unfortunately this brought all his weight on the other foot; the straw seat of the stool gave way, and the flying Mercury came down with a crash, amid shrieks of laughter from the girls. Being accustomed to ground and lofty tumbling, he quickly recovered himself, and hopped gaily about, with one leg through the stool as he improvised a classic jig.

"Bless that boy's long legs! How does he expect to handle them? They’re getting ready for the Owlsdark Marbles, and they’re going to create a nice mess with my gods and goddesses with no one to guide them," Mrs. Jo replied, thoroughly enjoying the scene. "Now, he's got it!" "That's just amazing!" "See how long you can keep that up!" the girls shouted as Ted managed to balance for a moment by resting one toe on the trellis. Unfortunately, this shifted all his weight to the other foot; the straw seat of the stool gave way, and the flying Mercury came crashing down, causing the girls to burst into laughter. Accustomed to falling from heights and tumbling around, he quickly recovered and hopped around cheerfully, one leg stuck in the stool while he improvised a classic jig.

'Thanks for four nice little pictures. You have given me an idea, and I think some time we will get up regular tableaux of this sort and march our company round a set of dissolving views. New and striking; I'll propose it to our manager and give you all the glory,' said Mrs Jo, as they strolled towards the room whence came the clash of glass and china, and glimpses of agitated black coats.

"Thanks for the four lovely pictures. You've inspired me, and I think at some point we'll organize proper tableaux like this and take our group around a set of slides. It’ll be fresh and impressive; I’ll suggest it to our manager and make sure you get all the credit," said Mrs. Jo, as they walked toward the room from which the sounds of clashing glass and china came, along with glimpses of flustered black coats.

Let us follow the example of our old friends and stroll about among the young people, eavesdropping, so gathering up various little threads to help in the weaving of the story. George and Dolly were at supper, and having served the ladies in their care stood in a corner absorbing nourishment of all kinds with a vain attempt to conceal hearty appetites under an air of elegant indifference.

Let's take a page from our old friends and wander among the young people, listening in to pick up little bits that will help us piece together the story. George and Dolly were at dinner, and after serving the ladies they were looking after, they stood in a corner, eating everything in sight while trying to hide their big appetites behind a façade of casual elegance.

'Good spread, this; Laurence does things in style. First-rate coffee, but no wine, and that's a mistake,' said Stuffy, who still deserved his name, and was a stout youth with a heavy eye and bilious complexion.

'This is a great spread; Laurence really does it in style. Top-notch coffee, but no wine, which is a miss,' said Stuffy, who still lived up to his name, and was a hefty young man with a heavy gaze and a sallow complexion.

'Bad for boys, he says. Jove! wish he could see us at some of our wines. Don't we just “splice the main brace” as Emil says,' answered Dolly, the dandy, carefully spreading a napkin over the glossy expanse of shirt-front whereon a diamond stud shone like a lone star. His stutter was nearly outgrown; but he, as well as George, spoke in the tone of condescension, which, with the blase airs they assumed, made a very funny contrast to their youthful faces and foolish remarks. Good-hearted little fellows both, but top-heavy with the pride of being Sophs and the freedom that college life gave them.

"Bad for boys, he says. Wow! I wish he could see us enjoying some of our drinks. Don't we just 'splice the main brace,' as Emil puts it," replied Dolly, the dandy, carefully spreading a napkin over the shiny expanse of his shirt-front where a diamond stud sparkled like a lone star. His stutter was almost gone; but he, along with George, spoke with a tone of superiority, which, combined with the pretentious attitude they adopted, created a funny contrast to their youthful faces and silly remarks. They were both good-hearted guys, but full of the pride of being sophomores and the freedom that college life offered them.

'Little Jo is getting to be a deuced pretty girl, isn't she?' said George, with a long sigh of satisfaction as his first mouthful of ice went slowly down his throat.

'Little Jo is becoming a really pretty girl, isn’t she?' said George, with a long sigh of satisfaction as he slowly swallowed his first mouthful of ice.

'H'm—well, fairish. The Princess is rather more to my taste. I like 'em blonde and queenly and elegant, don't you know.'

"H'm—well, I guess it's okay. The Princess is more my style. I prefer them blonde, royal, and elegant, you know."

'Yes, Jo is too lively; might as well dance with a grasshopper. I've tried her, and she's one too many for me. Miss Perry is a nice, easy-going girl. Got her for the german.'

'Yeah, Jo is way too full of energy; it’s like trying to dance with a grasshopper. I’ve worked with her, and she’s one too many for me. Miss Perry is a nice, chill girl. I got her for the dance.'

'You'll never be a dancing man. Too lazy. Now I'll undertake to steer any girl and dance down any fellow you please. Dancing's my forte.' And Dolly glanced from his trim feet to his flashing gem with the defiant air of a young turkey-cock on parade.

'You’ll never be a good dancer. You’re too lazy. I’ll take any girl and dance circles around any guy you want. Dancing is my thing.' And Dolly looked from his stylish shoes to his flashy jewelry with the proud attitude of a young turkey strutting around.

'Miss Grey is looking for you. Wants more grub. Just see if Miss Nelson's plate is empty, there's a good fellow. Can't eat ice in a hurry.' And George remained in his safe corner, while Dolly struggled through the crowd to do his duty, coming back in a fume, with a splash of salad dressing on his coat-cuff.

'Miss Grey is looking for you. She wants more food. Just check if Miss Nelson's plate is empty, would you? You can't eat ice quickly.' And George stayed in his safe spot, while Dolly pushed through the crowd to do his part, returning in a huff, with a splash of salad dressing on his coat cuff.

'Confound these country chaps! they go blundering round like so many dor-bugs, and make a deuce of a mess. Better stick to books and not try to be society men. Can't do it. Beastly stain. Give it a rub, and let me bolt a mouthful, I'm starved. Never saw girls eat such a lot. It proves that they ought not to study so much. Never liked co-ed,' growled Dolly, much ruffled in spirit.

'Confound these country guys! They bumble around like a bunch of clueless fools and really make a mess of things. They should just stick to their books instead of trying to fit in with society. They just can’t do it. It’s a terrible mess. Give it a wipe, and let me grab a bite; I’m starving. I've never seen girls eat so much. It shows they shouldn't study as much. I never liked co-eds,' grumbled Dolly, clearly upset.

'So they do. 'Tisn't ladylike. Ought to be satisfied with an ice and a bit of cake, and eat it prettily. Don't like to see a girl feed. We hard-working men need it, and, by Jove, I mean to get some more of that meringue if it's not all gone. Here, waiter! bring along that dish over there, and be lively,' commanded Stuffy, poking a young man in a rather shabby dress-suit, who was passing with a tray of glasses.

'So they do. It's not very ladylike. She should be happy with some ice and a bit of cake, and eat it nicely. I don't like to see a girl eat. We hard-working men need it, and, by God, I plan to get more of that meringue if it’s not all gone. Hey, waiter! Bring me that dish over there, and hurry up,' ordered Stuffy, poking a young man in a rather worn suit who was passing by with a tray of glasses.

His order was obeyed promptly; but George's appetite was taken away the next moment by Dolly's exclaiming, as he looked up from his damaged coat, with a scandalized face:

His order was followed immediately; but George's appetite was ruined the next moment when Dolly exclaimed, as he looked up from his ripped coat, with a shocked expression:

'You've put your foot in it now, old boy! that's Morton, Mr Bhaer's crack man. Knows everything, no end of a “dig”, and bound to carry off all the honours. You won't hear the last of it in a hurry.' And Dolly laughed so heartily that a spoonful of ice flew upon the head of a lady sitting below him, and got him into a scrape also.

'You've really messed up this time, my friend! That's Morton, Mr. Bhaer's top guy. He knows everything, is a real expert, and is definitely going to take all the awards. You won't hear the end of it anytime soon.' And Dolly laughed so much that a spoonful of ice flew onto the head of a lady sitting below him, getting him into trouble as well.

Leaving them to their despair, let us listen to the whispered chat of two girls comfortably seated in a recess waiting till their escorts were fed.

Leaving them to their misery, let’s listen to the quiet conversation of two girls comfortably seated in a nook, waiting for their escorts to finish eating.

'I do think the Laurences give lovely parties. Don't you enjoy them?' asked the younger, looking about her with the eager air of one unused to this sort of pleasure.

"I really think the Laurences throw great parties. Don't you like them?" asked the younger one, glancing around with the excited demeanor of someone who's not used to this kind of fun.

'Very much, only I never feel as if I was dressed right. My things seemed elegant at home, and I thought I'd be over over-dressed if anything; but I look countrified and dowdy here. No time or money to change now, even if I knew how to do it,' answered the other, glancing anxiously at her bright pink silk grown, trimmed with cheap lace.

'Definitely, but I never feel like I'm dressed properly. My clothes looked elegant at home, and I thought I'd be overdressed if anything; but I look plain and frumpy here. I don't have the time or money to change now, even if I knew how to do it,' replied the other, glancing nervously at her bright pink silk gown, trimmed with cheap lace.

'You must get Mrs Brooke to tell you how to fix your things. She was very kind to me. I had a green silk, and it looked so cheap and horrid by the side of the nice dresses here I felt regularly unhappy about it, and asked her how much a dress like one Mrs Laurence had would cost. That looked so simple and elegant I thought it wouldn't be costly; but it was India mull and Valenciennes lace, so, of course, I couldn't have it. Then Mrs Brooke said: “Get some muslin to cover the green silk, and wear hops or some white flowers, instead of pink, in your hair, and you will have a pretty suit.” Isn't it lovely and becoming?' And Miss Burton surveyed herself with girlish satisfaction; for a little taste had softened the harsh green, and hop-bells became her red hair better than roses.

'You should have Mrs. Brooke show you how to fix your clothes. She was really nice to me. I had a green silk dress, and it looked so cheap and ugly next to the lovely dresses here that it made me feel really unhappy. I asked her how much a dress like the one Mrs. Laurence had would cost. I thought it looked so simple and elegant that it wouldn't be expensive, but it turned out to be made of India mull and Valenciennes lace, so I could never afford it. Then Mrs. Brooke said, “Get some muslin to cover the green silk, and wear hops or some white flowers instead of pink in your hair, and you'll have a pretty outfit.” Isn't it beautiful and flattering?' And Miss Burton looked at herself with girlish satisfaction; a little bit of taste had softened the harsh green, and the hop-bells suited her red hair better than roses.

'It's sweet: I've been admiring it. I'll do mine so and ask about my purple one. Mrs Brooke has helped me to get rid of my headaches, and Mary Clay's dyspepsia is all gone since she gave up coffee and hot bread.'

'It's nice: I've been appreciating it. I'll do mine like that and ask about my purple one. Mrs. Brooke has helped me get rid of my headaches, and Mary Clay's indigestion is completely gone since she stopped drinking coffee and eating hot bread.'

'Mrs Laurence advised me to walk and run and use the gymnasium to cure my round shoulders and open my chest, and I'm a much better figure than I was.'

'Mrs. Laurence suggested I walk, run, and use the gym to fix my rounded shoulders and open up my chest, and now I have a much better shape than before.'

'Did you know that Mr Laurence pays all Amelia Merrill's bills? Her father failed, and she was heartbroken at having to leave college; but that splendid man just stepped in and made it all right.' 'Yes, and Professor Bhaer has several of the boys down at his house evenings to help them along so they can keep up with the rest; and Mrs Bhaer took care of Charles Mackey herself when he had a fever last year. I do think they are the best and kindest people in the world.'

'Did you know that Mr. Laurence covers all of Amelia Merrill's expenses? Her father went bankrupt, and she was devastated about having to leave college; but that wonderful man just jumped in and made everything okay.' 'Yeah, and Professor Bhaer invites several of the guys over to his place in the evenings to help them catch up with everyone else; and Mrs. Bhaer personally took care of Charles Mackey when he had a fever last year. I really think they are the nicest and most caring people in the world.'

'So do I, and my time here will be the happiest and most useful years of my life.'

'So do I, and my time here will be the happiest and most valuable years of my life.'

And both girls forgot their gowns and their suppers for a moment to look with grateful, affectionate eyes at the friends who tried to care for bodies and for souls as well as minds.

And both girls momentarily forgot their dresses and their dinners to gaze with grateful, warm eyes at the friends who tried to care for their bodies, souls, and minds.

Now come to a lively party supping on the stairs, girls like foam at the top, and a substratum of youths below, where the heaviest particles always settle. Emil, who never sat if he could climb or perch, adorned the newel-post; Tom, Nat, Demi, and Dan were camped on the steps, eating busily, as their ladies were well served and they had earned a moment's rest, which they enjoyed with their eyes fixed on the pleasing prospect above them.

Now picture a lively party hanging out on the stairs, with girls sparkling like foam at the top and a group of guys below, where the heaviest ones always gather. Emil, who never liked to sit if he could climb or perch, was perched on the newel post; Tom, Nat, Demi, and Dan were settled on the steps, eating happily while their girls were well taken care of. They had earned a moment's break, which they enjoyed with their eyes on the charming scene above them.

'I'm so sorry the boys are going. It will be dreadfully dull without them. Now they have stopped teasing and are polite, I really enjoy them,' said Nan, who felt unusually gracious tonight as Tom's mishap kept him from annoying her.

"I'm really sorry the boys are leaving. It’s going to be super boring without them. Now that they’ve stopped teasing and are being nice, I actually enjoy their company," said Nan, who felt unusually generous tonight since Tom’s accident kept him from bothering her.

'So do I; and Bess was mourning about it today, though as a general thing she doesn't like boys unless they are models of elegance. She has been doing Dan's head, and it is not quite finished. I never saw her so interested in any work, and it's very well done. He is so striking and big he always makes me think of the Dying Gladiator or some of those antique creatures. There's Bess now. Dear child, how sweet she looks tonight!' answered Daisy, waving her hand as the Princess went by with Grandpa on her arm.

'So do I; and Bess was upset about it today, even though she usually doesn't like boys unless they're really stylish. She's been working on Dan's head, and it's not quite finished. I've never seen her so into any project, and it's really well done. He’s so impressive and tall that he always reminds me of the Dying Gladiator or some of those ancient figures. There’s Bess now. Poor thing, she looks so lovely tonight!' answered Daisy, waving her hand as the Princess walked by with Grandpa on her arm.

'I never thought he would turn out so well. Don't you remember how we used to call him “the bad boy” and be sure he would become a pirate or something awful because he glared at us and swore sometimes? Now he is the handsomest of all the boys, and very entertaining with his stories and plans. I like him very much; he's so big and strong and independent. I'm tired of mollycoddles and book-worms,' said Nan in her decided way.

'I never thought he would turn out so well. Don't you remember how we used to call him “the bad boy” and were sure he would become a pirate or something awful because he glared at us and swore sometimes? Now he is the most handsome of all the boys, and he’s really entertaining with his stories and plans. I like him a lot; he's so big and strong and independent. I'm tired of softies and bookworms,' said Nan in her determined way.

'Not handsomer that Nat!' cried loyal Daisy, contrasting two faces below, one unusually gay, the other sentimentally sober even in the act of munching cake. 'I like Dan, and am glad he is doing well; but he tires me, and I'm still a little afraid of him. Quiet people suit me best.'

'Not more handsome than Nat!' shouted loyal Daisy, comparing two faces below, one unusually cheerful, the other sentimentally serious even while munching on cake. 'I like Dan, and I'm glad he's doing well; but he wears me out, and I'm still a bit scared of him. I prefer quiet people.'

'Life is a fight, and I like a good soldier. Boys take things too easily, don't see how serious it all is and go to work in earnest. Look at that absurd Tom, wasting his time and making an object of himself just because he can't have what he wants, like a baby crying for the moon. I've no patience with such nonsense,' scolded Nan, looking down at the jovial Thomas, who was playfully putting macaroons in Emil's shoes, and trying to beguile his exile as best he could.

'Life is a struggle, and I appreciate a good soldier. Guys take things too lightly, don’t realize how serious it all is, and just dive into work. Look at that ridiculous Tom, wasting his time and making a fool of himself just because he can't have what he wants, like a baby crying for the moon. I have no patience for that nonsense,' scolded Nan, looking down at the cheerful Thomas, who was playfully stuffing macaroons in Emil's shoes and trying to make the best of his exile.

'Most girls would be touched by such fidelity. I think it's beautiful,' said Daisy behind her fan; for other girls sat just below.

'Most girls would be moved by such loyalty. I think it's beautiful,' said Daisy behind her fan; as other girls sat just below.

'You are a sentimental goose and not a judge. Nat will be twice the man when he comes back after his trip. I wish Tom was going with him. My idea is that if we girls have any influence we should use it for the good of these boys, and not pamper them up, making slaves of ourselves and tyrants of them. Let them prove what they can do and be before they ask anything of us, and give us a chance to do the same. Then we know where we are, and shall not make mistakes to mourn over all our lives.'

'You’re being overly sentimental and not really thinking straight. Nat will be a much better person when he returns from his trip. I wish Tom could go with him. My point is that if we girls have any influence, we should use it to help these guys instead of just spoiling them and turning ourselves into their servants. Let them show what they can do and who they are before they ask anything from us, and give us a chance to prove ourselves too. That way, we’ll know where we stand and won’t make mistakes that we’ll regret for the rest of our lives.'

'Hear, hear!' cried Alice Heath, who was a girl after Nan's own heart, and had chosen a career, like a brave and sensible young woman. 'Only give us a chance, and have patience till we can do our best. Now we are expected to be as wise as men who have had generations of all the help there is, and we scarcely anything. Let us have equal opportunities, and in a few generations we will see what the judgement is. I like justice, and we get very little of it.'

"Hear, hear!" shouted Alice Heath, a girl who truly resonated with Nan, and who had chosen a career path like a brave and sensible young woman. "Just give us a chance and be patient until we can do our best. Right now, we're expected to be as knowledgeable as men who have benefited from generations of support, while we have hardly anything. Let us have equal opportunities, and in a few generations, we’ll see what the outcome is. I believe in justice, and we get very little of it."

'Still shouting the battle-cry of freedom?' asked Demi, peering through the banisters at this moment. 'Up with your flag! I'll stand by and lend a hand if you want it. With you and Nan to lead the van, I think you won't need much help.'

"Still shouting for freedom?" asked Demi, looking through the banisters at that moment. "Raise your flag! I'll be here to help if you need it. With you and Nan leading the way, I don't think you'll need much support."

'You are a great comfort, Demi, and I'll call on you in all emergencies; for you are an honest boy, and don't forget that you owe much to your mother and your sisters and your aunts,' continued Nan. 'I do like men who come out frankly and own that they are not gods. How can we think them so when such awful mistakes are being made all the time by these great creatures? See them sick, as I do, then you know them.'

'You’re a big comfort, Demi, and I’ll turn to you in any situation; you’re a good guy, and don’t forget that you owe a lot to your mom, your sisters, and your aunts,' Nan continued. 'I really appreciate men who are honest about not being perfect. How can we view them that way when they’re constantly making terrible mistakes? When you see them sick, like I do, then you really understand them.'

'Don't hit us when we are down; be merciful, and set us up to bless and believe in you evermore,' pleaded Demi from behind the bars.

'Don't kick us when we're down; have mercy, and help us to bless and believe in you forever,' pleaded Demi from behind the bars.

'We'll be kind to you if you will be just to us. I don't say generous, only just. I went to a suffrage debate in the Legislature last winter; and of all the feeble, vulgar twaddle I ever heard, that was the worst; and those men were our representatives. I blushed for them, and the wives and mothers. I want an intelligent man to represent me, if I can't do it myself, not a fool.'

'We'll treat you well if you treat us fairly. I'm not asking for generosity, just fairness. I attended a suffrage debate in the Legislature last winter, and of all the weak, ridiculous nonsense I’ve ever heard, that was the worst; and those men were supposed to represent us. I felt embarrassed for them, and for their wives and mothers. I want an intelligent man to represent me if I can’t do it myself, not a clueless idiot.'

'Nan is on the stump. Now we shall catch it,' cried Tom, putting up an umbrella to shield his unhappy head; for Nan's earnest voice was audible, and her indignant eye happened to rest on him as she spoke.

'Nan is on the stump. Now we're in for it,' cried Tom, raising an umbrella to protect his unhappy head; for Nan's serious voice could be heard, and her angry gaze happened to land on him as she spoke.

'Go on, go on! I'll take notes, and put in “great applause” liberally,' added Demi, producing his ball-book and pencil, with his Jenkins air.

"Go ahead, go ahead! I'll take notes and generously add 'great applause,'" added Demi, pulling out his notebook and pencil with his usual Jenkins flair.

Daisy pinched his nose through the bars, and the meeting was rather tumultuous for a moment, for Emil called: 'Avast, avast, here's a squall to wind'ard'; Tom applauded wildly; Dan looked up as if the prospect of a fight, even with words, pleased him, and Nat went to support Demi, as his position seemed to be a good one. At this crisis, when everyone laughed and talked at once, Bess came floating through the upper hall and looked down like an angel of peace upon the noisy group below, as she asked, with wondering eyes and smiling lips:

Daisy pinched his nose through the bars, and the meeting got pretty chaotic for a moment when Emil shouted, "Hold on, hold on, there's a storm brewing!" Tom cheered wildly; Dan looked up as if the idea of a fight, even just with words, excited him, and Nat went to back up Demi since his position seemed solid. At that moment, when everyone was laughing and talking at once, Bess floated through the upper hall and looked down like an angel of peace at the noisy group below, asking with curious eyes and a smiling face:

'What is it?'

'What's that?'

'An indignation meeting. Nan and Alice are on the rampage, and we are at the bar to be tried for our lives. Will Your Highness preside and judge between us?' answered Demi, as a lull at once took place; for no one rioted in the presence of the Princess.

'An outrage meeting. Nan and Alice are causing chaos, and we are at the bar to be judged for our lives. Will Your Highness preside and decide between us?' answered Demi, as a silence fell immediately; no one acted up in front of the Princess.

'I'm not wise enough. I'll sit here and listen. Please go on.' And Bess took her place above them all as cool and calm as a little statue of Justice, with fan and nosegay in place of sword and scales.

"I'm not wise enough. I'll sit here and listen. Please continue." And Bess took her position above them all, cool and calm like a little statue of Justice, with a fan and a bouquet in place of a sword and scales.

'Now, ladies, free your minds, only spare us till morning; for we've got a german to dance as soon as everyone is fed, and Parnassus expects every man to do his duty. Mrs President Giddy-gaddy has the floor,' said Demi, who liked this sort of fun better than the very mild sort of flirtation which was allowed at Plumfield, for the simple reason that it could not be entirely banished, and is a part of all education, co- or otherwise.

'Now, ladies, clear your minds, but just give us until morning; because we’ve got a dance to do as soon as everyone has eaten, and Parnassus expects every man to step up. Mrs. President Giddy-gaddy has the floor,' said Demi, who preferred this kind of fun over the very light flirtation allowed at Plumfield, simply because it couldn’t be entirely eliminated and is a part of all education, whether co-ed or not.

'I have only one thing to say, and it is this,' began Nan soberly, though her eyes sparkled with a mixture of fun and earnestness. 'I want to ask every boy of you what you really think on this subject. Dan and Emil have seen the world and ought to know their own minds. Tom and Nat have had five examples before them for years. Demi is ours and we are proud of him. So is Rob. Ted is a weathercock, and Dolly and George, of course, are fogies in spite of the Annex, and girls at Girton going ahead of the men. Commodore, are you ready for the question?'

"I have just one thing to say, and it's this," Nan started seriously, though her eyes sparkled with a mix of fun and sincerity. "I want to ask each of you boys what you really think about this. Dan and Emil have seen the world and should know their own opinions. Tom and Nat have had five examples in front of them for years. Demi is ours, and we’re proud of him. So is Rob. Ted is a flip-flopper, and Dolly and George, of course, are old-fashioned even with the Annex and girls at Girton surpassing the guys. Commodore, are you ready for the question?"

'Ay, ay, skipper.'

"Aye, aye, captain."

'Do you believe in Woman's Suffrage?'

'Do you believe in women's right to vote?'

'Bless your pretty figger head! I do, and I'll ship a crew of girls any time you say so. Aren't they worse than a press-gang to carry a fellow out of his moorings? Don't we all need one as pilot to steer us safe to port? and why shouldn't they share our mess afloat and ashore since we are sure to be wrecked without 'em?'

'Bless your pretty head! I do, and I'll send a crew of girls whenever you want. Aren't they worse than a press gang at dragging a guy out of his comfort zone? Don’t we all need a pilot to safely guide us to shore? And why shouldn’t they join us both on the ship and on land since we’re sure to be lost without them?'

'Good for you, Emil! Nan will take you for first mate after that handsome speech,' said Demi, as the girls applauded, and Tom glowered. 'Now, Dan, you love liberty so well yourself, are you willing we should have it?'

'Great job, Emil! Nan will make you first mate after that impressive speech,' said Demi, as the girls applauded while Tom scowled. 'Now, Dan, since you love freedom so much, are you willing to let us have it?'

'All you can get, and I'll fight any man who's mean enough to say you don't deserve it.'

'You deserve everything you can get, and I'll stand up to anyone who's rude enough to say otherwise.'

This brief and forcible reply delighted the energetic President, and she beamed upon the member from California, as she said briskly:

This short and strong response thrilled the energetic President, and she smiled at the member from California as she said cheerfully:

'Nat wouldn't dare to say he was on the other side even if he were, but I hope he has made up his mind to pipe for us, at least when we take the field, and not be one of those who wait till the battle is won, and then beat the drums and share the glory.'

'Nat wouldn't even think about admitting he was on the other side, even if he was, but I hope he’s decided to support us, at least when we go into battle, and not be one of those who waits until the fight is over and then bangs the drums to claim the glory.'

Mrs Giddy-gaddy's doubts were most effectually removed, and her sharp speech regretted, as Nat looked up blushing, but with a new sort of manliness in face and manner, saying, in a tone that touched them all:

Mrs. Giddy-gaddy's doubts were completely cleared up, and her cutting remarks were regretted, as Nat looked up, blushing but with a newfound sense of maturity in his expression and behavior, saying, in a tone that moved everyone:

'I should be the most ungrateful fellow alive if I did not love, honour, and serve women with all my heart and might, for to them I owe everything I am or ever shall be.'

'I would be the most ungrateful person alive if I didn’t love, respect, and serve women with all my heart and effort, because I owe them everything I am or will ever be.'

Daisy clapped her hands, and Bess threw her bouquet into Nat's lap, while the other girls waved their fans, well pleased; for real feeling made his little speech eloquent.

Daisy clapped her hands, and Bess tossed her bouquet into Nat's lap, while the other girls waved their fans, clearly happy; because genuine emotion made his little speech impactful.

'Thomas B. Bangs, come into court, and tell the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth, if you can,' commanded Nan, with a rap to call the meeting to order.

'Thomas B. Bangs, come into court and tell the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth, if you can,' commanded Nan, rapping to call the meeting to order.

Tom shut the umbrella, and standing up raised his hand, saying solemnly:

Tom closed the umbrella, stood up, and raised his hand, saying seriously:

'I believe in suffrage of all kinds. I adore all women, and will die for them at any moment if it will help the cause.'

'I believe in the right to vote for everyone. I admire all women, and I would give my life for them at any moment if it helps the cause.'

'Living and working for it is harder, and therefore more honourable. Men are always ready to die for us, but not to make our lives worth having. Cheap sentiment and bad logic. You will pass, Tom, only don't twaddle. Now, having taken the sense of the meeting we will adjourn, as the hour for festive gymnastics has arrived. I am glad to see that old Plum has given six true men to the world, and hope they will continue to be staunch to her and the principles she has taught them, wherever they may go. Now, girls, don't sit in draughts, and, boys, beware of ice-water when you are warm.'

'Living and working for it is tougher, and therefore more honorable. Guys are always ready to die for us, but not to make our lives meaningful. It's cheap sentiment and bad logic. You'll get through, Tom, just don’t waste time talking. Now, having understood what the meeting decided, we will wrap up, as it's time for some fun activities. I'm glad to see that old Plum has raised six good people, and I hope they remain loyal to her and the values she has instilled in them, no matter where they go. Now, girls, don’t sit in drafts, and boys, watch out for ice water when you’re warm.'

With this characteristic close Nan retired from office, and the girls went to enjoy one of the few rights allowed them.

With this characteristic closeness, Nan stepped down from her position, and the girls went to enjoy one of the few freedoms allowed to them.





Chapter 6. LAST WORDS

The next day was Sunday, and a goodly troop of young and old set forth to church.—some driving, some walking, all enjoying the lovely weather and the happy quietude which comes to refresh us when the work and worry of the week are over. Daisy had a headache; and Aunt Jo remained at home to keep her company, knowing very well that the worst ache was in the tender heart struggling dutifully against the love that grew stronger as the parting drew nearer.

The next day was Sunday, and a big group of young and old headed to church—some driving, some walking, all enjoying the beautiful weather and the peaceful calm that refreshes us after a busy week. Daisy had a headache, so Aunt Jo stayed home to keep her company, knowing that the real pain was in the tender heart trying to hold back the love that grew stronger as the separation approached.

'Daisy knows my wishes, and I trust her. You must keep an eye on Nat, and let him clearly understand that there is to be no “lovering”, or I shall forbid the letter-writing. I hate to seem cruel, but it is too soon for my dear girl to bind herself in any way,' said Mrs Meg, as she rustled about in her best grey silk, while waiting for Demi, who always escorted his pious mother to church as a peace-offering for crossing her wishes in other things.

'Daisy knows what I want, and I trust her. You need to keep an eye on Nat and make sure he understands that there’s to be no "lovey-dovey" stuff, or I’ll put a stop to the letter-writing. I hate to come off as cruel, but it’s too early for my dear girl to tie herself down in any way,' said Mrs. Meg, as she moved around in her best grey silk, waiting for Demi, who always took his devoted mother to church as a peace offering for ignoring her wishes in other matters.

'I will, dear; I'm lying in wait for all three boys today, like an old spider; and I will have a good talk with each. They know I understand them, and they always open their hearts sooner or later. You look like a nice, plump little Quakeress, Meg; and no one will believe that big boy is your son,' added Mrs Jo, as Demi came in shining with Sunday neatness, from his well-blacked boots to his smooth brown head.

'I will, dear; I'm waiting for all three boys today, like an old spider; and I’ll have a good talk with each of them. They know I get them, and they always end up opening their hearts eventually. You look like a nice, plump little Quaker girl, Meg; and no one will believe that big boy is your son,' added Mrs. Jo, as Demi came in looking sharp and neat for Sunday, from his well-polished boots to his smooth brown head.

'You flatter me, to soften my heart toward your boy. I know your ways, Jo, and I don't give in. Be firm, and spare me a scene by and by. As for John, as long as he is satisfied with his old mother, I don't care what people think,' answered Mrs Meg, accepting with a smile the little posy of sweet peas and mignonette Demi brought her.

'You’re flattering me to win my heart over to your son. I know your tricks, Jo, and I won't budge. Stay strong, and save me the drama later. As for John, as long as he’s happy with his old mom, I don’t care what others think,' replied Mrs. Meg, smiling as she accepted the small bouquet of sweet peas and mignonette that Demi brought her.

Then, having buttoned her dove-coloured gloves with care, she took her son's arm and went proudly away to the carriage, where Amy and Bess waited, while Jo called after them, just as Marmee used to do:

Then, after buttoning her light grey gloves carefully, she took her son's arm and walked proudly to the carriage, where Amy and Bess were waiting, while Jo called after them, just like Marmee used to do:

'Girls, have you got nice pocket-handkerchiefs?' They all smiled at the familiar words, and three white banners waved as they drove away, leaving the spider to watch for her first fly. She did not wait long. Daisy was lying down with a wet cheek on the little hymnbook out of which she and Nat used to sing together; so Mrs Jo strolled about the lawn, looking very like a wandering mushroom with her large buff umbrella.

'Girls, do you have nice handkerchiefs?' They all smiled at the familiar words, and three white flags waved as they drove away, leaving the spider to wait for her first catch. She didn’t have to wait long. Daisy was lying down with a wet cheek on the little hymn book that she and Nat used to sing from together, while Mrs. Jo strolled around the lawn, looking a lot like a wandering mushroom with her big beige umbrella.

Dan had gone for a ten-mile stroll; and Nat was supposed to have accompanied him, but presently came sneaking back, unable to tear himself away from the Dovecote or lose a moment of nearness to his idol that last day. Mrs Jo saw him at once, and beckoned him to a rustic seat under the old elm, where they could have their confidences undisturbed, and both keep an eye on a certain white-curtained window, half hidden in vines.

Dan had gone for a ten-mile walk, and Nat was meant to join him, but he soon snuck back, unable to pull himself away from the Dovecote or miss a moment close to his idol on that last day. Mrs. Jo spotted him right away and gestured for him to come sit on a rustic bench under the old elm, where they could share their thoughts undisturbed while also keeping an eye on a certain white-curtained window, partially covered in vines.

'Nice and cool here. I'm not up to one of Dan's tramps today—it's so warm, and he goes so like a steam-engine. He headed for the swamp where his pet snakes used to live, and I begged to be excused,' said Nat, fanning himself with his straw hat, though the day was not oppressive.

'Nice and cool here. I'm not up for one of Dan's hikes today—it's so warm, and he moves like a steam engine. He headed for the swamp where his pet snakes used to live, and I asked to sit it out,' said Nat, fanning himself with his straw hat, even though the day wasn't too hot.

'I'm glad you did. Sit and rest with me, and have one of our good old talks. We've both been so busy lately, I feel as if I didn't half know your plans; and I want to,' answered Mrs Jo, feeling sure that though they might start with Leipzig they would bring up at Plumfield.

'I'm glad you did. Sit down and relax with me, and let's have one of our great old chats. We've both been so busy lately that I feel like I don't really know your plans, and I want to,' replied Mrs. Jo, confident that even if they started in Leipzig, they would end up at Plumfield.

'You are very kind, and there's nothing I'd like better. I don't realize I'm going so far—suppose I shan't till I get afloat. It's a splendid start, and I don't know how I can ever thank Mr Laurie for all he's done, or you either,' added Nat, with a break in his voice; for he was a tender-hearted fellow, and never forgot a kindness.

'You’re really kind, and I couldn’t want anything more. I don’t even realize I’m going this far—guess I won’t until I’m out there. It’s an amazing beginning, and I don’t know how I can ever thank Mr. Laurie for everything he’s done, or you either,' added Nat, his voice breaking; he was a soft-hearted guy and never forgot a kindness.

'You can thank us beautifully by being and doing all we hope and expect of you, my dear. In the new life you are going to there will be a thousand trials and temptations, and only your own wit and wisdom to rely on. That will be the time to test the principles we have tried to give you, and see how firm they are. Of course, you will make mistakes—we all do; but don't let go of your conscience and drift along blindly. Watch and pray, dear Nat; and while your hand gains skill, let your head grow wiser, and keep your heart as innocent and warm as it is now.'

"You can thank us in the best way by being and doing everything we hope and expect from you, my dear. In the new life you're heading into, there will be countless challenges and temptations, and you'll have to rely only on your own cleverness and judgment. That will be the time to put to the test the values we’ve tried to instill in you and see how strong they really are. Of course, you'll make mistakes—we all do; but don't lose touch with your conscience and just go with the flow. Stay alert and thoughtful, dear Nat; and while you develop your skills, let your mind become wiser, and keep your heart as pure and warm as it is now."

'I'll try, Mother Bhaer, my very best to be a credit to you. I know I shall improve in my music—can't help it there; but I never shall be very wise, I'm afraid. As for my heart, you know, I leave it behind me in good keeping.'

"I'll try my best, Mother Bhaer, to make you proud. I know I’ll get better at music—there's no way I won’t improve; but I’m afraid I’ll never be very wise. As for my heart, you know I’ve left it in good hands."

As he spoke, Nat's eyes were fixed on the window with a look of love and longing that made his quiet face both manly and sad—plainly showing how strong a hold this boyish affection had upon him.

As he spoke, Nat's eyes were glued to the window with a look of love and longing that made his calm face both strong and sad—clearly demonstrating how deeply this youthful affection affected him.

'I want to speak of that; and I know you will forgive what seems hard, because I do most heartily sympathize with you,' said Mrs Jo, glad to have her say.

"I want to talk about that; and I know you'll forgive what seems tough, because I really do feel for you," said Mrs. Jo, happy to have her chance to speak.

'Yes, do talk about Daisy! I think of nothing but leaving and losing her. I have no hope—I suppose it is too much to ask; only I can't help loving her, wherever I am!' cried Nat, with a mixture of defiance and despair in his face that rather startled Mrs Jo.

'Yes, talk about Daisy! I can't stop thinking about leaving and losing her. I have no hope—I guess that's too much to expect; still, I can't help loving her, no matter where I am!' Nat cried, with a blend of defiance and despair on his face that really surprised Mrs. Jo.

'Listen to me and I'll try to give you both comfort and good advice. We all know that Daisy is fond of you, but her mother objects, and being a good girl she tries to obey. Young people think they never can change, but they do in the most wonderful manner, and very few die of broken hearts.' Mrs Jo smiled as she remembered another boy whom she had once tried to comfort, and then went soberly on while Nat listened as if his fate hung upon her lips.

"Listen to me, and I’ll do my best to offer you both comfort and good advice. We all know that Daisy likes you, but her mom is against it, and being a good girl, she tries to do what her mother says. Young people believe they can’t change, but they often do in amazing ways, and very few actually die from broken hearts." Mrs. Jo smiled as she recalled another boy she had once tried to comfort and then continued seriously while Nat listened as if his future depended on her words.

'One of two things will happen. You will find someone else to love, or, better still, be so busy and happy in your music that you will be willing to wait for time to settle the matter for you both. Daisy will perhaps forget when you are gone, and be glad you are only friends. At any rate it is much wiser to have no promises made; then both are free, and in a year or two may meet to laugh over the little romance nipped in the bud.'

One of two things will happen. You'll either find someone else to love, or, even better, you'll be so busy and happy with your music that you'll be willing to let time sort things out for both of you. Daisy might forget you when you’re gone and be glad that you’re just friends. In any case, it’s much smarter not to make any promises; that way, you’re both free, and in a year or two, you might meet and laugh about the little romance that never really took off.

'Do you honestly think that?' asked Nat, looking at her so keenly that the truth had to come; for all his heart was in those frank blue eyes of his.

"Do you really think that?" Nat asked, looking at her so intently that the truth had to come out; all his feelings were in those honest blue eyes of his.

'No, I don't!' answered Mrs Jo. 'Then if you were in my place, what would you do?' he added, with a tone of command never heard in his gentle voice before.

'No, I don't!' replied Mrs. Jo. 'Then if you were in my position, what would you do?' he added, with a commanding tone he'd never used in his gentle voice before.

'Bless me! the boy is in dead earnest, and I shall forget prudence in sympathy I'm afraid,' thought Mrs Jo, surprised and pleased by the unexpected manliness Nat showed.

'Wow! The boy is totally serious, and I'm afraid I'll ignore common sense because I feel so sympathetic,' thought Mrs. Jo, surprised and pleased by the unexpected maturity Nat was displaying.

'I'll tell you what I should do. I'd say to myself:

'I’ll tell you what I should do. I’d say to myself:

“I'll prove that my love is strong and faithful, and make Daisy's mother proud to give her to me by being not only a good musician but an excellent man, and so command respect and confidence. This I will try for; and if I fail, I shall be the better for the effort, and find comfort in the thought that I did my best for her sake.”'

“I'll show that my love is strong and loyal, and make Daisy's mom proud to give her to me by being not just a good musician but a really great guy, earning respect and trust. I'll strive for this; and if I don't succeed, I'll still feel good about trying and find comfort in knowing that I did my best for her.”

'That is what I meant to do. But I wanted a word of hope to give me courage,' cried Nat, firing up as if the smouldering spark was set ablaze by a breath of encouragement. 'Other fellows, poorer and stupider than I, have done great things and come to honour. Why may not I, though I'm nothing now? I know Mrs Brooke remembers what I came from, but my father was honest though everything went wrong; and I have nothing to be ashamed of though I was a charity boy. I never will be ashamed of my people or myself, and I'll make other folks respect me if I can.'

'That's what I meant to do. But I wanted a word of hope to give me courage,' Nat exclaimed, igniting with passion as if the little spark inside him was ignited by a breath of encouragement. 'Other guys, poorer and less bright than I am, have achieved great things and earned respect. Why can’t I, even if I’m nothing now? I know Mrs. Brooke remembers where I came from, but my dad was honest even when everything went wrong; and I have nothing to be ashamed of, even though I was a charity boy. I will never be ashamed of my family or myself, and I’ll make others respect me if I can.'

'Good! that's the right spirit, Nat. Hold to it and make yourself a man. No one will be quicker to see and admire the brave work than my sister Meg. She does not despise your poverty or your past; but mothers are very tender over their daughters, and we Marches, though we have been poor, are, I confess, a little proud of our good family. We don't care for money; but a long line of virtuous ancestors is something to desire and to be proud of.'

'Good! That’s the right attitude, Nat. Stick with it and become a man. No one will notice and admire your brave efforts more than my sister Meg. She doesn’t look down on your poverty or your past; but mothers are very protective of their daughters, and we Marches, even though we’ve been poor, are, I admit, a bit proud of our good family. We don’t care about money; but having a long line of honorable ancestors is something to strive for and take pride in.'

'Well, the Blakes are a good lot. I looked 'em up, and not one was ever in prison, hanged, or disgraced in any way. We used to be rich and honoured years ago, but we've died out and got poor, and father was a street musician rather than beg; and I'll be one again before I'll do the mean things some men do and pass muster.'

'Well, the Blakes are a good family. I researched them, and not one has ever been in prison, executed, or disgraced in any way. We used to be wealthy and respected years ago, but we've faded away and become poor. My father was a street musician rather than a beggar; and I'll be one again before I stoop to do the shameful things some men do just to get by.'

Nat was so excited that Mrs Jo indulged in a laugh to calm him, and both went on more quietly.

Nat was so excited that Mrs. Jo shared a laugh to calm him, and they both continued on more quietly.

'I told my sister all that and it pleased her. I am sure if you do well these next few years that she will relent and all be happily settled, unless that wonderful change, which you don't believe possible, should occur. Now, cheer up; don't be lackadaisical and blue. Say good-bye cheerfully and bravely, show a manly front, and leave a pleasant memory behind you. We all wish you well and hope much for you. Write to me every week and I'll send a good, gossipy answer. Be careful what you write to Daisy; don't gush or wail, for sister Meg will see the letters; and you can help your cause very much by sending sensible, cheery accounts of your life to us all.'

"I told my sister everything, and she was happy to hear it. I'm sure if you do well over the next few years, she'll soften up, and everything will turn out great, unless that amazing change you think is impossible happens. Now, cheer up; don’t be lazy and down. Say goodbye cheerfully and confidently, put on a brave face, and leave a good memory behind you. We all wish you the best and have high hopes for you. Write to me every week, and I'll send you a fun, chatty reply. Be careful how you write to Daisy; don’t get overly emotional or dramatic, because sister Meg will read the letters, and you can really help your case by sending sensible, upbeat updates about your life to all of us."

'I will; I will; it looks brighter and better already, and I won't lose my one comfort by any fault of my own. Thank you so much, Mother Bhaer, for taking my side. I felt so ungrateful and mean and crushed when I thought you all considered me a sneak who had no business to love such a precious girl as Daisy. No one said anything, but I knew how you felt, and that Mr Laurie sent me off partly to get me out of the way. Oh dear, life is pretty tough sometimes, isn't it?' And Nat took his head in both hands as if it ached with the confusion of hopes and fears, passions and plans that proved boyhood was past and manhood had begun.

"I will; I will; it looks brighter and better already, and I won’t let my one comfort slip away because of my own mistakes. Thank you so much, Mother Bhaer, for supporting me. I felt so ungrateful and small and crushed when I thought you all saw me as a sneak who had no right to love such a wonderful girl as Daisy. No one said anything, but I could tell how you felt, and that Mr. Laurie sent me away partly to get me out of the way. Oh dear, life can be pretty tough sometimes, can’t it?" And Nat held his head in both hands as if it ached with the confusion of hopes and fears, passions and plans that showed boyhood was over and manhood had begun.

'Very tough, but it is that very struggle with obstacles which does us good. Things have been made easy for you in many ways, but no one can do everything. You must paddle your own canoe now, and learn to avoid the rapids and steer straight to the port you want to reach. I don't know just what your temptations will be for you have no bad habits and seem to love music so well, nothing can lure you from it. I only hope you won't work too hard.'

'It's tough, but that challenge with obstacles is actually good for us. Things have been made easy for you in many ways, but no one can do it all. You have to paddle your own canoe now and learn to avoid the rapids and navigate straight to the destination you want to reach. I don't know exactly what your temptations will be since you have no bad habits and seem to love music so much that nothing can pull you away from it. I just hope you won't overwork yourself.'

'I feel as if I could work like a horse, I'm so eager to get on; but I'll take care. Can't waste time being sick, and you've given me doses enough to keep me all right, I guess.' Nat laughed as he remembered the book of directions Mrs Jo had written for him to consult on all occasions.

'I feel like I could work like a champ, I'm so eager to get started; but I’ll take it easy. I can’t afford to waste time being sick, and I guess you’ve given me enough medicine to keep me okay.' Nat laughed as he recalled the book of instructions Mrs. Jo had written for him to refer to whenever he needed.

She immediately added some verbal ones on the subject of foreign messes, and having mounted one of her pet hobbies, was in full gallop when Emil was seen strolling about on the roof of the old house, that being his favourite promenade; for there he could fancy himself walking the deck, with only blue sky and fresh air about him.

She quickly chimed in with her opinions about foreign troubles, and once she got started on one of her favorite topics, she was on a roll. Meanwhile, Emil was spotted walking around on the roof of the old house, which was his favorite spot; up there, he could imagine he was on the deck, surrounded by nothing but blue skies and fresh air.

'I want a word with the Commodore, and up there we shall be nice and quiet. Go and play to Daisy: it will put her to sleep and do you both good. Sit in the porch, so I can keep an eye on you as I promised'; and with a motherly pat on the shoulder Mrs Jo left Nat to his delightful task and briskly ascended to the house-top, not up the trellis as of old but by means of the stairs inside.

'I need to talk to the Commodore, and up there we'll be nice and quiet. Go play with Daisy; it’ll help her fall asleep and be good for both of you. Sit on the porch, so I can keep an eye on you like I promised.' With a motherly pat on the shoulder, Mrs. Jo left Nat to his enjoyable task and quickly went up to the roof, not climbing the trellis like before but using the stairs inside.

Emerging on the platform she found Emil cutting his initials afresh in the wood-work and singing 'Pull for the Shore', like the tuneful mariner he was.

Emerging onto the platform, she saw Emil carving his initials into the wood again and singing 'Pull for the Shore,' like the melodic sailor he was.

'Come aboard and make yourself at home, Aunty,' he said, with a playful salute. 'I'm just leaving a P.P.C. in the old place, so when you fly up here for refuge you'll remember me.'

'Come on in and make yourself comfortable, Aunty,' he said with a playful salute. 'I'm just leaving a P.P.C. at the old spot, so when you come up here for a break, you'll think of me.'

'Ah, my dear, I'm not likely to forget you. It doesn't need E. B. H. cut on all the trees and railings to remind me of my sailor boy'; and Mrs Jo took the seat nearest the blue figure astride the balustrade, not quite sure how to begin the little sermon she wanted to preach.

'Ah, my dear, I’m not going to forget you. It doesn't need E. B. H. carved on all the trees and railings to remind me of my sailor boy'; and Mrs. Jo took the seat closest to the blue figure sitting on the railing, not quite sure how to start the little sermon she wanted to give.

'Well, you don't pipe your eye and look squally when I sheer off as you used to, and that's a comfort. I like to leave port in fair weather and have a jolly send-off all round. Specially this time, for it will be a year or more before we drop anchor here again,' answered Emil, pushing his cap back, and glancing about him as if he loved old Plum and would be sorry never to see it any more.

'Well, you don't cry and look all upset when I leave like you used to, and that's a relief. I like to set off when the weather's nice and have a cheerful goodbye all around. Especially this time, since it will be a year or more before we return here,' replied Emil, pushing his cap back and looking around as if he really cared for old Plum and would miss it.

'You have salt water enough without my adding to it. I'm going to be quite a Spartan mother, and send my sons to battle with no wailing, only the command:

'You have enough salt water without me adding to it. I'm going to be a tough mother, and send my sons to battle with no crying, just the command:

“With your shield or on it”,' said Mrs Jo cheerfully, adding after a pause: 'I often wish I could go too, and some day I will, when you are captain and have a ship of your own—as I've no doubt you will before long, with Uncle Herman to push you on.'

“Whether you win or lose," said Mrs. Jo cheerfully, adding after a pause, "I often wish I could go too, and someday I will, when you're the captain and have your own ship—as I'm sure you'll have before long, with Uncle Herman encouraging you.”

'When I do I'll christen her the Jolly Jo and take you as first mate. It would be regular larks to have you aboard, and I'd be a proud man to carry you round the world you've wanted to see so long and never could,' answered Emil, caught at once by this splendid vision.

"When I do, I'll name her the Jolly Jo and have you as my first mate. It would be a blast to have you on board, and I’d be proud to take you around the world that you've wanted to see for so long and never could," replied Emil, instantly captivated by this amazing vision.

'I'll make my first voyage with you and enjoy myself immensely in spite of seasickness and all the stormy winds that blow. I've always thought I'd like to see a wreck, a nice safe one with all saved after great danger and heroic deeds, while we clung like Mr Pillicoddy to main-top jibs and lee scuppers.'

"I'll take my first trip with you and have a great time despite the seasickness and all the rough winds. I've always wanted to see a shipwreck, a safe one where everyone is rescued after facing great danger and doing heroic things, while we hold on like Mr. Pillicoddy to the top sails and railings."

'No wrecks yet, ma'am, but we'll try to accommodate customers. Captain says I'm a lucky dog and bring fair weather, so we'll save the dirty weather for you if you want it,' laughed Emil, digging at the ship in full sail which he was adding to his design.

'No wrecks yet, ma'am, but we’ll do our best to accommodate customers. The captain says I’m a lucky guy and bring good weather, so we’ll save the bad weather for you if you want it,' laughed Emil, working on the ship in full sail that he was adding to his design.

'Thanks, I hope you will. This long voyage will give you new experiences, and being an officer, you will have new duties and responsibilities. Are you ready for them? You take everything so gaily, I've been wondering if you realized that now you will have not only to obey but to command also, and power is a dangerous thing. Be careful that you don't abuse it or let it make a tyrant of you.'

'Thanks, I hope you do. This long journey will bring you new experiences, and as an officer, you’ll have new duties and responsibilities. Are you ready for them? You seem to take everything so lightly; I’ve been wondering if you understand that now you won’t just have to obey but also to lead, and power can be a dangerous thing. Be careful not to misuse it or let it turn you into a tyrant.'

'Right you are, ma'am. I've seen plenty of that, and have got my bearings pretty well, I guess. I shan't have very wide swing with Peters over me, but I'll see that the boys don't get abused when he's bowsed up his jib. No right to speak before, but now I won't stand it.'

"You're absolutely right, ma'am. I've seen a lot of that and I think I've got a good understanding of the situation. I won't have much leeway with Peters around, but I'll make sure the guys aren't mistreated when he's had too much to drink. I didn't have the right to say anything before, but now I won't put up with it."

'That sounds mysteriously awful; could I ask what nautical torture “bowsing jibs” is?' asked Mrs Jo, in a tone of deep interest.

"That sounds strangely terrible; can I ask what nautical torture 'bowsing jibs' is?" asked Mrs. Jo, in a tone of genuine curiosity.

'Getting drunk. Peters can hold more grog than any man I ever saw; he keeps right side up, but is as savage as a norther, and makes things lively all round. I've seen him knock a fellow down with a belaying pin, and couldn't lend a hand. Better luck now, I hope.' And Emil frowned as if he already trod the quarter-deck, lord of all he surveyed.

'Getting drunk. Peters can handle more booze than any guy I've ever seen; he stays upright but is as fierce as a storm, making things exciting all around. I've watched him take someone down with a belaying pin, and I couldn't help. Hopefully, better luck now.' And Emil frowned as if he already stood on the quarter-deck, master of everything he saw.

'Don't get into trouble, for even Uncle Herman's favour won't cover insubordination, you know. You have proved yourself a good sailor; now be a good officer, which is a harder thing, I fancy. It takes a fine character to rule justly and kindly; you will have to put by your boyish ways and remember your dignity. That will be excellent training for you, Emil, and sober you down a bit. No more skylarking except here, so mind your ways, and do honour to your buttons,' said Mrs Jo, tapping one of the very bright brass ones that ornamented the new suit Emil was so proud of.

"Don't get into trouble, because even Uncle Herman's favor won't cover insubordination, you know. You've shown that you're a good sailor; now be a good officer, which I think is even harder. It takes a strong character to lead justly and kindly; you'll need to set aside your childish behavior and remember your dignity. This will be great training for you, Emil, and help you mature a bit. No more fooling around except here, so watch your behavior, and make sure to honor your buttons," said Mrs. Jo, tapping one of the bright brass buttons that adorned the new suit Emil was so proud of.

'I'll do my best. I know my time for skirmshander (chaff) is over, and I must steer a straighter course; but don't you fear, Jack ashore is a very different craft from what he is with blue water under his keel. I had a long talk with Uncle last night and got my orders; I won't forget 'em nor all I owe him. As for you, I'll name my first ship as I say, and have your bust for the figurehead, see if I don't,' and Emil gave his aunt a hearty kiss to seal the vow, which proceeding much amused Nat, playing softly in the porch of the Dovecote.

"I'll do my best. I know my days of messing around are over, and I need to stay on a straight path; but don't worry, Jack ashore is a totally different person from the one you see at sea. I had a long talk with Uncle last night and got my instructions; I won’t forget them nor everything I owe him. As for you, I’ll name my first ship after you, and I’ll have your bust as the figurehead, just watch me do it," and Emil gave his aunt a big kiss to seal the promise, which really amused Nat, who was playing softly on the porch of the Dovecote.

'You do me proud, Captain. But, dear, I want to say one thing and then I'm done; for you don't need much advice of mine after my good man has spoken. I read somewhere that every inch of rope used in the British Navy has a strand of red in it, so that wherever a bit of it is found it is known. That is the text of my little sermon to you. Virtue, which means honour, honesty, courage, and all that makes character, is the red thread that marks a good man wherever he is. Keep that always and everywhere, so that even if wrecked by misfortune, that sign shall still be found and recognized. Yours is a rough life, and your mates not all we could wish, but you can be a gentleman in the true sense of the word; and no matter what happens to your body, keep your soul clean, your heart true to those who love you, and do your duty to the end.'

"You make me proud, Captain. But, listen, I want to say one thing and then I'll be done; you don’t really need my advice after what my good man has said. I read somewhere that every inch of rope used in the British Navy has a strand of red in it, so that wherever a piece is found, it can be identified. That’s the main point of my little speech to you. Virtue, which means honor, honesty, courage, and everything that shapes character, is the red thread that marks a good person wherever they are. Keep that with you always, so that even if you face tough times, that mark will still be found and recognized. Yours is a challenging life, and your companions aren’t always ideal, but you can still be a true gentleman; and no matter what happens to you physically, keep your soul clean, your heart loyal to those who care for you, and do your duty until the end."

As she spoke Emil had risen and stood listening with his cap off and a grave, bright look as if taking orders from a superior officer; when she ended, he answered briefly, but heartily:

As she spoke, Emil had stood up, listening with his hat off and a serious yet attentive expression, like he was taking orders from a superior officer. When she finished, he replied shortly but sincerely:

'Please God, I will!'

'God, I promise I will!'

'That's all; I have little fear for you, but one never knows when or how the weak moment may come, and sometimes a chance word helps us, as so many my dear mother spoke come back to me now for my own comfort and the guidance of my boys,' said Mrs Jo, rising; for the words had been said and no more were needed.

'That's it; I'm not really worried about you, but you never know when a weak moment might hit, and sometimes a simple word can help us. So many of the things my dear mother said come back to me now for my own comfort and to guide my boys,' said Mrs. Jo, getting up; because the words had been spoken and nothing more was necessary.

'I've stored 'em up and know where to find 'em when wanted. Often and often in my watch I've seen old Plum, and heard you and Uncle talking so plainly, I'd have sworn I was here. It is a rough life, Aunty, but a wholesome one if a fellow loves it as I do, and has an anchor to windward as I have. Don't worry about me, and I'll come home next year with a chest of tea that will cheer your heart and give you ideas enough for a dozen novels. Going below? All right, steady in the gangway! I'll be along by the time you've got out the cake-box. Last chance for a good old lunch ashore.'

"I've saved up everything and know exactly where to find it when needed. Again and again, I've watched old Plum and listened to you and Uncle talking clearly; I could swear I was right there. It's a tough life, Aunty, but it's fulfilling if you love it like I do and have a good support system like I have. Don't worry about me, and I'll come home next year with a chest of tea that will brighten your spirits and inspire you with enough ideas for a dozen novels. Going below? That's fine, just be careful in the gangway! I'll be there by the time you bring out the cake box. Last chance for a good old lunch on land."

Mrs Jo descended laughing, and Emil finished his ship whistling cheerfully, neither dreaming when and where this little chat on the house-top would return to the memory of one of them.

Mrs. Jo came down laughing, and Emil finished his ship whistling happily, neither of them realizing when and where this little conversation on the rooftop would come back to one of their minds.

Dan was harder to catch, and not until evening did a quiet moment come in that busy family; when, while the rest were roaming about, Mrs Jo sat down to read in the study, and presently Dan looked in at the window.

Dan was more difficult to catch, and it wasn't until evening that a quiet moment arrived in that bustling family. While everyone else was moving around, Mrs. Jo settled down to read in the study, and soon Dan peeked in at the window.

'Come and rest after your long tramp; you must be tired,' she called, with an inviting nod towards the big sofa where so many boys had reposed—as much as that active animal ever does.

"Come and take a break after your long hike; you must be exhausted," she said, nodding invitingly toward the big sofa where so many boys had relaxed—as much as that energetic creature ever does.

'Afraid I shall disturb you'; but Dan looked as if he wanted to stay his restless feet somewhere.

'I'm worried I'll interrupt you,' but Dan looked like he wanted to stop his restless feet somewhere.

'Not a bit; I'm always ready to talk, shouldn't be a woman if I were not,' laughed Mrs Jo, as Dan swung himself in and sat down with an air of contentment very pleasant to see.

'Not at all; I'm always up for a chat, I wouldn't be a woman if I weren't,' laughed Mrs. Jo, as Dan swung himself in and sat down with a very pleasant air of contentment.

'Last day is over, yet somehow I don't seem to hanker to be off. Generally, I'm rather anxious to cut loose after a short stop. Odd, ain't it?' asked Dan, gravely picking grass and leaves out of his hair and beard; for he had been lying on the grass, thinking many thoughts in the quiet summer night.

'The last day is done, but somehow I don’t feel like leaving. Usually, I’m pretty eager to break free after a short stay. Strange, right?' Dan asked, seriously pulling grass and leaves out of his hair and beard since he had been lying on the ground, lost in thought on that quiet summer night.

'Not at all; you are beginning to get civilized. It's a good sign, and I'm glad to see it,' answered Mrs Jo promptly. 'You've had your swing, and want a change. Hope the farming will give it to you, though helping the Indians pleases me more: it is so much better to work for others than for one's self alone.'

'Not at all; you’re starting to become civilized. That’s a good sign, and I'm happy to see it,' answered Mrs. Jo right away. 'You've had your fun and want something different. I hope the farming will provide that for you, but helping the Indians makes me happier: it's so much better to work for others than just for yourself.'

'So 'tis,' assented Dan heartily. 'I seem to want to root somewhere and have folks of my own to take care of. Tired of my own company, I suppose, now I've seen so much better. I'm a rough, ignorant lot, and I've been thinking maybe I've missed it loafing round creation, instead of going in for education as the other chaps did. Hey?'

"You're right," Dan agreed enthusiastically. "I feel like I want to settle down and have my own people to take care of. I guess I’m just tired of being on my own now that I’ve seen what’s out there. I’m a rough, uneducated guy, and I’ve been thinking maybe I’ve wasted my time just wandering around instead of focusing on getting an education like the others did. What do you think?"

He looked anxiously at Mrs Jo; and she tried to hide the surprise this new outburst caused her; for till now Dan had scorned books and gloried in his freedom.

He looked at Mrs. Jo with worry, and she tried to mask her surprise at this new outburst because until now, Dan had dismissed books and reveled in his freedom.

'No; I don't think so in your case. So far I'm sure the free life was best. Now that you are a man you can control that lawless nature better; but as a boy only great activity and much adventure could keep you out of mischief. Time is taming my colt, you see, and I shall yet be proud of him, whether he makes a pack-horse of himself to carry help to the starving or goes to ploughing as Pegasus did.'

'No, I don’t think that’s true for you. So far, I’m sure the free life was the best for you. Now that you’re a man, you can manage that wild side of you better; but as a boy, only a lot of activity and adventure could keep you out of trouble. Time is training my young horse, you see, and I’ll still be proud of him, whether he carries help to the starving like a pack horse or plows the fields like Pegasus did.'

Dan liked the comparison, and smiled as he lounged in the sofa-corner, with the new thoughtfulness in his eyes.

Dan liked the comparison and smiled as he relaxed in the corner of the sofa, a new sense of thoughtfulness in his eyes.

'Glad you think so. The fact is it's going to take a heap of taming to make me go well in harness anywhere. I want to, and I try now and then, but always kick over the traces and run away. No lives lost yet; but I shouldn't wonder if there was some time, and a general smash-up.'

'I'm glad you think so. The truth is, it's going to take a lot of training to get me to behave properly in any situation. I want to do it, and I make an effort occasionally, but I always end up breaking free and running off. No one has been hurt yet; but I wouldn't be surprised if that happens at some point, along with a big mess.'

'Why, Dan, did you have any dangerous adventures during this last absence? I fancied so, but didn't ask before, knowing you'd tell me if I could help in any way. Can I?' And Mrs Jo looked anxiously at him; for a sudden lowering expression had come into his face, and he leaned forward as if to hide it.

'Hey, Dan, did you have any dangerous adventures while you were away? I thought so, but I didn't ask earlier because I knew you'd tell me if I could help in any way. Can I?' Mrs. Jo looked at him with concern; a sudden serious look had crossed his face, and he leaned forward as if to hide it.

'Nothing very bad; but 'Frisco isn't just a heaven on earth, you know, and it's harder to be a saint there than here,' he answered slowly; then, as if he had made up his mind to ''fess', as the children used to say, he sat up, and added rapidly, in a half-defiant, half-shamefaced way, 'I tried gambling, and it wasn't good for me.'

'Nothing too terrible; but San Francisco isn't exactly paradise, you know, and it's tougher to be a saint there than here,' he replied slowly. Then, as if he had decided to admit the truth, like the kids used to say, he sat up and quickly added, with a mix of defiance and embarrassment, 'I tried gambling, and it didn't work out for me.'

'Was that how you made your money?'

'Is that how you made your money?'

'Not a penny of it! That's all honest, if speculation isn't a bigger sort of gambling. I won a lot; but I lost or gave it away, and cut the whole concern before it got the better of me.'

'Not a cent of it! That's all legit, if you don't consider speculation a fancier version of gambling. I won a lot, but I lost or gave it away, and walked away before it got the better of me.'

'Thank heaven for that! Don't try it again; it may have the terrible fascination for you it has for so many. Keep to your mountains and prairies, and shun cities, if these things tempt you, Dan. Better lose your life than your soul, and one such passion leads to worse sins, as you know better than I.'

'Thank goodness for that! Don't attempt it again; it might have the same awful allure for you that it does for so many others. Stick to your mountains and prairies, and avoid cities if these things tempt you, Dan. It's better to lose your life than your soul, and one such passion can lead to even worse sins, as you know better than I.'

Dan nodded, and seeing how troubled she was, said, in a lighter tone, though still the shadow of that past experience remained:

Dan nodded, and noticing how upset she was, said, in a more cheerful tone, though the memory of that past experience still lingered:

'Don't be scared; I'm all right now; and a burnt dog dreads the fire. I don't drink, or do the things you dread; don't care for 'em; but I get excited, and then this devilish temper of mine is more than I can manage. Fighting a moose or a buffalo is all right; but when you pitch into a man, no matter how great a scamp he is, you've got to look out. I shall kill someone some day; that's all I'm afraid of. I do hate a sneak!' And Dan brought his fist down on the table with a blow that made the lamp totter and the books skip.

'Don't be scared; I'm fine now; and a burnt dog fears the fire. I don’t drink or do the things you worry about; I don't care for them; but I get worked up, and then this devilish temper of mine is more than I can handle. Fighting a moose or a buffalo is fine; but when you go after a man, no matter how much of a jerk he is, you’ve got to be careful. I’m going to end up hurting someone someday; that’s what I fear. I really can’t stand a sneak!' And Dan slammed his fist down on the table, causing the lamp to wobble and the books to jump.

'That always was your trial, Dan, and I can sympathize with you; for I've been trying to govern my own temper all my life, and haven't learnt yet,' said Mrs Jo, with a sigh. 'For heaven's sake, guard your demon well, and don't let a moment's fury ruin all your life. As I said to Nat, watch and pray, my dear boy. There is no other help or hope for human weakness but God's love and patience.'

"That’s always been your struggle, Dan, and I can relate; I've spent my entire life trying to manage my own temper, and I still haven’t mastered it," Mrs. Jo said with a sigh. "For goodness' sake, keep your temper in check, and don’t let a moment of anger ruin your whole life. As I told Nat, stay vigilant and pray, my dear boy. There’s no other support or hope for human weakness besides God’s love and patience."

Tears were in Mrs Jo's eyes as she spoke; for she felt this deeply, and knew how hard a task it is to rule these bosom sins of ours. Dan looked touched, also uncomfortable, as he always did when religion of any sort was mentioned, though he had a simple creed of his own, and tried to live up to it in his blind way.

Tears were in Mrs. Jo's eyes as she spoke because she felt this deeply and knew how hard it is to manage our inner struggles. Dan looked moved but also uneasy, as he always did when religion came up, even though he had a simple belief system of his own and tried to stick to it in his own way.

'I don't do much praying; don't seem to come handy to me; but I can watch like a redskin, only it's easier to mount guard over a lurking grizzly than my own cursed temper. It's that I'm afraid of, if I settle down. I can get on with wild beasts first-rate; but men rile me awfully, and I can't take it out in a free fight, as I can with a bear or a wolf. Guess I'd better head for the Rockies, and stay there a spell longer—till I'm tame enough for decent folks, if I ever am.' And Dan leaned his rough head on his hands in a despondent attitude.

'I don’t pray much; it doesn’t seem to help me. But I can keep an eye out like a Native American; still, it’s easier to guard against a lurking grizzly than my own damn temper. That’s what I’m afraid of if I settle down. I can handle wild animals just fine, but people really get on my nerves, and I can’t vent like I can with a bear or a wolf. I guess it’s better if I head for the Rockies and stay there a while longer—until I’m tame enough for decent folks, if I ever get there.' And Dan leaned his rough head on his hands in a despondent pose.

'Try my sort of help, and don't give up. Read more, study a little, and try to meet a better class of people, who won't “rile”, but soothe and strengthen you. We don't make you savage, I'm sure; for you have been as meek as a lamb, and made us very happy.'

'Give my kind of help a shot, and don't lose hope. Read more, study a bit, and try to connect with a better kind of people, who won't irritate you, but will calm and empower you. I'm sure we don't make you angry; you’ve been as gentle as a lamb and that’s made us very happy.'

'Glad of it; but I've felt like a hawk in a hen-house all the same, and wanted to pounce and tear more than once. Not so much as I used, though,' added Dan, after a short laugh at Mrs Jo's surprised face. 'I'll try your plan, and keep good company this bout if I can; but a man can't pick and choose, knocking about as I do.'

'I'm glad to hear it; but I've felt like a hawk in a henhouse all the same, and wanted to pounce and tear things apart more than once. Not as much as I used to, though,' Dan added, after a brief laugh at Mrs. Jo's surprised expression. 'I'll give your plan a try and stick with good company this time if I can; but a guy can't always pick and choose when he's constantly on the move like I am.'

'Yes, you can this time; for you are going on a peaceful errand and can keep clear of temptation if you try. Take some books and read; that's an immense help; and books are always good company if you have the right sort. Let me pick out some for you.' And Mrs Jo made a bee-line to the well-laden shelves, which were the joy of her heart and the comfort of her life.

'Yes, you can this time; you're going on a peaceful errand and can stay away from temptation if you really try. Take some books to read; that's a huge help, and books are always good company if you choose the right ones. Let me pick some out for you.' And Mrs. Jo went straight to the well-stocked shelves, which were the joy of her heart and the comfort of her life.

'Give me travels and stories, please; don't want any pious works, can't seem to relish 'em, and won't pretend I do,' said Dan, following to look over her head with small favour at the long lines of well-worn volumes.

"Give me travels and stories, please; I don't want any religious works, I just can't enjoy them, and I'm not going to fake it," said Dan, glancing disapprovingly over her head at the long rows of well-worn books.

Mrs Jo turned short round, and putting a hand on either broad shoulder, looked him in the eye, saying soberly:

Mrs. Jo turned around quickly, placing a hand on each of his broad shoulders, looked him in the eye, and said seriously:

'Now, Dan, see here; never sneer at good things or pretend to be worse than you are. Don't let false shame make you neglect the religion without which no man can live. You needn't talk about it if you don't like, but don't shut your heart to it in whatever shape it comes. Nature is your God now; she has done much for you; let her do more, and lead you to know and love a wiser and more tender teacher, friend, and comforter than she can ever be. That is your only hope; don't throw it away, and waste time; for sooner or later you will feel the need of Him, and He will come to you and hold you up when all other help fails.'

'Now, Dan, listen; never look down on good things or pretend to be less than you are. Don’t let false shame cause you to ignore the faith that is essential for living. You don't have to talk about it if you don't want to, but don’t close your heart to it in whatever form it appears. Nature is your God right now; she has done a lot for you; let her do more, and guide you to know and love a wiser and more caring teacher, friend, and comforter than she can ever be. That is your only hope; don't throw it away or waste time; because sooner or later you will feel the need for Him, and He will come to you and support you when all other help fails.'

Dan stood motionless, and let her read in his softened eyes the dumb desire that lived in his heart, though he had no words to tell it, and only permitted her to catch a glimpse of the divine spark which smoulders or burns clearly in every human soul. He did not speak; and glad to be spared some answer which should belie his real feelings, Mrs Jo hastened to say, with her most motherly smile:

Dan stood still, allowing her to see in his gentle gaze the unspoken desire in his heart, even though he couldn't find the words to express it. He let her catch a glimpse of the divine spark that flickers or shines brightly in every human soul. He stayed silent; relieved to avoid giving an answer that would betray his true feelings, Mrs. Jo quickly said, with her warmest motherly smile:

'I saw in your room the little Bible I gave you long ago; it was well worn outside, but fresh within, as if not much read. Will you promise me to read a little once a week, dear, for my sake? Sunday is a quiet day everywhere, and this book is never old nor out of place. Begin with the stories you used to love when I told them to you boys. David was your favourite, you remember? Read him again; he'll suit you even better now, and you'll find his sins and repentance useful reading till you come to the life and work of a diviner example than he. You will do it, for love of mother Bhaer, who always loved her “firebrand” and hoped to save him?'

I saw the little Bible I gave you a long time ago in your room; it looked well-worn on the outside but fresh on the inside, as if it hadn't been read much. Will you promise me to read a little every week, dear, for my sake? Sunday is a quiet day everywhere, and this book is never old or out of place. Start with the stories you loved when I told them to you boys. David was your favorite, remember? Read him again; you’ll appreciate him even more now, and his sins and repentance will be valuable reading until you get to the life and work of an even greater example than he. You will do it, out of love for mother Bhaer, who always loved her “firebrand” and hoped to save him?

'I will,' answered Dan, with a sudden brightening of face that was like a sunburst through a cloud, full of promise though so short-lived and rare.

"I will," Dan replied, his face lighting up suddenly like a sunburst breaking through the clouds—full of promise, though fleeting and rare.

Mrs Jo turned at once to the books and began to talk of them, knowing well that Dan would not hear any more just then. He seemed relieved; for it was always hard for him to show his inner self, and he took pride in hiding it as an Indian does in concealing pain or fear.

Mrs. Jo immediately turned to the books and started talking about them, fully aware that Dan wouldn’t be paying attention anymore at that moment. He looked relieved; it was always difficult for him to express his true feelings, and he took pride in keeping them hidden, just like an Indian conceals pain or fear.

'Hallo, here's old Sintram! I remember him; used to like him and his tantrums, and read about 'em to Ted. There he is riding ahead with Death and the Devil alongside.'

'Hey, here's old Sintram! I remember him; I used to like him and his tantrums, and I read about them to Ted. There he is riding ahead with Death and the Devil by his side.'

As Dan looked at the little picture of the young man with horse and hound going bravely up the rocky defile, accompanied by the companions who ride beside most men through this world, a curious impulse made Mrs Jo say quickly:

As Dan stared at the small picture of the young man with his horse and dog courageously moving up the rocky path, surrounded by the companions who accompany most people through life, a strange urge made Mrs. Jo say quickly:

'That's you, Dan, just you at this time! Danger and sin are near you in the life you lead; moods and passions torment you; the bad father left you to fight alone, and the wild spirit drives you to wander up and down the world looking for peace and self-control. Even the horse and hound are there, your Octoo and Don, faithful friends, unscared by the strange mates that go with you. You have not got the armour yet, but I'm trying to show you where to find it. Remember the mother Sintram loved and longed to find, and did find when his battle was bravely fought, his reward well earned? You can recollect your mother; and I have always felt that all the good qualities you possess come from her. Act out the beautiful old story in this as in the other parts, and try to give her back a son to be proud of.'

That's you, Dan, just you at this moment! Danger and wrongdoing are close to you in the life you’re living; your moods and emotions torment you; the bad father left you to fight this battle on your own, and the wild spirit drives you to roam around the world searching for peace and self-control. Even your horse and hound, Octoo and Don, are with you, loyal friends, unafraid of the strange companions that accompany you. You may not have the armor yet, but I’m here to help you find it. Remember the mother that Sintram loved and longed to reunite with, and did so after fighting valiantly, earning his reward? You can remember your mother; I've always believed that all the good qualities you have come from her. Live out the beautiful old story in this part as you have in others, and try to give her back a son to be proud of.

Quite carried away by the likeness of the quaint tale to Dan's life and needs, Mrs Jo went on pointing to the various pictures which illustrated it, and when she looked up was surprised to see how struck and interested he seemed to be. Like all people of his temperament he was very impressionable, and his life among hunters and Indians had made him superstitious; he believed in dreams, liked weird tales, and whatever appealed to the eye or mind, vividly impressed him more than the wisest words. The story of poor, tormented Sintram came back clearly as he looked and listened, symbolizing his secret trials even more truly than Mrs Jo knew; and just at that moment this had an effect upon him that never was forgotten. But all he said was:

Caught up in how similar the charming story was to Dan's life and needs, Mrs. Jo continued to point out the various illustrations that accompanied it. When she glanced up, she was surprised to see how captivated and engaged he appeared. Like many people with his temperament, he was very impressionable, and his experiences among hunters and Native Americans had made him superstitious; he believed in dreams, enjoyed eerie stories, and anything that caught his eye or imagination left a stronger mark on him than the most insightful words. The tale of poor, tormented Sintram came back to him clearly as he looked and listened, symbolizing his hidden struggles even more accurately than Mrs. Jo realized; at that moment, this had an impact on him that he would never forget. But all he said was:

'Small chance of that. I don't take much stock in the idea of meeting folks in heaven. Guess mother won't remember the poor little brat she left so long ago; why should she?'

'Not much chance of that. I don’t believe in the idea of meeting people in heaven. I guess mom won’t remember the poor little kid she left behind so long ago; why would she?'

'Because true mothers never forget their children; and I know she was one, from the fact that she ran away from the cruel husband, to save her little son from bad influences. Had she lived, life would have been happier for you, with this tender friend to help and comfort you. Never forget that she risked everything for your sake, and don't let it be in vain.'

'Because real mothers never forget their children; and I know she was one, because she ran away from her abusive husband to protect her little son from bad influences. If she had lived, life would have been better for you, with this loving friend to help and comfort you. Never forget that she risked everything for you, and don't let it be for nothing.'

Mrs Jo spoke very earnestly, knowing that this was the one sweet memory of Dan's early life, and glad to have recalled it at this moment; for suddenly a great tear splashed down on the page where Sintram kneels at his mother's feet, wounded, but victorious over sin and death. She looked up, well pleased to have touched Dan to the heart's core, as that drop proved; but a sweep of the arm brushed away the tell-tale, and his beard hid the mate to it, as he shut the book, saying with a suppressed quiver in his strong voice:

Mrs. Jo spoke very seriously, knowing this was the one sweet memory from Dan's early life, and she was glad to have brought it up at that moment. Suddenly, a big tear splashed down onto the page where Sintram kneels at his mother's feet, wounded but victorious over sin and death. She looked up, satisfied that she had reached Dan’s heart, as that tear showed; but a swift motion wiped it away, and his beard hid the other one as he closed the book, saying with a restrained tremor in his strong voice:

'I'll keep this, if nobody wants it. I'll read it over, and maybe it will do me good. I'd like to meet her anywhere, but don't believe I ever shall.'

"I'll keep this if nobody wants it. I'll read it again, and maybe it will help me. I'd love to meet her anywhere, but I don't think I ever will."

'Keep it and welcome. My mother gave it to me; and when you read it try to believe that neither of your mothers will ever forget you.'

'Keep it and enjoy it. My mom gave it to me; and when you read it, try to remember that neither of your moms will ever forget you.'

Mrs Jo gave the book with a caress; and simply saying: 'Thanks; good night,' Dan thrust it into his pocket, and walked straight away to the river to recover from this unwonted mood of tenderness and confidence.

Mrs. Jo handed over the book with a gentle touch, and just said, "Thanks, good night." Dan shoved it into his pocket and headed straight to the river to shake off this unexpected feeling of warmth and trust.

Next day the travellers were off. All were in good spirits, and a cloud of handkerchiefs whitened the air as they drove away in the old bus, waving their hats to everyone and kissing their hands, especially to mother Bhaer, who said in her prophetic tone as she wiped her eyes, when the familiar rumble died away:

Next day, the travelers were off. Everyone was in good spirits, and a cloud of handkerchiefs filled the air as they drove away in the old bus, waving their hats to everyone and blowing kisses, especially to Mother Bhaer, who said in her prophetic tone as she wiped her eyes, when the familiar rumble faded away:

'I have a feeling that something is going to happen to some of them, and they will never come back to me, or come back changed. Well, I can only say, God be with my boys!'

'I have a feeling that something is going to happen to some of them, and they will never come back to me or will come back changed. Well, all I can say is, God be with my boys!'

And He was.

And He was.





Chapter 7. THE LION AND THE LAMB

When the boys were gone a lull fell upon Plumfield, and the family scattered to various places for brief outings, as August had come and all felt the need of change. The Professor took Mrs Jo to the mountains. The Laurences were at the seashore, and there Meg's family and the Bhaer boys took turns to visit, as someone must always be at home to keep things in order.

When the boys left, a quiet settled over Plumfield, and the family went off to different spots for short trips, since August had arrived and everyone felt the need for a change. The Professor took Mrs. Jo to the mountains. The Laurences headed to the beach, and Meg's family and the Bhaer boys took turns visiting, as someone always needed to stay home to keep things organized.

Mrs Meg, with Daisy, was in office when the events occurred which we are about to relate. Rob and Ted were just up from Rocky Nook, and Nan was passing a week with her friend as the only relaxation she allowed herself. Demi was off on a run with Tom, so Rob was man of the house, with old Silas as general overseer. The sea air seemed to have gone to Ted's head, for he was unusually freakish, and led his gentle aunt and poor Rob a life of it with his pranks. Octoo was worn out with the wild rides he took, and Don openly rebelled when ordered to leap and show off his accomplishments; while the girls at college were both amused and worried by the ghosts who haunted the grounds at night, the unearthly melodies that disturbed their studious hours, and the hairbreadth escapes of this restless boy by flood and field and fire. Something happened at length which effectually sobered Ted and made a lasting impression on both the boys; for sudden danger and a haunting fear turned the Lion into a lamb and the Lamb into a lion, as far as courage went.

Mrs. Meg, along with Daisy, was in her office when the events we’re about to share took place. Rob and Ted had just come back from Rocky Nook, and Nan was spending a week with her friend as her only way to unwind. Demi was out for a run with Tom, making Rob the man of the house, with old Silas overseeing everything. The sea air seemed to have gotten to Ted, as he was unusually wild and put his sweet aunt and poor Rob through a lot with his antics. Octoo was exhausted from the wild rides, and Don openly rebelled when he was told to jump and show off his skills. Meanwhile, the girls at college were both entertained and worried by the ghosts that roamed the grounds at night, the eerie melodies that interrupted their study time, and the narrow escapes of this restless boy through floods, fields, and fire. Eventually, something happened that really brought Ted back to reality and made a lasting impression on both boys; for sudden danger and a lingering fear turned the Lion into a lamb and the Lamb into a lion when it came to courage.

On the first of September—the boys never forgot the date—after a pleasant tramp and good luck with their fishing, the brothers were lounging in the barn; for Daisy had company, and the lads kept out of the way.

On September 1st—the boys never forgot the date—after a nice hike and successful fishing, the brothers were relaxing in the barn; because Daisy had guests, the guys stayed out of sight.

'I tell you what it is, Bobby, that dog is sick. He won't play, nor eat, nor drink, and acts queerly. Dan will kill us if anything happens to him,' said Ted, looking at Don, who lay near his kennel resting a moment after one of the restless wanderings which kept him vibrating between the door of Dan's room and the shady corner of the yard, where his master had settled him with an old cap to guard till he came back.

"I’m telling you, Bobby, that dog is sick. He won’t play, eat, or drink, and he’s acting strangely. Dan will kill us if anything happens to him," said Ted, looking at Don, who was lying near his kennel, taking a break after one of his restless wanderings that had him bouncing between Dan’s room and the shady corner of the yard, where his master had left him with an old cap to watch until he returned.

'It's the hot weather, perhaps. But I sometimes think he's pining for Dan. Dogs do, you know, and the poor fellow has been low in his mind ever since the boys went. Maybe something has happened to Dan. Don howled last night and can't rest. I've heard of such things,' answered Rob thoughtfully.

'Maybe it’s the heat or something. But sometimes I think he misses Dan. Dogs do that, you know, and the poor guy has been down ever since the boys left. Maybe something happened to Dan. Don howled last night and can’t settle down. I’ve heard of this sort of thing,' Rob replied, deep in thought.

'Pooh! he can't know. He's cross. I'll stir him up and take him for a run. Always makes me feel better. Hi, boy! wake up and be jolly'; and Ted snapped his fingers at the dog, who only looked at him with grim indifference.

'Pooh! He can't know. He's grumpy. I'll get him moving and take him for a run. It always makes me feel better. Hey, buddy! Wake up and be happy!' Ted snapped his fingers at the dog, who just looked at him with complete indifference.

'Better let him alone. If he isn't right tomorrow, we'll take him to Dr Watkins and see what he says.' And Rob went on watching the swallows as he lay in the hay polishing up some Latin verses he had made.

'Better leave him be. If he’s not better tomorrow, we’ll take him to Dr. Watkins and see what he thinks.' And Rob continued to watch the swallows as he lay in the hay refining some Latin verses he had written.

The spirit of perversity entered into Ted, and merely because he was told not to tease Don he went on doing it, pretending that it was for the dog's good. Don took no heed of his pats, commands, reproaches, or insults, till Ted's patience gave out; and seeing a convenient switch near by he could not resist the temptation to conquer the great hound by force, since gentleness failed to win obedience. He had the wisdom to chain Don up first; for a blow from any hand but his master's made him savage, and Ted had more than once tried the experiment, as the dog remembered. This indignity roused Don and he sat up with a growl. Rob heard it, and seeing Ted raise the switch, ran to interfere, exclaiming:

The spirit of rebellion came over Ted, and just because he was told not to tease Don, he kept doing it, pretending it was for the dog's benefit. Don ignored his pats, commands, scoldings, or insults until Ted's patience ran out; noticing a nearby switch, he couldn’t resist the urge to force the big hound into submission since being kind didn’t work. He wisely decided to chain Don up first because a hit from anyone except his master made him aggressive, and Ted had tried this before, which the dog remembered. This disrespect made Don alert, and he sat up with a growl. Rob heard it and, seeing Ted raise the switch, rushed to intervene, shouting:

'Don't touch him! Dan forbade it! Leave the poor thing in peace; I won't allow it.'

'Don't touch him! Dan said no! Just leave the poor thing alone; I won't let this happen.'

Rob seldom commanded, but when he did Master Ted had to give in. His temper was up, and Rob's masterful tone made it impossible to resist one cut at the rebellious dog before he submitted. Only a single blow, but it was a costly one; for as it fell, the dog sprang at Ted with a snarl, and Rob, rushing between the two, felt the sharp teeth pierce his leg. A word made Don let go and drop remorsefully at Rob's feet, for he loved him and was evidently sorry to have hurt his friend by mistake. With a forgiving pat Rob left him, to limp to the barn followed by Ted, whose wrath was changed to shame and sorrow when he saw the red drops on Rob's sock and the little wounds in his leg.

Rob rarely gave orders, but when he did, Master Ted couldn't resist. He was angry, and Rob's commanding tone made it impossible not to take one last swing at the disobedient dog before he backed down. It was just one hit, but it was a painful one; as it landed, the dog lunged at Ted with a growl, and when Rob dashed in between them, he felt the dog's sharp teeth bite into his leg. A simple word made Don release his grip and drop down in regret at Rob's feet because he loved him and clearly felt sorry for accidentally hurting his friend. With a forgiving pat, Rob left him and limped to the barn, followed by Ted, whose anger turned into shame and sadness when he noticed the red drops on Rob's sock and the small wounds on his leg.

'I'm awfully sorry. Why did you get in the way? Here, wash it up, and I'll get a rag to tie on it,' he said quickly filling a sponge with water and pulling out a very demoralized handkerchief. Rob usually made light of his own mishaps and was over ready to forgive if others were to blame; but now he sat quite still, looking at the purple marks with such a strange expression on his white face that Ted was troubled, though he added with a laugh: 'Why, you're not afraid of a little dig like that, are you, Bobby?'

"I'm really sorry. Why did you step in the way? Here, wash it off, and I'll grab a rag to tie on it," he said quickly, filling a sponge with water and pulling out a very worn handkerchief. Rob usually joked about his own misfortunes and was quick to forgive if others were at fault; but now he sat completely still, looking at the purple marks with such a strange expression on his pale face that Ted felt worried, even though he added with a laugh, "Come on, you're not afraid of a little bump like that, are you, Bobby?"

'I am afraid of hydrophobia. But if Don is mad I'd rather be the one to have it,' answered Rob, with a smile and a shiver.

'I’m scared of hydrophobia. But if Don is crazy, I’d rather be the one to have it,' replied Rob, smiling while shivering.

At that dreadful word Ted turned whiter than his brother, and, dropping sponge and handkerchief, stared at him with a frightened face, whispering in a tone of despair:

At that awful word, Ted turned paler than his brother, and, dropping the sponge and handkerchief, stared at him with a terrified expression, whispering in a tone of despair:

'Oh, Rob, don't say it! What shall we do, what shall we do?'

'Oh, Rob, don’t say that! What are we going to do, what are we going to do?'

'Call Nan; she will know. Don't scare Aunty, or tell a soul but Nan; she's on the back piazza; get her out here as quick as you can. I'll wash it till she comes. Maybe it's nothing; don't look so staggered, Ted. I only thought it might be, as Don is queer.'

'Call Nan; she’ll know. Don’t freak out Aunty or tell anyone but Nan; she’s on the back porch; get her out here as fast as you can. I’ll clean it up until she arrives. Maybe it’s nothing; don’t look so shocked, Ted. I just thought it might be since Don is acting strange.'

Rob tried to speak bravely; but Ted's long legs felt strangely weak as he hurried away, and it was lucky he met no one, for his face would have betrayed him. Nan was swinging luxuriously in a hammock, amusing herself with a lively treatise on croup, when an agitated boy suddenly clutched her, whispering, as he nearly pulled her overboard:

Rob tried to sound brave, but Ted's long legs felt oddly weak as he hurried away, and it was fortunate he ran into no one, because his face would have given him away. Nan was lounging comfortably in a hammock, entertaining herself with an engaging article about croup, when a frantic boy suddenly grabbed her, whispering as he nearly pulled her overboard:

'Come to Rob in the barn! Don's mad and he's bitten him, and we don't know what to do; it's all my fault; no one must know. Oh, do be quick!'

'Come to Rob in the barn! Don's angry and he’s bitten him, and we don't know what to do; it's all my fault; no one can find out. Oh, please hurry!'

Nan was on her feet at once, startled, but with her wits about her, and both were off without more words as they dodged round the house where unconscious Daisy chatted with her friends in the parlour and Aunt Meg peacefully took her afternoon nap upstairs.

Nan sprang to her feet, surprised but alert, and both of them hurried off without saying anything else as they moved around the house where the unconscious Daisy chatted with her friends in the living room and Aunt Meg peacefully napped upstairs.

Rob was braced up, and was as calm and steady as ever when they found him in the harness-room, whither he had wisely retired, to escape observation. The story was soon told, and after a look at Don, now in his kennel, sad and surly, Nan said slowly, with her eye on the full water-pan:

Rob was prepared and as calm and steady as ever when they found him in the harness room, where he had wisely gone to avoid being seen. The story was quickly told, and after glancing at Don, now in his kennel looking sad and grumpy, Nan said slowly, keeping her eye on the full water pan:

'Rob, there is one thing to do for the sake of safety, and it must be done at once. We can't wait to see if Don is—sick—or to go for a doctor. I can do it, and I will; but it is very painful, and I hate to hurt you, dear.'

'Rob, there's one thing we need to do for safety, and it has to be done right away. We can't wait to find out if Don is—sick—or to go get a doctor. I can do it, and I will; but it's very painful, and I hate to hurt you, dear.'

A most unprofessional quiver got into Nan's voice as she spoke, and her keen eyes dimmed as she looked at the two anxious young faces turned so confidingly to her for help.

A very unprofessional tremble crept into Nan's voice as she spoke, and her sharp eyes softened as she looked at the two worried young faces that turned to her so trustingly for help.

'I know, burn it; well, do it, please; I can bear it. But Ted better go away,' said Rob, with a firm setting of his lips, and a nod at his afflicted brother.

"I know, just burn it; go ahead, please; I can handle it. But Ted really needs to leave," said Rob, with his lips set firmly and a nod toward his troubled brother.

'I won't stir; I can stand it if he can, only it ought to be me!' cried Ted, with a desperate effort not to cry, so full of grief and fear and shame was he that it seemed as if he couldn't bear it like a man.

"I won't move; I can handle it if he can, but it should be me!" Ted shouted, making a desperate attempt not to cry, overwhelmed with grief, fear, and shame to the point where it felt like he couldn't take it like a man.

'He'd better stay and help; do him good,' answered Nan sternly, because, her heart was faint within her, knowing as she did all that might be in store for both poor boys. 'Keep quiet; I'll be back in a minute,' she added, going towards the house, while her quick mind hastily planned what was best to be done.

'He should stay and help; it would be good for him,' Nan replied firmly, feeling anxious inside, aware of all that could happen to both boys. 'Stay quiet; I'll be back in a minute,' she continued, heading toward the house, while her quick mind quickly figured out the best course of action.

It was ironing day, and a hot fire still burned in the empty kitchen, for the maids were upstairs resting. Nan put a slender poker to heat, and as she sat waiting for it, covered her face with her hands, asking help in this sudden need for strength, courage, and wisdom; for there was no one else to call upon, and young as she was, she knew what was to be done if she only had the nerve to do it. Any other patient would have been calmly interesting, but dear, good Robin, his father's pride, his mother's comfort, everyone's favourite and friend, that he should be in danger was very terrible; and a few hot tears dropped on the well-scoured table as Nan tried to calm her trouble by remembering how very likely it was to be all a mistake, a natural but vain alarm.

It was ironing day, and a hot fire still burned in the empty kitchen because the maids were upstairs resting. Nan heated a slender poker and, while waiting for it to warm up, covered her face with her hands, asking for help in this sudden need for strength, courage, and wisdom; there was no one else to turn to, and even though she was young, she knew what needed to be done if she just had the nerve to do it. Any other patient would have been a calm interest, but dear, good Robin—his father's pride, his mother's comfort, everyone's favorite and friend—was in danger, which was truly terrifying; a few hot tears fell onto the well-cleaned table as Nan tried to ease her worries by reminding herself how likely it was that this was all a mistake, a natural but misguided panic.

'I must make light of it, or the boys will break down, and then there will be a panic. Why afflict and frighten everyone when all is in doubt? I won't. I'll take Rob to Dr Morrison at once, and have the dog man see Don. Then, having done all we can, we will either laugh at our scare—if it is one—or be ready for whatever comes. Now for my poor boy.'

'I have to downplay it, or the guys will lose it, and then there will be chaos. Why stress everyone out when everything is uncertain? I won’t do that. I’ll take Rob to Dr. Morrison right away and get the dog guy to check on Don. Then, after we’ve done everything we can, we’ll either laugh off our worries—if it’s nothing—or be prepared for whatever happens. Now, time to take care of my poor boy.'

Armed with the red-hot poker, a pitcher of ice-water, and several handkerchiefs from the clotheshorse, Nan went back to the barn ready to do her best in this her most serious 'emergency case'. The boys sat like statues, one of despair, the other of resignation; and it took all Nan's boasted nerve to do her work quickly and well.

Armed with a red-hot poker, a pitcher of ice water, and several handkerchiefs from the clothesline, Nan headed back to the barn, prepared to do her best in this, her most serious 'emergency case.' The boys sat like statues, one showing despair and the other resignation; and it took all of Nan's claimed courage to do her work quickly and effectively.

'Now, Rob, only a minute, then we are safe. Stand by, Ted; he may be a bit faintish.'

'Now, Rob, just a minute, then we’ll be safe. Hang tight, Ted; he might be feeling a little weak.'

Rob shut his eyes, clinched his hands, and sat like a hero. Ted knelt beside him, white as a sheet, and as weak as a girl; for the pangs of remorse were rending him, and his heart failed at the thought of all this pain because of his wilfulness. It was all over in a moment, with only one little groan; but when Nan looked to her assistant to hand the water, poor Ted needed it the most, for he had fainted away, and lay on the floor in a pathetic heap of arms and legs.

Rob closed his eyes, clenched his fists, and sat like a hero. Ted knelt beside him, pale and as weak as a girl; the agony of remorse was tearing him apart, and the thought of all this suffering because of his stubbornness made his heart sink. It was all over in an instant, with just a small groan; but when Nan turned to her assistant to grab the water, it was poor Ted who needed it most, as he had fainted and lay on the floor in a helpless jumble of arms and legs.

Rob laughed, and, cheered by that unexpected sound, Nan bound up the wound with hands that never trembled, though great drops stood on her forehead; and she shared the water with patient number one before she turned to patient number two. Ted was much ashamed, and quite broken in spirit, when he found how he had failed at the critical moment, and begged them not to tell, as he really could not help it; then by way of finishing his utter humiliation, a burst of hysterical tears disgraced his manly soul, and did him a world of good.

Rob laughed, and, encouraged by that unexpected sound, Nan quickly bandaged the wound with steady hands, even though sweat dripped down her forehead; she shared the water with the first patient before moving on to the second. Ted felt very ashamed and completely defeated when he realized how he had messed up at the crucial moment, and he begged them not to say anything, insisting that he really couldn’t help it; then, to add to his total humiliation, a surge of hysterical tears embarrassed him further but ended up doing him a world of good.

'Never mind, never mind, we are all right now, and no one need be the wiser,' said Nan briskly, as poor Ted hiccoughed on Rob's shoulder, laughing and crying in the most tempestuous manner, while his brother soothed him, and the young doctor fanned both with Silas's old straw hat.

"Don't worry about it, we're all good now, and no one needs to know," said Nan cheerfully, as poor Ted hiccupped on Rob's shoulder, laughing and crying all at once, while his brother calmed him down, and the young doctor fanned both of them with Silas's old straw hat.

'Now, boys, listen to me and remember what I say. We won't alarm anyone yet, for I've made up my mind our scare is all nonsense. Don was out lapping the water as I came by, and I don't believe he's mad any more than I am. Still, to ease our minds and compose our spirits, and get our guilty faces out of sight for a while, I think we had better drive into town to my old friend Dr Morrison, and let him just take a look at my work, and give us some quieting little dose; for we are all rather shaken by this flurry. Sit still, Rob; and Ted, you harness up while I run and get my hat and tell Aunty to excuse me to Daisy. I don't know those Penniman girls, and she will be glad of our room at tea, and we'll have a cosy bite at my house, and come home as gay as larks.'

"Okay, guys, listen up and remember what I say. We won’t freak anyone out just yet because I believe our scare is totally silly. Don was out there lapping up the water when I passed by, and I don’t think he’s lost his mind any more than I am. Still, to calm our nerves and get our guilty faces out of sight for a bit, I think we should head into town to see my old friend Dr. Morrison. Let him take a look at my work and give us something to help us settle down because we’re all a bit rattled by this commotion. Sit tight, Rob; and Ted, you can get the harness ready while I grab my hat and let Aunty know I need to excuse myself to Daisy. I don’t know those Penniman girls, and Aunty will be happy to have the extra space at tea. We’ll have a nice snack at my place and come back feeling cheerful as ever."

Nan talked on as a vent for the hidden emotions which professional pride would not allow her to show, and the boys approved her plan at once; for action is always easier than quiet waiting. Ted went staggering away to wash his face at the pump, and rub some colour into his cheeks before he harnessed the horse. Rob lay tranquilly on the hay, looking up at the swallows again as he lived through some very memorable moments. Boy as he was, the thought of death coming suddenly to him, and in this way, might well make him sober; for it is a very solemn thing to be arrested in the midst of busy life by the possibility of the great change. There were no sins to be repented of, few faults, and many happy, dutiful years to remember with infinite comfort. So Rob had no fears to daunt him, no regrets to sadden, and best of all, a very strong and simple piety to sustain and cheer him.

Nan talked on as a way to express the emotions she couldn't show because of her professional pride, and the boys quickly supported her plan; action is always easier than waiting quietly. Ted went off to wash his face at the pump and freshen up his cheeks before he hitched the horse. Rob lay back on the hay, watching the swallows again as he thought about some very memorable moments. Even though he was just a boy, the thought of death suddenly coming to him, like this, was enough to make him serious; it's a heavy thing to be interrupted in the midst of a busy life by the possibility of such a big change. He had no sins to regret, few faults, and many happy, fulfilling years to look back on with great comfort. So Rob had no fears to frighten him, no regrets to weigh him down, and best of all, a strong and simple faith to support and uplift him.

'Mein Vater,' was his first thought; for Rob was very near the Professor's heart, and the loss of his eldest would have been a bitter blow. These words, whispered with a tremble of the lips that had been so firm when the hot iron burned, recalled that other Father who is always near, always tender and helpful; and, folding his hands, Rob said the heartiest little prayer he ever prayed, there on the hay, to the soft twitter of the brooding birds. It did him good; and wisely laying all his fear and doubt and trouble in God's hand, the boy felt ready for whatever was to come, and from that hour kept steadily before him the one duty that was plain—to be brave and cheerful, keep silent, and hope for the best.

'My father,' was his first thought; for Rob was very close to the Professor's heart, and losing his eldest would have been a harsh blow. These words, whispered with trembling lips that had been so steady when the hot iron burned, brought to mind that other Father who is always near, always kind and supportive; and, folding his hands, Rob said the most heartfelt little prayer he ever prayed, right there on the hay, to the gentle chirping of the nesting birds. It made him feel better; and wisely placing all his fear, doubt, and troubles in God's hands, the boy felt ready for whatever was to come, and from that moment on, he focused on the one clear duty—to be brave and cheerful, stay quiet, and hope for the best.

Nan stole her hat, and left a note on Daisy's pincushion, saying she had taken the boys to drive, and all would be out of the way till after tea. Then she hurried back and found her patients much better, the one for work, the other for rest. In they got, and, putting Rob on the back seat with his leg up drove away, looking as gay and care-free as if nothing had happened.

Nan took her hat and left a note on Daisy's pincushion, saying she had taken the boys out for a drive and that they would be gone until after tea. Then she rushed back and found her patients feeling much better, one ready to work and the other needing to rest. They all got in, putting Rob in the back seat with his leg propped up, and drove away, looking as cheerful and carefree as if nothing had happened.

Dr Morrison made light of the affair, but told Nan she had done right; and as the much-relieved lads went downstairs, he added in a whisper: 'Send the dog off for a while, and keep your eye on the boy. Don't let him know it, and report to me if anything seems wrong. One never knows in these cases. No harm to be careful.'

Dr. Morrison brushed off the situation but told Nan she did the right thing; and as the greatly relieved guys headed downstairs, he added in a whisper: "Send the dog away for a bit, and keep an eye on the boy. Don’t let him realize it, and let me know if anything seems off. You never know in these situations. Better to be safe."

Nan nodded, and feeling much relieved now that the responsibility was off her shoulders, took the lads to Dr Watkins, who promised to come out later and examine Don. A merry tea at Nan's house, which was kept open for her all summer, did them good, and by the time they got home in the cool of the evening no sign of the panic remained but Ted's heavy eyes, and a slight limp when Rob walked. As the guests were still chattering on the front piazza they retired to the back, and Ted soothed his remorseful soul by swinging Rob in the hammock, while Nan told stories till the dog man arrived.

Nan nodded, and feeling much relieved now that the responsibility was off her shoulders, took the guys to Dr. Watkins, who promised to come by later and check on Don. A cheerful tea at Nan's house, which she kept open for them all summer, did them good, and by the time they got home in the cool of the evening, no trace of the panic remained except for Ted's heavy eyes and a slight limp when Rob walked. As the guests were still chatting on the front porch, they moved to the back, and Ted eased his guilty feelings by swinging Rob in the hammock, while Nan told stories until the dog man arrived.

He said Don was a little under the weather, but no more mad than the grey kitten that purred round his legs while the examination went on.

He said Don was feeling a bit off, but no more upset than the gray kitten that purred around his legs while the exam was happening.

'He wants his master, and feels the heat. Fed too well, perhaps. I'll keep him a few weeks and send him home all right,' said Dr Watkins, as Don laid his great head in his hand, and kept his intelligent eyes on his face, evidently feeling that this man understood his trials, and knew what to do for him.

'He wants his owner, and he’s feeling the heat. Maybe he’s been spoiled too much. I’ll keep him for a few weeks and then send him back home just fine,' said Dr. Watkins, as Don rested his large head in his hand, keeping his sharp eyes on his face, clearly sensing that this man understood his struggles and knew how to help him.

So Don departed without a murmur, and our three conspirators took counsel together how to spare the family all anxiety, and give Rob the rest his leg demanded. Fortunately, he always spent many hours in his little study, so he could lie on the sofa with a book in his hand as long as he liked, without exciting any remark. Being of a quiet temperament, he did not worry himself or Nan with useless fears, but believed what was told him, and dismissing all dark possibilities, went cheerfully on his way, soon recovering from the shock of what he called 'our scare'.

So Don left without saying a word, and our three conspirators got together to figure out how to keep the family from worrying and give Rob the rest he needed for his leg. Luckily, he spent many hours in his small study, so he could lie on the sofa with a book in his hand for as long as he wanted without drawing any attention. Being a calm person, he didn't stress himself or Nan with unnecessary worries; he trusted what he was told and pushed aside any dark thoughts, continuing on cheerfully and quickly recovering from what he referred to as "our scare."

But excitable Ted was harder to manage, and it took all Nan's wit and wisdom to keep him from betraying the secret; for it was best to say nothing and spare all discussion of the subject for Rob's sake. Ted's remorse preyed upon him, and having no 'Mum' to confide in, he was very miserable. By day he devoted himself to Rob, waiting on him, talking to him, gazing anxiously at him, and worrying the good fellow very much; though he wouldn't own it, since Ted found comfort in it. But at night, when all was quiet, Ted's lively imagination and heavy heart got the better of him, and kept him awake, or set him walking in his sleep. Nan had her eye on him, and more than once administered a little dose to give him a rest, read to him, scolded him, and when she caught him haunting the house in the watches of the night, threatened to lock him up if he did not stay in his bed. This wore off after a while; but a change came over the freakish boy, and everyone observed it, even before his mother returned to ask what they had done to quench the Lion's spirits. He was gay, but not so heedless; and often when the old wilfulness beset him, he would check it sharply, look at Rob, and give up, or stalk away to have his sulk out alone. He no longer made fun of his brother's old-fashioned ways and bookish tastes, but treated him with a new and very marked respect, which touched and pleased modest Rob, and much amazed all observers. It seemed as if he felt that he owed him reparation for the foolish act that might have cost him his life; and love being stronger than will, Ted forgot his pride, and paid his debt like an honest boy.

But excitable Ted was harder to handle, and it took all of Nan's cleverness and wisdom to keep him from revealing the secret; it was better to say nothing and avoid discussing it for Rob's sake. Ted's guilt weighed on him, and without a 'Mum' to confide in, he felt really miserable. During the day, he focused on Rob, waiting on him, talking to him, watching him anxiously, and worrying the poor guy a lot, though he wouldn't admit it since Ted found comfort in doing so. But at night, when everything was quiet, Ted's active imagination and heavy heart got the best of him, keeping him awake or causing him to sleepwalk. Nan kept an eye on him, and more than once gave him a little dose to help him rest, read to him, scolded him, and when she caught him wandering the house during the night, threatened to lock him up if he didn't stay in bed. This eventually faded, but a change came over the unpredictable boy, and everyone noticed it, even before his mother returned to ask what they had done to dampen the Lion's spirits. He was cheerful, but not as reckless; often, when his old stubbornness flared up, he would catch himself, look at Rob, and back down, or walk away to sulk by himself. He no longer teased his brother's old-fashioned habits and love for books, but treated him with a new and noticeable respect, which touched and pleased modest Rob and amazed all those watching. It seemed like he felt he owed him something for the foolish act that could have cost him his life; and since love was stronger than pride, Ted set aside his ego and repaid his debt like an honest boy.

'I don't understand it,' said Mrs Jo, after a week of home life, much impressed by the good behaviour of her younger son. 'Ted is such a saint, I'm afraid we are going to lose him. Is it Meg's sweet influence, or Daisy's fine cooking, or the pellets I catch Nan giving him on the sly? Some witchcraft has been at work during my absence, and this will-o'-the-wisp is so amiable, quiet, and obedient, I don't know him.'

"I don't get it," said Mrs. Jo, after a week at home, really impressed by her younger son's good behavior. "Ted is such a saint; I'm worried we're going to lose him. Is it Meg's sweet influence, or Daisy's great cooking, or the treats I catch Nan slipping him on the side? Some kind of magic has been at play while I was gone, and this elusive kid is so pleasant, quiet, and obedient that I hardly recognize him."

'He is growing up, heart's-dearest, and being a precocious plant, he begins to bloom early. I also see a change in my Robchen. He is more manly and serious than ever, and is seldom far from me, as if his love for the old papa was growing with his growth. Our boys will often surprise us in this way, Jo, and we can only rejoice over them and leave them to become what Gott pleases.'

'He is growing up, my dearest, and being a precocious child, he starts to blossom early. I also notice a change in my Robchen. He is more mature and serious than ever, and he rarely leaves my side, almost as if his love for his old dad is deepening along with his growth. Our kids often surprise us like this, Jo, and we can only celebrate them and let them become whatever God wants.'

As the Professor spoke, his eyes rested proudly on the brothers, who came walking up the steps together, Ted's arm over Rob's shoulder as he listened attentively to some geological remarks Rob was making on a stone he held. Usually, Ted made fun of such tastes, and loved to lay boulders in the student's path, put brickbats under his pillow, gravel in his shoes, or send parcels of dirt by express to 'Prof. R. M. Bhaer'. Lately, he had treated Rob's hobbies respectfully, and had begun to appreciate the good qualities of this quiet brother whom he had always loved but rather undervalued, till his courage under fire won Ted's admiration, and made it impossible to forget a fault, the consequences of which might have been so terrible. The leg was still lame, though doing well, and Ted was always offering an arm as support, gazing anxiously at his brother, and trying to guess his wants; for regret was still keen in Ted's soul, and Rob's forgiveness only made it deeper. A fortunate slip on the stairs gave Rob an excuse for limping, and no one but Nan and Ted saw the wound; so the secret was safe up to this time.

As the Professor spoke, his eyes proudly rested on the brothers, who walked up the steps together, with Ted’s arm over Rob’s shoulder as he listened attentively to some geological comments Rob was making about a stone he held. Usually, Ted would mock such interests and loved to trip his brother up with boulders, put bricks under his pillow, fill his shoes with gravel, or send parcels of dirt by express to 'Prof. R. M. Bhaer'. Recently, though, he had started to respect Rob’s hobbies and appreciate the good qualities of this quiet brother whom he had always loved but somewhat undervalued, until Rob’s bravery earned Ted’s admiration and made it hard to overlook a mistake with consequences that could have been disastrous. Rob’s leg was still lame, though improving, and Ted constantly offered his arm for support, looking anxiously at his brother and trying to figure out what he needed; regret weighed heavily on Ted, and Rob’s forgiveness only deepened that feeling. A fortunate slip on the stairs provided Rob with a reason to limp, and only Nan and Ted noticed the injury; so the secret remained safe for now.

'We are talking about you, my lads. Come in and tell us what good fairy has been at work while we were gone. Or is it because absence sharpens our eyes, that we find such pleasant changes when we come back?' said Mrs Jo, patting the sofa on either side, while the Professor forgot his piles of letters to admire the pleasing prospect of his wife in a bower of arms, as the boys sat down beside her, smiling affectionately, but feeling a little guilty; for till now 'Mum' and 'Vater' knew every event in their boyish lives.

"We're talking about you, guys. Come in and tell us what good things have happened while we were away. Or is it just that being away makes us notice all the nice changes when we come back?" said Mrs. Jo, patting the sofa beside her. The Professor set aside his piles of letters to take in the lovely sight of his wife surrounded by family as the boys settled down next to her, smiling warmly but feeling a bit guilty; after all, up until now, 'Mom' and 'Dad' knew everything that happened in their lives.

'Oh, it's only because Bobby and I have been alone so much; we are sort of twins. I stir him up a bit, and he steadies me a great deal. You and father do the same, you know. Nice plan. I like it'; and Ted felt that he had settled the matter capitally.

"Oh, it's just that Bobby and I have spent so much time alone; we're kind of like twins. I get him excited, and he calms me down a lot. You and Dad do the same, you know. It’s a nice idea. I really like it," and Ted felt that he had handled the situation perfectly.

'Mother won't thank you for comparing yourself to her, Ted. I'm flattered at being like father in any way. I try to be,' answered Rob, as they laughed at Ted's compliment.

'Mom won't thank you for comparing yourself to her, Ted. I'm flattered to be anything like Dad. I try to be,' Rob replied, as they laughed at Ted's compliment.

'I do thank him, for it's true; and if you, Robin, do half as much for your brother as Papa has for me, your life won't be a failure,' said Mrs Jo heartily. 'I'm very glad to see you helping one another. It's the right way, and we can't begin too soon to try to understand the needs, virtues, and failings of those nearest us. Love should not make us blind to faults, nor familiarity make us too ready to blame the shortcomings we see. So work away, my sonnies, and give us more surprises of this sort as often as you like.'

"I really appreciate him, because it's true; and if you, Robin, do even half as much for your brother as Dad has for me, you won't have a failed life," said Mrs. Jo earnestly. "I'm really happy to see you two helping each other. It's the right thing to do, and we can’t start too early in trying to understand the needs, strengths, and flaws of those closest to us. Love shouldn’t blind us to their faults, and being too familiar shouldn’t make us quick to criticize the shortcomings we notice. So keep it up, my boys, and surprise us with more of this kind of thing whenever you want."

'The liebe Mutter has said all. I too am well pleased at the friendly brother-warmth I find. It is good for everyone; long may it last!' and Professor Bhaer nodded at the boys, who looked gratified, but rather at a loss how to respond to these flattering remarks.

'The dear mother has said it all. I’m also really pleased with the friendly, brotherly warmth I see. It’s good for everyone; may it last a long time!' Professor Bhaer nodded at the boys, who looked happy but were somewhat unsure how to respond to these flattering comments.

Rob wisely kept silent, fearing to say too much; but Ted burst out, finding it impossible to help telling something:

Rob wisely stayed quiet, afraid of saying too much; but Ted couldn't hold back, finding it impossible not to share something:

'The fact is I've been finding out what a brave good chap Bobby is, and I'm trying to make up for all the bother I've been to him. I knew he was awfully wise, but I thought him rather soft, because he liked books better than larks, and was always fussing about his conscience. But I begin to see that it isn't the fellows who talk the loudest and show off best that are the manliest. No, sir! quiet old Bob is a hero and a trump, and I'm proud of him; so would you be if you knew all about it.'

I've been realizing what a brave, good guy Bobby is, and I'm trying to make up for all the trouble I've caused him. I knew he was really smart, but I thought he was kind of soft because he preferred books over fun and was always worrying about his conscience. But I'm starting to see that it's not the guys who talk the loudest and show off the most who are the strongest. No way! Quiet old Bob is a hero and a great guy, and I'm proud of him; you would be too if you knew the whole story.

Here a look from Rob brought Ted up with a round turn; he stopped short, grew red, and clapped his hand on his mouth in dismay.

Here, a look from Rob made Ted stop abruptly; he froze, turned red, and covered his mouth in shock.

'Well, are we not to “know all about it”?' asked Mrs Jo quickly; for her sharp eye saw signs of danger and her maternal heart felt that something had come between her and her sons. 'Boys,' she went on solemnly, 'I suspect that the change we talk about is not altogether the effect of growing up, as we say. It strikes me that Ted has been in mischief and Rob has got him out of some scrape; hence the lovely mood of my bad boy and the sober one of my conscientious son, who never hides anything from his mother.'

"Well, aren’t we supposed to 'know all about it'?" Mrs. Jo asked quickly; her sharp eye noticed signs of trouble, and her motherly instincts sensed that something had come between her and her sons. "Boys," she continued seriously, "I suspect that the change we’re talking about isn’t just because you’re growing up, as we say. It seems to me that Ted has been up to some mischief and Rob has rescued him from some trouble; that explains the cheerful mood of my troublemaker and the serious demeanor of my responsible son, who never hides anything from his mom."

Rob was as red as Ted now, but after a moment's hesitation he looked up and answered with an air of relief:

Rob was as red as Ted now, but after a moment's hesitation, he looked up and answered with a sense of relief:

'Yes, mother, that's it; but it's all over and no harm done, and I think we'd better let it be, for a while at least. I did feel guilty to keep anything from you, but now you know so much I shall not worry and you needn't either. Ted's sorry, I don't mind, and it has done us both good.'

'Yes, mom, that’s it; but it’s all over and no harm done, and I think we should just leave it alone for now. I felt guilty about keeping anything from you, but now that you know so much, I won’t worry, and you don’t have to either. Ted’s sorry, I don’t mind, and it’s done us both some good.'

Mrs Jo looked at Ted, who winked hard but bore the look like a man; then she turned to Rob, who smiled at her so cheerfully that she felt reassured; but something in his face struck her, and she saw what it was that made him seem older, graver, yet more lovable than ever. It was the look pain of mind, as well as body, brings, and the patience of a sweet submission to some inevitable trial. Like a flash she guessed that some danger had been near her boy, and the glances she had caught between the two lads and Nan confirmed her fears.

Mrs. Jo looked at Ted, who winked hard but still had a serious expression; then she turned to Rob, who smiled at her so cheerfully that she felt reassured. But something in his face caught her attention, and she realized what it was that made him seem older, more serious, yet more lovable than ever. It was the look that pain, both mental and physical, brings, along with the patience of someone sweetly accepting an unavoidable challenge. In an instant, she guessed that some danger had been close to her boy, and the glances she had noticed between the two guys and Nan confirmed her worries.

'Rob, dear, you have been ill, hurt, or seriously troubled by Ted? Tell me at once; I will not have any secrets now. Boys sometimes suffer all their lives from neglected accidents or carelessness. Fritz, make them speak out!'

'Rob, sweetheart, have you been sick, hurt, or really upset by Ted? Tell me right away; I won't allow any secrets now. Guys can carry the weight of ignored accidents or carelessness for their whole lives. Fritz, make them spill it!'

Mr Bhaer put down his papers and came to stand before them, saying in a tone that quieted Mrs Jo, and gave the boys courage:

Mr. Bhaer put down his papers and stood in front of them, speaking in a tone that calmed Mrs. Jo and encouraged the boys:

'My sons, give us the truth. We can bear it; do not hold it back to spare us. Ted knows we forgive much because we love him, so be frank, all two.'

'My sons, tell us the truth. We can handle it; don’t hold back to protect us. Ted knows we forgive a lot because we love him, so be honest, both of you.'

Ted instantly dived among the sofa pillows and kept there, with only a pair of scarlet ears visible, while Rob in a few words told the little story, truthfully, but as gently as he could, hastening to add the comfortable assurance that Don was not mad, the wound nearly well, and no danger would ever come of it.

Ted quickly plunged into the sofa pillows and stayed there, with just a pair of bright red ears sticking out, while Rob briefly shared the little story, honestly but as gently as possible, rushing to add the reassuring news that Don wasn't angry, the injury was almost healed, and there was no danger at all.

But Mrs Jo grew so pale he had to put his arms about her, and his father turned and walked away, exclaiming: 'Ach Himmel!' in a tone of such mingled pain, relief, and gratitude, that Ted pulled an extra pillow over his head to smother the sound. They were all right in a minute; but such news is always a shock, even if the peril is past, and Mrs Jo hugged her boy close till his father came and took him away, saying with a strong shake of both hands and a quiver in his voice:

But Mrs. Jo turned so pale that he had to wrap his arms around her, and his father turned and walked away, exclaiming, "Oh, heaven!" in a tone filled with pain, relief, and gratitude, prompting Ted to pull an extra pillow over his head to block out the sound. They were all okay in a minute; however, such news is always shocking, even when the danger has passed, and Mrs. Jo held her boy tight until his father came and took him away, saying with a firm shake of both hands and a tremble in his voice:

'To be in danger of one's life tries a man's mettle, and you bear it well; but I cannot spare my good boy yet; thank Gott, we keep him safe!'

'Being in danger of your life tests a person's character, and you handle it well; but I can't lose my good boy just yet; thank goodness we keep him safe!'

A smothered sound, between a choke and a groan, came from under the pillows, and the writhing of Ted's long legs so plainly expressed despair that his mother relented towards him, and burrowing till she found a tousled yellow head, pulled it out and smoothed it, exclaiming with an irrepressible laugh, though her cheeks were wet with tears:

A muffled sound, part choking and part groaning, came from under the pillows, and the way Ted's long legs twisted around clearly showed his despair. His mother softened at the sight, and after digging around until she found his messy yellow hair, she pulled it out and smoothed it down, letting out an uncontrollable laugh even though her cheeks were wet with tears:

'Come and be forgiven, poor sinner! I know you have suffered enough, and I won't say a word; only if harm had come to Rob you would have made me more miserable than yourself. Oh, Teddy, Teddy, do try to cure that wilful spirit of yours before it is too late!'

'Come and be forgiven, poor sinner! I know you've been through a lot, and I won't say a word; just know that if anything happened to Rob, it would make me even more miserable than you. Oh, Teddy, Teddy, please try to fix that stubborn spirit of yours before it’s too late!'

'Oh, Mum, I do try! I never can forget this—I hope it's cured me; if it hasn't, I am afraid I ain't worth saving,' answered Ted, pulling his own hair as the only way of expressing his deep remorse.

'Oh, Mom, I really try! I can never forget this—I hope it’s fixed me; if it hasn’t, I’m afraid I’m not worth saving,' answered Ted, tugging at his own hair as the only way to show his deep regret.

'Yes, you are, my dear; I felt just so at fifteen when Amy was nearly drowned, and Marmee helped me as I'll help you. Come to me, Teddy, when the evil one gets hold of you, and together we'll rout him. Ah, me! I've had many a tussle with that old Apollyon, and often got worsted, but not always. Come under my shield, and we'll fight till we win.'

'Yes, you are, my dear; I felt that way when I was fifteen, when Amy almost drowned, and Marmee helped me just like I'll help you. Come to me, Teddy, when the bad one gets to you, and we'll drive him away together. Ah, I've had a lot of battles with that old Apollyon and often lost, but not always. Come under my protection, and we'll fight until we win.'

No one spoke for a minute as Ted and his mother laughed and cried in one handkerchief, and Rob stood with his father's arm round him so happy that all was told and forgiven, though never to be forgotten; for such experiences do one good, and knit hearts that love more closely together.

No one said anything for a minute while Ted and his mom laughed and cried into the same handkerchief, and Rob stood with his dad's arm around him, feeling so happy that everything was out in the open and forgiven, even if it would never be forgotten; because experiences like these are good for you and bring the hearts of those who love even closer together.

Presently Ted rose straight up and going to his father, said bravely and humbly:

Presently, Ted stood up straight and walked over to his father, saying boldly and respectfully:

'I ought to be punished. Please do it; but first say you forgive me, as Rob does.'

'I should be punished. Go ahead; but first, say you forgive me, like Rob does.'

'Always that, mein Sohn, seventy time seven, if needs be, else I am not worthy the name you give me. The punishment has come; I can give no greater. Let it not be in vain. It will not with the help of the mother and the All Father. Room here for both, always!'

'Always that, my son, seventy times seven, if necessary, otherwise I am not worthy of the name you call me. The punishment has arrived; I can't give any greater. Let it not be in vain. It won't be with the help of the mother and the All Father. There's always room here for both!'

The good Professor opened his arms and embraced his boys like a true German, not ashamed to express by gesture or by word the fatherly emotions an American would have compressed into a slap on the shoulder and a brief 'All right'.

The good Professor opened his arms and hugged his boys like a true German, unashamed to show his fatherly feelings through gestures or words, unlike an American who would just give a quick slap on the shoulder and say, 'All right.'

Mrs Jo sat and enjoyed the prospect like a romantic soul as she was, and then they had a quiet talk together, saying freely all that was in their hearts, and finding much comfort in the confidence which comes when love casts out fear. It was agreed that nothing be said except to Nan, who was to be thanked and rewarded for her courage, discretion, and fidelity.

Mrs. Jo sat and enjoyed the moment like the romantic she was, and then they had a calm conversation, openly sharing everything in their hearts and finding a lot of comfort in the trust that comes when love dispels fear. They agreed that nothing would be said except to Nan, who was to be thanked and rewarded for her courage, discretion, and loyalty.

'I always knew that girl had the making of a fine woman in her, and this proves it. No panics and shrieks and faintings and fuss, but calm sense and energetic skill. Dear child, what can I give or do to show my gratitude?' said Mrs Jo enthusiastically.

'I always knew that girl had the potential to be an amazing woman, and this proves it. No panic, no screaming, no fainting or drama, just clear thinking and decisive action. Dear child, what can I give or do to show my gratitude?' said Mrs. Jo enthusiastically.

'Make Tom clear out and leave her in peace,' suggested Ted, almost himself again, though a pensive haze still partially obscured his native gaiety.

"Have Tom clear out and leave her alone," suggested Ted, almost back to his old self, although a thoughtful fog still partly dulled his natural cheerfulness.

'Yes, do! he frets her like a mosquito. She forbade him to come out here while she stayed, and packed him off with Demi. I like old Tom, but he is a regular noodle about Nan,' added Rob, as he went away to help his father with the accumulated letters.

'Yeah, definitely! He annoys her like a mosquito. She told him not to come out here while she was staying and sent him off with Demi. I like old Tom, but he’s really clueless about Nan,' Rob added as he went off to help his dad with the pile of letters.

'I'll do it!' said Mrs Jo decidedly. 'That girl's career shall not be hampered by a foolish boy's fancy. In a moment of weariness she may give in, and then it's all over. Wiser women have done so and regretted it all their lives. Nan shall earn her place first, and prove that she can fill it; then she may marry if she likes, and can find a man worthy of her.'

"I'll do it!" said Mrs. Jo firmly. "That girl's future won't be affected by some silly boy's crush. In a moment of tiredness, she might give in, and then it’s all over. Smarter women have done the same and regretted it for the rest of their lives. Nan will earn her place first and show that she can handle it; then she can marry if she wants and if she finds a man who's good enough for her."

But Mrs Jo's help was not needed; for love and gratitude can work miracles, and when youth, beauty, accident, and photography are added, success is sure; as was proved in the case of the unsuspecting but too susceptible Thomas.

But Mrs. Jo's help wasn't necessary; because love and gratitude can do wonders, and when you throw in youth, beauty, chance, and photography, success is guaranteed; as was demonstrated in the situation of the unsuspecting but overly impressionable Thomas.





Chapter 8. JOSIE PLAYS MERMAID

While the young Bhaers were having serious experiences at home, Josie was enjoying herself immensely at Rocky Nook; for the Laurences knew how to make summer idleness both charming and wholesome. Bess was very fond of her little cousin; Mrs Amy felt that whether her niece was an actress or not she must be a gentlewoman, and gave her the social training which marks the well-bred woman everywhere; while Uncle Laurie was never happier than when rowing, riding, playing, or lounging with two gay girls beside him. Josie bloomed like a wild flower in this free life, Bess grew rosy, brisk, and merry, and both were great favourites with the neighbours, whose villas were by the shore or perched on the cliffs along the pretty bay.

While the young Bhaers were having serious experiences at home, Josie was having a fantastic time at Rocky Nook; the Laurences knew how to make summer relaxation both enjoyable and beneficial. Bess loved her little cousin; Mrs. Amy believed that whether her niece became an actress or not, she had to be a lady, and provided her with the social skills that define a well-bred woman everywhere. Uncle Laurie was happiest when he was rowing, riding, playing, or just hanging out with the two cheerful girls by his side. Josie thrived like a wildflower in this carefree environment, Bess became rosy, lively, and joyful, and both were big favorites with the neighbors, whose villas lined the shore or were perched on the cliffs above the beautiful bay.

One crumpled rose-leaf disturbed Josie's peace, one baffled wish filled her with a longing which became a mania, and kept her as restless and watchful as a detective with a case to 'work up'. Miss Cameron, the great actress, had hired one of the villas and retired thither to rest and 'create' a new part for next season. She saw no one but a friend or two, had a private beach, and was invisible except during her daily drive, or when the opera-glasses of curious gazers were fixed on a blue figure disporting itself in the sea. The Laurences knew her, but respected her privacy, and after a call left her in peace till she expressed a wish for society—a courtesy which she remembered and repaid later, as we shall see.

One crumpled rose leaf disrupted Josie's peace, a puzzling desire filled her with a longing that turned into an obsession, making her as restless and alert as a detective working on a case. Miss Cameron, the famous actress, had rented one of the villas to rest and develop a new role for next season. She saw only a friend or two, had a private beach, and was mostly unseen except during her daily drive or when curious onlookers fixed their opera glasses on a blue figure frolicking in the sea. The Laurences knew her but respected her privacy; after a visit, they left her in peace until she indicated a desire for company—a courtesy she remembered and returned later, as we will see.

But Josie was like a thirsty fly buzzing about a sealed honey-pot, for this nearness to her idol was both delightful and maddening. She pined to see, hear, talk with, and study this great and happy woman who could thrill thousands by her art, and win friends by her virtue, benevolence, and beauty. This was the sort of actress the girl meant to be, and few could object if the gift was really hers; for the stage needs just such women to purify and elevate the profession which should teach as well as amuse. If kindly Miss Cameron had known what passionate love and longing burned in the bosom of the little girl whom she idly observed skipping over the rocks, splashing about the beach, or galloping past her gate on a Shetland pony, she would have made her happy by a look or a word. But being tired with her winter's work and busy with her new part, the lady took no more notice of this young neighbour than of the sea-gulls in the bay or the daisies dancing in the fields. Nosegays left on her doorstep, serenades under her garden-wall, and the fixed stare of admiring eyes were such familiar things that she scarcely minded them; and Josie grew desperate when all her little attempts failed.

But Josie was like a thirsty fly buzzing around a sealed honey jar, because being close to her idol was both exciting and frustrating. She longed to see, hear, talk to, and learn from this incredible and joyful woman who could move thousands with her talent and make friends through her kindness, generosity, and beauty. This was the kind of actress Josie wanted to become, and few could argue against it if she truly had the talent; the stage needs women like her to uplift and improve a profession that should educate as well as entertain. If kind Miss Cameron had known about the intense love and yearning that filled the heart of the little girl she casually saw skipping over the rocks, splashing around the beach, or riding past her gate on a Shetland pony, she would have made her day with just a glance or a word. But, worn out from her winter work and busy with her new role, the woman barely noticed her young neighbor any more than she noticed the seagulls in the bay or the daisies swaying in the fields. Bouquets left on her doorstep, serenades under her garden wall, and the persistent gaze of admiring eyes were so common that she hardly paid attention to them; and Josie felt desperate when all her little efforts failed.

'I might climb that pine-tree and tumble off on her piazza roof, or get Sheltie to throw me just at her gate and be taken in fainting. It's no use to try to drown myself when she is bathing. I can't sink, and she'd only send a man to pull me out. What can I do? I will see her and tell her my hopes and make her say I can act some day. Mamma would believe her; and if—oh, if she only would let me study with her, what perfect joy that would be!'

'I could climb that pine tree and fall onto her porch roof, or have Sheltie throw me right at her gate so I could be carried in pretending to faint. There's no point in trying to drown myself while she's swimming. I can't drown, and she'd just send someone to pull me out. What can I do? I’ll see her and share my hopes, making her agree that I can act someday. Mom would believe her; and if—oh, if she would just let me study with her, it would be such perfect joy!'

Josie made these remarks one afternoon as she and Bess prepared for a swim, a fishing party having prevented their morning bathe.

Josie made these comments one afternoon while she and Bess got ready for a swim, since a fishing trip had kept them from their morning bath.

'You must bide your time, dear, and not be so impatient. Papa promised to give you a chance before the season is over, and he always manages things nicely. That will be better than any queer prank of yours,' answered Bess, tying her pretty hair in a white net to match her suit, while Josie made a little lobster of herself in scarlet.

'You need to be patient, dear, and try not to rush things. Dad promised you an opportunity before the season ends, and he always knows how to handle things well. That will be much better than any of your odd antics,' replied Bess, tying her lovely hair up in a white net to match her outfit, while Josie dressed up like a little lobster in bright red.

'I hate to wait; but I suppose I must. Hope she will bathe this afternoon, though it is low tide. She told Uncle she should have to go in then because in the morning people stared so and went on her beach. Come and have a good dive from the big rock. No one round but nurses and babies, so we can romp and splash as much as we like.'

'I hate waiting, but I guess I have no choice. I hope she’ll take a swim this afternoon, even though it’s low tide. She told Uncle she would have to go in then because in the morning, people stared and came onto her beach. Come and have a great dive from the big rock. There’s no one around but nurses and babies, so we can play and splash as much as we want.'

Away they went to have a fine time; for the little bay was free from other bathers, and the babies greatly admired their aquatic gymnastics, both being expert swimmers.

Away they went to have a great time; the little bay was empty of other swimmers, and the kids really admired their water skills, as both of them were expert swimmers.

As they sat dripping on the big rock Josie suddenly gave a clutch that nearly sent Bess overboard, as she cried excitedly:

As they sat dripping on the big rock, Josie suddenly grabbed Bess so hard that it almost made her fall into the water, as she shouted excitedly:

'There she is! Look! coming to bathe. How splendid! Oh, if she only would drown a little and let me save her! or even get her toe nipped by a crab; anything so I could go and speak!'

'There she is! Look! Coming to bathe. How amazing! Oh, if only she would drown a little and let me save her! Or even if a crab nipped her toe; anything so I could go and talk to her!'

'Don't seem to look; she comes to be quiet and enjoy herself. Pretend we don't see her, that's only civil,' answered Bess, affecting to be absorbed in a white-winged yacht going by.

'Don’t look; she’s here to relax and have a good time. Let’s act like we don’t see her, it’s the polite thing to do,' replied Bess, pretending to be focused on a white-winged yacht passing by.

'Let's carelessly float that way as if going for seaweed on the rocks. She can't mind if we are flat on our backs, with only our noses out. Then when we can't help seeing her, we'll swim back as if anxious to retire. That will impress her, and she may call to thank the very polite young ladies who respect her wishes,' proposed Josie, whose lively fancy was always planning dramatic situations.

'Let's casually drift that way like we're looking for seaweed on the rocks. She won't care if we're lying flat on our backs, with just our noses above water. Then, when we can't help but notice her, we'll swim back as if we're eager to leave. That will impress her, and she might call to thank the very polite young ladies who honor her wishes,' suggested Josie, whose vivid imagination was always creating dramatic scenarios.

Just as they were going to slip from their rock, as if Fate relented at last, Miss Cameron was seen to beckon wildly as she stood waist-deep in the water, looking down. She called to her maid, who seemed searching along the beach for something, and not finding what she sought, waved a towel towards the girls as if summoning them to help her.

Just as they were about to slip off their rock, as if fate finally decided to give in, Miss Cameron was spotted waving frantically while standing waist-deep in the water, looking down. She called to her maid, who appeared to be searching the beach for something. Not finding what she was looking for, she waved a towel towards the girls, as if asking them to come and help her.

'Run, fly! she wants us, she wants us!' cried Josie, tumbling into the water like a very energetic turtle, and swimming away in her best style towards this long desired haven of joy. Bess followed more slowly, and both came panting and smiling up to Miss Cameron, who never lifted her eyes, but said in that wonderful voice of hers:

'Run, fly! She wants us, she wants us!' shouted Josie, diving into the water like a super energetic turtle, and swimming away in her best style towards the long-awaited haven of joy. Bess followed more slowly, and both arrived panting and smiling at Miss Cameron, who never looked up but said in that amazing voice of hers:

'I've dropped a bracelet. I see it, but can't get it. Will the little boy find me a long stick? I'll keep my eye on it, so the water shall not wash it away.'

"I dropped a bracelet. I can see it, but I can’t reach it. Can the little boy find me a long stick? I’ll keep an eye on it so the water doesn’t sweep it away."

'I'll dive for it with pleasure; but I'm not a boy,' answered Josie, laughing as she shook the curly head which at a distance had deceived the lady.

"I'll go for it gladly; but I'm not a boy," Josie replied, laughing as she shook her curly hair that had misled the lady from afar.

'I beg your pardon. Dive away, child; the sand is covering it fast. I value it very much. Never forgot to take it off before.'

'I’m sorry. Go ahead, kid; the sand is covering it quickly. I really care about it. I always remembered to take it off before.'

'I'll get it!' and down went Josie, to come up with a handful of pebbles, but no bracelet.

"I'll get it!" Josie exclaimed, diving down to surface with a handful of pebbles, but no bracelet.

'It's gone; never mind—my fault,' said Miss Cameron, disappointed, but amused at the girl's dismay as she shook the water out of her eyes and gasped bravely:

"It's gone; whatever, my bad," said Miss Cameron, feeling let down, but finding it funny to see the girl's shock as she shook the water out of her eyes and breathed heavily.

'No, it isn't. I'll have it, if I stay down all night!' and with one long breath Josie dived again, leaving nothing but a pair of agitated feet to be seen.

'No, it isn't. I’ll get it, even if I have to stay down all night!' and with one deep breath, Josie dove again, leaving only a pair of frantic feet visible.

'I'm afraid she will hurt herself,' said Miss Cameron, looking at Bess, whom she recognized by her likeness to her mother.

"I'm worried she might hurt herself," said Miss Cameron, looking at Bess, who she recognized by her resemblance to her mother.

'Oh, no; Josie is a little fish. She likes it'; and Bess smiled happily at this wonderful granting of her cousin's desire.

'Oh, no; Josie is a little fish. She likes it,' and Bess smiled happily at this amazing fulfillment of her cousin's wish.

'You are Mr Laurence's daughter, I think? How d'ye do, dear? Tell papa I'm coming to see him soon. Too tired before. Quite savage. Better now. Ah! here's our pearl of divers. What luck?' she asked, as the heels went down and a dripping head came up.

'You’re Mr. Laurence's daughter, right? How are you, dear? Please tell your dad I’ll be visiting him soon. I was too tired earlier—feeling pretty rough. But I'm better now. Ah! Here’s our treasure from the water. What luck?' she asked, as the heels went down and a drenched head popped up.

Josie could only choke and splutter at first, being half strangled; but though her hands had failed again, her courage had not; and with a resolute shake of her wet hair, a bright look at the tall lady, and a series of puffs to fill her lungs, she said calmly:

Josie could only gasp and sputter at first, feeling half choked; but even though her hands had failed her again, her courage hadn’t. With a determined shake of her wet hair, a bright look at the tall woman, and a few deep breaths to fill her lungs, she said calmly:

'“Never give up” is my motto. I'm going to get it, if I go to Liverpool for it! Now, then!' and down went the mermaid quite out of sight this time, groping like a real lobster at the bottom of the sea.

“Never give up” is my motto. I'm going to get it, even if I have to go to Liverpool for it! Now, then!” and down went the mermaid completely out of sight this time, feeling around like a real lobster at the bottom of the sea.

'Plucky little girl! I like that. Who is she?' asked the lady, sitting down on a half-covered stone to watch her diver, since the bracelet was lost sight of.

'Brave little girl! I like that. Who is she?' asked the lady, sitting down on a partially exposed stone to watch her diver, since the bracelet was no longer visible.

Bess told her, adding, with the persuasive smile of her father: 'Josie longs to be an actress, and has waited for a month to see you. This is a great happiness for her.'

Bess told her, adding, with the charming smile of her father: 'Josie really wants to be an actress and has been waiting for a month to see you. This means a lot to her.'

'Bless the child! why didn't she come and call? I'd have let her in; though usually I avoid stage-struck girls as I do reporters,' laughed Miss Cameron.

'Bless the child! Why didn't she come and knock? I would’ve let her in; though usually I steer clear of overly dramatic girls just like I do with reporters,' laughed Miss Cameron.

There was no time for more; a brown hand, grasping the bracelet, rose out of the sea, followed by a purple face as Josie came up so blind and dizzy she could only cling to Bess, half drowned but triumphant.

There was no time for more; a brown hand, clutching the bracelet, emerged from the sea, followed by a purple face as Josie surfaced, so blind and dizzy that she could only hold onto Bess, half-drowned but victorious.

Miss Cameron drew her to the rock where she sat, and pushing the hair out of her eyes, revived her with a hearty 'Bravo! bravo!' which assured the girl that her first act was a hit. Josie had often imagined her meeting with the great actress—the dignity and grace with which she would enter and tell her ambitious hopes, the effective dress she would wear, the witty things she would say, the deep impression her budding genius would make. But never in her wildest moments had she imagined an interview like this; scarlet, sandy, streaming, and speechless she leaned against the illustrious shoulder, looking like a beautiful seal as she blinked and wheezed till she could smile joyfully and exclaim proudly:

Miss Cameron guided her to the rock where she sat, and, brushing the hair out of her eyes, cheered her on with an enthusiastic 'Bravo! bravo!' which made the girl feel that her first performance was a success. Josie had often imagined what it would be like to meet the famous actress—the dignity and grace with which she would arrive and share her ambitious dreams, the stylish outfit she would wear, the clever things she would say, and the strong impression her emerging talent would create. But never in her wildest dreams had she anticipated an encounter like this; bright red, sandy, disheveled, and speechless, she leaned against the renowned shoulder, looking like a beautiful seal as she blinked and wheezed until she could smile joyfully and proudly exclaim:

'I did get it! I'm so glad!'

'I got it! I'm so glad!'

'Now get your breath, my dear; then I shall be glad also. It was very nice of you to take all that trouble for me. How shall I thank you?' asked the lady, looking at her with the beautiful eyes that could say so many things without words.

'Now catch your breath, my dear; then I'll be happy too. It was really thoughtful of you to go through all that trouble for me. How can I thank you?' asked the lady, gazing at her with those beautiful eyes that could express so much without saying a word.

Josie clasped her hands with a wet spat which rather destroyed the effect of the gesture, and answered in a beseeching tone that would have softened a far harder heart than Miss Cameron's:

Josie brought her hands together with a wet slap that somewhat ruined the impact of the gesture, and replied in a pleading tone that would have melted an even tougher heart than Miss Cameron's:

'Let me come and see you once—only once! I want you to tell me if I can act; you will know. I'll abide by what you say; and if you think I can—by and by, when I've studied very hard—I shall be the happiest girl in the world. May I?'

'Let me come and see you just once! I want you to tell me if I can act; you’ll know. I’ll trust what you say, and if you think I can—after I’ve worked really hard—I’ll be the happiest girl in the world. Can I?'

'Yes; come tomorrow at eleven. We'll have a good talk; you shall show me what you can do, and I'll give you my opinion. But you won't like it.'

'Yes; come tomorrow at eleven. We'll have a good talk; you can show me what you can do, and I'll share my thoughts. But you probably won't like it.'

'I will, no matter if you tell me I'm a fool. I want it settled; so does mamma. I'll take it bravely if you say no; and if you say yes, I'll never give up till I've done my best—as you did.'

'I will, even if you call me a fool. I want this resolved; so does Mom. I'll handle it gracefully if you say no, and if you say yes, I’ll never give up until I've done my best—just like you did.'

'Ah, my child, it's a weary road, and there are plenty of thorns among the roses when you've won them. I think you have the courage, and this proves that you have perseverance. Perhaps you'll do. Come, and we'll see.'

'Ah, my child, it’s a tough journey, and there are many thorns among the roses when you finally get them. I believe you have the courage, and this shows that you have perseverance. Maybe you’ll be okay. Come on, and we’ll find out.'

Miss Cameron touched the bracelet as she spoke, and smiled so kindly that impetuous Josie wanted to kiss her; but wisely refrained, though her eyes were wet with softer water than any in the sea as she thanked her.

Miss Cameron touched the bracelet as she spoke and smiled so warmly that impulsive Josie wanted to kiss her; but she smartly held back, even though her eyes were filled with gentler tears than any in the sea as she expressed her gratitude.

'We are keeping Miss Cameron from her bath, and the tide is going out. Come, Josie,' said thoughtful Bess, fearing to outstay their welcome.

'We're keeping Miss Cameron from her bath, and the tide is going out. Come on, Josie,' said thoughtful Bess, worried about overstaying their welcome.

'Run over the beach and get warm. Thank you very much, little mermaid. Tell papa to bring his daughter to see me any time. Good-bye'; and with a wave of her hand the tragedy queen dismissed her court, but remained on her weedy throne watching the two lithe figures race over the sand with twinkling feet till they were out of sight. Then, as she calmly bobbed up and down in the water, she said to herself: 'The child has a good stage face, vivid, mobile; fine eyes, abandon, pluck, will. Perhaps she'll do. Good stock—talent in the family. We shall see.'

'Run along the beach and warm up. Thank you so much, little mermaid. Tell Dad to bring his daughter to see me anytime. Goodbye'; and with a wave of her hand, the tragedy queen dismissed her court but stayed on her weedy throne, watching the two graceful figures race over the sand with twinkling feet until they were out of sight. Then, as she calmly bobbed up and down in the water, she said to herself: 'The child has a good stage presence, lively and expressive; great eyes, spontaneity, courage, determination. Maybe she'll be great. Good lineage—talent runs in the family. We'll see.'

Of course Josie never slept a wink, and was in a fever of joyful excitement next day. Uncle Laurie enjoyed the episode very much, and Aunt Amy looked out her most becoming white dress for the grand occasion; Bess lent her most artistic hat, and Josie ranged the wood and marsh for a bouquet of wild roses, sweet white azalea, ferns, and graceful grasses, as the offering of a very grateful heart.

Of course, Josie didn't sleep at all and was full of joyful excitement the next day. Uncle Laurie really enjoyed the experience, and Aunt Amy picked out her prettiest white dress for the big event; Bess lent her the most stylish hat, and Josie searched the woods and marsh for a bouquet of wild roses, sweet white azaleas, ferns, and elegant grasses as a token of her grateful heart.

At ten she solemnly arrayed herself, and then sat looking at her neat gloves and buckled shoes till it was time to go, growing pale and sober with the thought that her fate was soon to be decided; for, like all young people she was sure that her whole life could be settled by one human creature, quite forgetting how wonderfully Providence trains us by disappointment, surprises us with unexpected success, and turns our seeming trials into blessings.

At ten, she got dressed seriously and then sat there looking at her tidy gloves and buckled shoes until it was time to leave, growing pale and somber as she realized that her fate was about to be determined. Like all young people, she believed that one person could decide her entire life, completely overlooking how beautifully life teaches us through disappointments, surprises us with unexpected successes, and transforms our apparent struggles into blessings.

'I will go alone: we shall be freer so. Oh, Bess, pray that she may tell me rightly! So much depends on that! Don't laugh, uncle! It is a very serious moment for me. Miss Cameron knows that, and will tell you so. Kiss me, Aunt Amy, since mamma isn't here. If you say I look nice, I'm quite satisfied. Good-bye.' And with a wave of the hand as much like her model's as she could make it, Josie departed, looking very pretty and feeling very tragical.

"I'll go by myself: it’ll give us more freedom. Oh, Bess, please pray that she tells me the truth! So much relies on that! Don’t laugh, uncle! This is a very serious moment for me. Miss Cameron knows that and will tell you the same. Kiss me, Aunt Amy, since mom isn’t here. If you say I look nice, I'll be totally happy. Goodbye." And with a wave of her hand that mimicked her model as closely as she could, Josie left, looking very pretty and feeling quite dramatic.

Sure now of admittance, she boldly rang at the door which excluded so many, and being ushered into a shady parlour, feasted her eyes upon several fine portraits of great actors while she waited. She had read about most of them, and knew their trials and triumphs so well that she soon forgot herself, and tried to imitate Mrs Siddons as Lady Macbeth, looking up at the engraving as she held her nosegay like the candle in the sleep-walking scene, and knit her youthful brows distressfully while murmuring the speech of the haunted queen. So busy was she that Miss Cameron watched her for several minutes unseen, then startled her by suddenly sweeping in with the words upon her lips, the look upon her face, which made that one of her greatest scenes.

Sure of being let in now, she confidently rang the doorbell that kept so many out. Once inside the dimly lit parlor, she admired several beautiful portraits of famous actors while she waited. She had read about most of them and knew their challenges and successes so well that she quickly got lost in her thoughts and tried to mimic Mrs. Siddons as Lady Macbeth. Looking up at the engraving, she held her bouquet like the candle in the sleepwalking scene, furrowing her young brows in distress as she whispered the lines of the troubled queen. She was so caught up in it that Miss Cameron watched her for several minutes without being noticed, then surprised her by sweeping in with the same words on her lips and the expression on her face that made that one of her greatest scenes.

'I never can do it like that; but I'll keep trying, if you say I may,' cried Josie, forgetting her manners in the intense interest of the moment.

"I can never do it like that, but I'll keep trying if you say I can," Josie exclaimed, forgetting her manners in the heat of the moment.

'Show me what you can do,' answered the actress, wisely plunging into the middle of things at once, well knowing that no common chat would satisfy this very earnest little person.

"Show me what you can do," the actress replied, skillfully diving right in, fully aware that small talk wouldn't satisfy this very serious little person.

'First let me give you these. I thought you'd like wild things better than hot-house flowers; and I loved to bring them, as I'd no other way to thank you for your great kindness to me,' said Josie, offering her nosegay with a simple warmth that was very sweet.

'First, let me give you these. I thought you'd prefer wildflowers to greenhouse blooms; and I loved bringing them, as I had no other way to thank you for your incredible kindness to me,' said Josie, offering her nosegay with a sincere warmth that was very sweet.

'I do love them best, and keep my room full of the posies some good fairy hangs on my gate. Upon my word, I think I've found the fairy out—these are so like,' she added quickly, as her eye went from the flowers in her hand to others that stood near by, arranged with the same taste.

'I really do love them the most, and I keep my room filled with the flowers that some kind fairy hangs on my gate. Honestly, I think I've figured out who the fairy is—these look so similar,' she added quickly, as her gaze shifted from the flowers in her hand to others nearby, arranged with the same style.

Josie's blush and smile betrayed her before she said, with a look full of girlish adoration and humility: 'I couldn't help it; I admire you so much. I know it was a liberty; but as I couldn't get in myself, I loved to think my posies pleased you.'

Josie's blush and smile gave her away before she said, with a look full of youthful adoration and modesty: 'I couldn't help it; I admire you so much. I know it was a bit forward; but since I couldn't get in myself, I loved to think my flowers made you happy.'

Something about the child and her little offering touched the woman, and, drawing Josie to her, she said, with no trace of actress in face or voice:

Something about the child and her small gift moved the woman, and, pulling Josie closer, she said, without a hint of performance in her expression or tone:

'They did please me, dear, and so do you. I'm tired of praise; and love is very sweet, when it is simple and sincere like this.'

'They made me happy, dear, and so do you. I'm over compliments; love is really sweet when it's straightforward and genuine like this.'

Josie remembered to have heard, among many other stories, that Miss Cameron lost her lover years ago, and since had lived only for art. Now she felt that this might have been true; and pity for the splendid, lonely life made her face very eloquent, as well as grateful. Then, as if anxious to forget the past, her new friend said, in the commanding way that seemed natural to her:

Josie remembered hearing, among many other stories, that Miss Cameron lost her lover years ago and had been living only for art ever since. Now she felt that this might be true; and sympathy for the magnificent, solitary life made her expression very expressive, as well as appreciative. Then, as if eager to move on from the past, her new friend said, in the authoritative manner that seemed natural to her:

'Let me see what you can do. Juliet, of course. All begin with that. Poor soul, how she is murdered!'

'Let me see what you can do. Juliet, of course. That's where it all starts. Poor girl, how she met her end!'

Now, Josie had intended to begin with Romeo's much-enduring sweetheart, and follow her up with Bianca, Pauline, and several of the favourite idols of stage-struck girls; but being a shrewd little person, she suddenly saw the wisdom of Uncle Laurie's advice, and resolved to follow it. So instead of the rant Miss Cameron expected, Josie gave poor Ophelia's mad scene, and gave it very well, having been trained by the college professor of elocution and done it many times. She was too young, of course, but the white gown, the loose hair, the real flowers she scattered over the imaginary grave, added to the illusion; and she sung the songs sweetly, dropped her pathetic curtsies, and vanished behind the curtain that divided the rooms with a backward look that surprised her critical auditor into a quick gesture of applause. Cheered by that welcome sound, Josie ran back as a little hoyden in one of the farces she had often acted, telling a story full of fun and naughtiness at first, but ending with a sob of repentance and an earnest prayer for pardon.

Now, Josie had planned to start with Romeo's long-suffering sweetheart and then move on to Bianca, Pauline, and several of the favorite idols of stage-struck girls. However, being a clever little person, she suddenly recognized the wisdom of Uncle Laurie's advice and decided to follow it. So instead of the dramatic performance Miss Cameron expected, Josie delivered poor Ophelia's mad scene, and she did it very well, having been trained by the college professor of elocution and performed it many times. She was, of course, too young, but the white dress, the loose hair, and the real flowers she scattered over the imaginary grave added to the illusion. She sang the songs sweetly, took her heartfelt curtsies, and disappeared behind the curtain that divided the rooms, casting a backward glance that surprised her critical audience into a quick gesture of applause. Encouraged by that welcome sound, Josie returned as a little tomboy in one of the farces she had often acted, telling a story full of fun and mischief at first, but ending with a sob of repentance and a sincere prayer for forgiveness.

'Very good! Try again. Better than I expected,' called the voice of the oracle.

"Great job! Try again. Better than I thought," called the voice of the oracle.

Josie tried Portia's speech, and recited very well, giving due emphasis to each fine sentence. Then, unable to refrain from what she considered her greatest effort, she burst into Juliet's balcony scene, ending with the poison and the tomb. She felt sure that she surpassed herself, and waited for applause. A ringing laugh made her tingle with indignation and disappointment, as she went to stand before Miss Cameron, saying in a tone of polite surprise:

Josie tried to deliver Portia's speech and did it really well, emphasizing each beautiful line. Then, unable to hold back what she thought was her best effort, she jumped into Juliet's balcony scene, finishing with the poison and the tomb. She was confident that she had outdone herself and waited for applause. A loud laugh made her feel a mix of anger and disappointment as she stepped in front of Miss Cameron, saying with a tone of polite surprise:

'I have been told that I did it very well. I'm sorry you don't think so.'

"I've been told that I did a great job. I'm sorry you don't feel the same."

'My dear, it's very bad. How can it help being so? What can a child like you know of love and fear and death? Don't try it yet. Leave tragedy alone till you are ready for it.'

'My dear, this is really bad. How can it not be? What does a child like you know about love, fear, and death? Don't try to understand it yet. Stay away from tragedy until you're ready for it.'

'But you clapped Ophelia.'

'But you applauded Ophelia.'

'Yes, that was very pretty. Any clever girl can do it effectively. But the real meaning of Shakespeare is far above you yet, child. The comedy bit was best. There you showed real talent. It was both comic and pathetic. That's art. Don't lose it. The Portia was good declamation. Go on with that sort of thing; it trains the voice—teaches shades of expression. You've a good voice and natural grace—great helps both, hard to acquire.'

"Yes, that was really lovely. Any smart girl can pull that off well. But the true meaning of Shakespeare is still beyond your reach, kid. The comedy part was the best. That’s where you really showed your talent. It was both funny and sad. That’s art. Don’t let that go. The Portia piece was good declamation. Keep doing that kind of thing; it trains your voice and helps you learn different expressions. You have a great voice and natural grace—both are major advantages that are hard to develop."

'Well, I'm glad I've got something,' sighed Josie, sitting meekly on a stool, much crestfallen, but not daunted yet, and bound to have her say out.

'Well, I'm glad I have something,' sighed Josie, sitting quietly on a stool, feeling downcast but still determined to speak her mind.

'My dear little girl, I told you that you would not like what I should say to you; yet I must be honest if I would really help you. I've had to do it for many like you; and most of them have never forgiven me, though my words have proved true, and they are what I advised them to be—good wives and happy mothers in quiet homes. A few have kept on, and done fairly well. One you will hear of soon, I think; for she has talent, indomitable patience, and mind as well as beauty. You are too young to show to which class you belong. Geniuses are very rare, and even at fifteen seldom give much promise of future power.'

'My dear little girl, I told you that you probably wouldn’t like what I’m about to say; but I have to be honest if I want to really help you. I’ve had to do this for many like you, and most of them have never forgiven me, even though my words have turned out to be true, and they’ve become what I advised—good wives and happy mothers in peaceful homes. A few have continued on and have done fairly well. One you’ll hear about soon, I think; because she has talent, incredible patience, and a good mind along with her beauty. You’re too young to show which group you belong to. Geniuses are very rare, and even at fifteen, they rarely show much promise for future greatness.'

'Oh, I don't think I'm a genius!' cried Josie, growing calm and sober as she listened to the melodious voice and looked into the expressive face that filled her with confidence, so strong, sincere, and kindly was it. 'I only want to find out if I have talent enough to go on, and after years of study to be able to act well in any of the good plays people never tire of seeing. I don't expect to be a Mrs Siddons or a Miss Cameron, much as I long to be; but it does seem as if I had something in me which can't come out in any way but this. When I act I'm perfectly happy. I seem to live, to be in my own world, and each new part is a new friend. I love Shakespeare, and am never tired of his splendid people. Of course, I don't understand it all; but it's like being alone at night with the mountains and the stars, solemn and grand, and I try to imagine how it will look when the sun comes up, and all is glorious and clear to me. I can't see, but I feel the beauty, and long to express it.'

"Oh, I don't think I'm a genius!" Josie exclaimed, calming down as she listened to the soothing voice and looked into the expressive face that filled her with confidence—so strong, genuine, and kind it was. "I just want to find out if I have enough talent to keep going, and after years of studying, to be able to act well in any of the great plays that people never get tired of watching. I don’t expect to be a Mrs. Siddons or a Miss Cameron, no matter how much I want that; but it really feels like I have something inside me that can only come out this way. When I act, I’m completely happy. I feel alive, like I’m in my own world, and every new role is like a new friend. I love Shakespeare, and I never tire of his amazing characters. Of course, I don’t understand everything; but it feels like being alone at night with the mountains and the stars, serious and grand, and I try to picture how everything will look when the sun rises, making everything glorious and clear. I can’t see it, but I feel the beauty and long to express it."

As she spoke with the most perfect self-forgetfulness Josie was pale with excitement, her eyes shone, her lips trembled, and all her little soul seemed trying to put into words the emotions that filled it to overflowing. Miss Cameron understood, felt that this was something more than a girlish whim; and when she answered there was a new tone of sympathy in her voice, a new interest in her face, though she wisely refrained from saying all she thought, well knowing what splendid dreams young people build upon a word, and how bitter is the pain when the bright bubbles burst.

As Josie spoke with complete selflessness, she was pale with excitement, her eyes sparkled, her lips trembled, and it felt like her whole being was trying to express the overwhelming emotions inside her. Miss Cameron understood and realized this was more than just a young girl's fancy; when she responded, there was a new tone of sympathy in her voice and a new interest on her face, although she wisely held back from saying everything she thought, fully aware of how young people build grand dreams on a single word, and how painful it is when those bright bubbles pop.

'If you feel this, I can give you no better advice than to go on loving and studying our great master,' she said slowly; but Josie caught the changed tone, and felt, with a thrill of joy, that her new friend was speaking to her now as to a comrade. 'It is an education in itself, and a lifetime is not long enough to teach you all his secret. But there is much to do before you can hope to echo his words. Have you the patience, courage, strength, to begin at the beginning, and slowly, painfully, lay the foundation for future work? Fame is a pearl many dive for and only a few bring up. Even when they do, it is not perfect, and they sigh for more, and lose better things in struggling for them.'

"If you feel this, I can’t give you better advice than to keep loving and studying our great master," she said slowly; but Josie noticed the change in her tone and felt a thrill of joy knowing her new friend was now speaking to her like a teammate. "It’s an education in itself, and a lifetime isn’t long enough to learn all his secrets. But there’s a lot to do before you can hope to echo his words. Do you have the patience, courage, and strength to start from the beginning and gradually, with difficulty, build the foundation for future work? Fame is a pearl that many dive for, but only a few manage to bring it up. Even when they do, it’s not perfect, and they long for more, losing better things in the process."

The last words seemed spoken more to herself than to her hearer, but Josie answered quickly, with a smile and an expressive gesture:

The last words sounded like they were meant more for herself than for her listener, but Josie responded promptly, with a smile and a meaningful gesture:

'I got the bracelet in spite of all the bitter water in my eyes.'

'I got the bracelet despite all the bitter tears in my eyes.'

'You did! I don't forget it. A good omen. We will accept it.'

'You did! I won’t forget it. A good sign. We’ll take it.'

Miss Cameron answered the smile with one that was like sunshine to the girl, and stretched her white hands as if taking some invisible gift. Then added in a different tone, watching the effect of her words on the expressive face before her:

Miss Cameron responded to the smile with one that felt like sunshine to the girl and stretched her pale hands as if receiving an invisible gift. Then she added in a different tone, observing how her words affected the expressive face in front of her:

'Now you will be disappointed, for instead of telling you to come and study with me, or go and act in some second-rate theatre at once, I advise you to go back to school and finish your education. That is the first step, for all accomplishments are needed, and a single talent makes a very imperfect character. Cultivate mind and body, heart and soul, and make yourself an intelligent, graceful, beautiful, and healthy girl. Then, at eighteen or twenty, go into training and try your powers. Better start for the battle with your arms in order, and save the hard lesson which comes when we rush on too soon. Now and then genius carries all before it, but not often. We have to climb slowly, with many slips and falls. Can you wait as well as work?'

'Now you might be disappointed because instead of telling you to come and study with me or to go act in some mediocre theater right away, I recommend that you go back to school and finish your education. That’s the first step since all skills are important, and just one talent creates an incomplete character. Develop your mind and body, heart and soul, and become an intelligent, graceful, beautiful, and healthy young woman. Then, at eighteen or twenty, train and test your skills. It's better to start your journey well-prepared and avoid the tough lessons that come from rushing in too quickly. Sometimes, genius can overwhelm everything in its path, but that’s rare. We usually have to climb slowly, facing many slips and falls along the way. Can you be patient as well as hardworking?'

'I will!'

"I will!"

'We shall see. It would be pleasant to me to know that when I quit the stage I leave behind me a well-trained, faithful, gifted comrade to more than fill my place, and carry on what I have much at heart—the purification of the stage. Perhaps you are she; but remember, mere beauty and rich costumes do not make an actress, nor are the efforts of a clever little girl to play great characters real art. It is all dazzle and sham, and a disgrace and disappointment now. Why will the public be satisfied with opera bouffe, or the trash called society plays when a world of truth and beauty, poetry and pathos lies waiting to be interpreted and enjoyed?'

'We'll see. It would make me happy to know that when I leave the stage, I’m leaving behind a well-trained, dedicated, talented colleague who can truly take my place and continue what I care about the most—the improvement of theater. Maybe you are that person; but keep in mind, just being beautiful and wearing fancy costumes doesn't make someone an actress, nor do a clever little girl’s attempts to play significant roles count as true art. It's all show and falsehood, and it’s shameful and disappointing right now. Why is the audience content with light operas or the junk called society plays when there’s a wealth of truth and beauty, poetry and emotion waiting to be expressed and enjoyed?'

Miss Cameron had forgotten to whom she spoke, and walked to and fro, full of the noble regret all cultivated people feel at the low state of the stage nowadays.

Miss Cameron had forgotten who she was talking to and paced back and forth, filled with the deep regret that all educated people feel about how low the standards of the stage are these days.

'That's what Uncle Laurie says; and he and Aunt Jo try to plan plays about true and lovely things—simple domestic scenes that touch people's hearts, and make them laugh and cry and feel better. Uncle says that sort is my style, and I must not think of tragedy. But it's so much nicer to sweep about in crowns and velvet trains than to wear everyday clothes, and just be myself, though it is so easy.'

"That's what Uncle Laurie says; he and Aunt Jo try to create plays about real and beautiful things—simple everyday moments that resonate with people and make them laugh, cry, and feel uplifted. Uncle says that’s the kind of style I have, and I shouldn’t focus on tragedy. But it’s so much more fun to roam around in crowns and velvet dresses than to wear regular clothes and just be myself, even though that’s so easy."

'Yet that is high art, child, and what we need for a time till we are ready for the masters. Cultivate that talent of yours. It is a special gift, this power to bring tears and smiles, and a sweeter task to touch the heart than to freeze the blood or fire the imagination. Tell your uncle he is right, and ask your aunt to try a play for you. I'll come and see it when you are ready.'

'But that’s high art, kid, and it’s what we need for now until we’re ready for the greats. Nurture your talent. It’s a special gift, this ability to evoke tears and smiles, and it’s a more rewarding job to touch the heart than to chill the blood or spark the imagination. Tell your uncle he’s right, and ask your aunt to put on a play for you. I’ll come watch it when you’re ready.'

'Will you? Oh! will you? We are going to have some at Christmas, with a nice part for me. A simple little thing, but I can do it, and should be so proud, so happy to have you there.'

'Will you? Oh! will you? We're going to have some at Christmas, with a nice part for me. A simple little thing, but I can do it, and I would be so proud, so happy to have you there.'

Josie rose as she spoke, for a glance at the clock showed her that her call was a long one; and hard as it was to end this momentous interview, she felt that she must go. Catching up her hat she went to Miss Cameron, who stood looking at her so keenly that she felt as transparent as a pane of glass, and coloured prettily as she looked up, saying, with a grateful little tremor in her voice:

Josie stood up as she spoke, realizing by a quick look at the clock that her call had taken a while; and as difficult as it was to end this important conversation, she knew she had to leave. Grabbing her hat, she approached Miss Cameron, who was looking at her so intently that Josie felt completely exposed, and she blushed prettily as she looked up, saying, with a grateful quiver in her voice:

'I can never thank you for this hour and all you have told me. I shall do just what you advise, and mamma will be very glad to see me settled at my books again. I can study now with all my heart, because it is to help me on; and I won't hope too much, but work and wait, and try to please you, as the only way to pay my debt.'

'I can never thank you enough for this hour and everything you've shared with me. I will follow your advice, and my mom will be really happy to see me focused on my studies again. I can really dive into my work now because it’s to help me move forward; I won't expect too much, but I'll work hard and be patient, trying to make you proud, as the only way to repay my debt.'

'That reminds me that I have not paid mine. Little friend, wear this for my sake. It is fit for a mermaid, and will remind you of your first dive. May the next bring up a better jewel, and leave no bitter water on your lips!'

'That reminds me that I haven't paid mine. Little friend, wear this for my sake. It's perfect for a mermaid and will remind you of your first dive. May the next one bring up a better jewel and leave no bitter water on your lips!'

As she spoke, Miss Cameron took from the lace at her throat a pretty pin of aquamarine, and fastened it like an order on Josie's proud bosom; then lifting the happy little face, she kissed it very tenderly, and watched it go smiling away with eyes that seemed to see into a future full of the trials and the triumphs which she knew so well.

As she talked, Miss Cameron took a beautiful aquamarine pin from the lace at her throat and pinned it to Josie's proud chest like an award. Then, lifting the joyful little face, she kissed it gently and watched it smile as it walked away, her eyes reflecting a future filled with the challenges and victories that she understood so well.

Bess expected to see Josie come flying in, all raptures and excitement, or drowned in tears of disappointment, but was surprised at the expression of calm content and resolution which she wore. Pride and satisfaction, and a new feeling of responsibility both sobered and sustained her, and she felt that any amount of dry study and long waiting would be bearable, if in the glorious future she could be an honour to her profession and a comrade to the new friend whom she already adored with girlish ardour.

Bess expected Josie to burst in, either full of joy and excitement or in tears of disappointment, but she was taken aback by the calm look of contentment and determination on her face. Pride and satisfaction, along with a fresh sense of responsibility, both grounded and supported her. She realized that any amount of tedious studying and long waiting would be manageable if, in the bright future, she could bring honor to her profession and be a friend to the new companion she already cherished with youthful passion.

She told her little story to a deeply interested audience, and all felt that Miss Cameron's advice was good. Mrs Amy was relieved at the prospect of delay; for she did not want her niece to be an actress and hoped the fancy would die out.

She shared her little story with an audience that was really interested, and everyone agreed that Miss Cameron's advice was sound. Mrs. Amy felt relieved by the idea of a delay; she didn't want her niece to become an actress and hoped that the interest would fade away.

Uncle Laurie was full of charming plans and prophecies and wrote one of his most delightful notes to thank their neighbour for her kindness; while Bess, who loved art of all kinds, fully sympathized with her cousin's ambitious hopes, only wondering why she preferred to act out her visions rather than embody them in marble.

Uncle Laurie was full of exciting ideas and predictions and wrote one of his sweetest notes to thank their neighbor for her kindness; while Bess, who loved all types of art, completely supported her cousin's ambitious dreams, only wondering why she chose to perform her visions instead of capturing them in marble.

That first interview was not the last; for Miss Cameron was really interested, and had several memorable conversations with the Laurences, while the girls sat by, drinking in every word with the delight all artists feel in their own beautiful world, and learning to see how sacred good gifts are, how powerful, and how faithfully they should be used for high ends, each in its own place helping to educate, refine, and refresh.

That first interview wasn’t the last; Miss Cameron was genuinely interested and had several memorable conversations with the Laurences, while the girls listened closely, soaking up every word with the joy that all artists experience in their beautiful world. They learned how precious good talents are, how impactful they can be, and how they should be faithfully used for noble purposes, each contributing to education, refinement, and rejuvenation in its own way.

Josie wrote reams to her mother; and when the visit ended rejoiced her heart by bringing her a somewhat changed little daughter, who fell to work at the once-detested books with a patient energy which surprised and pleased everyone. The right string had been touched, and even French exercises and piano practice became endurable, since accomplishments would be useful by and by; dress, manners, and habits were all interesting now, because 'mind and body, heart and soul, must be cultivated', and while training to become an 'intelligent, graceful, healthy girl', little Josie was unconsciously fitting herself to play her part well on whatever stage the great Manager might prepare for her.

Josie wrote long letters to her mom; and when the visit was over, it made her heart happy to see her somewhat changed little daughter, who eagerly dove into the books she used to hate, surprising and delighting everyone with her patient energy. The right chord had been struck, and even French homework and piano practice became bearable, since these skills would be helpful in the future; clothing, manners, and habits all seemed interesting now, because "mind and body, heart and soul, must be nurtured." While striving to become an "intelligent, graceful, healthy girl," little Josie was unknowingly preparing herself to play her role well on whatever stage the great Manager had in store for her.





Chapter 9. THE WORM TURNS

Two very superior bicycles went twinkling up the road to Plumfield one September afternoon, bearing two brown and dusty riders evidently returning from a successful run, for though their legs might be a trifle weary, their faces beamed as they surveyed the world from their lofty perches with the air of calm content all wheelmen wear after they have learned to ride; before that happy period anguish of mind and body is the chief expression of the manly countenance.

Two really great bicycles glided up the road to Plumfield one September afternoon, carrying two brown and dusty riders who looked like they were coming back from a successful ride. Their legs might have been a bit tired, but their faces lit up as they looked at the world from their high seats, wearing the peaceful expression that all cyclists have after they've learned to ride. Before that joyful moment, the main look on a person's face is one of struggle and discomfort.

'Go ahead and report, Tom; I'm due here. See you later,' said Demi, swinging himself down at the door of the Dovecote.

"Go ahead and report, Tom; I'm supposed to be here. See you later," said Demi, swinging himself down by the door of the Dovecote.

'Don't peach, there's a good fellow. Let me have it out with Mother Bhaer first,' returned Tom, wheeling in at the gate with a heavy sigh.

'Don't worry, it's all good, my friend. Let me talk to Mother Bhaer first,' Tom said, turning in at the gate with a heavy sigh.

Demi laughed, and his comrade went slowly up the avenue, devoutly hoping that the coast was clear; for he was the bearer of tidings which would, he thought, convulse the entire family with astonishment and dismay.

Demi laughed, and his friend walked cautiously down the street, sincerely hoping that the coast was clear; because he had news that he believed would shock the whole family with surprise and distress.

To his great joy Mrs Jo was discovered alone in a grove of proof-sheets, which she dropped, to greet the returning wanderer cordially. But after the first glance she saw that something was the matter, recent events having made her unusually sharp-eyed and suspicious.

To his great joy, Mrs. Jo was found alone in a grove of proof sheets, which she dropped to warmly greet the returning traveler. But after the first glance, she noticed that something was off, recent events having made her unusually observant and wary.

'What is it now, Tom?' she asked, as he subsided into an easy-chair with a curious expression of mingled fear, shame, amusement, and distress in his brick-red countenance.

'What is it now, Tom?' she asked, as he settled into an armchair with a strange mix of fear, shame, amusement, and distress reflected in his bright red face.

'I'm in an awful scrape, ma'am.'

'I'm in a terrible situation, ma'am.'

'Of course; I'm always prepared for scrapes when you appear. What is it? Run over some old lady who is going to law about it?' asked Mrs Jo cheerfully.

'Of course; I'm always ready for trouble when you show up. What's going on? Did you run over some old woman who's going to sue about it?' asked Mrs. Jo cheerfully.

'Worse than that,' groaned Tom.

"Worse than that," groaned Tom.

'Not poisoned some trusting soul who asked you to prescribe, I hope?'

'You didn’t poison some trusting person who asked you for advice, did you?'

'Worse than that.'

'Even worse.'

'You haven't let Demi catch any horrid thing and left him behind, have you?'

'You haven't let Demi get stuck with something terrible and abandoned him, have you?'

'Worse even than that.'

'Even worse than that.'

'I give it up. Tell me quick; I hate to wait for bad news.'

'I give up. Just tell me quickly; I can't stand waiting for bad news.'

Having got his listener sufficiently excited, Tom launched his thunderbolt in one brief sentence, and fell back to watch the effect.

Having gotten his listener excited, Tom dropped his bombshell in one quick sentence and leaned back to see the reaction.

'I'm engaged!'

"I'm getting married!"

Mrs Jo's proof-sheets flew wildly about as she clasped her hands, exclaiming in dismay:

Mrs. Jo's proof sheets were flying all over the place as she clasped her hands, exclaiming in shock:

'If Nan has yielded, I'll never forgive her!'

'If Nan has given in, I'll never forgive her!'

'She hasn't; it's another girl.'

'She hasn't; it's a different girl.'

Tom's face was so funny as he said the words, that it was impossible to help laughing; for he looked both sheepish and pleased, besides very much perplexed and worried.

Tom's face was so funny when he said those words that it was impossible not to laugh; he looked both embarrassed and happy, as well as quite confused and worried.

'I'm glad, very glad indeed! Don't care who it is; and I hope you'll be married soon. Now tell me all about it,' commanded Mrs Jo, so much relieved that she felt ready for anything.

"I'm really happy, truly happy! I don't care who it is; and I hope you get married soon. Now tell me everything," said Mrs. Jo, feeling so relieved that she was ready for anything.

'What will Nan say?' demanded Tom, rather taken aback at this view of his predicament.

'What will Nan say?' Tom asked, slightly shocked by this perspective on his situation.

'She will be rejoiced to get rid of the mosquito who has plagued her so long. Don't worry about Nan. Who is this “other girl”?'

'She will be happy to get rid of the mosquito that's bothered her for so long. Don't worry about Nan. Who is this “other girl”?'

'Demi hasn't written about her?'

'Demi hasn't posted about her?'

'Only something about your upsetting a Miss West down at Quitno; I thought that was scrape enough.'

'It's just that you upset Miss West down at Quitno; I thought that was a big enough mess.'

'That was only the beginning of a series of scrapes. Just my luck! Of course after sousing the poor girl I had to be attentive to her, hadn't I? Everyone seemed to think so, and I couldn't get away, and so I was lost before I knew it. It's all Demi's fault, he would stay there and fuss with his old photos, because the views were good and all the girls wanted to be taken. Look at these, will you, ma'am? That's the way we spent our time when we weren't playing tennis'; and Tom pulled a handful of pictures from his pocket, displaying several in which he was conspicuous, either holding a sun-umbrella over a very pretty young lady on the rocks, reposing at her feet in the grass, or perched on a piazza railing with other couples in seaside costumes and effective attitudes.

That was just the start of a series of messes. Just my luck! Of course, after soaking the poor girl, I had to pay attention to her, right? Everyone seemed to think so, and I couldn't escape, so I was trapped before I even realized it. It's all Demi's fault; he would stick around and mess with his old photos because the views were nice, and all the girls wanted their pictures taken. "Look at these, will you, ma'am?" That's how we spent our time when we weren't playing tennis. Tom pulled a handful of pictures from his pocket, showing several where he stood out, either holding a sun umbrella over a very pretty young lady on the rocks, lounging at her feet in the grass, or perched on a porch railing with other couples in beach outfits and striking poses.

'This is she of course?' asked Mrs Jo, pointing to the much-ruffled damsel with the jaunty hat, coquettish shoes, and racquet in her hand.

'This is her, right?' asked Mrs. Jo, pointing to the very disheveled girl with the stylish hat, flirty shoes, and a racquet in her hand.

'That's Dora. Isn't she lovely?' cried Tom, forgetting his tribulations for a moment and speaking with lover-like ardour.

'That's Dora. Isn't she beautiful?' exclaimed Tom, momentarily forgetting his troubles and speaking with the passion of someone in love.

'Very nice little person to look at. Hope she is not a Dickens Dora? That curly crop looks like it.'

'Very nice little person to look at. I hope she's not a Dickens' Dora? That curly hairstyle sure looks like it.'

'Not a bit; she's very smart; can keep house, and sew, and do lots of things, I assure you, ma'am. All the girls like her, and she's sweet-tempered and jolly, and sings like a bird, and dances beautifully, and loves books. Thinks yours are splendid, and made me talk about you no end.'

'Not at all; she's really smart; can manage a home, sew, and do lots of things, I promise you, ma'am. All the girls like her, and she's cheerful and fun, sings beautifully, dances gracefully, and loves books. She thinks yours are great and got me to talk about you a lot.'

'That last sentence is to flatter me and win my help to get you out of the scrape. Tell me first how you got in'; and Mrs Jo settled herself to listen with interest, never tired of boys' affairs.

'That last sentence is meant to flatter me and get my help to bail you out of trouble. First, tell me how you ended up in this mess'; and Mrs. Jo got comfortable, ready to listen with interest, never weary of boys' issues.

Tom gave his head a rousing rub all over to clear his wits, and plunged into his story with a will.

Tom gave his head a good rub to clear his thoughts and dove into his story with enthusiasm.

'Well, we've met her before, but I didn't know she was there. Demi wanted to see a fellow, so we went, and finding it nice and cool rested over Sunday. Found some pleasant people and went out rowing; I had Dora, and came to grief on a confounded rock. She could swim, no harm done, only the scare and the spoilt gown. She took it well, and we got friendly at once—couldn't help it, scrambling into that beast of a boat while the rest laughed at us. Of course we had to stay another day to see that Dora was all right. Demi wanted to. Alice Heath is down there and two other girls from our college, so we sort of lingered along, and Demi kept taking pictures, and we danced, and got into a tennis tournament; and that was as good exercise as wheeling, we thought. Fact is, tennis is a dangerous game, ma'am. A great deal of courting goes on in those courts, and we fellows find that sort of “serving” mighty agreeable, don't you know?'

"Well, we've met her before, but I didn’t know she was there. Demi wanted to see someone, so we went, and finding it nice and cool, we took a break over the weekend. We met some nice people and went out rowing; I had Dora with me, and ended up hitting a stupid rock. She could swim, so no harm done, just a scare and a ruined dress. She handled it well, and we became friendly right away—couldn’t help it, trying to scramble into that awful boat while everyone else laughed at us. Of course, we had to stay another day to make sure Dora was alright. Demi wanted to. Alice Heath is down there, along with two other girls from our college, so we kind of lingered, and Demi kept taking pictures. We danced and got into a tennis tournament, which was great exercise, we thought. The truth is, tennis can be a dangerous game, ma’am. A lot of flirting happens on those courts, and we guys find that kind of “serving” pretty enjoyable, if you know what I mean?"

'Not much tennis in my day, but I understand perfectly,' said Mrs Jo, enjoying it all as much as Tom did.

'Not much tennis in my time, but I get it completely,' said Mrs. Jo, enjoying it all as much as Tom did.

'Upon my word, I hadn't the least idea of being serious,' he continued slowly, as if this part of his tale was hard to tell; 'but everyone else spooned, so I did. Dora seemed to like it and expect it, and of course I was glad to be agreeable. She thought I amounted to something, though Nan does not, and it was pleasant to be appreciated after years of snubbing. Yes, it was right down jolly to have a sweet girl smile at you all day, and blush prettily when you said a neat thing to her, and look glad when you came, sorry when you left, and admire all you did, and make you feel like a man and act your best. That's the sort of treatment a fellow enjoys and ought to get if he behaves himself; not frowns and cold shoulders year in and year out, and made to look like a fool when he means well, and is faithful, and has loved a girl ever since he was a boy. No, by Jove, it's not fair, and I won't stand it!'

"I swear, I had no intention of being serious," he continued slowly, as if this part of his story was tough to share; "but everyone else was flirting, so I did too. Dora seemed to like it and expected it, and of course I was happy to go along with it. She thought I was worth something, even if Nan doesn’t, and it felt great to be appreciated after years of being ignored. Honestly, it was downright wonderful to have a nice girl smile at you all day, blush sweetly when you said something charming, look happy when you showed up, sad when you left, admire everything you did, and make you feel like a real man, pushing you to be your best. That's the kind of treatment a guy deserves if he behaves himself; not frowns and cold shoulders year after year, being made to look like a fool when he means well, is loyal, and has loved a girl since he was a kid. No way, it’s just not fair, and I won’t put up with it!"

Tom waxed warm and eloquent as he thought over his wrongs, and bounced up to march about the room, wagging his head and trying to feel aggrieved as usual, but surprised to find that his heart did not ache a bit.

Tom got really heated and expressive as he reflected on his grievances, then jumped up to pace around the room, shaking his head and attempting to feel wronged like usual, but was surprised to discover that his heart didn't hurt at all.

'I wouldn't. Drop the old fancy, for it was nothing more, and take up the new one, if it is genuine. But how came you to propose, Tom, as you must have done to be engaged?' asked Mrs Jo, impatient for the crisis of the tale.

'I wouldn't. Let go of the old fancy, since it was just that, and embrace the new one, if it's real. But how did you end up proposing, Tom? You must have done it to get engaged,' asked Mrs. Jo, eager for the climax of the story.

'Oh, that was an accident. I didn't mean it at all; the donkey did it, and I couldn't get out of the scrape without hurting Dora's feelings, you see,' began Tom, seeing that the fatal moment had come.

'Oh, that was an accident. I didn’t mean to at all; the donkey did it, and I couldn't get out of the situation without hurting Dora’s feelings, you see,' started Tom, realizing that the critical moment had arrived.

'So there were two donkeys in it, were there?' said Mrs Jo, foreseeing fun of some sort.

'So there were two donkeys in there, right?' said Mrs. Jo, anticipating some kind of fun.

'Don't laugh! It sounds funny, I know; but it might have been awful,' answered Tom darkly, though a twinkle of the eye showed that his love trials did not quite blind him to the comic side of the adventure.

"Don't laugh! I know it sounds funny, but it could have been terrible," Tom replied with a serious tone, although a glimmer in his eye revealed that his romantic struggles didn't completely hide his appreciation for the funny side of the situation.

'The girls admired our new wheels, and of course we liked to show off. Took 'em to ride, and had larks generally. Well, one day, Dora was on behind, and we were going nicely along a good bit of road, when a ridiculous old donkey got right across the way. I thought he'd move, but he didn't, so I gave him a kick; he kicked back, and over we went in a heap, donkey and all. Such a mess! I thought only of Dora, and she had hysterics; at least, she laughed till she cried, and that beast brayed, and I lost my head. Any fellow would, with a poor girl gasping in the road, and he wiping her tears and begging pardon, not knowing whether her bones were broken or not. I called her my darling, and went on like a fool in my flurry, till she grew calmer, and said, with such a look: “I forgive you, Tom. Pick me up, and let us go on again.”

The girls were impressed with our new ride, and of course, we loved to show it off. We took them for a spin and had a great time. One day, Dora was riding behind me, and we were cruising along a nice stretch of road when a silly old donkey wandered right in front of us. I thought he would move, but he didn’t, so I gave him a kick; he kicked back, and we both went tumbling down in a heap, donkey and all. What a mess! My main concern was for Dora, who started laughing so hard she was almost in tears, while that donkey brayed away, and I lost my cool. Any guy would in that situation, with a poor girl gasping in the road, and me trying to wipe her tears and apologize, not even knowing if she was hurt. I called her my sweetheart and rambled on like an idiot in my panic until she calmed down and looked at me and said, “I forgive you, Tom. Pick me up, and let’s keep going.”

'Wasn't that sweet now, after I'd upset her for the second time? It touched me to the heart; and I said I'd like to go on for ever with such an angel to steer for, and—well I don't know what I did say; but you might have knocked me down with a feather when she put her arm round my neck and whispered: “Tom, dear, with you I'm not afraid of any lions in the path.” She might have said donkeys; but she was in earnest, and she spared my feelings. Very nice of the dear girl; but there I am with two sweethearts on my hands, and in a deuce of a scrape.'

'Wasn't that sweet, especially after I'd upset her for the second time? It really touched my heart, and I said I’d love to keep going forever with such an angel guiding me, and—well, I can’t remember exactly what I said; but you could have knocked me over with a feather when she put her arm around my neck and whispered, “Tom, dear, with you I’m not afraid of any lions in the path.” She could have said donkeys, but she was serious, and she didn’t hurt my feelings. Very nice of that lovely girl; but here I am with two sweethearts on my hands and in a real mess.'

Finding it impossible to contain herself another moment, Mrs Jo laughed till the tears ran down her cheeks at this characteristic episode; and after one reproachful look, which only added to her merriment, Tom burst into a jolly roar that made the room ring.

Finding it impossible to hold back any longer, Mrs. Jo laughed until tears streamed down her face at this typical incident; and after giving one playful glare, which only increased her laughter, Tom erupted into a joyful roar that echoed through the room.

'Tommy Bangs! Tommy Bangs! who but you could ever get into such a catastrophe?' said Mrs Jo, when she recovered her breath.

"Tommy Bangs! Tommy Bangs! Who else could possibly land in such a mess?" said Mrs. Jo, once she caught her breath.

'Isn't it a muddle all round, and won't everyone chaff me to death about it? I shall have to quit old Plum for a while,' answered Tom, as he mopped his face, trying to realize the full danger of his position.

"Isn't it a mess all around, and won't everyone keep bugging me about it? I guess I'll have to leave old Plum for a while," replied Tom, as he wiped his face, trying to grasp the seriousness of his situation.

'No, indeed; I'll stand by you, for I think it the best joke of the season. But tell me how things ended. Is it really serious, or only a summer flirtation? I don't approve of them, but boys and girls will play with edged tools and cut their fingers.'

'No way; I'm here for you because I think it's the funniest thing of the season. But tell me how it turned out. Is it really serious, or just a summer fling? I don’t really like them, but guys and girls will mess around with sharp things and end up getting hurt.'

'Well, Dora considers herself engaged, and wrote to her people at once. I couldn't say a word when she took it all in solemn earnest and seemed so happy. She's only seventeen, never liked anyone before, and is sure all will be all right; as her father knows mine, and we are both well off. I was so staggered that I said:

'Well, Dora thinks she’s engaged and wrote to her family right away. I was speechless when she took it so seriously and looked so happy. She's only seventeen, has never liked anyone before, and believes everything will work out since her dad knows mine, and we’re both well off. I was so shocked that I said:

'“Why, you can't love me really when we know so little of one another?” But she answered right out of her tender little heart: “Yes, I do, dearly, Tom; you are so gay and kind and honest, I couldn't help it.” Now, after that what could I do but go ahead and make her happy while I stayed, and trust to luck to straighten the snarl out afterwards?'

“Why can't you really love me when we don’t know much about each other?” But she responded straight from her tender heart: “Yes, I do, so much, Tom; you’re so cheerful, kind, and honest, I couldn’t help it.” So, after that, what could I do but move forward and make her happy while I was there, and hope for the best to sort things out later?

'A truly Tomian way of taking things easy. I hope you told your father at once.'

'A truly Tomian way to relax. I hope you told your dad right away.'

'Oh yes, I wrote off and broke it to him in three lines. I said: “Dear Father, I'm engaged to Dora West, and I hope she will suit the family. She suits me tip-top. Yours ever, Tom.” He was all right, never liked Nan, you know; but Dora will suit him down to the ground.' And Tom looked entirely satisfied with his own tact and taste.

'Oh yes, I quickly wrote to him and broke the news in three lines. I said: “Dear Dad, I'm engaged to Dora West, and I hope she'll be a good fit for the family. She's perfect for me. Always yours, Tom.” He was fine with it; he never liked Nan, you know, but Dora will be just right for him.' And Tom looked completely pleased with his own cleverness and judgment.

'What did Demi say to this rapid and funny lovemaking? Wasn't he scandalized?' asked Mrs Jo, trying not to laugh again as she thought of the unromantic spectacle of donkey, bicycle, boy, and girl all in the dust together.

'What did Demi think about that quick and funny lovemaking? Wasn't he shocked?' asked Mrs. Jo, trying not to laugh again as she imagined the unromantic scene of the donkey, bicycle, boy, and girl all tangled up in the dust together.

'Not a bit. He was immensely interested and very kind; talked to me like a father; said it was a good thing to steady a fellow, only I must be honest with her and myself and not trifle a moment. Demi is a regular Solomon, especially when he is in the same boat,' answered Tom, looking wise.

'Not at all. He was really interested and very kind; he talked to me like a father; he said it was good to support someone, but I had to be honest with her and myself and not waste any time. Demi is like a real Solomon, especially when he's in the same situation,' replied Tom, looking wise.

'You don't mean—?' gasped Mrs Jo, in sudden alarm at the bare idea of more love-affairs just yet.

'You don't mean—?' Mrs. Jo exclaimed, suddenly alarmed at the thought of more love affairs just yet.

'Yes, I do, please, ma'am; it's a regular sell all the way through, and I owe Demi one for taking me into temptation blindfold. He said he went to Quitno to see Fred Wallace, but he never saw the fellow. How could he, when Wallace was off in his yacht all the time we were there? Alice was the real attraction, and I was left to my fate, while they were maundering round with that old camera. There were three donkeys in this affair, and I'm not the worst one, though I shall have to bear the laugh. Demi will look innocent and sober, and no one will say a word to him.'

'Yes, I do, please, ma'am; it's a total sell-out all the way through, and I owe Demi one for leading me into temptation without a clue. He claimed he went to Quitno to see Fred Wallace, but he never actually saw the guy. How could he when Wallace was out on his yacht the whole time we were there? Alice was the real draw, and I was stuck with my fate, while they were messing around with that old camera. There were three donkeys in this situation, and I’m not the worst one, even though I'll have to take the jokes. Demi will act all innocent and serious, and no one will say a word to him.'

'The midsummer madness has broken out, and no one knows who will be stricken next. Well, leave Demi to his mother, and let us see what you are going to do, Tom.'

'The midsummer madness has kicked in, and no one knows who will be affected next. Well, leave Demi with his mother, and let’s see what you’re going to do, Tom.'

'I don't know exactly; it's awkward to be in love with two girls at once. What do you advise?'

'I’m not really sure; it's strange to be in love with two girls at the same time. What do you think I should do?'

'A common-sense view of the case, by all means. Dora loves you and thinks you love her. Nan does not care for you, and you only care for her as a friend, though you have tried to do more. It is my opinion, Tom, that you love Dora, or are on the way to it; for in all these years I've never seen you look or speak about Nan as you do about Dora. Opposition has made you obstinately cling to her till accident has shown you a more attractive girl. Now, I think you had better take the old love for a friend, the new one for a sweetheart, and in due time, if the sentiment is genuine, marry her.'

"A common-sense take on the situation, for sure. Dora loves you and believes you love her back. Nan isn't interested in you, and you only see her as a friend, even though you've tried to make it more. I really think, Tom, that you love Dora or are on your way to loving her; because all these years, I've never seen you look or talk about Nan the way you do about Dora. The opposition has made you stubbornly hold onto her until chance revealed a more appealing girl. So, I believe you should keep your old love as a friend and pursue the new one as a romantic partner, and if the feelings are real, marry her when the time is right."

If Mrs Jo had any doubts about the matter, Tom's face would have proved the truth of her opinion; for his eyes shone, his lips smiled, and in spite of dust and sunburn a new expression of happiness quite glorified him as he stood silent for a moment, trying to understand the beautiful miracle which real love works when it comes to a young man's heart.

If Mrs. Jo had any doubts about it, Tom's face would have confirmed her feelings; his eyes sparkled, his lips curved into a smile, and despite the dust and sunburn, a fresh expression of happiness lit him up as he stood quietly for a moment, trying to grasp the amazing miracle that true love creates when it touches a young man's heart.

'The fact is I meant to make Nan jealous, for she knows Dora, and I was sure would hear of our doings. I was tired of being walked on, and I thought I'd try to break away and not be a bore and a laughing-stock any more,' he said slowly, as if it relieved him to pour out his doubts and woes and hopes and joys to his old friend. 'I was regularly astonished to find it so easy and so pleasant. I didn't mean to do any harm, but drifted along beautifully, and told Demi to mention things in his letters to Daisy, so Nan might know. Then I forgot Nan altogether, and saw, heard, felt, cared for no one but Dora, till the donkey—bless his old heart!—pitched her into my arms and I found she loved me. Upon my soul, I don't see why she should! I'm not half good enough.'

"I have to admit that I wanted to make Nan jealous because she knows Dora, and I was sure she'd hear about what we were up to. I was tired of being pushed around, so I thought I'd try to break free and not be a bore or a joke anymore," he said slowly, as if it felt good to share his doubts, troubles, hopes, and joys with his old friend. "I was genuinely amazed at how easy and enjoyable it was. I didn't intend to hurt anyone, but it just flowed so nicely, and I told Demi to mention things in his letters to Daisy so Nan would find out. Then I completely forgot about Nan and only saw, heard, felt, and cared for Dora, until the donkey—bless his old heart!—tipped her into my arms and I realized she loved me. Honestly, I don't understand why she should! I'm not nearly good enough."

'Every honest man feels that when an innocent girl puts her hand in his. Make yourself worthy of her, for she isn't an angel, but a woman with faults of her own for you to bear, and forgive, and you must help one another,' said Mrs Jo, trying to realize that this sober youth was her scapegrace Tommy.

'Every honest man knows that when an innocent girl reaches for his hand. Make yourself deserving of her, because she isn't an angel, but a woman with her own faults for you to accept, forgive, and you need to support each other,' said Mrs. Jo, trying to come to terms with the fact that this serious young man was her wayward Tommy.

'What troubles me is that I didn't mean it when I began, and was going to use the dear girl as an instrument of torture for Nan. It wasn't right, and I don't deserve to be so happy. If all my scrapes ended as well as this, what a state of bliss I should be in!' and Tom beamed again at the rapturous prospect.

'What bothers me is that I didn’t mean it when I started, and I was going to use the sweet girl as a way to get back at Nan. It wasn’t fair, and I don’t deserve to be this happy. If all my troubles ended as well as this one, just think of how blissful I would be!' and Tom smiled again at the exciting possibility.

'My dear boy, it is not a scrape, but a very sweet experience suddenly dawning upon you,' answered Mrs Jo, speaking very soberly; for she saw he was in earnest. 'Enjoy it wisely and be worthy of it, for it is a serious thing to accept a girl's love and trust, and let her look up to you for tenderness and truth in return. Don't let little Dora look in vain, but be a man in all things for her sake, and make this affection a blessing to you both.'

"My dear boy, it's not a problem, but a really wonderful experience that's suddenly coming your way," Mrs. Jo replied, speaking seriously because she could tell he was sincere. "Enjoy it wisely and be deserving of it, because it's a big deal to accept a girl's love and trust, and to have her rely on you for kindness and honesty in return. Don’t let little Dora look in vain; be a man in every way for her sake, and make this love a blessing for both of you."

'I'll try. Yes, I do love her, only I can't believe it just yet. Wish you knew her. Dear little soul, I long to see her already! She cried when we parted last night and I hated to go.' Tom's hand went to his cheek as if he still felt the rosy little seal Dora had set upon his promise not to forget her, and for the first time in his happy-go-lucky life Tommy Bangs understood the difference between sentiment and sentimentality. The feeling recalled Nan, for he had never known that tender thrill when thinking of her, and the old friendship seemed rather a prosaic affair beside this delightful mingling of romance, surprise, love, and fun. 'I declare, I feel as if a weight was off me, but what the dickens will Nan say when she knows it!' he exclaimed with a chuckle.

"I'll try. Yes, I love her, but I just can't believe it yet. I wish you knew her. That sweet girl, I can't wait to see her again! She cried when we said goodbye last night, and I hated leaving." Tom's hand went to his cheek, as if he could still feel the rosy little kiss Dora had placed on his promise to remember her, and for the first time in his carefree life, Tommy Bangs understood the difference between genuine emotion and being overly sentimental. The feeling reminded him of Nan, as he had never felt that tender thrill when thinking of her, and their old friendship seemed quite ordinary compared to this wonderful mix of romance, surprise, love, and fun. "I swear, I feel like a weight has been lifted off me, but what on earth will Nan say when she finds out?" he exclaimed with a laugh.

'Knows what?' asked a clear voice that made both start and turn, for there was Nan calmly surveying them from the doorway.

"Knows what?" a clear voice asked, causing both of them to start and turn, as Nan calmly watched them from the doorway.

Anxious to put Tom out of suspense and see how Nan would take the news, Mrs Jo answered quickly:

Anxious to relieve Tom's suspense and see how Nan would react to the news, Mrs. Jo responded quickly:

'Tom's engagement to Dora West.'

'Tom's engagement to Dora West.'

'Really?' and Nan looked so surprised that Mrs Jo was afraid she might be fonder of her old playmate than she knew; but her next words set the fear at rest, and made everything comfortable and merry at once.

"Really?" Nan looked so shocked that Mrs. Jo worried she might actually care more about her old friend than she realized; but her next words eased that worry and made everything feel warm and cheerful again.

'I knew my prescription would work wonders if he only took it long enough. Dear old Tom, I'm so glad. Bless you! bless you!' And she shook both his hands with hearty affection.

'I knew my prescription would do wonders if he just took it long enough. Dear old Tom, I'm so glad. Thank you! thank you!' And she shook both his hands with genuine affection.

'It was an accident, Nan. I didn't mean to, but I'm always getting into messes, and I couldn't seem to get out of this any other way. Mother Bhaer will tell you all about it. I must go and make myself tidy. Going to tea with Demi. See you later.'

'It was an accident, Nan. I didn't mean to, but I always seem to get into trouble, and I couldn't find another way out of this. Mother Bhaer will explain everything. I need to clean myself up. I'm going to tea with Demi. See you later.'

Stammering, blushing, and looking both sheepish and gratified, Tom suddenly bolted, leaving the elder lady to enlighten the younger at length, and have another laugh over this new sort of courtship, which might well be called accidental. Nan was deeply interested, for she knew Dora, thought her a nice little thing, and predicted that in time she would make Tom an excellent wife, since she admired and 'appreciated' him so much.

Stuttering, blushing, and appearing both embarrassed and pleased, Tom suddenly took off, leaving the older woman to explain things to the younger one at length and share another laugh about this new type of courtship, which could easily be called accidental. Nan was very interested because she knew Dora, thought she was a lovely girl, and believed that in time she would make an excellent wife for Tom, since she admired and appreciated him so much.

'I shall miss him of course, but it will be a relief to me and better for him; dangling is so bad for a boy. Now he will go into business with his father and do well, and everyone be happy. I shall give Dora an elegant family medicine-chest for a wedding-present, and teach her how to use it. Tom can't be trusted, and is no more fit for the profession than Silas.'

'I will definitely miss him, but it will be a relief for me and better for him; being aimless is really not good for a boy. Now he can go into business with his father and do well, and everyone will be happy. I’ll give Dora a nice family medicine kit as a wedding gift and teach her how to use it. Tom can't be relied on and isn’t any more suited for the profession than Silas.'

The latter part of this speech relieved Mrs Jo's mind, for Nan had looked about her as if she had lost something valuable when she began; but the medicine-chest seemed to cheer her, and the thought of Tom in a safe profession was evidently a great comfort.

The latter part of this speech eased Mrs. Jo's worries, because Nan had looked around as if she had misplaced something important at the start; however, the medicine chest appeared to boost her spirits, and the idea of Tom having a secure job was clearly a huge relief.

'The worm has turned at last, Nan, and your bond-man is free. Let him go, and give your whole mind to your work; for you are fitted for the profession, and will be an honour to it by and by,' she said approvingly.

'The worm has finally turned, Nan, and your servant is free. Let him go, and focus fully on your work; you’re suited for this profession and will bring it honor in the future,' she said with approval.

'I hope so. That reminds me—measles are in the village, and you had better tell the girls not to call where there are children. It would be bad to have a run of them just as term begins. Now I'm off to Daisy. Wonder what she will say to Tom. Isn't he great fun?' And Nan departed, laughing over the joke with such genuine satisfaction that it was evident no sentimental regrets disturbed her 'maiden meditation, fancy-free'.

'I hope so. That reminds me—measles are in the village, and you should tell the girls not to visit places with kids. It would be bad to have an outbreak just as the term starts. Now I'm off to see Daisy. I wonder what she will say to Tom. Isn’t he so much fun?' And Nan left, laughing at the joke with such genuine happiness that it was clear no sentimental regrets were bothering her 'maiden meditation, fancy-free'.

'I shall have my eye on Demi, but won't say a word. Meg likes to manage her children in her own way, and a very good way it is. But the dear Pelican will be somewhat ruffled if her boy has caught the epidemic which seems to have broken out among us this summer.'

'I’ll keep an eye on Demi but won’t say anything. Meg likes to handle her kids in her own way, and it’s a really good way too. But the dear Pelican will be a bit upset if her boy has caught the bug that seems to have spread among us this summer.'

Mrs Jo did not mean the measles, but that more serious malady called love, which is apt to ravage communities, spring and autumn, when winter gaiety and summer idleness produce whole bouquets of engagements, and set young people to pairing off like the birds. Franz began it, Nat was a chronic and Tom a sudden case; Demi seemed to have the symptoms; and worst of all, her own Ted had only the day before calmly said to her: 'Mum, I think I should be happier if I had a sweetheart, like the other boys.' If her cherished son had asked her for dynamite to play with, she would hardly have been more startled, or have more decidedly refused the absurd request.

Mrs. Jo didn’t mean the measles, but that more serious condition called love, which tends to go around communities in the spring and autumn, when winter cheer and summer laziness lead to a whole bunch of engagements and make young people start pairing off like birds. Franz was the first, Nat was a chronic case, and Tom was a sudden one; Demi seemed to be showing symptoms; and worst of all, her own Ted had just the day before casually told her, "Mom, I think I’d be happier if I had a girlfriend, like the other boys." If her beloved son had asked her for dynamite to play with, she would have been just as shocked and would have refused that silly request just as firmly.

'Well, Barry Morgan said I ought to have one and offered to pick me out a nice one among our set. I asked Josie first, and she hooted at the idea, so I thought I'd let Barry look round. You say it steadies a fellow, and I want to be steady,' explained Ted in a serious tone, which would have convulsed his parent at any other time.

'Well, Barry Morgan said I should get one and offered to help me find a nice one among our group. I asked Josie first, and she laughed at the idea, so I decided to let Barry look around. You say it helps keep a guy steady, and I want to be steady,' Ted explained in a serious tone, which would have shocked his parent at any other time.

'Good lack! What are we coming to in this fast age when babes and boys make such demands and want to play with one of the most sacred things in life?' exclaimed Mrs Jo, and having in a few words set the matter in its true light, sent her son away to wholesome baseball and Octoo for a safe sweetheart.

"Goodness! What is the world coming to in this fast-paced age when kids demand such things and want to play with one of life's most precious aspects?" exclaimed Mrs. Jo, and after quickly clarifying the issue, she sent her son off to play baseball and hang out with Octoo for a safe companion.

Now, here was Tom's bomb-shell to explode in their midst, carrying widespread destruction, perhaps; for though one swallow does not make a summer, one engagement is apt to make several, and her boys were, most of them, at the inflammable age when a spark ignites the flame, which soon flickers and dies out, or burns warm and clear for life. Nothing could be done about it but to help them make wise choices, and be worthy of good mates. But of all the lessons Mrs Jo had tried to teach her boys, this great one was the hardest; for love is apt to make lunatics of even saints and sages, so young people cannot be expected to escape the delusions, disappointments, and mistakes, as well as the delights, of this sweet madness.

Now, here was Tom's shocking revelation to drop in their midst, potentially causing widespread chaos; for although one swallow doesn’t make a summer, one engagement is likely to lead to more, and most of her boys were at that sensitive age where a spark can ignite a fire that either flickers out quickly or burns brightly for life. There was nothing to be done except to help them make smart choices and to be deserving of good partners. But out of all the lessons Mrs. Jo had tried to teach her boys, this crucial one was the toughest; love can turn even the wisest people into fools, so young people can’t be expected to dodge the illusions, disappointments, and mistakes, as well as the joys, of this sweet madness.

'I suppose it is inevitable, since we live in America, so I won't borrow trouble, but hope that some of the new ideas of education will produce a few hearty, happy, capable, and intelligent girls for my lads. Lucky for me that I haven't the whole twelve on my hands, I should lose my wits if I had, for I foresee complications and troubles ahead worse than Tom's boats, bicycles, donkeys, and Doras,' meditated Mrs Jo, as she went back to her neglected proof-sheets.

"I guess it's unavoidable, since we live in America, so I won't stress about it, but I hope some of the new education ideas will create a few strong, happy, capable, and smart girls for my boys. I'm lucky I don’t have all twelve of them to deal with; I'd lose my mind if I did, because I can already see complications and troubles ahead worse than Tom's boats, bikes, donkeys, and Doras," thought Mrs. Jo, as she returned to her neglected proof sheets.

Tom was quite satisfied with the tremendous effect his engagement produced in the little community at Plumfield.

Tom was really pleased with the huge impact his engagement had on the small community at Plumfield.

'It was paralysing,' as Demi said; and astonishment left most of Tom's mates little breath for chaff. That he, the faithful one, should turn from the idol to strange goddesses, was a shock to the romantic and a warning to the susceptible. It was comical to see the airs our Thomas put on; for the most ludicrous parts of the affair were kindly buried in oblivion by the few who knew them, and Tom burst forth as a full-blown hero who had rescued the maiden from a watery grave, and won her gratitude and love by his daring deed. Dora kept the secret, and enjoyed the fun when she came to see Mother Bhaer and pay her respects to the family generally. Everyone liked her at once, for she was a gay and winning little soul; fresh, frank, and so happy, it was beautiful to see her innocent pride in Tom, who was a new boy, or man rather; for with this change in his life a great change took place in him. Jolly he would always be, and impulsive, but he tried to become all that Dora believed him, and his best side came uppermost for everyday wear. It was surprising to see how many good traits Tom had; and his efforts to preserve the manly dignity belonging to his proud position as an engaged man was very comical. So was the entire change from his former abasement and devotion to Nan to a somewhat lordly air with his little betrothed; for Dora made an idol of him, and resented the idea of a fault or a flaw in her Tom. This new state of things suited both, and the once blighted being bloomed finely in the warm atmosphere of appreciation, love, and confidence. He was very fond of the dear girl, but meant to be a slave no longer, and enjoyed his freedom immensely, quite unconscious that the great tyrant of the world had got hold of him for life.

“It was paralyzing,” as Demi said; and shock left most of Tom's friends little time for teasing. That he, the loyal one, should turn from the idol to strange goddesses was a surprise to the romantics and a warning to the sensitive. It was funny to see the airs Tom put on; for the most ridiculous parts of the situation were kindly forgotten by the few who knew them, and Tom came across as a full-blown hero who had saved the maiden from a watery grave, winning her gratitude and love through his daring act. Dora kept the secret and enjoyed the fun when she came to see Mother Bhaer and paid her respects to the family overall. Everyone liked her immediately, for she was a cheerful and charming little soul; fresh, genuine, and so happy, it was lovely to see her innocent pride in Tom, who was a new boy, or rather man; for with this change in his life, a significant transformation happened in him. He would always be cheerful and impulsive, but he tried to become everything Dora believed he was, and his best qualities came to the forefront for everyday life. It was surprising to see how many good traits Tom had, and his attempts to maintain the manly dignity associated with being an engaged man were quite amusing. So was the entire shift from his previous devotion to Nan to a somewhat superior demeanor with his little fiancée; for Dora idolized him and couldn't stand the thought of any faults in her Tom. This new situation suited them both, and the once downtrodden individual flourished in the warm atmosphere of appreciation, love, and confidence. He was very fond of the dear girl but intended to be a slave no longer, and he thoroughly enjoyed his newfound freedom, quite unaware that the great tyrant of the world had seized him for life.

To his father's satisfaction he gave up his medical studies, and prepared to go into business with the old gentleman, who was a flourishing merchant, ready now to make the way smooth and smile upon his marriage with Mr West's well-endowed daughter. The only thorn in Tom's bed of roses was Nan's placid interest in his affairs, and evident relief at his disloyalty. He did not want her to suffer, but a decent amount of regret at the loss of such a lover would have gratified him; a slight melancholy, a word of reproach, a glance of envy as he passed with adoring Dora on his arm, seemed but the fitting tribute to such years of faithful service and sincere affection. But Nan regarded him with a maternal sort of air that nettled him very much, and patted Dora's curly head with a worldlywise air worthy of the withered spinster, Julia Mills, in David Copperfield.

To his father's satisfaction, he dropped out of medical school and got ready to go into business with the old man, who was a successful merchant, now eager to smooth things over and support his marriage to Mr. West's well-off daughter. The only downside for Tom was Nan’s calm interest in his life and her obvious relief at his betrayal. He didn’t want her to be hurt, but a bit of regret over losing such a lover would have pleased him; a touch of sadness, a word of reproach, a jealous glance as he walked by with his adoring Dora on his arm seemed like just the right acknowledgment of so many years of loyalty and genuine love. But Nan looked at him with a motherly attitude that annoyed him, and she patted Dora’s curly head with a knowing expression reminiscent of the aging spinster, Julia Mills, in David Copperfield.

It took some time to get the old and the new emotions comfortably adjusted, but Mrs Jo helped him, and Mr Laurie gave him some wise advice upon the astonishing gymnastic feats the human heart can perform, and be all the better for it if it only held fast to the balancing-pole of truth and common sense. At last our Tommy got his bearings, and as autumn came on Plumfield saw but little of him; for his new lode star was in the city, and business kept him hard at work. He was evidently in his right place now, and soon throve finely, to his father's great contentment; for his jovial presence pervaded the once quiet office like a gale of fresh wind, and his lively wits found managing men and affairs much more congenial employment than studying disease, or playing unseemly pranks with skeletons.

It took some time for him to get used to his old and new feelings, but Mrs. Jo helped him, and Mr. Laurie offered some wise advice about the incredible ways the human heart can adapt, especially if it clings to the balancing act of truth and common sense. Eventually, Tommy found his footing, and as autumn rolled in, Plumfield saw very little of him; his new guiding star was in the city, and work kept him busy. He was clearly in the right place now and soon thrived, much to his father's delight; his cheerful presence filled the previously quiet office like a refreshing breeze, and he found managing people and tasks much more enjoyable than studying diseases or playing silly tricks with skeletons.

Here we will leave him for a time and turn to the more serious adventures of his mates, though this engagement, so merrily made, was the anchor which kept our mercurial Tom happy, and made a man of him.

Here we will leave him for a while and focus on the more significant adventures of his friends, even though this cheerful commitment was the anchor that kept our lively Tom happy and helped him grow up.





Chapter 10. DEMI SETTLES

'Mother, can I have a little serious conversation with you?' asked Demi one evening, as they sat together enjoying the first fire of the season, while Daisy wrote letters upstairs and Josie was studying in the little library close by.

"Mom, can I have a serious chat with you for a minute?" Demi asked one evening as they sat together enjoying the first fire of the season, while Daisy wrote letters upstairs and Josie was studying in the small library nearby.

'Certainly, dear. No bad news, I hope?' and Mrs Meg looked up from her sewing with a mixture of pleasure and anxiety on her motherly face; for she dearly loved a good talk with her son, and knew that he always had something worth telling.

"Of course, dear. I hope there's no bad news?" Mrs. Meg looked up from her sewing with a blend of happiness and worry on her motherly face because she loved a good chat with her son and knew he always had something interesting to share.

'It will be good news for you, I think,' answered Demi, smiling as he threw away his paper and went to sit beside her on the little sofa which just held two.

"It'll be good news for you, I think," Demi replied, smiling as he tossed aside his paper and sat down next to her on the small sofa that barely fit two.

'Let me hear it, then, at once.'

'Let me hear it right now.'

'I know you don't like the reporting, and will be glad to hear that I have given it up.'

'I know you don't like the reporting, and you'll be glad to hear that I've quit.'

'I am very glad! It is too uncertain a business, and there is no prospect of getting on for a long time. I want you settled in some good place where you can stay, and in time make money. I wish you liked a profession; but as you don't, any clean, well-established business will do.'

'I’m really glad! It’s such an uncertain situation, and there’s no chance of getting ahead for a while. I want you to be settled in a good job where you can stay and eventually earn some money. I wish you liked a profession; but since you don’t, any clean, reliable business will work.'

'What do you say to a railroad office?'

'What do you say to a train station office?'

'I don't like it. A noisy, hurried kind of place, I know, with all sorts of rough men about. I hope it isn't that, dear?'

'I don't like it. It's a noisy, chaotic kind of place, I know, with all sorts of tough guys around. I hope it isn't that, dear?'

'I could have it; but does book-keeping in a wholesale leather business please you better?'

'I could have it, but does managing a wholesale leather business sound more appealing to you?'

'No; you'll get round-shouldered writing at a tall desk; and they say, once a book-keeper always a book-keeper.'

'No; you'll end up hunched over writing at a tall desk; and they say, once a bookkeeper, always a bookkeeper.'

'How does a travelling agent suit your views?'

'How does a travel agent fit your preferences?'

'Not at all; with all those dreadful accidents, and the exposure and bad food as you go from place to place, you are sure to get killed or lose your health.'

'Not at all; with all those terrible accidents, and the exposure and bad food as you travel from place to place, you’re bound to get hurt or ruin your health.'

'I could be private secretary to a literary man; but the salary is small, and may end any time.'

'I could be a personal assistant to a writer; but the pay is low, and it could stop at any moment.'

'That would be better, and more what I want. It isn't that I object to honest work of any kind; but I don't want my son to spend his best years grubbing for a little money in a dark office, or be knocked about in a rough-and-tumble scramble to get on. I want to see you in some business where your tastes and talents can be developed and made useful; where you can go on rising, and in time put in your little fortune and be a partner; so that your years of apprenticeship will not be wasted, but fit you to take your place among the honourable men who make their lives and work useful and respected. I talked it all over with your dear father when you were a child; and if he had lived he would have shown you what I mean, and helped you to be what he was.'

"That would be better and more in line with what I want. It’s not that I have anything against honest work; I just don’t want my son to spend his best years struggling for a little cash in a dark office, or getting pushed around in a rough scramble to get ahead. I want to see you in a job where your interests and skills can grow and be put to good use; where you can keep climbing the ladder and eventually invest your savings and become a partner; so that your years of learning won’t go to waste, but will prepare you to stand with the honorable people who lead meaningful and respected lives. I discussed all this with your dear father when you were a child; and if he had lived, he would have shown you what I mean and helped you become what he was."

Mrs Meg wiped away a quiet tear as she spoke; for the memory of her husband was a very tender one, and the education of his children had been a sacred task to which she gave all her heart and life, and so far she had done wonderfully well—as her good son and loving daughters tried to prove. Demi's arm was round her now, as he said, in a voice so like his father's that it was the sweetest music to her ear:

Mrs. Meg wiped away a quiet tear as she spoke; the memory of her husband was very dear to her, and raising their children was a sacred task to which she devoted all her heart and soul. So far, she had done an amazing job, as her good son and loving daughters tried to show. Demi had his arm around her now, and as he spoke in a voice so much like his father's, it was the sweetest music to her ears:

'Mother dear, I think I have got just what you want for me; and it shall not be my fault if I don't become the man you hope to see me. Let me tell you all about it. I didn't say anything till it was sure because it would only worry you; but Aunt Jo and I have been on the look-out for it some time, and now it has come. You know her publisher, Mr Tiber, is one of the most successful men in the business; also generous, kind, and the soul of honour—as his treatment of Aunty proves. Well, I've rather hankered for that place; for I love books, and as I can't make them I'd like to publish them. That needs some literary taste and judgement, it brings you in contact with fine people, and is an education in itself. Whenever I go into that large, handsome room to see Mr Tiber for Aunt Jo, I always want to stay; for it's lined with books and pictures, famous men and women come and go, and Mr Tiber sits at his desk like a sort of king, receiving his subjects; for the greatest authors are humble to him, and wait his Yes or No with anxiety. Of course I've nothing to do with all that, and may never have; but I like to see it, and the atmosphere is so different from the dark offices and hurly-burly of many other trades, where nothing but money is talked about, that it seems another world, and I feel at home in it. Yes, I'd rather beat the door-mats and make fires there than be head clerk in the great hide and leather store at a big salary.' Here Demi paused for breath; and Mrs Meg, whose face had been growing brighter and brighter, exclaimed eagerly:

"Mom, I think I’ve found just what you want for me, and it won’t be my fault if I don’t become the person you hope to see. Let me explain everything. I didn’t say anything until it was certain because it would only worry you; but Aunt Jo and I have been looking for it for a while, and now it’s here. You know her publisher, Mr. Tiber, is one of the most successful guys in the business; he’s also generous, kind, and a truly honorable man—as his treatment of Aunty shows. Well, I’ve been really wanting that position; I love books, and since I can’t write them, I’d love to publish them. That requires some literary taste and judgment, it connects you with great people, and it’s an education in itself. Whenever I go into that big, beautiful office to see Mr. Tiber for Aunt Jo, I always want to stay; it’s filled with books and art, and famous men and women come and go, while Mr. Tiber sits at his desk like a kind of king, receiving his subjects; even the greatest authors show him respect, waiting for his Yes or No with anxiety. Of course, I have nothing to do with all that, and I might never have; but I like to see it, and the atmosphere is so different from the dark offices and chaos of many other trades, where only money is discussed. It feels like another world, and I feel at home there. Yes, I’d rather sweep the floors and light fires there than be the head clerk at a big hide and leather store making a high salary." Here Demi paused for breath, and Mrs. Meg, whose face had been getting brighter and brighter, exclaimed eagerly:

'Just what I should like! Have you got it? Oh, my dear boy! your fortune is made if you go to that well-established and flourishing place, with those good men to help you along!'

'Exactly what I want! Do you have it? Oh, my dear boy! You’ll be set for life if you go to that well-respected and successful place, with those great people to support you!'

'I think I have, but we mustn't be too sure of anything yet. I may not suit; I'm only on trial, and must begin at the beginning and work my way up faithfully. Mr Tiber was very kind, and will push me on as fast as is fair to the other fellows, and as I prove myself fit to go up. I'm to begin the first of next month in the book-room, filling orders; and I go round and get orders, and do various other things of the sort. I like it. I am ready to do anything about books, if it's only to dust them,' laughed Demi, well pleased with his prospects, for, after trying various things, he seemed at last to have found the sort of work he liked, and a prospect that was very inviting to him.

"I think I've got it, but we shouldn't get ahead of ourselves just yet. I might not be a good fit; I'm just on a trial basis, and I need to start from the ground up and work my way up diligently. Mr. Tiber has been really kind and will help me progress as quickly as is fair to the others, and as I prove I'm capable. I'm starting next month in the bookroom, processing orders; I'll go around and collect orders, and handle various tasks like that. I enjoy it. I'm ready to do anything related to books, even if it’s just dusting them," laughed Demi, happily focused on his future, as after trying different things, he seemed to have finally found the type of work he liked and a future that was very appealing to him.

'You inherit that love of books from grandpa; he can't live without them. I'm glad of it. Tastes of that kind show a refined nature, and are both a comfort and a help all one's life. I am truly glad and grateful, John, that at last you want to settle, and have got such an entirely satisfactory place. Most boys begin much earlier; but I don't believe in sending them out to face the world so young, just when body and soul need home care and watchfulness. Now you are a man, and must begin your life for yourself. Do your best, and be as honest, useful, and happy as your father, and I won't care about making a fortune.'

'You got that love of books from grandpa; he can't live without them. I'm really happy about it. Having those kinds of tastes shows you have a refined nature, and they’re both a comfort and a support throughout life. I'm genuinely glad and thankful, John, that finally you want to settle down and have found such a great place. Most boys start much earlier; but I don't think they should face the world so young, especially when they need home care and attention. Now you’re a man, and it's time to start your own life. Do your best, and be as honest, helpful, and happy as your father, and I won’t worry about making a fortune.'

'I'll try, mother. Couldn't have a better chance; for Tiber & Co. treat their people like gentlemen, and pay generously for faithful work. Things are done in a businesslike way there, and that suits me. I hate promises that are not kept, and shiftless or tyrannical ways anywhere. Mr Tiber said: “This is only to teach you the ropes, Brooke; I shall have other work for you by and by.” Aunty told him I had done book notices, and had rather a fancy for literature; so though I can't produce any “works of Shakespeare”, as she says, I may get up some little things later. If I don't, I think it a very honourable and noble profession to select and give good books to the world; and I'm satisfied to be a humble helper in the work.'

"I'll give it a shot, Mom. I couldn't have a better opportunity because Tiber & Co. treats their employees well and pays generously for hard work. They do things in a professional manner there, which works for me. I can’t stand unfulfilled promises or lazy or oppressive practices anywhere. Mr. Tiber said, 'This is just to help you learn the ropes, Brooke; I'll have other tasks for you later.' Aunty mentioned that I’ve done book reviews and that I have a bit of a passion for literature, so even though I can’t produce any 'works of Shakespeare,' as she puts it, I might come up with some small projects later. If I don’t, I still see it as a very honorable and noble profession to choose and share good books with the world, and I’m happy to be a humble contributor to that effort."

'I'm glad you feel so. It adds so much to one's happiness to love the task one does. I used to hate teaching; but housekeeping for my own family was always sweet, though much harder in many ways. Isn't Aunt Jo pleased about all this?' asked Mrs Meg, already seeing in her mind's eye a splendid sign with 'Tiber, Brooke & Co.' over the door of a famous publishing house.

"I'm glad you feel that way. Loving what you do really adds to your happiness. I used to dislike teaching, but taking care of my family has always been rewarding, even though it's often more challenging. Isn't Aunt Jo happy about all this?" asked Mrs. Meg, already imagining a grand sign that read 'Tiber, Brooke & Co.' over the entrance of a well-known publishing house.

'So pleased that I could hardly keep her from letting the cat out of the bag too soon. I've had so many plans, and disappointed you so often, I wanted to be very sure this time. I had to bribe Rob and Ted to keep her at home tonight till I'd told my news, she was eager to rush down and tell you herself. The castles that dear woman has built for me would fill all Spain, and have kept us jolly while we waited to know our fate. Mr Tiber doesn't do things in a hurry; but when he makes up his mind, you are all right; and I feel that I am fairly launched.'

I was so happy that I could barely stop her from spilling the beans too soon. I’ve made so many plans and let you down so often that I really wanted to make sure this time. I even had to bribe Rob and Ted to keep her home tonight until I could share my news; she was so eager to rush down and tell you herself. The dreams that sweet woman has created for me could fill all of Spain, and they've kept us cheerful while we waited to learn our fate. Mr. Tiber doesn’t rush things; but once he makes a decision, you’re all set, and I feel like I’m finally on my way.

'Bless you, dear, I hope so! It is a happy day for me, because I've been so anxious lest, with all my care, I have been too easy and indulgent, and my boy, with his many good gifts, might fritter his time away in harmless but unsatisfactory things. Now I am at ease about you. If only Daisy can be happy, and Josie give up her dream, I shall be quite contented.'

'Bless you, dear, I really hope so! It’s a great day for me because I’ve been so worried that, despite all my efforts, I’ve been too lenient and my boy, with all his talents, might waste his time on things that are harmless but not fulfilling. Now I'm relieved about you. If only Daisy can find happiness, and Josie can let go of her dream, I’ll be truly content.'

Demi let his mother enjoy herself for a few minutes, while he smiled over a certain little dream of his own, not ready yet for the telling; then he said, in the paternal tone which he unconsciously used when speaking of his sisters:

Demi let his mother have a few minutes of fun while he smiled at a little dream of his own, not quite ready to share it yet; then he said, in the fatherly tone he unconsciously adopted when talking about his sisters:

'I'll see to the girls; but I begin to think grandpa is right in saying we must each be what God and nature makes us. We can't change it much—only help to develop the good and control the bad elements in us. I have fumbled my way into my right place at last, I hope. Let Daisy be happy in her way, since it is a good and womanly one. If Nat comes home all right, I'd say: “Bless you, my children,” and give them a nest of their own. Then you and I will help little Jo to find out if it is to be “All the world's a stage” or “Home, sweet home”, for her.'

"I'll take care of the girls, but I'm starting to think grandpa is right when he says we have to be who God and nature made us. We can't change ourselves too much—only help nurture the good parts and manage the bad ones. I believe I've finally found my right place. Let Daisy be happy in her own way since it's a good and feminine choice. If Nat comes home safe, I'd say, 'Bless you, my kids,' and give them a place of their own. Then you and I can help little Jo figure out whether it's going to be 'All the world's a stage' or 'Home, sweet home' for her."

'I suppose we must, John; but I can't help making plans, and hoping they will come to pass. I see that Daisy is bound up in Nat; and if he is worthy of her I shall let them be happy in their own way, as my parents let me. But Josie will be a trial, I foresee; and much as I love the stage, and always did, I don't see how I can ever let my little girl be an actress, though she certainly has great talent for it.'

'I guess we have to, John; but I can't help making plans and hoping they'll actually happen. I can see that Daisy is really into Nat; and if he's good enough for her, I’ll let them be happy in their own way, just like my parents did for me. But I have a feeling Josie is going to be a challenge; and as much as I love the stage, and always have, I just don't see how I can let my little girl become an actress, even though she definitely has a lot of talent for it.'

'Whose fault is that?' asked Demi, smiling, as he remembered his mother's early triumphs and unquenchable interest in the dramatic efforts of the young people round her.

"Whose fault is that?" Demi asked with a smile as he thought about his mother's early successes and her endless fascination with the dramatic pursuits of the young people around her.

'Mine, I know. How could it be otherwise when I acted Babes in the Wood with you and Daisy before you could speak, and taught Josie to declaim Mother Goose in her cradle. Ah, me! the tastes of the mother come out in her children, and she must atone for them by letting them have their own way, I suppose.' And Mrs Meg laughed, even while she shook her head over the undeniable fact that the Marches were a theatrical family.

'Mine, I know. How could it be any different when I performed Babes in the Wood with you and Daisy before you could even talk, and taught Josie to recite Mother Goose in her crib? Ah, the mother’s preferences show up in her kids, and I guess she has to make up for it by letting them have their own way.' And Mrs. Meg laughed, even while shaking her head over the undeniable fact that the Marches were a theatrical family.

'Why not have a great actress of our name, as well as an authoress, a minister, and an eminent publisher? We don't choose our talents, but we needn't hide them in a napkin because they are not just what we want. I say, let Jo have her way, and do what she can. Here am I to take care of her; and you can't deny you'd enjoy fixing her furbelows, and seeing her shine before the footlights, where you used to long to be. Come, mother, better face the music and march gaily, since your wilful children will “gang their ain gait”.'

'Why not have a great actress with our name, along with a female author, a minister, and a well-known publisher? We don’t choose our talents, but we shouldn’t hide them away just because they aren't exactly what we expected. I say, let Jo do her thing and make the most of it. I’m here to support her; and you can’t deny you’d enjoy helping her with her outfits and watching her shine on stage, where you once wanted to be. Come on, Mom, it’s better to face reality and march on cheerfully, since your determined kids are going to follow their own paths.'

'I don't see but I must, and “leave the consequences to the Lord”, as Marmee used to say when she had to decide, and only saw a step of the road. I should enjoy it immensely, if I could only feel that the life would not hurt my girl, and leave her unsatisfied when it was too late to change; for nothing is harder to give up than the excitements of that profession. I know something of it; and if your blessed father had not come along, I'm afraid I should have been an actress in spite of Aunt March and all our honoured ancestors.'

'I can’t see the full picture, but I have to move forward and “leave the consequences to God,” like Marmee always said when she had to make a decision without knowing the entire path ahead. I would really enjoy it, if only I could be sure that this life wouldn’t hurt my girl or leave her feeling unfulfilled when it was too late to make a change; because nothing is harder to give up than the thrill of that profession. I know a bit about it, and if your wonderful father hadn’t come into my life, I’m afraid I would have become an actress, despite Aunt March and all our esteemed ancestors.'

'Let Josie add new honour to the name, and work out the family talent in its proper place. I'll play dragon to her, and you play nurse, and no harm can come to our little Juliet, no matter how many Romeos spoon under her balcony. Really, ma'am, opposition comes badly from an old lady who is going to wring the hearts of our audience in the heroine's part in Aunty's play next Christmas. It's the most pathetic thing I ever saw, mother; and I'm sorry you didn't become an actress, though we should be nowhere if you had.'

'Let Josie bring new honor to the name and develop the family talent in the right way. I'll be her dragon, and you can be the nurse, so no harm can come to our little Juliet, even if a bunch of Romeos are swooning under her balcony. Honestly, ma'am, it's ridiculous for an old lady to oppose this, especially when she's about to break the hearts of our audience in the heroine's role in Aunty's play next Christmas. It's the saddest thing I've ever seen, mom, and I regret that you didn't pursue acting, even if we wouldn't be where we are today if you had.'

Demi was on his legs now, with his back to the fire, in the lordly attitude men like to assume when things go well with them, or they want to lay down the law on any subject.

Demi was standing now, with his back to the fire, in the confident posture that men like to adopt when things are going well for them or when they want to assert their opinions on any issue.

Mrs Meg actually blushed at her son's hearty praise, and could not deny that the sound of applause was as sweet now as when she played the Witch's Curse and The Moorish Maiden's Vow long years ago.

Mrs. Meg actually blushed at her son's enthusiastic praise and couldn't deny that the sound of applause was just as sweet now as it was when she played the Witch's Curse and The Moorish Maiden's Vow many years ago.

'It's perfectly absurd for me to do it, but I couldn't resist when Jo and Laurie made the part for me, and you children were to act in it. The minute I get on the old mother's dress I forget myself and feel the same thrill at the sound of the bell that I used to feel when we got up plays in the garret. If Daisy would only take the daughter's part it would be so complete; for with you and Josie I am hardly acting, it is all so real.'

'It's totally ridiculous for me to do this, but I couldn't help myself when Jo and Laurie wrote the part for me, especially with you kids acting in it. The moment I put on the old mother's dress, I forget about everything and feel the same excitement at the sound of the bell that I used to feel when we put on plays in the attic. If Daisy would just take the daughter's part, it would be perfect; because with you and Josie, I barely feel like I'm acting—it's all so real.'

'Especially the hospital scene, where you find the wounded son. Why, mother, do you know when we did that at last rehearsal my face was wet with real tears as you cried over me. It will bring down the house; but don't forget to wipe 'em off, or I shall sneeze,' said Demi, laughing at the recollection of his mother's hit.

'Especially the hospital scene, where you find the injured son. Why, mom, do you know that when we did that at the last rehearsal, my face was wet with real tears as you cried over me? It’s going to be a huge hit; but don’t forget to wipe them off, or I’m going to sneeze,' said Demi, laughing at the memory of his mother’s moment.

'I won't; but it almost broke my heart to see you so pale and dreadful. I hope there will never be another war in my time, for I should have to let you go; and I never want to live through the same experience we had with father.'

'I won't; but it nearly broke my heart to see you looking so pale and awful. I hope there will never be another war while I'm around, because I'd have to let you go; and I never want to go through the same thing we experienced with dad.'

'Don't you think Alice does the part better than Daisy would? Daisy hasn't a bit of the actress in her, and Alice puts life into the dullest words she speaks. I think the Marquise is just perfect in our piece,' said Demi, strolling about the room as if the warmth of the fire sent a sudden colour to his face.

"Don't you think Alice plays the role better than Daisy would? Daisy doesn't have any of the actress in her, while Alice brings energy to even the most boring lines she says. I think the Marquise is just perfect in our show," said Demi, walking around the room as if the warmth of the fire had suddenly flushed his cheeks.

'So do I. She is a dear girl, and I'm proud and fond of her. Where is she tonight?'

'So do I. She’s a wonderful girl, and I’m proud of her and really care about her. Where is she tonight?'

'Pegging away at her Greek, I suppose. She usually is in the evening. More's the pity,' added Demi, in a low tone, as he stared intently at the book-case, though he couldn't read a title.

'Working on her Greek, I guess. She usually does in the evening. It's such a shame,' added Demi quietly, as he focused intently on the bookcase, even though he couldn't make out a title.

'Now, there is a girl after my own heart. Pretty, well-bred, well-educated, and yet domestic, a real companion as well as help-meet for some good and intelligent man. I hope she will find one.'

'Now, there's a girl who really speaks to me. She's pretty, well-mannered, well-educated, and still knows how to take care of a home—a true partner and support for some good and smart man. I hope she finds someone.'

'So do I,' muttered Demi.

"Same here," muttered Demi.

Mrs Meg had taken up her work again, and was surveying a half-finished buttonhole with so much interest that her son's face escaped her eye. He shed a beaming smile upon the rows of poets, as if even in their glass prison they could sympathize and rejoice with him at the first rosy dawn of the great passion which they knew so well. But Demi was a wise youth, and never leaped before looking carefully. He hardly knew his own heart yet, and was contented to wait till the sentiment, the fluttering of those folded wings he began to feel, should escape from the chrysalis and be ready to soar away in the sunshine to seek and claim its lovely mate. He had said nothing; but the brown eyes were eloquent, and there was an unconscious underplot to all the little plays he and Alice Heath acted so well together. She was busy with her books, bound to graduate with high honours, and he was trying to do the same in that larger college open to all, and where each man has his own prize to win or lose. Demi had nothing but himself to offer and, being a modest youth, considered that a poor gift till he had proved his power to earn his living, and the right to take a woman's happiness into his keeping.

Mrs. Meg had resumed her work and was examining a half-finished buttonhole with such focus that she didn't notice her son’s face. He beamed at the rows of poets as if they could understand and share in his joy over the first bright signs of a deep passion they all recognized. But Demi was a sensible young man and never jumped in without being cautious. He hardly understood his own feelings yet and was willing to wait until the sentiment—the fluttering of those hidden wings he was beginning to sense—emerged from its cocoon and was ready to soar into the sunshine to find and claim its beautiful partner. He hadn’t said anything, but his brown eyes spoke volumes, and there was an unspoken tension in all the little plays he and Alice Heath performed so well together. She was focused on her studies, determined to graduate with top honors, while he was striving to do the same in that broader arena available to everyone, where each person has their own goal to achieve or miss. Demi had nothing to offer but himself and, being a humble guy, thought that was a meager gift until he had proven his ability to support himself and the right to embrace a woman's happiness.

No one guessed that he had caught the fever except sharp-eyed Josie, and she, having a wholesome fear of her brother—who could be rather awful when she went too far—wisely contented herself with watching him like a little cat, ready to pounce on the first visible sign of weakness. Demi had taken to playing pensively upon his flute after he was in his room for the night, making this melodious friend his confidante, and breathing into it all the tender hopes and fears that filled his heart. Mrs Meg, absorbed in domestic affairs, and Daisy, who cared for no music but Nat's violin, paid no heed to these chamber concerts, but Josie always murmured to herself, with a naughty chuckle, 'Dick Swiveller is thinking of his Sophy Wackles,' and bided her time to revenge certain wrongs inflicted upon her by Demi, who always took Daisy's side when she tried to curb the spirits of her unruly little sister.

No one realized he had caught the fever except for sharp-eyed Josie, and she, having a healthy fear of her brother—who could be pretty intense when she pushed him too far—wisely kept herself busy watching him like a little cat, ready to spring at the first sign of weakness. Demi had started playing thoughtfully on his flute after he went to his room for the night, making this melodic companion his confidante, pouring all the tender hopes and fears that filled his heart into it. Mrs. Meg, involved in household matters, and Daisy, who only cared for Nat's violin, paid no attention to these chamber concerts, but Josie always whispered to herself, with a mischievous laugh, 'Dick Swiveller is thinking of his Sophy Wackles,' and waited for the right moment to get back at Demi for certain wrongs he had done to her, especially since he always sided with Daisy when she tried to keep her unruly little sister in check.

This evening she got her chance, and made the most of it. Mrs Meg was just rounding off her buttonhole, and Demi still strolling restlessly about the room, when a book was heard to slam in the study, followed by an audible yawn and the appearance of the student looking as if sleep and a desire for mischief were struggling which should be master.

This evening she got her chance and made the most of it. Mrs. Meg was just finishing up her buttonhole, while Demi was still wandering restlessly around the room, when they heard a book slam shut in the study, followed by a loud yawn and the sight of the student looking like sleep and a desire for trouble were battling for control.

'I heard my name; have you been saying anything bad about me?' she demanded, perching on the arm of an easychair.

"I heard my name; have you been saying anything bad about me?" she asked, sitting on the arm of an easy chair.

Her mother told the good news, over which Josie duly rejoiced, and Demi received her congratulations with a benignant air which made her feel that too much satisfaction was not good for him, and incited her to put a thorn into his bed of roses at once.

Her mom shared the good news, which made Josie really happy, and Demi accepted her congratulations with a kind demeanor that made her think too much happiness wasn't good for him, prompting her to quickly stir up some trouble in his perfect situation.

'I caught something about the play just now, and I want to tell you that I'm going to introduce a song into my part to liven it up a bit. How would this do?' and seating herself at the piano she began to sing to these words the air of 'Kathleen Mavourneen':

'I just heard a bit about the play, and I want to let you know that I'm going to add a song to my part to make it more exciting. How does this sound?' With that, she sat down at the piano and began to sing to the tune of 'Kathleen Mavourneen':

    'Sweetest of maidens, oh, how can I tell
     The love that transfigures the whole earth to me?
     The longing that causes my bosom to swell,
     When I dream of a life all devoted to thee?'
    'Sweetest of maidens, oh, how can I express
     The love that transforms the entire world for me?
     The yearning that makes my heart feel so full,
     When I imagine a life completely devoted to you?'

She got no further, for Demi, red with wrath, made a rush at her, and the next moment a very agile young person was seen dodging round tables and chairs with the future partner of Tiber & Co. in hot pursuit. 'You monkey, how dare you meddle with my papers?' cried the irate poet, making futile grabs at the saucy girl, who skipped to and fro, waving a bit of paper tantalizingly before him.

She didn't get any further because Demi, furious and red-faced, lunged at her, and the next moment an agile young girl was seen dodging around tables and chairs with the future partner of Tiber & Co. hot on her heels. "You little troublemaker, how dare you mess with my papers?" shouted the angry poet, making useless attempts to grab the cheeky girl, who danced back and forth, teasing him with a piece of paper.

'Didn't; found it in the big “Dic”. Serves you right if you leave your rubbish about. Don't you like my song? It's very pretty.'

'Didn’t; found it in the big “Dic”. Serves you right if you leave your trash lying around. Don’t you like my song? It’s really nice.'

'I'll teach you one that you won't like if you don't give me my property.'

'I’ll show you one that you won’t appreciate if you don’t return my stuff.'

'Come and get it if you can'; and Josie vanished into the study to have out her squabble in peace, for Mrs Meg was already saying:

'Come and get it if you can,' and Josie disappeared into the study to sort out her argument in peace, because Mrs. Meg was already saying:

'Children, children! don't quarrel.'

"Hey kids, stop arguing!"

The paper was in the fire by the time Demi arrived and he at once calmed down, seeing that the bone of contention was out of the way.

The paper was in the fire by the time Demi arrived, and he immediately relaxed, realizing that the source of conflict was no longer an issue.

'I'm glad it's burnt; I don't care for it, only some verse I was trying to set to music for one of the girls. But I'll trouble you to let my papers alone, or I shall take back the advice I gave mother tonight about allowing you to act as much as you like.'

I'm glad it's burnt; I don't care about it, just some lyrics I was trying to set to music for one of the girls. But please leave my papers alone, or I’ll reconsider the advice I gave my mom tonight about letting you do whatever you want.

Josie was sobered at once by this dire threat, and in her most wheedling tone begged to know what he had said. By way of heaping coals of fire on her head he told her, and this diplomatic performance secured him an ally on the spot.

Josie was immediately sobered by this serious threat, and in her most persuasive tone, she asked what he had said. To add fuel to the fire, he told her, and this diplomatic move gained him an ally right away.

'You dear old boy! I'll never tease you again though you moon and spoon both day and night. If you stand by me, I'll stand by you and never say a word. See here! I've got a note for you from Alice. Won't that be a peace-offering and soothe your little feelings?'

'You dear old friend! I promise I won’t tease you again even though you daydream and act all lovey-dovey all the time. If you support me, I’ll support you and keep quiet about it. Look! I have a note from Alice for you. Isn’t that a nice gesture to smooth things over and make you feel better?'

Demi's eyes sparkled as Josie held up a paper cocked hat, but as he knew what was probably in it, he took the wind out of Josie's sails, and filled her with blank astonishment by saying carelessly:

Demi's eyes lit up when Josie showed him a paper hat, but knowing what was likely inside it, he deflated Josie's excitement and left her in stunned silence by casually saying:

'That's nothing; it's only to say whether she will go to the concert with us tomorrow night. You can read it if you like.'

'That's nothing; it just says whether she will go to the concert with us tomorrow night. You can read it if you want.'

With the natural perversity of her sex Josie ceased to be curious the moment she was told to read it, and meekly handed it over; but she watched Demi as he calmly read the two lines it contained and then threw it into the fire. 'Why, Jack, I thought you'd treasure every scrap the “sweetest maid” touched. Don't you care for her?'

With the natural stubbornness of her gender, Josie stopped being curious the moment she was told to read it and quietly handed it over; but she kept an eye on Demi as he calmly read the two lines it had and then tossed it into the fire. 'Why, Jack, I thought you'd cherish every piece that the “sweetest maid” touched. Don’t you care about her?'

'Very much; we all do; but “mooning and spooning”, as you elegantly express it, is not in my line. My dear little girl, your plays make you romantic, and because Alice and I act lovers sometimes you take it into your silly head that we are really so. Don't waste time hunting mares nests, but attend to your own affairs and leave me to mine. I forgive you, but don't do it again; it's bad taste, and tragedy queens don't romp.'

'Very much; we all do; but “mooning and spooning,” as you put it, is not my style. My dear little girl, your plays make you romantic, and because Alice and I sometimes act like lovers, you get the silly idea that we really are. Don’t waste time looking for things that aren’t there; focus on your own business and let me handle mine. I forgive you, but don’t let it happen again; it’s in poor taste, and tragedy queens don’t fool around.'

The last cut finished Josie; she humbly begged pardon and went off to bed, while Demi soon followed, feeling that he had not only settled himself but his too inquisitive little sister also. But if he had seen her face as she listened to the soft wailing of his flute he would not have been so sure, for she looked as cunning as a magpie as she said, with a scornful sniff: 'Pooh, you can't deceive me; I know Dick is serenading Sophy Wackles.'

The final cut finished off Josie; she humbly asked for forgiveness and went to bed, while Demi soon followed, feeling that he had not only taken care of himself but also his overly curious little sister. But if he had seen her expression as she listened to the soft sound of his flute, he wouldn't have been so confident, because she looked as sly as a magpie when she said, with a dismissive sniff: 'Come on, you can't fool me; I know Dick is serenading Sophy Wackles.'





Chapter 11. EMIL'S THANKSGIVING

The Brenda was scudding along with all sail set to catch the rising wind, and everyone on board was rejoicing, for the long voyage was drawing towards an end.

The Brenda was speeding along with all sails up to catch the increasing wind, and everyone on board was celebrating because the long journey was coming to an end.

'Four weeks more, Mrs Hardy, and we'll give you a cup of tea such as you never had before,' said second mate Hoffmann, as he paused beside two ladies sitting in a sheltered corner of the deck.

'Four more weeks, Mrs. Hardy, and we’ll treat you to a cup of tea like you’ve never had before,' said second mate Hoffmann, as he stopped next to two ladies sitting in a cozy corner of the deck.

'I shall be glad to get it, and still gladder to put my feet on solid ground,' answered the elder lady, smiling; for our friend Emil was a favourite, as well he might be, since he devoted himself to the captain's wife and daughter, who were the only passengers on board.

'I’ll be happy to get it, and even happier to have my feet on solid ground,' replied the older lady with a smile; our friend Emil was a favorite, and it was easy to see why, as he dedicated himself to the captain's wife and daughter, who were the only passengers on board.

'So shall I, even if I have to wear a pair of shoes like Chinese junks. I've tramped up and down the deck so much, I shall be barefooted if we don't arrive soon,' laughed Mary, the daughter, showing two shabby little boots as she glanced up at the companion of these tramps, remembering gratefully how pleasant he had made them.

'So will I, even if I have to wear shoes that look like Chinese boats. I've walked up and down the deck so much, I’ll be barefoot if we don’t get there soon,' laughed Mary, the daughter, showing her two worn-out little boots as she glanced up at her companion on these walks, remembering how much fun he had made them.

'Don't think there are any small enough in China,' answered Emil, with a sailor's ready gallantry, privately resolving to hunt up the handsomest shoes he could find the moment he landed.

'Don't think there are any small enough in China,' replied Emil, with a sailor's usual charm, secretly planning to search for the best shoes he could find as soon as he arrived.

'I don't know what you would have done for exercise, dear, if Mr Hoffmann had not made you walk every day. This lazy life is bad for young people, though it suits an old body like me well enough in calm weather. Is this likely to be a gale, think ye?' added Mrs Hardy, with an anxious glance at the west, where the sun was setting redly.

'I don't know what you would have done for exercise, dear, if Mr. Hoffmann hadn’t made you walk every day. This lazy lifestyle is bad for young people, although it works fine for an old body like mine in nice weather. Do you think this is going to be a storm?' added Mrs. Hardy, casting an anxious look to the west, where the sun was setting in a reddish glow.

'Only a capful of wind, ma'am, just enough to send us along lively,' answered Emil, with a comprehensive glance aloft and alow.

'Just a capful of wind, ma'am, enough to keep us moving quickly,' replied Emil, with a thorough look up and down.

'Please sing, Mr Hoffmann, it's so pleasant to have music at this time. We shall miss it very much when we get ashore,' said Mary, in a persuasive tone which would have won melody from a shark, if such a thing were possible.

"Please sing, Mr. Hoffmann, it's so nice to have music right now. We'll really miss it when we get to shore," Mary said, in a persuasive tone that could charm a shark into singing, if that were even possible.

Emil had often blessed his one accomplishment during these months, for it cheered the long days, and made the twilight hour his happiest time, wind and weather permitting. So now he gladly tuned his pipe, and leaning on the taffrail near the girl, watched the brown locks blowing in the wind as he sang her favourite song:

Emil had often appreciated his one achievement during these months, as it brightened the long days and made the evening hour his favorite time, as long as the weather was good. So now he happily adjusted his pipe, and leaning on the railing next to the girl, watched her brown hair blowing in the wind as he sang her favorite song:

    'Give me freshening breeze, my boys,
     A white and swelling sail,
     A ship that cuts the dashing waves,
     And weathers every gale.
     What life is like a sailor's life,
     So free, so bold, so brave?
     His home the ocean's wide expanse,
     A coral bed his grave.'
    'Give me a refreshing breeze, guys,  
     A white and full sail,  
     A ship that slices through the crashing waves,  
     And can handle any storm.  
     What life is better than a sailor's life,  
     So free, so adventurous, so courageous?  
     The ocean is his vast home,  
     A coral reef is his grave.'

Just as the last notes of the clear, strong voice died away, Mrs Hardy suddenly exclaimed: 'What's that?' Emil's quick eye saw at once the little puff of smoke coming up a hatchway where no smoke should be, and his heart seemed to stand still for an instant as the dread word 'Fire!' flashed through his mind. Then he was quite steady, and strolled away saying quietly:

Just as the last notes of the clear, strong voice faded away, Mrs. Hardy suddenly exclaimed, “What’s that?” Emil's sharp eye immediately spotted a small puff of smoke rising from a hatchway where there shouldn’t be any, and his heart seemed to stop for a moment as the terrifying word “Fire!” raced through his mind. Then he regained his composure and walked away, saying calmly:

'Smoking not allowed there, I'll go and stop it.' But the instant he was out of sight his face changed, and he leaped down the hatchway, thinking, with a queer smile on his lips: 'If we are afire, shouldn't wonder if I did make a coral bed my grave!'

'No smoking allowed there, I’ll go and deal with it.' But as soon as he was out of sight, his expression changed, and he jumped down the hatchway, thinking, with a strange smile on his lips: 'If we are on fire, I wouldn’t be surprised if I made a coral bed my grave!'

He was gone a few minutes, and when he came up, half stifled with smoke, he was as white as a very brown man could be, but calm and cool as he went to report to the captain.

He was gone for a few minutes, and when he returned, half-choked by smoke, he was as pale as a very brown man could be, but calm and collected as he went to report to the captain.

'Fire in the hold, sir.'

'Fire in the cargo hold, sir.'

'Don't frighten the women,' was Captain Hardy's first order; then both be stirred themselves to discover how strong the treacherous enemy was, and to rout it if possible.

"Don’t scare the women," was Captain Hardy's first command; then both set out to find out how strong the sneaky enemy was, and to defeat it if they could.

The Brenda's cargo was a very combustible one, and in spite of the streams of water poured into the hold it was soon evident that the ship was doomed. Smoke began to ooze up between the planks everywhere, and the rising gale soon fanned the smouldering fire to flames that began to break out here and there, telling the dreadful truth too plainly for anyone to hide. Mrs Hardy and Mary bore the shock bravely when told to be ready to quit the ship at a minute's notice; the boats were hastily prepared, and the men worked with a will to batten down every loophole whence the fire might escape. Soon the poor Brenda was a floating furnace, and the order to 'Take to the boats!' came for all. The women first, of course, and it was fortunate that, being a merchantman, there were no more passengers on board, so there was no panic, and one after the other the boats pushed off. That in which the women were lingered near, for the brave captain would be the last to leave his ship.

The Brenda's cargo was highly flammable, and despite the streams of water poured into the hold, it quickly became clear that the ship was doomed. Smoke started to seep up between the planks everywhere, and the rising wind soon spread the smoldering fire into flames that began to break out here and there, revealing the grim reality too clearly for anyone to ignore. Mrs. Hardy and Mary took the shocking news of needing to be ready to abandon ship at a moment's notice with courage; the lifeboats were quickly prepared, and the crew worked diligently to seal every opening from which the fire could escape. Soon the unfortunate Brenda became a floating furnace, and the order to "Get to the boats!" was given to everyone. The women went first, of course, and it was lucky that, being a merchant ship, there were no more passengers on board, so there was no panic, and one by one, the boats launched. The boat with the women stayed close, as the brave captain would be the last to leave his ship.

Emil stayed by him till ordered away, and reluctantly obeyed; but it was well for him he went, for just as he had regained the boat, rocking far below, half hidden by a cloud of smoke, a mast, undermined by the fire now raging in the bowels of the ship, fell with a crash, knocking Captain Hardy overboard. The boat soon reached him as he floated out from the wreck, and Emil sprung into the sea to rescue him, for he was wounded and senseless. This accident made it necessary for the young man to take command, and he at once ordered the men to pull for their lives, as an explosion might occur at any moment.

Emil stayed with him until he was told to leave, and he reluctantly obeyed. But it was fortunate he did, because just as he got back to the boat, which was rocking far below and partly hidden by a cloud of smoke, a mast that had been weakened by the raging fire inside the ship fell with a crash, sending Captain Hardy overboard. The boat quickly reached him as he floated away from the wreck, and Emil jumped into the sea to save him since he was injured and unconscious. This accident forced the young man to take charge, and he immediately ordered the crew to row for their lives, as an explosion could happen at any moment.

The other boats were out of danger and all lingered to watch the splendid yet awesome spectacle of the burning ship alone on the wide sea, reddening the night and casting a lurid glare upon the water, where floated the frail boats filled with pale faces, all turned for a last look at the fated Brenda, slowly settling to her watery grave. No one saw the end, however, for the gale soon swept the watchers far away and separated them, some never to meet again till the sea gives up its dead.

The other boats were out of danger, and everyone stayed to watch the amazing yet terrifying sight of the burning ship alone on the open sea, lighting up the night and casting a sinister glow on the water, where the fragile boats filled with pale faces floated, all turned for one last look at the doomed Brenda, slowly sinking to her watery grave. However, no one saw the end, as the strong wind quickly swept the onlookers away and separated them, with some never meeting again until the sea claims its dead.

The boat whose fortunes we must follow was alone when dawn came up, showing these survivors all the dangers of their situation. Food and water had been put in, and such provision for comfort and safety as time allowed; but it was evident that with a badly wounded man, two women, and seven sailors, their supply would not last long, and help was sorely needed. Their only hope was in meeting a ship, although the gale, which had raged all night, had blown them out of their course. To this hope all clung, and wiled away the weary hours, watching the horizon and cheering one another with prophecies of speedy rescue.

The boat we need to follow was alone when dawn broke, showing these survivors all the dangers they faced. They had packed some food and water, along with whatever provisions for comfort and safety they could manage; but it was clear that with a badly injured man, two women, and seven sailors, their supplies wouldn’t last long, and they desperately needed help. Their only hope was to encounter another ship, even though the storm that had blown all night had pushed them off course. Everyone held on to this hope and passed the long hours watching the horizon, encouraging each other with predictions of a quick rescue.

Second mate Hoffmann was very brave and helpful, though his unexpected responsibility weighed heavily on his shoulders; for the captain's state seemed desperate, the poor wife's grief wrung his heart, and the blind confidence of the young girl in his power to save them made him feel that no sign of doubt or fear must lessen it. The men did their part readily now, but Emil knew that if starvation and despair made brutes of them, his task might be a terrible one. So he clutched his courage with both hands, kept up a manly front, and spoke so cheerily of their good chances, that all instinctively turned to him for guidance and support.

Second mate Hoffmann was brave and helpful, even though his sudden responsibility weighed heavily on him. The captain's situation seemed dire, the poor wife's grief broke his heart, and the blind faith of the young girl in his ability to save them made him feel that he couldn't show any signs of doubt or fear. The men were now willing to do their part, but Emil knew that if hunger and hopelessness turned them into savages, his task could become a nightmare. So he held onto his courage tightly, maintained a strong front, and spoke so optimistically about their good chances that everyone instinctively looked to him for guidance and support.

The first day and night passed in comparative comfort, but when the third came, things looked dark and hope began to fail. The wounded man was delirious, the wife worn out with anxiety and suspense, the girl weak for want of food, having put away half her biscuit for her mother, and given her share of water to wet her father's feverish lips. The sailors ceased rowing and sat grimly waiting, openly reproaching their leader for not following their advice, others demanding more food, all waxing dangerous as privation and pain brought out the animal instincts lurking in them. Emil did his best, but mortal man was helpless there, and he could only turn his haggard face from the pitiless sky, that dropped no rain for their thirst, to the boundless sea where no sail appeared to gladden their longing eyes. All day he tried to cheer and comfort them, while hunger gnawed, thirst parched, and growing fear lay heavy at his heart. He told stories to the men, implored them to bear up for the helpless women's sake, and promised rewards if they would pull while they had strength to regain the lost route, as nearly as he could make it out, and increase their chance of rescue. He rigged an awning of sailcloth over the suffering man and tended him like a son, comforted the wife, and tried to make the pale girl forget herself, by singing every song he knew or recounting his adventures by land and sea, till she smiled and took heart; for all ended well.

The first day and night went by relatively comfortably, but when the third arrived, things looked gloomy and hope started to fade. The injured man was out of his mind, the wife was exhausted from worry and uncertainty, and the girl was weak from lack of food. She had saved half her biscuit for her mother and given her share of water to moisten her father's feverish lips. The sailors stopped rowing and sat grimly, openly blaming their leader for not heeding their advice, while others were demanding more food, all becoming volatile as hunger and pain unleashed their primal instincts. Emil did his best, but there was little he could do, and he could only turn his worn face from the relentless sky, which offered no rain for their thirst, to the endless sea where no sail appeared to bring them any hope. All day long, he tried to uplift and comfort them while hunger clawed at their insides, thirst dried them out, and mounting fear weighed heavily on his heart. He told stories to the men, urged them to hold on for the sake of the helpless women, and promised them rewards if they pulled together while they still had the strength to get back on track as closely as he could tell and improve their chances of rescue. He set up a sailcloth awning over the suffering man and cared for him like a son, consoled the wife, and tried to make the pale girl forget her worries by singing every song he could think of or sharing his adventures on land and sea until she smiled and felt encouraged; for all ended well.

The fourth day came and the supply of food and water was nearly gone. Emil proposed to keep it for the sick man and the women, but two of the men rebelled, demanding their share. Emil gave up his as an example, and several of the good fellows followed it, with the quiet heroism which so often crops up in rough but manly natures. This shamed the others, and for another day an ominous peace reigned in that little world of suffering and suspense. But during the night, while Emil, worn out with fatigue, left the watch to the most trustworthy sailor, that he might snatch an hour's rest, these two men got at the stores and stole the last of the bread and water, and the one bottle of brandy, which was carefully hoarded to keep up their strength and make the brackish water drinkable. Half mad with thirst, they drank greedily and by morning one was in a stupor, from which he never woke; the other so crazed by the strong stimulant, that when Emil tried to control him, he leaped overboard and was lost. Horror-stricken by this terrible scene, the other men were submissive henceforth, and the boat floated on and on with its sad freight of suffering souls and bodies.

The fourth day arrived, and the food and water supply was nearly gone. Emil suggested saving it for the sick man and the women, but two of the men protested, demanding their share. Emil gave up his portion as an example, and several of the decent guys followed suit, showing the quiet bravery that often emerges in tough but honorable people. This made the others feel ashamed, and for another day, a heavy silence hung over that small world of pain and uncertainty. But during the night, while Emil, exhausted, left the watch to the most dependable sailor to grab an hour of sleep, these two men raided the supplies and stole the last of the bread and water, along with the one bottle of brandy, which had been carefully saved to maintain their strength and make the salty water drinkable. Half out of their minds from thirst, they drank greedily, and by morning one was in a stupor from which he never woke; the other, driven insane by the strong drink, leapt overboard when Emil tried to stop him and was lost. Terrified by this horrific scene, the remaining men became submissive from that point on, and the boat continued to drift on with its heavy load of suffering souls and bodies.

Another trial came to them that left all more despairing than before. A sail appeared, and for a time a frenzy of joy prevailed, to be turned to bitterest disappointment when it passed by, too far away to see the signals waved to them or hear the frantic cries for help that rang across the sea. Emil's heart sank then, for the captain seemed dying, and the women could not hold out much longer. He kept up till night came; then in the darkness, broken only by the feeble murmuring of the sick man, the whispered prayers of the poor wife, the ceaseless swash of waves, Emil hid his face, and had an hour of silent agony that aged him more than years of happy life could have done. It was not the physical hardship that daunted him, though want and weakness tortured him; it was his dreadful powerlessness to conquer the cruel fate that seemed hanging over them. The men he cared little for, since these perils were but a part of the life they chose; but the master he loved, the good woman who had been so kind to him, the sweet girl whose winsome presence had made the long voyage so pleasant for them all—if he could only save these dear and innocent creatures from a cruel death, he felt that he could willingly give his life for them.

Another trial hit them, leaving everyone more hopeless than before. A sail appeared, and for a while, they were filled with joy, only to be crushed by disappointment when it passed by, too far to see the signals they waved or hear the desperate cries for help that echoed across the sea. Emil's heart sank then, as the captain seemed to be dying, and the women couldn't hold on much longer. He managed to keep it together until nightfall; then in the darkness, broken only by the weak murmurs of the sick man, the whispered prayers of the poor wife, and the constant crashing of waves, Emil hid his face and experienced an hour of silent agony that aged him more than years of happiness ever could. It wasn't the physical hardship that overwhelmed him, though hunger and weakness tormented him; it was his horrifying powerlessness to overcome the cruel fate that seemed to loom over them. He cared little for the men, since these dangers were just part of the life they had chosen; but for the captain he loved, the good woman who had been so kind to him, the sweet girl whose charming presence had made the long journey enjoyable for all of them—if he could only save these dear and innocent people from a cruel death, he felt he would willingly give his life for them.

As he sat there with his head in his hands, bowed down by the first great trial of his young life, the starless sky overhead, the restless sea beneath, and all around him suffering, for which he had no help, a soft sound broke the silence, and he listened like one in a dream. It was Mary singing to her mother, who lay sobbing in her arms, spent with this long anguish. A very faint and broken voice it was, for the poor girl's lips were parched with thirst; but the loving heart turned instinctively to the great Helper in this hour of despair, and He heard her feeble cry. It was a sweet old hymn often sung at Plumfield; and as he listened, all the happy past came back so clearly that Emil forgot the bitter present, and was at home again. His talk on the housetop with Aunt Jo seemed but yesterday, and, with a pang of self-reproach, he thought:

As he sat there with his head in his hands, feeling overwhelmed by the first big challenge of his young life, the dark sky above him, the restless sea below, and the suffering all around him that he could do nothing about, a soft sound broke the silence, and he listened as if he were in a dream. It was Mary singing to her mother, who was crying in her arms, worn out from this long pain. It was a very faint and shaky voice, as the poor girl's lips were dry from thirst; but her loving heart instinctively reached out to the great Helper in this moment of despair, and He heard her weak plea. It was a sweet old hymn often sung at Plumfield; and as he listened, all the happy memories of the past came flooding back so vividly that Emil forgot the painful present and felt at home again. His conversation on the housetop with Aunt Jo felt like just yesterday, and, with a wave of guilt, he thought:

'The scarlet strand! I must remember it, and do my duty to the end. Steer straight, old boy; and if you can't come into port, go down with all sail set.'

'The scarlet strand! I have to remember it and fulfill my duty to the end. Steer straight, buddy; and if you can't make it to port, go down with all sails up.'

Then, as the soft voice crooned on to lull the weary woman to a fitful sleep, Emil for a little while forgot his burden in a dream of Plumfield. He saw them all, heard the familiar voices, felt the grip of welcoming hands, and seemed to say to himself: 'Well, they shall not be ashamed of me if I never see them any more.'

Then, as the soothing voice sang softly to lull the tired woman into a restless sleep, Emil momentarily forgot his troubles in a dream of Plumfield. He saw everyone, heard the familiar voices, felt the embrace of welcoming hands, and thought to himself: 'Well, they won't be embarrassed by me if I never see them again.'

A sudden shout startled him from that brief rest, and a drop on his forehead told him that the blessed rain had come at last, bringing salvation with it; for thirst is harder to bear than hunger, heat, or cold. Welcomed by cries of joy, all lifted up their parched lips, held out their hands, and spread their garments to catch the great drops that soon came pouring down to cool the sick man's fever, quench the agony of thirst, and bring refreshment to every weary body in the boat. All night it fell, all night the castaways revelled in the saving shower, and took heart again, like dying plants revived by heaven's dew. The clouds broke away at dawn, and Emil sprung up, wonderfully braced and cheered by those hours of silent gratitude for this answer to their cry for help. But this was not all; as his eye swept the horizon, clear against the rosy sky shone the white sails of a ship, so near that they could see the pennon at her mast-head and black figures moving on the deck.

A sudden shout jolted him from that brief rest, and a drop on his forehead signaled that the long-awaited rain had finally arrived, bringing relief; because thirst is harder to endure than hunger, heat, or cold. Cheering with joy, everyone lifted their dry lips, reached out their hands, and opened their garments to catch the heavy drops that soon began pouring down to cool the sick man's fever, satisfy the agony of thirst, and refresh every exhausted person in the boat. It rained all night, and the castaways reveled in the life-saving shower, regaining their strength, like dying plants revived by heavenly dew. The clouds cleared at dawn, and Emil sprang up, feeling wonderfully invigorated and uplifted by those hours of silent gratitude for this response to their plea for help. But that wasn't all; as he scanned the horizon, sharply outlined against the rosy sky were the white sails of a ship, so close that they could see the pennant at her masthead and dark figures moving on the deck.

One cry broke from all those eager throats, and rang across the sea, as every man waved hat or handkerchief and the women stretched imploring hands towards this great white angel of deliverance coming down upon them as if the fresh wind filled every sail to help her on.

One cry came from all those excited throats and echoed across the sea, as every man waved his hat or handkerchief and the women reached out with desperate hands towards this great white angel of rescue coming down to them, as if the fresh wind filled every sail to push her forward.

No disappointment now; answering signals assured them of help; and in the rapture of that moment the happy women fell on Emil's neck, giving him his reward in tears and blessings as their grateful hearts overflowed. He always said that was the proudest moment of his life, as he stood there holding Mary in his arms; for the brave girl, who had kept up so long, broke down then, and clung to him half fainting; while her mother busied herself about the invalid, who seemed to feel the joyful stir, and gave an order, as if again on the deck of his lost ship.

No disappointment now; responding to the signals reassured them that help was on the way; and in the joy of that moment, the grateful women threw their arms around Emil, showering him with tears and blessings as their hearts overflowed with gratitude. He always said that was the proudest moment of his life, standing there with Mary in his arms; because the brave girl, who had held on for so long, finally broke down and clung to him, nearly fainting; while her mother busied herself around the invalid, who seemed to sense the joyful excitement and gave an order, as if he were back on the deck of his lost ship.

It was soon over; and then all were safely aboard the good Urania, homeward bound. Emil saw his friends in tender hands, his men among their mates, and told the story of the wreck before he thought of himself. The savoury odour of the soup, carried by to the cabin for the ladies, reminded him that he was starving, and a sudden stagger betrayed his weakness. He was instantly borne away, to be half killed by kindness, and being fed, clothed, and comforted, was left to rest. Just as the surgeon left the state-room, he asked in his broken voice: 'What day is this? My head is so confused, I've lost my reckoning.'

It was over quickly, and soon everyone was safely on the good ship Urania, heading home. Emil saw his friends in caring hands, his men with their companions, and he shared the story of the wreck before thinking of himself. The delicious smell of the soup, brought to the cabin for the ladies, reminded him that he was starving, and a sudden stumble revealed his weakness. He was quickly taken away, nearly overwhelmed by all the kindness, and after being fed, given clothes, and comforted, he was left to rest. Just as the surgeon was leaving the cabin, he asked in a shaky voice, "What day is it? My head is so mixed up, I've lost track of time."

'Thanksgiving Day, man! And we'll give you a regular New England dinner, if you'll eat it,' answered the surgeon heartily.

"Thanksgiving Day, man! And we'll serve you a classic New England dinner if you're willing to eat it," the surgeon replied warmly.

But Emil was too spent to do anything, except lie still and give thanks, more fervently and gratefully than ever before, for the blessed gift of life, which was the sweeter for a sense of duty faithfully performed.

But Emil was too exhausted to do anything except lie still and give thanks, more fervently and gratefully than ever before, for the precious gift of life, which felt even sweeter because of a duty faithfully fulfilled.





Chapter 12. DAN'S CHRISTMAS

Where was Dan? In prison. Alas for Mrs Jo! how her heart would have ached if she had known that while old Plum shone with Christmas cheer her boy sat alone in his cell, trying to read the little book she gave him, with eyes dimmed now and then by the hot tears no physical suffering had ever wrung from him, and longing with a homesick heart for all that he had lost.

Where was Dan? In prison. Poor Mrs. Jo! How her heart would have broken if she had known that while old Plum was filled with Christmas cheer, her boy sat alone in his cell, trying to read the small book she gave him, with tears sometimes blurring his vision—tears that no physical pain had ever made him shed—while he longed with a homesick heart for everything he had lost.

Yes, Dan was in prison; but no cry for help from him as he faced the terrible strait he was in with the dumb despair of an Indian at the stake; for his own bosom sin had brought him there, and this was to be the bitter lesson that tamed the lawless spirit and taught him self-control.

Yes, Dan was in prison; but there was no cry for help from him as he faced the terrible situation he was in with the silent despair of a person at the stake; for his own deep sins had brought him there, and this was to be the harsh lesson that tamed his wild spirit and taught him self-control.

The story of his downfall is soon told; for it came, as so often happens, just when he felt unusually full of high hopes, good resolutions, and dreams of a better life. On his journey he met a pleasant young fellow, and naturally felt an interest in him, as Blair was on his way to join his elder brothers on a ranch in Kansas. Card-playing was going on in the smoking-car, and the lad—for he was barely twenty—tired with the long journey, beguiled the way with such partners as appeared, being full of spirits, and a little intoxicated with the freedom of the West. Dan, true to his promise, would not join, but watched with intense interest the games that went on, and soon made up his mind that two of the men were sharpers anxious to fleece the boy, who had imprudently displayed a well-filled pocket-book. Dan always had a soft spot in his heart for any younger, weaker creature whom he met, and something about the lad reminded him of Teddy; so he kept an eye on Blair, and warned him against his new friends.

The story of his downfall is quick to tell; it came, as it often does, just when he was feeling especially hopeful, filled with good intentions, and dreaming of a better life. During his trip, he met a friendly young guy, and naturally felt drawn to him, since Blair was heading to join his older brothers on a ranch in Kansas. There was card-playing happening in the smoking car, and the lad—who was barely twenty—wore out from the long journey, passed the time with whoever he could find, feeling energetic and a bit tipsy from the freedom of the West. Dan, true to his promise, didn’t join in, but instead watched the games with keen interest and soon decided that two of the men were con artists looking to take advantage of the boy, who had foolishly shown off a well-stocked wallet. Dan always had a soft spot for any younger, vulnerable person he came across, and something about the kid reminded him of Teddy; so he kept an eye on Blair and warned him about his new friends.

Vainly, of course; for when all stopped overnight in one of the great cities, Dan missed the boy from the hotel whither he had taken him for safe-keeping; and learning who had come for him, went to find him, calling himself a fool for his pains, yet unable to leave the confiding boy to the dangers that surrounded him.

Vainly, of course; for when everything stopped overnight in one of the great cities, Dan missed the boy from the hotel where he had taken him for safekeeping; and learning who had come for him, went to find him, calling himself a fool for his troubles, yet unable to leave the trusting boy to the dangers that surrounded him.

He found him gambling in a low place with the men, who were bound to have his money; and by the look of relief on Blair's anxious face when he saw him Dan knew without words that things were going badly with him, and he saw the peril too late.

He found him gambling in a rundown spot with the guys, who were definitely after his money; and by the look of relief on Blair's worried face when he saw him, Dan realized without needing words that things were going poorly for him, and he recognized the danger too late.

'I can't come yet—I've lost; it's not my money; I must get it back, or I dare not face my brothers,' whispered the poor lad, when Dan begged him to get away without further loss. Shame and fear made him desperate; and he played on, sure that he could recover the money confided to his care. Seeing Dan's resolute face, keen eye, and travelled air, the sharpers were wary, played fair, and let the boy win a little; but they had no mind to give up their prey, and finding that Dan stood sentinel at the boy's back, an ominous glance was exchanged between them, which meant:

"I can't leave yet—I’ve lost; it’s not my money; I have to get it back, or I can’t face my brothers," the poor kid whispered, as Dan urged him to walk away before losing more. Shame and fear drove him to desperation; he kept playing, convinced he could get back the money that had been entrusted to him. Noticing Dan’s determined face, sharp eyes, and worldly presence, the con artists were cautious, played fair, and let the boy win a little; but they weren’t willing to let go of their target, and when they saw Dan standing guard behind the boy, a warning look passed between them that signified:

'We must get this fellow out of the way.'

'We need to get this guy out of the way.'

Dan saw it, and was on his guard; for he and Blair were strangers, evil deeds are easily done in such places, and no tales told. But he would not desert the boy, and still kept watch of every card till he plainly detected false play, and boldly said so. High words passed, Dan's indignation overcame his prudence; and when the cheat refused to restore his plunder with insulting words and drawn pistol, Dan's hot temper flashed out, and he knocked the man down with a blow that sent him crashing head first against a stove, to roll senseless and bleeding to the floor. A wild scene followed, but in the midst of it Dan whispered to the boy: 'Get away, and hold your tongue. Don't mind me.'

Dan noticed it and was cautious; he and Blair were strangers, and bad things can happen easily in places like that, with no stories told. But he wouldn’t abandon the boy and kept an eye on every card until he clearly saw the cheating and called it out. Heated words were exchanged, and Dan’s anger got the better of him; when the cheat refused to give back what he had stolen while insulting him and pulling out a gun, Dan’s temper flared, and he knocked the man down with a punch that sent him crashing headfirst into a stove, leaving him unconscious and bleeding on the floor. A chaotic scene followed, but in the midst of it, Dan whispered to the boy: ‘Get out of here and keep quiet. Don’t worry about me.’

Frightened and bewildered, Blair quitted the city at once, leaving Dan to pass the night in the lock-up, and a few days later to stand in court charged with manslaughter; for the man was dead. Dan had no friends, and having once briefly told the story, held his peace, anxious to keep all knowledge of this sad affair from those at home. He even concealed his name—giving that of David Kent, as he had done several times before in emergencies. It was all over very soon; but as there were extenuating circumstances his sentence was a year in prison, with hard labour.

Frightened and confused, Blair left the city immediately, leaving Dan to spend the night in jail, and a few days later, to face charges of manslaughter in court; the man was dead. Dan had no friends and, after briefly sharing his story, kept quiet, wanting to keep this tragic event from his family. He even hid his real name—using David Kent instead, as he had done a few times before in emergencies. It all wrapped up quickly; however, due to some mitigating circumstances, his sentence was a year in prison with hard labor.

Dazed by the rapidity with which this horrible change in his life came upon him, Dan did not fully realize it till the iron door clanged behind him and he sat alone in a cell as narrow, cold, and silent as a tomb. He knew that a word would bring Mr Laurie to help and comfort him; but he could not bear to tell of this disgrace, or see the sorrow and the shame it would cause the friends who hoped so much for him.

Dazed by how quickly this terrible change in his life happened, Dan didn't fully grasp it until the iron door slammed shut behind him, leaving him alone in a cell that was narrow, cold, and silent like a tomb. He knew that just saying a word would bring Mr. Laurie to help and comfort him, but he couldn't bear to reveal this disgrace or witness the sorrow and shame it would bring to the friends who had so much hope for him.

'No,' he said, clenching his fist, 'I'll let them think me dead first. I shall be if I am kept here long'; and he sprang up to pace the stone floor like a caged lion, with a turmoil of wrath and grief, rebellion and remorse, seething in heart and brain, till he felt as if he should go mad and beat upon the walls that shut him away from the liberty which was his life. For days he suffered terribly, then worn out, sank into a black melancholy sadder to see than his excitement.

'No,' he said, clenching his fist, 'I'll let them think I'm dead first. I really will if I'm kept here much longer'; and he jumped up to pace the stone floor like a caged lion, feeling a mix of anger and grief, rebellion and regret, boiling inside him, until he felt like he would go crazy and start banging on the walls that kept him from the freedom that was his life. For days he suffered intensely, then, completely drained, he fell into a deep sadness that was even sadder to witness than his earlier agitation.

The warden of this prison was a rough man who had won the ill will of all by unnecessary harshness, but the chaplain was full of sympathy, and did his hard duty faithfully and tenderly. He laboured with poor Dan, but seemed to make no impression, and was forced to wait till work had soothed the excited nerves and captivity tamed the proud spirit that would suffer but not complain.

The warden of this prison was a tough guy who had earned everyone's resentment with his unnecessary harshness, but the chaplain was full of compassion and performed his challenging job faithfully and gently. He tried to help poor Dan, but it seemed to have no effect, and he had to wait until work calmed the frayed nerves and captivity subdued the proud spirit that would endure but not complain.

Dan was put in the brush-shop, and feeling that activity was his only salvation, worked with a feverish energy that soon won the approval of the master and the envy of less skilful mates. Day after day he sat in his place, watched by an armed overseer, forbidden any but necessary words, no intercourse with the men beside him, no change but from cell to shop, no exercise but the dreary marches to and fro, each man's hand on the other's shoulder keeping step with the dreary tramp so different from the ringing tread of soldiers. Silent, gaunt, and grim, Dan did his daily task, ate his bitter bread, and obeyed commands with a rebellious flash of the eye, that made the warden say:

Dan was assigned to the brush shop, and feeling that staying active was his only way to cope, he worked with a feverish energy that quickly earned him the approval of the boss and the envy of less skilled coworkers. Day after day, he sat in his spot, monitored by a guard with a weapon, allowed to speak only when necessary, forbidden to interact with the men next to him, with no change except moving from his cell to the shop, and no exercise other than the monotonous marches back and forth, each man's hand on the shoulder of the one in front of him, keeping in step with the dreary shuffle that was so different from the lively stride of soldiers. Silent, thin, and grim, Dan carried out his daily tasks, ate his bland bread, and obeyed orders with a rebellious glint in his eye, which made the warden say:

'That's a dangerous man. Watch him. He'll break out some day.'

'That guy is dangerous. Keep an eye on him. He'll escape someday.'

There were others more dangerous than he, because older in crime and ready for any desperate outbreak to change the monotony of long sentences. These men soon divined Dan's mood, and in the mysterious way convicts invent, managed to convey to him before a month was over that plans were being made for a mutiny at the first opportunity. Thanksgiving Day was one of the few chances for them to speak together as they enjoyed an hour of freedom in the prison yard. Then all would be settled and the rash attempt made if possible, probably to end in bloodshed and defeat for most, but liberty for a few. Dan had already planned his own escape and bided his time, growing more and more moody, fierce, and rebellious, as loss of liberty wore upon soul and body; for this sudden change from his free, healthy life to such a narrow, gloomy, and miserable one, could not but have a terrible effect upon one of Dan's temperament and age.

There were others who were more dangerous than he was, because they were older in crime and willing to take desperate actions to break the monotony of long sentences. These men quickly figured out Dan's mood and, using the secretive ways that convicts have, managed to let him know within a month that plans were in the works for a mutiny at the first chance. Thanksgiving Day was one of the few times they could talk while enjoying an hour of freedom in the prison yard. That’s when everything would be decided and they would make their reckless attempt, which would likely end in bloodshed and defeat for most, but freedom for a few. Dan had already mapped out his own escape and was waiting for the right moment, feeling more and more moody, fierce, and rebellious as the loss of his freedom took a toll on his mind and body; this sudden shift from his free, healthy life to such a confined, dark, and miserable existence could only have a devastating impact on someone like Dan, given his temperament and age.

He brooded over his ruined life, gave up all his happy hopes and plans, felt that he could never face dear old Plumfield again, or touch those friendly hands, with the stain of blood upon his own. He did not care for the wretched man whom he had killed, for such a life was better ended, he thought; but the disgrace of prison would never be wiped out of his memory, though the cropped hair would grow again, the grey suit easily be replaced, and the bolts and bars left far behind.

He reflected on his destroyed life, abandoned all his hopes and plans, felt that he could never face dear old Plumfield again, or touch those friendly hands, with the stain of blood on his own. He didn’t care for the miserable man he had killed, thinking that such a life was better ended; but the shame of prison would never leave his memory, even though his cropped hair would grow back, the grey suit could be easily replaced, and the bolts and bars would be left far behind.

'It's all over with me; I've spoilt my life, now let it go. I'll give up the fight and get what pleasure I can anywhere, anyhow. They shall think me dead and so still care for me, but never know what I am. Poor Mother Bhaer! she tried to help me, but it's no use; the firebrand can't be saved.'

'It's all over for me; I've ruined my life, so let it end. I'll stop fighting and find whatever enjoyment I can, wherever I can. They can think I'm dead and still care about me, but they'll never know who I really am. Poor Mother Bhaer! She tried to help me, but it's pointless; the troublemaker can't be saved.'

And dropping his head in his hands as he sat on his low bed, Dan would mourn over all he had lost in tearless misery, till merciful sleep would comfort him with dreams of the happy days when the boys played together, or those still later and happier ones when all smiled on him, and Plumfield seemed to have gained a new and curious charm.

And dropping his head in his hands while sitting on his low bed, Dan would grieve over everything he had lost in silent misery, until merciful sleep would bring him dreams of the happy days when the boys played together, or those even later and happier ones when everyone smiled at him, and Plumfield seemed to have taken on a new and fascinating charm.

There was one poor fellow in Dan's shop whose fate was harder than his, for his sentence expired in the spring, but there was little hope of his living till that time; and the coldest-hearted man pitied poor Mason as he sat coughing his life away in that close place and counting the weary days yet to pass before he could see his wife and little child again. There was some hope that he might be pardoned out, but he had no friends to bestir themselves in the matter, and it was evident that the great Judge's pardon would soon end his patient pain for ever.

There was one unfortunate guy in Dan's shop whose situation was worse than his, because his sentence was up in the spring, but he had little chance of living until then; even the coldest-hearted person felt sorry for poor Mason as he sat there, coughing away his life in that cramped space and counting the long days left before he could see his wife and little kid again. There was some chance he might get a pardon, but he had no friends to advocate for him, and it was clear that the great Judge's pardon would soon put an end to his suffering for good.

Dan pitied him more than he dared to show, and this one tender emotion in that dark time was like the little flower that sprung up between the stones of the prison yard and saved the captive from despair, in the beautiful old story. Dan helped Mason with his work when he was too feeble to finish his task, and the grateful look that thanked him was a ray of sunshine to cheer his cell when he was alone. Mason envied the splendid health of his neighbour, and mourned to see it wasting there. He was a peaceful soul and tried, as far as a whispered word or warning glance could do it, to deter Dan from joining the 'bad lot', as the rebels were called. But having turned his face from the light, Dan found the downward way easy, and took a grim satisfaction in the prospect of a general outbreak during which he might revenge himself upon the tyrannical warden, and strike a blow for his own liberty, feeling that an hour of insurrection would be a welcome vent for the pent-up passions that tormented him. He had tamed many a wild animal, but his own lawless spirit was too much for him, till he found the curb that made him master of himself.

Dan felt more sympathy for him than he let on, and that one gentle feeling during such a dark time was like a small flower that grew between the stones in the prison yard, saving the prisoner from despair, just like in that beautiful old story. Dan helped Mason with his work when he was too weak to finish, and the grateful look Mason gave him was a ray of sunshine that brightened his lonely cell. Mason envied the great health of his neighbor and lamented seeing it dwindle away. He was a peaceful soul and tried, as much as a quiet word or warning glance could manage, to steer Dan away from joining the 'bad lot,' as the rebels were called. But after turning his back on hope, Dan found it easy to slip down the wrong path and took a grim pleasure in the thought of a general uprising during which he might get back at the cruel warden and fight for his own freedom, believing that an hour of chaos would be a welcome release for the built-up frustrations that tormented him. He had tamed many wild animals, but his own unruly spirit was too much for him until he discovered the control that allowed him to master himself.

The Sunday before Thanksgiving, as he sat in chapel, Dan observed several guests in the seats reserved for them, and looked anxiously to see if any familiar face was there; for he had a mortal fear that someone from home would suddenly confront him. No, all were strangers, and he soon forgot them in listening to the chaplain's cheerful words, and the sad singing of many heavy hearts. People often spoke to the convicts, so it caused no surprise when, on being invited to address them, one of the ladies rose and said she would tell them a little story; which announcement caused the younger listeners to pack up their ears, and even the older ones to look interested; for any change in their monotonous life was welcome.

The Sunday before Thanksgiving, while he was sitting in chapel, Dan noticed a few guests in the seats reserved for them and looked around anxiously to see if any familiar faces were there because he was terrified that someone from home would suddenly show up. No, they were all strangers, and he quickly forgot about them as he listened to the chaplain's cheerful words and the sad singing of many heavy hearts. People often talked to the convicts, so it was no surprise when, after being invited to speak, one of the ladies stood up and said she would share a short story; this announcement made the younger listeners perk up, and even the older ones seemed interested, as any break in their monotonous routine was welcome.

The speaker was a middle-aged woman in black, with a sympathetic face, eyes full of compassion, and a voice that seemed to warm the heart, because of certain motherly tones in it. She reminded Dan of Mrs Jo, and he listened intently to every word, feeling that each was meant for him, because by chance, they came at the moment when he needed a softening memory to break up the ice of despair which was blighting all the good impulses of his nature.

The speaker was a middle-aged woman in black, with a kind face, eyes full of compassion, and a voice that felt comforting, thanks to its motherly tones. She reminded Dan of Mrs. Jo, and he listened closely to every word, feeling that each one was meant for him, as they arrived just when he needed a gentle memory to melt the ice of despair that was stifling all the good impulses within him.

It was a very simple little story, but it caught the men's attention at once, being about two soldiers in a hospital during the late war, both badly wounded in the right arm, and both anxious to save these breadwinners and go home unmaimed. One was patient, docile, and cheerfully obeyed orders, even when told that the arm must go. He submitted and after much suffering recovered, grateful for life, though he could fight no more. The other rebelled, would listen to no advice, and having delayed too long, died a lingering death, bitterly regretting his folly when it was too late. 'Now, as all stories should have a little moral, let me tell you mine,' added the lady, with a smile, as she looked at the row of young men before her, sadly wondering what brought them there.

It was a very simple story, but it grabbed the men's attention immediately. It was about two soldiers in a hospital during the recent war, both badly injured in their right arms, and both eager to save their livelihoods and go home unscathed. One soldier was patient, compliant, and cheerfully followed orders, even when told that his arm needed to be amputated. He accepted it, and after a lot of pain, he recovered, grateful for his life, even though he couldn’t fight anymore. The other soldier resisted, wouldn’t listen to any advice, and after delaying too long, he died a slow death, bitterly regretting his mistakes when it was already too late. “Now, since all stories should have a bit of a moral, let me share mine,” the lady added with a smile as she looked at the row of young men before her, sadly questioning what had brought them there.

'This is a hospital for soldiers wounded in life's battle; here are sick souls, weak wills, insane passions, blind consciences, all the ills that come from broken laws, bringing their inevitable pain and punishment with them. There is hope and help for every one, for God's mercy is infinite and man's charity is great; but penitence and submission must come before the cure is possible. Pay the forfeit manfully, for it is just; but from the suffering and shame wring new strength for a nobler life. The scar will remain, but it is better for a man to lose both arms than his soul; and these hard years, instead of being lost, may be made the most precious of your lives, if they teach you to rule yourselves. O friends, try to outlive the bitter past, to wash the sin away, and begin anew. If not for your own sakes, for that of the dear mothers, wives, and children, who wait and hope so patiently for you. Remember them, and do not let them love and long in vain. And if there be any here so forlorn that they have no friend to care for them, never forget the Father whose arms are always open to receive, forgive, and comfort His prodigal sons, even at the eleventh hour.' There the little sermon ended; but the preacher of it felt that her few hearty words had not been uttered in vain, for one boy's head was down, and several faces wore the softened look which told that a tender memory was touched. Dan was forced to set his lips to keep them steady, and drop his eyes to hide the sudden dew that dimmed them when waiting, hoping friends were spoken of. He was glad to be alone in his cell again, and sat thinking deeply, instead of trying to forget himself in sleep. It seemed as if those words were just what he needed to show him where he stood and how fateful the next few days might be to him. Should he join the 'bad lot', and perhaps add another crime to the one already committed, lengthen the sentence already so terrible to bear, deliberately turn his back on all that was good, and mar the future that might yet be redeemed? Or should he, like the wiser man in the story, submit, bear the just punishment, try to be better for it; and though the scar would remain, it might serve as a reminder of a battle not wholly lost, since he had saved his soul though innocence was gone? Then he would dare go home, perhaps, confess, and find fresh strength in the pity and consolation of those who never gave him up.

This is a hospital for soldiers wounded in life's battles; here are sick souls, weak wills, crazy passions, and lost consciences—everything that comes from breaking the rules, bringing their unavoidable pain and punishment with them. There is hope and help for everyone, for God's mercy is endless and man's kindness is great; but repentance and humility must come before healing can happen. Face the consequences bravely, because it’s fair; but from the suffering and shame, find new strength for a better life. The scar will remain, but it’s better for a person to lose both arms than their soul; and these difficult years, instead of being wasted, can become the most valuable of your life if they teach you self-control. Friends, try to move on from the painful past, to wash away the sin, and start fresh. If not for yourselves, then for the loving mothers, wives, and children who wait and hope so patiently for you. Remember them, and don’t let them love and long in vain. And if there’s anyone here so alone that they have no friend to care for them, never forget the Father whose arms are always open to receive, forgive, and comfort His wayward children, even at the last moment. The small sermon ended; but the speaker felt that her heartfelt words had not been said in vain, for one boy’s head was down, and several faces showed a softened look revealing that a tender memory was stirred. Dan was forced to press his lips together to keep them steady and looked down to hide the sudden tears that blurred his vision when friends waiting and hoping were mentioned. He was relieved to be alone in his cell again, sitting in deep thought instead of trying to forget himself in sleep. It seemed those words were just what he needed to understand where he stood and how critical the next few days might be for him. Should he join the 'bad crowd', possibly committing another crime to add to the one he’d already made, prolonging the sentence that was already so hard to bear, deliberately turning his back on everything good, and ruining a future that could still be saved? Or should he, like the wise man in the story, accept the rightful punishment, try to improve because of it; and though the scar would remain, it could serve as a reminder of a battle not completely lost, since he saved his soul even though innocence was gone? Then he might have the courage to go home, perhaps confess, and find new strength in the love and comfort of those who never gave up on him.

Good and evil fought for Dan that night as did the angel and the devil for Sintram, and it was hard to tell whether lawless nature or loving heart would conquer. Remorse and resentment, shame and sorrow, pride and passion, made a battle-field of that narrow cell, and the poor fellow felt as if he had fiercer enemies to fight now than any he had met in all his wanderings. A little thing turned the scale, as it so often does in these mysterious hearts of ours, and a touch of sympathy helped Dan decide the course which would bless or ban his life.

Good and evil clashed for Dan that night, just like the angel and the devil did for Sintram, making it hard to tell whether reckless instincts or a caring heart would win. Remorse and resentment, shame and sorrow, pride and passion turned that cramped cell into a battlefield, and the poor guy felt like he had tougher enemies to face now than any he had encountered in all his travels. A small thing tipped the balance, as it often does in our complicated hearts, and a bit of sympathy helped Dan choose the path that would either bless or curse his life.

In the dark hour before the dawn, as he lay wakeful on his bed, a ray of light shone through the bars, the bolts turned softly, and a man came in. It was the good chaplain, led by the same instinct that brings a mother to her sick child's pillow; for long experience as nurse of souls had taught him to see the signs of hope in the hard faces about him, and to know when the moment came for a helpful word and the cordial of sincere prayer that brings such comfort and healing to tried and troubled hearts. He had been to Dan before at unexpected hours, but always found him sullen, indifferent, or rebellious, and had gone away to patiently bide his time. Now it had come; a look of relief was in the prisoner's face as the light shone on it, and the sound of a human voice was strangely comfortable after listening to the whispers of the passions, doubts, and fears which had haunted the cell for hours, dismaying Dan by their power, and showing him how much he needed help to fight the good fight, since he had no armour of his own.

In the dark hour before dawn, as he lay awake in his bed, a ray of light shone through the bars, the bolts turned softly, and a man entered. It was the kind chaplain, guided by the same instinct that draws a mother to her sick child's bedside; his long experience as a caretaker of souls had taught him to recognize signs of hope in the hardened faces around him and to know when it was time for a supportive word and the comfort of genuine prayer that brings healing to weary and troubled hearts. He had visited Dan before at unexpected times but always found him gloomy, indifferent, or defiant, and had left to patiently wait for a better moment. Now that moment had arrived; a look of relief crossed the prisoner's face as the light illuminated it, and the sound of a human voice felt oddly comforting after the whispers of passions, doubts, and fears that had haunted the cell for hours, unsettling Dan with their intensity and revealing how much he needed help to fight the good fight, having no armor of his own.

'Kent, poor Mason has gone. He left a message for you, and I felt impelled to come and give it now, because I think you were touched by what we heard today, and in need of the help Mason tried to give you,' said the chaplain, taking the one seat and fixing his kind eyes on the grim figure in the bed.

'Kent, poor Mason is gone. He left a message for you, and I felt compelled to come and share it now, because I think you were moved by what we heard today, and you need the support Mason tried to offer you,' said the chaplain, taking the only seat and focusing his kind eyes on the serious figure in the bed.

'Thank you, sir, I'd like to hear it,' was all Dan's answer; but he forgot himself in pity for the poor fellow dead in prison, with no last look at wife or child.

"Thank you, sir, I’d like to hear it," was all Dan's response; but he lost his composure thinking about the poor guy who died in prison, without a final glimpse of his wife or child.

He went suddenly, but remembered you, and begged me to say these words: “Tell him not to do it, but to hold on, do his best, and when his time is out go right to Mary, and she'll make him welcome for my sake. He's got no friends in these parts and will feel lonesome, but a woman's always safe and comfortable when a fellow's down on his luck. Give him my love and good-bye for he was kind to me, and God will bless him for it.” Then he died quietly, and tomorrow will go home with God's pardon, since man's came too late.'

He left suddenly but thought of you and asked me to share these words: “Tell him not to give up, but to hang in there, do his best, and when his time is up, go straight to Mary, and she’ll welcome him for my sake. He doesn't have any friends around here and will feel lonely, but a woman is always safe and comforting when a guy is down on his luck. Send him my love and goodbye because he was nice to me, and God will bless him for it.” Then he passed away quietly, and tomorrow he’ll go home with God’s forgiveness, since man’s came too late.

Dan said nothing, but laid his arm across his face and lay quite still. Seeing that the pathetic little message had done its work even better than he hoped, the chaplain went on, unconscious how soothing his paternal voice was to the poor prisoner who longed to 'go home', but felt he had forfeited the right.

Dan didn’t say anything; he just rested his arm over his face and lay completely still. Realizing that the touching little message had worked even better than he expected, the chaplain continued, unaware of how comforting his fatherly voice was to the poor prisoner who desperately wanted to 'go home' but felt he had lost that right.

'I hope you won't disappoint this humble friend whose last thought was for you. I know that there is trouble brewing, and fear that you may be tempted to lend a hand on the wrong side. Don't do it, for the plot will not succeed—it never does—and it would be a pity to spoil your record which is fair so far. Keep up your courage, my son, and go out at the year's end better, not worse, for this hard experience. Remember a grateful woman waits to welcome and thank you if you have no friends of your own; if you have, do your best for their sake, and let us ask God to help you as He only can.'

'I hope you won't let down this humble friend whose last thought was of you. I know there's trouble on the horizon, and I'm worried you might be tempted to get involved on the wrong side. Don’t do it, because the plan won’t work—it never does—and it would be a shame to ruin your good reputation so far. Stay strong, my son, and come out of this year better, not worse, from this tough experience. Remember, a grateful woman is eagerly waiting to welcome and thank you if you don’t have your own friends; if you do, do your best for their sake, and let's ask God to help you as only He can.'

Then waiting for no answer the good man prayed heartily, and Dan listened as he never had before; for the lonely hour, the dying message, the sudden uprising of his better self, made it seem as if some kind angel had come to save and comfort him. After that night there was a change in Dan, though no one knew it but the chaplain; for to all the rest he was the same silent, stern, unsocial fellow as before, and turning his back on the bad and the good alike, found his only pleasure in the books his friend brought him. Slowly, as the steadfast drop wears away the rock, the patient kindness of this man won Dan's confidence, and led by him he began to climb out of the Valley of Humiliation towards the mountains, whence, through the clouds, one can catch glimpses of the Celestial City whither all true pilgrims sooner or later turn their wistful eyes and stumbling feet. There were many back-slidings, many struggles with Giant Despair and fiery Apollyon, many heavy hours when life did not seem worth living and Mason's escape the only hope. But through all, the grasp of a friendly hand, the sound of a brother's voice, the unquenchable desire to atone for the past by a better future, and win the right to see home again, kept poor Dan to his great task as the old year drew to its end, and the new waited to turn another leaf in the book whose hardest lesson he was learning now.

Then, without waiting for a response, the good man prayed sincerely, and Dan listened like he never had before; the lonely hour, the dying message, and the sudden rise of his better self made it feel like some kind angel had come to save and comfort him. After that night, there was a change in Dan, though no one but the chaplain noticed; to everyone else he was still the same quiet, serious, unsociable guy as before, turning his back on both the bad and the good, finding his only joy in the books his friend brought him. Slowly, just as a steady drop can wear away rock, the patient kindness of this man earned Dan's trust, and with his guidance, Dan began to climb out of the Valley of Humiliation towards the mountains, where, through the clouds, one can catch glimpses of the Celestial City that all true pilgrims eventually seek with hopeful eyes and faltering steps. There were many setbacks, many battles with Giant Despair and fiery Apollyon, many heavy moments when life felt not worth living and Mason’s escape seemed like the only hope. But through it all, the grip of a friendly hand, the sound of a brother’s voice, and an unquenchable desire to make up for the past by creating a better future, with the goal of finally returning home, kept poor Dan focused on his challenging journey as the old year came to an end, and the new one awaited to turn another page in the book whose toughest lesson he was learning now.

At Christmas he yearned so for Plumfield that he devised a way to send a word of greeting to cheer their anxious hearts, and comfort his own. He wrote to Mary Mason, who lived in another State, asking her to mail the letter he enclosed. In it he merely said he was well and busy, had given up the farm, and had other plans which he would tell later; would not be home before autumn probably, nor write often, but was all right, and sent love and merry Christmas to everyone.

At Christmas, he missed Plumfield so much that he came up with a way to send a message to lift their worried spirits and soothe his own. He wrote to Mary Mason, who lived in another state, asking her to mail the letter he included. In it, he simply said he was well and busy, had given up the farm, and had other plans he would share later; he probably wouldn’t be home until autumn and wouldn’t write often, but he was doing fine and sent love and Merry Christmas wishes to everyone.

Then he took up his solitary life again, and tried to pay his forfeit manfully.

Then he went back to his lonely life and tried to face his consequences bravely.





Chapter 13. NAT'S NEW YEAR

'I don't expect to hear from Emil yet, and Nat writes regularly, but where is Dan? Only two or three postals since he went. Such an energetic fellow as he is could buy up all the farms in Kansas by this time,' said Mrs Jo one morning when the mail came in and no card or envelope bore Dan's dashing hand.

"I don't expect to hear from Emil yet, and Nat writes regularly, but where is Dan? It's only been two or three postcards since he left. A guy as energetic as he is could have bought up all the farms in Kansas by now," Mrs. Jo said one morning when the mail arrived and there was no card or envelope with Dan's bold handwriting.

'He never writes often, you know, but does his work and then comes home. Months and years seem to mean little to him, and he is probably prospecting in the wilderness, forgetful of time,' answered Mr Bhaer, deep in one of Nat's long letters from Leipzig.

'He doesn't write very often, you know, but he does his job and then comes home. Months and years don't seem to matter much to him, and he's probably out exploring in the wilderness, unaware of the time,' replied Mr. Bhaer, engrossed in one of Nat's long letters from Leipzig.

'But he promised he would let me know how he got on, and Dan keeps his word if he can. I'm afraid something has happened to him'; and Mrs Jo comforted herself by patting Don's head, as he came at the sound of his master's name to look at her with eyes almost human in their wistful intelligence.

'But he promised he would let me know how he was doing, and Dan keeps his word when he can. I'm worried that something has happened to him,' and Mrs. Jo comforted herself by patting Don's head, as he came to her at the sound of his master's name, looking at her with eyes almost human in their longing understanding.

'Don't worry, Mum dear, nothing ever happens to the old fellow. He'll turn up all right, and come stalking in some day with a gold-mine in one pocket and a prairie in the other, as jolly as a grig,' said Ted, who was in no haste to deliver Octoo to her rightful owner.

"Don't worry, Mom, nothing ever happens to the old guy. He'll show up eventually, strolling in one day with a gold mine in one pocket and a prairie in the other, as happy as can be," said Ted, who was in no rush to return Octoo to her rightful owner.

'Perhaps he has gone to Montana and given up the farm plan. He seemed to like Indians best, I thought'; and Rob went to help his mother with her pile of letters and his cheerful suggestions.

'Maybe he went to Montana and dropped the farm plan. He seemed to like Indians the most, I thought'; and Rob went to help his mom with her stack of letters and his upbeat ideas.

'I hope so, it would suit him best. But I am sure he would have told us his change of plan and sent for some money to work with. No, I feel in my prophetic bones that something is wrong,' said Mrs Jo, looking as solemn as Fate in a breakfast-cap.

'I hope so; that would be best for him. But I’m sure he would have let us know about his change of plans and asked for some money to work with. No, I can feel deep down that something isn’t right,' said Mrs. Jo, looking as serious as Fate in a breakfast cap.

'Then we shall hear; ill news always travels fast. Don't borrow trouble, Jo, but hear how well Nat is getting on. I'd no idea the boy would care for anything but music. My good friend Baumgarten has launched him well, and it will do him good if he lose not his head. A good lad, but new to the world, and Leipzig is full of snares for the unwary. Gott be with him!'

'Then we'll find out; bad news always spreads quickly. Don't worry, Jo, but listen to how well Nat is doing. I had no idea the boy would be interested in anything other than music. My good friend Baumgarten has set him up nicely, and it will benefit him as long as he keeps his composure. He's a good kid, but he's inexperienced, and Leipzig has plenty of traps for the unsuspecting. God be with him!'

The Professor read Nat's enthusiastic account of certain literary and musical parties he had been to, the splendours of the opera, the kindness of his new friends, the delight of studying under such a master as Bergmann, his hopes of rapid gain, and his great gratitude to those who had opened this enchanted world to him.

The Professor read Nat's excited description of the literary and music parties he had attended, the beauty of the opera, the generosity of his new friends, the joy of learning from such a great teacher as Bergmann, his hopes for quick success, and his deep gratitude to those who had introduced him to this magical world.

'That, now, is satisfactory and comfortable. I felt that Nat had unsuspected power in him before he went away; he was so manly and full of excellent plans,' said Mrs Jo, in a satisfied tone.

"That feels good and reassuring. I sensed that Nat had hidden potential in him before he left; he was so confident and full of great ideas," said Mrs. Jo, sounding pleased.

'We shall see. He will doubtless get his lesson and be the better for it. That comes to us all in our young days. I hope it will not be too hard for our good Jungling,' answered the Professor, with a wise smile, remembering his own student life in Germany.

'We'll see. He'll definitely learn his lesson and be better for it. That happens to all of us in our youth. I hope it won't be too tough for our good Jungling,' replied the Professor, with a knowing smile, recalling his own student days in Germany.

He was right; and Nat was already getting his lesson in life with a rapidity which would have astonished his friends at home. The manliness over which Mrs Jo rejoiced was developing in unexpected ways, and quiet Nat had plunged into the more harmless dissipations of the gay city with all the ardour of an inexperienced youth taking his first sip of pleasure. The entire freedom and sense of independence was delicious, for many benefits began to burden him, and he longed to stand on his own legs and make his own way. No one knew his past here; and with a well-stocked wardrobe, a handsome sum at his banker's, and the best teacher in Leipzig, he made his debut as a musical young gentleman, presented by the much-respected Professor Bhaer and the wealthy Mr Laurence, who had many friends glad to throw open their houses to his protege. Thanks to these introductions, his fluent German, modest manners, and undeniable talent, the stranger was cordially welcomed, and launched at once into a circle which many an ambitious young man strove in vain to enter.

He was right, and Nat was already getting a crash course in life at a speed that would have surprised his friends back home. The maturity that Mrs. Jo celebrated was unfolding in unexpected ways, and quiet Nat had dived into the more innocent pleasures of the lively city with all the enthusiasm of a young person experiencing joy for the first time. The total freedom and sense of independence felt amazing, as he started to feel the weight of responsibilities, and he yearned to stand on his own and carve out his own path. No one here knew his past, and with a well-stocked wardrobe, a good amount in his bank account, and the best teacher in Leipzig, he made his entrance as a musical young gentleman, introduced by the esteemed Professor Bhaer and the affluent Mr. Laurence, who had many friends eager to welcome his protégé into their homes. Thanks to these introductions, his fluent German, humble demeanor, and undeniable talent, the newcomer was warmly embraced and immediately entered a social circle that many aspiring young men struggled unsuccessfully to join.

All this rather turned Nat's head; and as he sat in the brilliant opera-house, chatted among the ladies at some select coffee-party, or whisked an eminent professor's amiable daughter down the room, trying to imagine she was Daisy, he often asked himself if this gay fellow could be the poor homeless little Street musician who once stood waiting in the rain at the gates of Plumfield. His heart was true, his impulses good, and his ambitions high; but the weak side of his nature came uppermost here; vanity led him astray, pleasure intoxicated him, and for a time he forgot everything but the delights of this new and charming life. Without meaning to deceive, he allowed people to imagine him a youth of good family and prospects; he boasted a little of Mr Laurie's wealth and influence, of Professor Bhaer's eminence, and the flourishing college at which he himself had been educated. Mrs Jo was introduced to the sentimental Frauleins who read her books, and the charms and virtues of his own dear Madchen confided to sympathetic mammas. All these boyish boastings and innocent vanities were duly circulated among the gossips, and his importance much increased thereby, to his surprise and gratification, as well as some shame.

All of this really got to Nat; and as he sat in the bright opera house, chatted with the ladies at some exclusive coffee gathering, or danced with a prominent professor's lovely daughter, trying to picture her as Daisy, he often wondered if this cheerful guy could really be the poor, homeless street musician who once stood in the rain at the gates of Plumfield. His heart was genuine, his instincts were good, and his dreams were big; but his weaknesses showed here; vanity led him off track, pleasure overwhelmed him, and for a while, he forgot everything except the joys of this new and exciting life. Without meaning to mislead anyone, he let people think he was a young man from a good family with a bright future; he bragged a bit about Mr. Laurie's wealth and influence, about Professor Bhaer's reputation, and the prestigious college he himself had attended. Mrs. Jo was introduced to the sentimental young women who read her books, and he shared the charms and qualities of his beloved Madchen with sympathetic moms. All these youthful boasts and innocent vanities made the rounds among the gossips, and his status grew as a result, which both surprised and pleased him, though it also brought some embarrassment.

But they bore fruit that was bitter in the end; for, finding that he was considered one of the upper class, it very soon became impossible for him to live in the humble quarters he had chosen, or to lead the studious, quiet life planned for him. He met other students, young officers, and gay fellows of all sorts, and was flattered at being welcomed among them; though it was a costly pleasure, and often left a thorn of regret to vex his honest conscience. He was tempted to take better rooms in a more fashionable street, leaving good Frau Tetzel to lament his loss, and his artist neighbour, Fraulein Vogelstein, to shake her grey ringlets and predict his return, a sadder and a wiser man.

But in the end, the fruits of his choices were bitter. Once he realized he was seen as part of the upper class, it quickly became impossible for him to stay in the modest place he had picked or to maintain the studious, quiet life he had envisioned. He started meeting other students, young officers, and lively people from all walks of life, and he was flattered to be included among them. However, this pleasure came at a high price, often leaving him with a nagging regret that troubled his conscience. He was tempted to upgrade to nicer rooms in a trendier area, leaving good Frau Tetzel to mourn his absence and his artist neighbor, Fraulein Vogelstein, to shake her gray curls and predict his return, a sadder and wiser man.

The sum placed at his disposal for expenses and such simple pleasures as his busy life could command seemed a fortune to Nat, though it was smaller than generous Mr Laurie first proposed. Professor Bhaer wisely counselled prudence, as Nat was unused to the care of money, and the good man knew the temptations that a well-filled purse makes possible at this pleasure-loving age. So Nat enjoyed his handsome little apartment immensely, and insensibly let many unaccustomed luxuries creep in. He loved his music and never missed a lesson; but the hours he should have spent in patient practice were too often wasted at theatre, ball, beer-garden, or club—doing no harm beyond that waste of precious time, and money not his own; for he had no vices, and took his recreation like a gentleman, so far. But slowly a change for the worse was beginning to show itself, and he felt it. These first steps along the flowery road were downward, not upward; and the constant sense of disloyalty which soon began to haunt him made Nat feel, in the few quiet hours he gave himself, that all was not well with him, spite of the happy whirl in which he lived.

The amount he had for expenses and the little pleasures his busy life allowed felt like a fortune to Nat, even though it was less than what generous Mr. Laurie had initially offered. Professor Bhaer wisely advised him to be careful, knowing that Nat wasn't used to handling money, and he understood the temptations that come with having a full wallet in this pleasure-loving time. So, Nat really enjoyed his nice little apartment and gradually let in many unfamiliar luxuries. He loved his music and never missed a lesson, but the time he should have spent practicing was often wasted at the theater, balls, beer gardens, or clubs—causing no harm other than that loss of precious time and money that wasn't his; he had no vices and enjoyed his downtime like a gentleman, up until that point. But slowly, he began to feel a change for the worse. These first steps down the easy path were leading him downward, not upward; and the constant feeling of disloyalty that began to trouble him made Nat realize, in the rare quiet moments he allowed himself, that something was not right with him, despite the joyful chaos of his life.

'Another month, and then I will be steady,' he said more than once, trying to excuse the delay by the fact that all was new to him, that his friends at home wished him to be happy, and that society was giving him the polish he needed. But as each month slipped away it grew harder to escape; he was inevitably drawn on, and it was so easy to drift with the tide that he deferred the evil day as long as possible. Winter festivities followed the more wholesome summer pleasures, and Nat found them more costly; for the hospitable ladies expected some return from the stranger; and carriages, bouquets, theatre tickets, and all the little expenses a young man cannot escape at such times, told heavily on the purse which seemed bottomless at first. Taking Mr Laurie for his model, Nat became quite a gallant, and was universally liked; for through all the newly acquired airs and graces the genuine honesty and simplicity of his character plainly shone, winning confidence and affection from all who knew him.

"Just one more month, and then I'll have it together," he said more than once, trying to justify the delay by saying everything was new to him, that his friends back home wanted him to be happy, and that society was smoothing out the rough edges he needed to polish. But as each month passed, it became harder to break free; he was inevitably pulled along, and it was so easy to go with the flow that he postponed the inevitable as long as he could. Winter festivities followed the more wholesome summer fun, and Nat found them to be more expensive; the welcoming ladies expected something in return from the newcomer, and expenses like carriages, flowers, theater tickets, and all the little things a young man couldn’t avoid at those times weighed heavily on what initially seemed like an endless supply of money. Following Mr. Laurie’s example, Nat turned into quite the gentleman and was liked by everyone; through all the new traits and charms he picked up, the genuine honesty and simplicity of his character shone through, earning the trust and affection of everyone who knew him.

Among these was a certain amiable old lady with a musical daughter—well-born but poor, and very anxious to marry the aforesaid daughter to some wealthy man. Nat's little fictions concerning his prospects and friends charmed the gnadige Frau as much as his music and devoted manners did the sentimental Minna. Their quiet parlour seemed homelike and restful to Nat, when tired of gayer scenes; and the motherly interest of the elder lady was sweet and comfortable to him; while the tender blue eyes of the pretty girl were always so full of welcome when he came, of regret when he left, and of admiration when he played to her, that he found it impossible to keep away from this attractive spot. He meant no harm, and feared no danger, having confided to the Frau Mamma that he was betrothed; so he continued to call, little dreaming what ambitious hopes the old lady cherished, nor the peril there was in receiving the adoration of a romantic German girl, till it was too late to spare her pain and himself great regret.

Among them was a certain friendly old woman with a musical daughter—well-bred but poor, and very eager to marry her daughter off to some rich man. Nat’s little fabrications about his future and friends delighted the kind lady just as much as his music and devoted demeanor charmed the sentimental Minna. Their cozy parlor felt homey and relaxing to Nat when he grew tired of livelier scenes; and the motherly concern from the older woman was comforting and sweet to him. The tender blue eyes of the pretty girl always sparkled with warmth when he arrived, filled with sadness when he left, and shone with admiration when he played for her, making it impossible for him to resist visiting this appealing place. He meant no harm and feared no danger, having confided to the old lady that he was engaged; so he kept visiting, unaware of the ambitious dreams the lady held for him or the risk in receiving the affection of a romantic German girl until it was too late to spare her pain and himself deep regret.

Of course some inkling of these new and agreeable experiences got into the voluminous letters he never was too gay, too busy, or too tired to write each week; and while Daisy rejoiced over his happiness and success, and the boys laughed at the idea of 'old Chirper coming out as a society man', the elders looked sober, and said among themselves:

Of course, some hint of these new and enjoyable experiences made it into the lengthy letters he was never too cheerful, too busy, or too tired to write each week; and while Daisy celebrated his happiness and success, and the boys laughed at the thought of 'old Chirper becoming a socialite', the adults looked serious and said to each other:

'He is going too fast; he must have a word of warning, or trouble may come.'

'He's moving too quickly; he needs a word of caution, or problems might arise.'

But Mr Laurie said: 'Oh, let him have his fling; he's been dependent and repressed long enough. He can't go far with the money he has, and I've no fear of his getting into debt. He's too timid and too honest to be reckless. It is his first taste of freedom; let him enjoy it, and he'll work the better by and by; I know—and I'm sure I'm right.'

But Mr. Laurie said, "Oh, let him have his fun; he’s been dependent and held back for long enough. He won't get very far with the money he has, and I’m not worried about him going into debt. He’s too shy and too honest to be careless. This is his first taste of freedom; let him enjoy it, and he’ll work better later on; I know—and I’m sure I’m right."

So the warnings were very gentle, and the good people waited anxiously to hear more of hard study, and less of 'splendid times'. Daisy sometimes wondered, with a pang of her faithful heart, if one of the charming Minnas, Hildegardes, and Lottchens mentioned were not stealing her Nat away from her; but she never asked, always wrote calmly and cheerfully, and looked in vain for any hint of change in the letters that were worn out with much reading.

So the warnings were really soft, and the kind people waited nervously to hear more about hard work and less about 'exciting times.' Daisy sometimes worried, with a twinge in her loyal heart, if one of the lovely Minnas, Hildegardes, and Lottchens mentioned might be taking her Nat away from her; but she never asked, always wrote in a calm and cheerful way, and looked in vain for any signs of change in the letters that were worn out from being read so much.

Month after month slipped away, till the holidays came with gifts, good wishes, and brilliant festivities. Nat expected to enjoy himself very much, and did at first; for a German Christmas is a spectacle worth seeing. But he paid dearly for the abandon with which he threw himself into the gaieties of that memorable week; and on New Year's Day the reckoning came. It seemed as if some malicious fairy had prepared the surprises that arrived, so unwelcome were they, so magical the change they wrought, turning his happy world into a scene of desolation and despair as suddenly as a transformation at the pantomime.

Month after month passed, until the holidays arrived with gifts, good wishes, and joyful celebrations. Nat looked forward to having a great time, and he did at first because a German Christmas is truly something special. But he paid a heavy price for the reckless way he threw himself into the festivities of that unforgettable week; and on New Year's Day, the consequences hit. It felt as if a spiteful fairy had set up the surprises that came, so unwelcome were they, so drastic the change they brought, transforming his happy world into a scene of desolation and despair as suddenly as a transformation in a play.

The first came in the morning when, duly armed with costly bouquets and bon-bons, he went to thank Minna and her mother for the braces embroidered with forget-me-nots and the silk socks knit by the old lady's nimble fingers, which he had found upon his table that day. The Frau Mamma received him graciously; but when he asked for the daughter the good lady frankly demanded what his intentions were, adding that certain gossip which had reached her ear made it necessary for him to declare himself or come no more, as Minna's peace must not be compromised.

The first visit happened in the morning when, armed with expensive bouquets and chocolates, he went to thank Minna and her mother for the forget-me-not embroidered braces and the silk socks knitted by the old lady's skilled hands, which he had found on his table that day. Frau Mamma welcomed him warmly; however, when he asked to see her daughter, the kind lady openly questioned his intentions, mentioning that some gossip she had heard required him to be clear about his intentions or not return, as Minna's happiness must not be put at risk.

A more panic-stricken youth was seldom seen than Nat as he received this unexpected demand. He saw too late that his American style of gallantry had deceived the artless girl, and might be used with terrible effect by the artful mother, if she chose to do it. Nothing but the truth could save him, and he had the honour and honesty to tell it faithfully. A sad scene followed; for Nat was obliged to strip off his fictitious splendour, confess himself only a poor student, and humbly ask pardon for the thoughtless freedom with which he had enjoyed their too confiding hospitality. If he had any doubts of Frau Schomburg's motives and desires, they were speedily set at rest by the frankness with which she showed her disappointment, the vigour with which she scolded him, and the scorn with which she cast him off when her splendid castles in the air collapsed.

A more panicked young man was hardly seen than Nat as he faced this unexpected demand. He realized too late that his American style of charm had misled the innocent girl, and it could be used to devastating effect by the cunning mother if she chose to do so. Only the truth could save him, and he had the honor and integrity to tell it honestly. A sad scene followed; Nat had to strip away his false glory, admit he was just a poor student, and humbly ask for forgiveness for the thoughtless ease with which he had taken advantage of their trusting hospitality. If he had any doubts about Frau Schomburg's motives and desires, they were quickly dispelled by her frank disappointment, the fierce way she reprimanded him, and the disdain with which she dismissed him when her grand illusions came crashing down.

The sincerity of Nat's penitence softened her a little and she consented to a farewell word with Minna, who had listened at the keyhole, and was produced drenched in tears, to fall on Nat's bosom, crying: 'Ah, thou dear one, never can I forget thee, though my heart is broken!'

The sincerity of Nat's remorse touched her a bit, and she agreed to a goodbye with Minna, who had been listening at the keyhole and was brought in, crying uncontrollably, to collapse into Nat's arms, saying: 'Oh, my dear, I'll never forget you, even though my heart is shattered!'

This was worse than the scolding; for the stout lady also wept, and it was only after much German gush and twaddle that he escaped, feeling like another Werther; while the deserted Lotte consoled herself with the bonbons, her mother with the more valuable gifts.

This was worse than being scolded; the heavyset lady was crying too, and it took a lot of overly sentimental German nonsense before he was able to get away, feeling like another Werther; meanwhile, the abandoned Lotte comforted herself with the candies, and her mother with the more valuable gifts.

The second surprise arrived as he dined with Professor Baumgarten. His appetite had been effectually taken away by the scene of the morning, and his spirits received another damper when a fellow student cheerfully informed him that he was about to go to America, and should make it his agreeable duty to call on the 'lieber Herr Professor Bhaer', to tell him how gaily his protege was disporting himself at Leipzig. Nat's heart died within him as he imagined the effect these glowing tales would have at Plumfield—not that he had wilfully deceived them, but in his letters many things were left untold; and when Carlsen added, with a friendly wink, that he would merely hint at the coming betrothal of the fair Minna and his 'heart's friend', Nat found himself devoutly hoping that this other inconvenient heart's friend might go to the bottom of the sea before he reached Plumfield to blast all his hopes by these tales of a mis-spent winter. Collecting his wits, he cautioned Carlsen with what he flattered himself was Mephistophelian art, and gave him such confused directions that it would be a miracle if he ever found Professor Bhaer. But the dinner was spoilt for Nat, and he got away as soon as possible, to wander disconsolately about the streets, with no heart for the theatre or the supper he was to share with some gay comrades afterwards. He comforted himself a little by giving alms to sundry beggars, making two children happy with gilded gingerbread, and drinking a lonely glass of beer, in which he toasted his Daisy and wished himself a better year than the last had been.

The second surprise came while he was having dinner with Professor Baumgarten. He had lost his appetite from the morning’s events, and his mood plummeted further when a fellow student cheerfully told him he was headed to America and planned to pay a visit to the 'dear Professor Bhaer' to share how joyfully his protégé was enjoying life in Leipzig. Nat felt a sinking feeling as he imagined how these glowing stories would land back at Plumfield—not that he had meant to deceive anyone, but his letters had left out many things; and when Carlsen added, with a friendly wink, that he would casually mention the upcoming engagement of the lovely Minna and his 'best friend', Nat found himself earnestly wishing that this other bothersome friend would somehow vanish before reaching Plumfield, ruining all his hopes with tales of a wasted winter. Regaining his composure, he warned Carlsen with what he thought was clever misdirection and gave him such mixed-up instructions that it would be a miracle if he ever found Professor Bhaer. But dinner was ruined for Nat, and he left as soon as he could, wandering aimlessly around the streets, with no enthusiasm for the theater or the supper he was supposed to enjoy with some lively friends later. He found a bit of solace in giving money to various beggars, making two children happy with fancy gingerbread, and drinking a solitary glass of beer, toasting to his Daisy and wishing for a better year ahead than the last one had been.

Going home at length, he found a third surprise awaiting him in the shower of bills which had descended upon him like a snowstorm, burying him in an avalanche of remorse, despair, and self-disgust. These bills were so many and so large that he was startled and dismayed; for, as Mr Bhaer wisely predicted, he knew little about the value of money. It would take every dollar at the bankers to pay them all at once, and leave him penniless for the next six months, unless he wrote home for more. He would rather starve than do that; and his first impulse was to seek help at the gaming-table, whither his new friends had often tempted him. But he had promised Mr Bhaer to resist what then had seemed an impossible temptation; and now he would not add another fault to the list already so long. Borrow he would not, nor beg. What could he do? For these appalling bills must be paid, and the lessons go on; or his journey was an ignominious failure. But he must live meantime. And how? Bowed down with remorse for the folly of these months, he saw too late whither he was drifting, and for hours paced up and down his pretty rooms, floundering in a Slough of Despond, with no helping hand to pull him out—at least he thought so till letters were brought in, and among fresh bills lay one well-worn envelope with an American stamp in the corner.

Finally arriving home, he discovered a third surprise waiting for him in the flood of bills that had come crashing down like a snowstorm, burying him under an avalanche of guilt, despair, and self-hatred. The sheer number and severity of these bills startled and upset him; for, as Mr. Bhaer wisely predicted, he knew little about the value of money. Paying them all at once would use up every dollar in the bank and leave him broke for the next six months unless he asked his family for more. He would rather go without than do that; and his first thought was to seek help at the gambling table, where his new friends had often tempted him. But he had promised Mr. Bhaer to resist what at the time felt like an impossible temptation; and now he didn’t want to add another mistake to his already long list. He would neither borrow nor beg. What could he do? These awful bills had to be paid, and classes had to continue; otherwise, his journey would be a disgraceful failure. But he needed to live in the meantime. And how? Overwhelmed with guilt over the foolishness of the past few months, he realized too late where he was headed, and for hours he paced back and forth in his nice rooms, stuck in a deep depression, with no one to pull him out—at least he thought so until letters were delivered, and among the fresh bills lay a familiar envelope with an American stamp in the corner.

Ah, how welcome it was! how eagerly he read the long pages full of affectionate wishes from all at home! For everyone had sent a line, and as each familiar name appeared, his eyes grew dimmer and dimmer till, as he read the last—'God bless my boy! Mother Bhaer'—he broke down; and laying his head on his arms, blistered the paper with a rain of tears that eased his heart and washed away the boyish sins that now lay so heavy on his conscience.

Ah, how welcome it was! How eagerly he read the long pages filled with loving wishes from everyone back home! Everyone had sent a note, and with each familiar name, his eyes grew dimmer and dimmer until, as he read the last one—"God bless my boy! Mother Bhaer"—he lost it; and laying his head on his arms, he soaked the paper with tears that relieved his heart and washed away the youthful mistakes that now weighed so heavily on his conscience.

'Dear people, how they love and trust me! And how bitterly they would be disappointed if they knew what a fool I've been! I'll fiddle in the streets again before I'll ask for help from them!' cried Nat, brushing away the tears of which he was ashamed, although he felt the good they had done.

'Dear people, how much they love and trust me! And how utterly disappointed they would be if they knew what a fool I've been! I'll play my fiddle in the streets again before I'll ask them for help!' cried Nat, wiping away the tears he was ashamed of, even though he appreciated the good they had done.

Now he seemed to see more clearly what to do; for the helping hand had been stretched across the sea, and Love, the dear Evangelist, had lifted him out of the slough and shown him the narrow gate, beyond which deliverance lay. When the letter had been reread, and one corner where a daisy was painted, passionately kissed, Nat felt strong enough to face the worst and conquer it. Every bill should be paid, every salable thing of his own sold, these costly rooms given up; and once back with thrifty Frau Tetzel, he would find work of some sort by which to support himself, as many another student did. He must give up the new friends, turn his back on the gay life, cease to be a butterfly, and take his place among the grubs. It was the only honest thing to do, but very hard for the poor fellow to crush his little vanities, renounce the delights so dear to the young, own his folly, and step down from his pedestal to be pitied, laughed at, and forgotten.

Now he seemed to see more clearly what to do; for the helping hand had been reached across the sea, and Love, the dear messenger, had pulled him out of the mire and shown him the narrow gate, beyond which freedom lay. After rereading the letter and passionately kissing the corner where a daisy was painted, Nat felt strong enough to face the worst and overcome it. Every bill should be paid, every valuable thing of his sold, and these expensive rooms given up; and once he returned to thrifty Frau Tetzel, he would find some kind of work to support himself, just like many other students did. He had to give up his new friends, turn his back on the lively life, stop being a carefree socialite, and take his place among the struggling ones. It was the only honest thing to do, but it was very hard for him to suppress his little vanities, give up the pleasures so precious to the young, admit his mistakes, and step down from his pedestal to be pitied, laughed at, and forgotten.

It took all Nat's pride and courage to do this, for his was a sensitive nature; esteem was very precious to him, failure very bitter, and nothing but the inborn contempt for meanness and deceit kept him from asking help or trying to hide his need by some dishonest device. As he sat alone that night, Mr Bhaer's words came back to him with curious clearness, and he saw himself a boy again at Plumfield, punishing his teacher as a lesson to himself, when timidity had made him lie.

It took all of Nat's pride and courage to do this, because he was a sensitive person; he valued respect greatly, felt failure deeply, and only his natural disdain for dishonesty and trickery stopped him from asking for help or trying to cover up his need with some dishonest scheme. As he sat alone that night, Mr. Bhaer's words replayed in his mind with surprising clarity, and he found himself thinking back to when he was a boy at Plumfield, punishing his teacher as a lesson to himself when his fear had made him lie.

'He shall not suffer for me again, and I won't be a sneak if I am a fool. I'll go and tell Professor Baumgarten all about it and ask his advice. I'd rather face a loaded cannon; but it must be done. Then I'll sell out, pay my debts, and go back where I belong. Better be an honest pauper than a jackdaw among peacocks'; and Nat smiled in the midst of his trouble, as he looked about him at the little elegancies of his room, remembering what he came from.

'He won't have to suffer for me again, and I won't be a coward even if I look foolish. I'll go and tell Professor Baumgarten everything and ask for his advice. I'd rather face a loaded gun, but it needs to be done. Then I'll sell everything, pay off my debts, and go back to where I belong. It's better to be an honest poor person than a show-off among the elite.' Nat smiled despite his troubles as he looked around at the little comforts in his room, remembering where he came from.

He kept his word manfully, and was much comforted to find that his experience was an old story to the professor, who approved his plan, thinking wisely that the discipline would be good for him, and was very kind in offering help and promising to keep the secret of his folly from his friend Bhaer till Nat had redeemed himself.

He kept his promise with determination and felt relieved to discover that his situation was something the professor was already familiar with. The professor supported his plan, wisely believing that the experience would benefit him. He was also very generous in offering help and promised to keep his mistake a secret from his friend Bhaer until Nat had made up for it.

The first week of the new year was spent by our prodigal in carrying out his plan with penitent dispatch, and his birthday found him alone in the little room high up at Frau Tetzel's, with nothing of his former splendour, but sundry unsalable keepsakes from the buxom maidens, who mourned his absence deeply. His male friends had ridiculed, pitied, and soon left him alone, with one or two exceptions, who offered their purses generously and promised to stand by him. He was lonely and heavy-hearted, and sat brooding over his small fire as he remembered the last New Year's Day at Plumfield, when at this hour he was dancing with his Daisy.

The first week of the new year was spent by our wayward friend following through on his plan with remorseful determination, and on his birthday, he found himself alone in the small room high up at Frau Tetzel's, without any of his previous grandeur, just a few unsellable mementos from the cheerful young women who missed him dearly. His male friends had mocked him, felt sorry for him, and soon left him on his own, except for one or two who generously offered their money and promised to support him. He felt lonely and sad, sitting and reflecting over his small fire as he remembered last New Year's Day at Plumfield, when at this time he was dancing with his Daisy.

A tap at the door roused him, and with a careless 'Herein', he waited to see who had climbed so far for his sake. It was the good Frau proudly bearing a tray, on which stood a bottle of wine and an astonishing cake bedecked with sugar-plums of every hue, and crowned with candles. Fraulein Vogelstein followed, embracing a blooming rose-tree, above which her grey curls waved and her friendly face beamed joyfully as she cried:

A knock on the door woke him up, and with a casual "Come in," he waited to see who had come all this way for him. It was the kind Mrs. carrying a tray, which held a bottle of wine and an incredible cake decorated with colorful sugar-plums and topped with candles. Miss Vogelstein followed, holding a blooming rose plant, with her grey curls swaying above her as her cheerful face lit up joyfully as she exclaimed:

'Dear Herr Blak, we bring you greetings and a little gift or two in honour of this ever-to-be-remembered day. Best wishes! and may the new year bloom for you as beautifully as we your heart-warm friends desire.'

'Dear Mr. Blak, we send you our greetings along with a little gift or two to celebrate this unforgettable day. Best wishes! May the new year unfold for you as beautifully as we, your warm-hearted friends, hope.'

'Yes, yes, in truth we do, dear Herr,' added Frau Tetzel. 'Eat of this with-joy-made Kuchen, and drink to the health of the far-away beloved ones in the good wine.'

'Yes, yes, we really do, dear Sir,' added Mrs. Tetzel. 'Enjoy this joyful cake, and drink to the health of our beloved ones far away in the fine wine.'

Amused, yet touched by the kindness of the good souls, Nat thanked them both, and made them stay to enjoy the humble feast with him. This they gladly did, being motherly women full of pity for the dear youth, whose straits they knew, and having substantial help to offer, as well as kind words and creature comforts.

Amused but also moved by the kindness of the good souls, Nat thanked them both and invited them to stay and share the simple meal with him. They happily accepted, being nurturing women filled with compassion for the young man, aware of his struggles, and eager to provide practical help along with comforting words and support.

Frau Tetzel, with some hesitation, mentioned a friend of hers who, forced by illness to leave his place in the orchestra of a second-rate theatre, would gladly offer it to Nat, if he could accept so humble a position. Blushing and toying with the roses like a shy girl, good old Vogelstein asked if in his leisure moments he could give English lessons in the young ladies' school where she taught painting, adding that a small but certain salary would be paid him.

Frau Tetzel, a bit hesitant, brought up a friend of hers who, due to illness, had to leave his spot in the orchestra of a low-tier theater. He would happily offer it to Nat if he could take such a modest position. Blushing and fidgeting with the roses like a shy girl, the good old Vogelstein inquired if he could give English lessons during his free time at the young ladies' school where she taught painting, mentioning that he would receive a small but guaranteed salary.

Gratefully Nat accepted both offers, finding it less humiliating to be helped by women than by friends of his own sex. This work would support him in a frugal way, and certain musical drudgery promised by his master assured his own teaching. Delighted with the success of their little plot, these friendly neighbours left him with cheery words, warm hand-grasps, and faces beaming with feminine satisfaction at the hearty kiss Nat put on each faded cheek, as the only return he could make for all their helpful kindness.

Gratefully, Nat accepted both offers, feeling it was less embarrassing to be helped by women than by his male friends. This job would allow him to live modestly, and the musical tasks promised by his master guaranteed he could teach as well. Thrilled with the success of their little scheme, these kind neighbors left him with cheerful words, warm handshakes, and faces glowing with satisfaction as Nat gave each faded cheek a heartfelt kiss, which was the only way he could show his gratitude for all their kindness.

It was strange how much brighter the world looked after that; for hope was a better cordial than the wine, and good resolutions bloomed as freshly as the little rose-tree that filled the room with fragrance, as Nat woke the echoes with the dear old airs, finding now as always his best comforter in music, to whom henceforth he swore to be a more loyal subject.

It was odd how much brighter the world seemed after that; hope was a better pick-me-up than wine, and good intentions bloomed as vibrantly as the little rose tree that filled the room with its scent. Nat woke the echoes with the beloved old tunes, finding, as he always did, his greatest comfort in music, to which he promised to be a more devoted fan from then on.





Chapter 14. PLAYS AT PLUMFIELD

As it is as impossible for the humble historian of the March family to write a story without theatricals in it as for our dear Miss Yonge to get on with less than twelve or fourteen children in her interesting tales, we will accept the fact, and at once cheer ourselves after the last afflicting events, by proceeding to the Christmas plays at Plumfield; for they influence the fate of several of our characters, and cannot well be skipped.

As it is just as impossible for the humble historian of the March family to write a story without some drama in it as it is for our dear Miss Yonge to have fewer than twelve or fourteen children in her engaging tales, we’ll take that as a given and immediately lift our spirits after the recent upsetting events by heading to the Christmas plays at Plumfield; these plays impact the fate of several of our characters and can’t be missed.

When the college was built Mr Laurie added a charming little theatre which not only served for plays, but declamations, lectures, and concerts. The drop-curtain displayed Apollo with the Muses grouped about him; and as a compliment to the donor of the hall the artist had given the god a decided resemblance to our friend, which was considered a superb joke by everyone else. Home talent furnished stars, stock company, orchestra, and scene painter; and astonishing performances were given on this pretty little stage.

When the college was built, Mr. Laurie added a lovely little theater that was used not just for plays, but also for speeches, lectures, and concerts. The drop curtain featured Apollo surrounded by the Muses, and as a nod to the hall's donor, the artist made the god look quite like our friend, which everyone else thought was a fantastic joke. Local talent provided the stars, the company, the orchestra, and the set designer, and incredible performances were held on this charming little stage.

Mrs Jo had been trying for some time to produce a play which should be an improvement upon the adaptations from the French then in vogue, curious mixtures of fine toilettes, false sentiment, and feeble wit, with no touch of nature to redeem them. It was easy to plan plays full of noble speeches and thrilling situations, but very hard to write them; so she contented herself with a few scenes of humble life in which the comic and pathetic were mingled; and as she fitted her characters to her actors, she hoped the little venture would prove that truth and simplicity had not entirely lost their power to charm. Mr Laurie helped her, and they called themselves Beaumont and Fletcher, enjoying their joint labour very much; for Beaumont's knowledge of dramatic art was of great use in curbing Fletcher's too-aspiring pen, and they flattered themselves that they had produced a neat and effective bit of work as an experiment.

Mrs. Jo had been trying for a while to create a play that was better than the popular adaptations from French at the time, which were strange mixes of fancy outfits, shallow emotions, and weak humor, lacking any genuine depth. It was easy to come up with plays packed with grand speeches and exciting scenarios, but writing them was much harder; so she settled for a few scenes from everyday life where comedy and drama blended together. As she matched her characters to her actors, she hoped this small project would show that truth and simplicity still had the ability to captivate an audience. Mr. Laurie helped her, and they called themselves Beaumont and Fletcher, enjoying their collaboration a lot; Beaumont's understanding of dramatic art was really helpful in keeping Fletcher's overly ambitious writing in check, and they believed they had created a neat and effective piece of work as a trial.

All was ready now; and Christmas Day was much enlivened by last rehearsals, the panics of timid actors, the scramble for forgotten properties, and the decoration of the theatre. Evergreen and holly from the woods, blooming plants from the hothouse on Parnassus, and flags of all nations made it very gay that night in honour of the guests who were coming, chief among them, Miss Cameron, who kept her promise faithfully. The orchestra tuned their instruments with unusual care, the scene-shifters set their stage with lavish elegance, the prompter heroically took his seat in the stifling nook provided for him, and the actors dressed with trembling hands that dropped the pins, and perspiring brows whereon the powder wouldn't stick. Beaumont and Fletcher were everywhere, feeling that their literary reputation was at stake; for sundry friendly critics were invited, and reporters, like mosquitoes, cannot be excluded from any earthly scene, be it a great man's death-bed or a dime museum.

Everything was ready now, and Christmas Day was really lively with last-minute rehearsals, the panic of nervous actors, the rush for forgotten props, and the decoration of the theater. Evergreens and holly from the woods, blooming plants from the greenhouse on Parnassus, and flags from all over made it very festive that night in honor of the guests who were arriving, especially Miss Cameron, who kept her promise. The orchestra carefully tuned their instruments, the stagehands set up with great flair, the prompter bravely took his place in the cramped space assigned to him, and the actors dressed with shaky hands that dropped pins and sweaty brows where the powder wouldn’t stick. Beaumont and Fletcher felt their literary reputation was on the line; a few friendly critics were invited, and reporters, like mosquitoes, can’t be kept away from any scene on earth, whether it’s a great man’s deathbed or a dime museum.

'Has she come?' was the question asked by every tongue behind the curtain; and when Tom, who played an old man, endangered his respectable legs among the footlights to peep, announced that he saw Miss Cameron's handsome head in the place of honour, a thrill pervaded the entire company, and Josie declared with an excited gasp that she was going to have stage fright for the first time in her life.

"Has she arrived?" was the question asked by everyone behind the curtain; and when Tom, who was playing an old man, risked his respectable legs among the footlights to peek and announced that he saw Miss Cameron's beautiful head in the front row, a thrill ran through the entire company, and Josie declared with a gasp of excitement that she was about to experience stage fright for the first time in her life.

'I'll shake you if you do,' said Mrs Jo, who was in such a wild state of dishevelment with her varied labours that she might have gone on as Madge Wildlife, without an additional rag or crazy elf-lock.

"I'll shake you if you do," said Mrs. Jo, who was in such a chaotic state from her various tasks that she could have passed for Madge Wildlife, without needing any extra rags or wild elf-like hair.

'You'll have time to get your wits together while we do our piece. We are old stagers and calm as clocks,' answered Demi, with a nod towards Alice, ready in her pretty dress and all her properties at hand.

"You'll have time to collect your thoughts while we do our part. We're seasoned performers and as steady as clocks," Demi replied, nodding towards Alice, who was ready in her pretty dress with all her props at the ready.

But both clocks were going rather faster than usual, as heightened colour, brilliant eyes, and a certain flutter under the laces and velvet coat betrayed. They were to open the entertainment with a gay little piece which they had played before and did remarkably well. Alice was a tall girl, with dark hair and eyes, and a face which intelligence, health, and a happy heart made beautiful. She was looking her best now, for the brocades, plumes, and powder of the Marquise became her stately figure; and Demi in his court suit, with sword, three-cornered hat, and white wig, made as gallant a Baron as one would wish to see. Josie was the maid, and looked her part to the life, being as pretty, pert, and inquisitive as any French soubrette. These three were all the characters; and the success of the piece depended on the spirit and skill with which the quickly changing moods of the quarrelsome lovers were given, their witty speeches made to tell, and by-play suited to the courtly period in which the scene was laid.

But both clocks were ticking faster than usual, as the bright colors, sparkling eyes, and a certain nervousness under the laces and velvet coat revealed. They were set to kick off the show with a cheerful little piece they had performed before and did exceptionally well. Alice was a tall girl with dark hair and eyes, and her face was made beautiful by her intelligence, good health, and a joyful spirit. She was looking her best now, as the brocades, feathers, and powder of the Marquise suited her elegant figure; and Demi, in his court suit with a sword, tricorn hat, and white wig, made a dashing Baron anyone would admire. Josie was the maid and played her role perfectly, being as cute, cheeky, and curious as any French soubrette. These three were the only characters; the success of the piece relied on how well they captured the quickly changing emotions of the bickering lovers, made their witty lines shine, and included appropriate side actions for the courtly setting of the scene.

Few would have recognized sober John and studious Alice in the dashing gentleman and coquettish lady, who kept the audience laughing at their caprices; while they enjoyed the brilliant costumes, and admired the ease and grace of the young actors. Josie was a prominent figure in the plot, as she listened at keyholes, peeped into notes, and popped in and out at all the most inopportune moments, with her nose in the air, her hands in her apron-pockets, and curiosity pervading her little figure from the topmost bow of her jaunty cap to the red heels of her slippers. All went smoothly; and the capricious Marquise, after tormenting the devoted Baron to her heart's content, owned herself conquered in the war of wits, and was just offering the hand he had fairly won, when a crash startled them, and a heavily decorated side-scene swayed forward, ready to fall upon Alice. Demi saw it and sprung before her to catch and hold it up, standing like a modern Samson with the wall of a house on his back. The danger was over in a moment, and he was about to utter his last speech, when the excited young scene-shifter, who had flown up a ladder to repair the damage, leaned over to whisper 'All right', and release Demi from his spread-eagle attitude: as he did so, a hammer slipped out of his pocket, to fall upon the upturned face below, inflicting a smart blow and literally knocking the Baron's part out of his head.

Few would have recognized serious John and studious Alice in the charming gentleman and flirtatious lady, who kept the audience laughing with their antics; while they enjoyed the stunning costumes and admired the ease and grace of the young actors. Josie was a key figure in the plot, as she listened at keyholes, peeked at notes, and popped in and out at all the most inconvenient moments, with her nose in the air, her hands in her apron pockets, and curiosity radiating from her little frame, from the topmost bow of her stylish cap to the red heels of her slippers. Everything was going smoothly; and the unpredictable Marquise, after tormenting the devoted Baron to her heart's content, admitted defeat in the war of wits, and was just offering the hand he had rightfully won, when a crash startled them, and a heavily decorated side-scene swayed forward, about to fall on Alice. Demi saw it and leaped in front of her to catch and hold it up, standing like a modern-day Samson with the wall of a house on his back. The danger passed quickly, and he was about to deliver his final lines, when the excited young scene-shifter, who had rushed up a ladder to fix the issue, leaned over to whisper 'All good', and allowed Demi to drop his spread-eagle stance: as he did so, a hammer slipped out of his pocket, falling on the upturned face below, delivering a sharp blow and literally knocking the Baron's lines out of his head.

'A quick curtain,' robbed the audience of a pretty little scene not down on the bill; for the Marquise flew to staunch the blood with a cry of alarm: 'Oh! John, you are hurt! Lean on me'—which John gladly did for a moment, being a trifle dazed yet quite able to enjoy the tender touch of the hands busied about him and the anxiety of the face so near his own; for both told him something which he would have considered cheaply won by a rain of hammers and the fall of the whole college on his head.

A quick curtain took away a lovely little scene that wasn't scheduled; the Marquise rushed to stop the bleeding, exclaiming, "Oh! John, you're hurt! Lean on me"—which John was happy to do for a moment, feeling a bit dazed but still able to appreciate the gentle touch of the hands attending to him and the worry in the face so close to his own; both told him something he would have thought was worth the pain of a thousand hammers and the collapse of the entire college on his head.

Nan was on the spot in a moment with the case that never left her pocket; and the wound was neatly plastered up by the time Mrs Jo arrived, demanding tragically:

Nan was right there in no time with the case that she always kept in her pocket; and the wound was nicely bandaged by the time Mrs. Jo showed up, asking dramatically:

'Is he too much hurt to go on again? If he is, my play is lost!'

'Is he too hurt to continue? If he is, I’ve lost my chance!'

'I'm all the fitter for it, Aunty; for here's a real instead of a painted wound. I'll be ready; don't worry about me.' And catching up his wig, Demi was off, with only a very eloquent look of thanks to the Marquise, who had spoilt her gloves for his sake, but did not seem to mind it at all, though they reached above her elbows, and were most expensive.

'I'm feeling much better for it, Aunty; this is a real wound, not a fake one. I'm ready; don't worry about me.' And grabbing his wig, Demi was off, giving the Marquise a very grateful look. She had ruined her gloves for him, but didn't seem to care at all, even though they went up to her elbows and were quite expensive.

'How are your nerves, Fletcher?' asked Mr Laurie as they stood together during the breathless minute before the last bell rings.

'How are you feeling, Fletcher?' asked Mr. Laurie as they stood together during the tense moment before the final bell rang.

'About as calm as yours, Beaumont,' answered Mrs Jo, gesticulating wildly to Mrs Meg to set her cap straight.

"About as calm as yours, Beaumont," replied Mrs. Jo, waving her hands dramatically at Mrs. Meg to fix her hat.

'Bear up, partner! I'll stand by you whatever comes!'

'Hang in there, buddy! I’ll be here for you no matter what happens!'

'I feel that it ought to go; for, though it's a mere trifle, a good deal of honest work and truth have gone into it. Doesn't Meg look the picture of a dear old country woman?'

'I think it should be removed; because, even though it's just a small thing, a lot of genuine effort and truth have gone into it. Doesn't Meg look just like a sweet old country woman?'

She certainly did, as she sat in the farmhouse kitchen by a cheery fire, rocking a cradle and darning stockings, as if she had done nothing else all her life. Grey hair, skilfully drawn lines on the forehead, and a plain gown, with cap, little shawl, and check apron, changed her into a comfortable, motherly creature who found favour the moment the curtain went up and discovered her rocking, darning, and crooning an old song. In a short soliloquy about Sam, her boy, who wanted to enlist; Dolly, her discontented little daughter, who longed for city ease and pleasures; and poor 'Elizy', who had married badly, and came home to die, bequeathing her baby to her mother, lest its bad father should claim it, the little story was very simply opened, and made effective by the real boiling of the kettle on the crane, the ticking of a tall clock, and the appearance of a pair of blue worsted shoes which waved fitfully in the air to the soft babble of a baby's voice. Those shapeless little shoes won the first applause; and Mr Laurie, forgetting elegance in satisfaction, whispered to his coadjutor:

She definitely did, as she sat in the farmhouse kitchen by a warm fire, rocking a cradle and mending stockings, as if she had done nothing else her entire life. Grey hair, expertly styled lines on her forehead, and a simple dress with a cap, little shawl, and checked apron transformed her into a cozy, motherly figure who captured everyone's attention the moment the curtain went up to reveal her rocking, mending, and humming an old song. In a brief speech about Sam, her son, who wanted to enlist; Dolly, her dissatisfied little daughter, who craved the comforts and excitement of the city; and poor 'Elizy', who had made a bad marriage and returned home to die, leaving her baby with her mother to prevent its terrible father from claiming it, the little story was introduced simply but effectively, enhanced by the real boiling of the kettle on the stove, the ticking of a tall clock, and the sight of a pair of blue knitted shoes that waved playfully in the air to the gentle sound of a baby's voice. Those small, misshapen shoes earned the first applause; and Mr. Laurie, caught up in his satisfaction, whispered to his partner:

'I thought the baby would fetch them!'

'I thought the baby would get them!'

'If the dear thing won't squall in the wrong place, we are saved. But it is risky. Be ready to catch it if all Meg's cuddlings prove in vain,' answered Mrs Jo, adding, with a clutch at Mr Laurie's arm as a haggard face appeared at the window:

'If the little one doesn't cry in the wrong spot, we’re in the clear. But it's a gamble. Be prepared to catch it if all of Meg's attempts to soothe it fail,' replied Mrs. Jo, grabbing Mr. Laurie's arm as a worn face appeared at the window:

'Here's Demi! I hope no one will recognize him when he comes on as the son. I'll never forgive you for not doing the villain yourself.'

'Here’s Demi! I hope no one will recognize him when he comes on as the son. I'll never forgive you for not doing the villain yourself.'

'Can't run the thing and act too. He's capitally made up, and likes a bit of melodrama.'

'He can't handle both acting and running the show. He's really well put together and enjoys a bit of melodrama.'

'This scene ought to have come later; but I wanted to show that the mother was the heroine as soon as possible. I'm tired of love-sick girls and runaway wives. We'll prove that there's romance in old women also. Now he's coming!'

'This scene should have happened later; but I wanted to highlight that the mother was the hero as soon as possible. I'm done with love-struck girls and runaway wives. We'll show that there's romance in older women too. Now he’s coming!'

And in slouched a degraded-looking man, shabby, unshaven, and evil-eyed, trying to assume a masterful air as he dismayed the tranquil old woman by demanding his child. A powerful scene followed; and Mrs Meg surprised even those who knew her best by the homely dignity with which she at first met the man she dreaded; then, as he brutally pressed his claim, she pleaded with trembling voice and hands to keep the little creature she had promised the dying mother to protect; and when he turned to take it by force, quite a thrill went through the house as the old woman sprung to snatch it from the cradle, and holding it close, defied him in God's name to tear it from that sacred refuge. It was really well done; and the round of applause that greeted the fine tableau of the indignant old woman, the rosy, blinking baby clinging to her neck, and the daunted man who dared not execute his evil purpose with such a defender for helpless innocence, told the excited authors that their first scene was a hit.

And in walked a disheveled man, looking rough, unshaven, and menacing, trying to act tough as he upset the calm old woman by demanding his child. What followed was a powerful scene; Mrs. Meg surprised even her closest friends with the quiet dignity she showed when facing the man she feared; then, as he aggressively pushed his claim, she begged with a shaking voice and hands to keep the little one she had promised the dying mother she would protect; and when he tried to take the child by force, the whole house felt a surge of tension as the old woman rushed to grab the baby from the cradle and held it tight, daring him in God's name to take it from that sacred place. It was really well done; and the applause that erupted for the striking image of the defiant old woman, the rosy, blinking baby clinging to her neck, and the intimidated man who didn’t dare carry out his wicked intent with such a protector of innocent helplessness, told the eager creators that their opening scene was a success.

The second was quieter, and introduced Josie as a bonny country lass setting the supper-table in a bad humour. The pettish way in which she slapped down the plates, hustled the cups, and cut the big brown loaf, as she related her girlish trials and ambitions, was capital. Mrs Jo kept her eye on Miss Cameron, and saw her nod approval several times at some natural tone or gesture, some good bit of by-play or a quick change of expression in the young face, which was as variable as an April day. Her struggle with the toasting-fork made much merriment; so did her contempt for the brown sugar, and the relish with which she sweetened her irksome duties by eating it; and when she sat, like Cinderella, on the hearth, tearfully watching the flames dance on the homely room, a girlish voice was heard to exclaim impulsively:

The second was quieter, and introduced Josie as a pretty country girl setting the dinner table in a bad mood. The way she slapped down the plates, hurried the cups, and sliced the big brown loaf while sharing her girlhood struggles and dreams was delightful. Mrs. Jo kept an eye on Miss Cameron and noticed her nodding in approval several times at some natural tone or gesture, a clever bit of play, or a quick change of expression in the young face, which was as changeable as an April day. Her battle with the toasting fork brought a lot of laughter, as did her disdain for the brown sugar and the way she sweetened her tedious tasks by eating it. And when she sat, like Cinderella, on the hearth, tearfully watching the flames flicker in the cozy room, a girlish voice was heard to exclaim impulsively:

'Poor little thing! she ought to have some fun!'

'Poor little thing! She should have some fun!'

The old woman enters; and mother and daughter have a pretty scene, in which the latter coaxes and threatens, kisses and cries, till she wins the reluctant consent of the former to visit a rich relation in the city; and from being a little thunder-cloud Dolly becomes bewitchingly gay and good, as soon as her wilful wish is granted. The poor old soul has hardly recovered from this trial when the son enters, in army blue, tells he has enlisted and must go. That is a hard blow; but the patriotic mother bears it well, and not till the thoughtless young folks have hastened away to tell their good news elsewhere does she break down. Then the country kitchen becomes pathetic as the old mother sits alone mourning over her children, till the grey head is hidden in the hands as she kneels down by the cradle to weep and pray, with only Baby to comfort her fond and faithful heart.

The old woman walks in, and mother and daughter have a touching moment where the daughter uses coaxing and threats, kisses and tears, until she finally gets her mother's reluctant okay to visit a wealthy relative in the city. Once her selfish wish is granted, Dolly transforms from a little thundercloud to charmingly cheerful and sweet. The poor old lady scarcely recovers from this emotional rollercoaster when her son enters, dressed in his army blue uniform, saying he has enlisted and has to leave. That’s a tough blow, but the patriotic mother handles it well, only breaking down once the carefree young people rush off to share their good news elsewhere. The country kitchen turns sorrowful as the old mother sits alone, grieving for her children until her grey head falls into her hands as she kneels by the cradle to weep and pray, with only the baby to soothe her loving and devoted heart.

Sniffs were audible all through the latter part of this scene; and when the curtain fell, people were so busy wiping their eyes that for a moment they forgot to applaud. That silent moment was more flattering than noise; and as Mrs Jo wiped the real tears off her sister's face, she said as solemnly as an unconscious dab of rouge on her nose permitted:

Sniffling could be heard throughout the end of this scene; and when the curtain came down, people were so occupied drying their eyes that for a moment they forgot to clap. That silent moment was more flattering than applause; and as Mrs. Jo wiped the genuine tears from her sister's face, she said as seriously as the unintentional smudge of makeup on her nose allowed:

'Meg, you have saved my play! Oh, why aren't you a real actress, and I a real playwright?'

'Meg, you've saved my play! Oh, why aren't you an actual actress, and I a real playwright?'

'Don't gush now, dear, but help me dress Josie; she's in such a quiver of excitement, I can't manage her, and this is her best scene, you know.'

'Don't get all emotional now, sweetheart, but help me dress Josie; she's so excited that I can't handle her, and this is her best scene, you know.'

So it was; for her aunt had written it especially for her, and little Jo was happy in a gorgeous dress, with a train long enough to satisfy her wildest dreams. The rich relation's parlour was in festival array, and the country cousin sails in, looking back at her sweeping flounces with such artless rapture that no one had the heart to laugh at the pretty jay in borrowed plumes. She has confidences with herself in the mirror, from which it is made evident that she had discovered all is not gold that glitters, and has found greater temptations than those a girlish love of pleasure, luxury, and flattery bring her. She is sought by a rich lover; but her honest heart resists the allurements he offers, and in its innocent perplexity wishes 'mother' was there to comfort and counsel.

So it was; her aunt had written it just for her, and little Jo was thrilled in a beautiful dress, with a train long enough to fulfill her wildest dreams. The wealthy relative's parlor was decorated for a celebration, and the country cousin walked in, admiring her flowing skirt with such genuine joy that no one could bear to laugh at the pretty girl in borrowed finery. She shares secrets with herself in the mirror, realizing that not everything that glitters is gold, and discovering temptations greater than those brought on by a girlish love of fun, luxury, and flattery. A rich admirer seeks her, but her honest heart resists the temptations he presents, and in her innocent confusion, she wishes 'mother' were there to comfort and guide her.

A gay little dance, in which Dora, Nan, Bess, and several of the boys took part, made a good background for the humble figure of the old woman in her widow's bonnet, rusty shawl, big umbrella, and basket. Her naive astonishment, as she surveys the spectacle, feels the curtains, and smooths her old gloves during the moment she remains unseen, was very good; but Josie's unaffected start when she sees her, and the cry: 'Why, there's mother!' was such a hearty little bit of nature, it hardly needed the impatient tripping over her train as she ran into the arms that seemed now to be her nearest refuge.

A cheerful little dance, featuring Dora, Nan, Bess, and several boys, created a nice backdrop for the humble figure of the old woman in her widow's bonnet, worn shawl, large umbrella, and basket. Her innocent surprise as she takes in the scene, feels the curtains, and smooths her old gloves while she remains unnoticed was quite charming; but Josie's genuine shock when she spots her, accompanied by the exclamation, "Why, there's mother!" was such a genuine moment that it hardly needed the impatient stumbling over her train as she ran into the arms that now felt like her safest place.

The lover plays his part; and ripples of merriment greeted the old woman's searching questions and blunt answers during the interview which shows the girl how shallow his love is, and how near she had been to ruining her life as bitterly as poor 'Elizy' did. She gives her answer frankly, and when they are alone, looks from her own bedizened self to the shabby dress, work-worn hands, and tender face, crying with a repentant sob and kiss: 'Take me home, mother, and keep me safe. I've had enough of this!'

The lover plays his role, and waves of laughter greeted the old woman's probing questions and straightforward answers during the conversation, which showed the girl how superficial his love is and how close she came to ruining her life just like poor 'Elizy' did. She replies honestly, and when they are alone, she looks from her made-up self to the worn-out dress, calloused hands, and gentle face, crying with a regretful sob and kiss: 'Take me home, Mom, and keep me safe. I've had enough of this!'

'That will do you good, Maria; don't forget it,' said one lady to her daughter as the curtain went down; and the girl answered: 'Well, I'm sure I don't see why it's touching; but it is,' as she spread her lace handkerchief to dry.

"That will be good for you, Maria; don’t forget it," said one lady to her daughter as the curtain fell. The girl replied, "Well, I really don’t see why it’s moving; but it is," as she spread her lace handkerchief to dry.

Tom and Nan came out strong in the next scene; for it was a ward in an army hospital, and surgeon and nurse went from bed to bed, feeling pulses, administering doses, and hearing complaints with an energy and gravity which convulsed the audience. The tragic element, never far from the comic at such times and places, came in when, while they bandaged an arm, the doctor told the nurse about an old woman who was searching through the hospital for her son, after days and nights on battlefields, through ambulances, and among scenes which would have killed most women.

Tom and Nan entered the next scene with intensity; it was a ward in an army hospital, and the surgeon and nurse moved from bed to bed, checking pulses, giving medication, and listening to complaints with a seriousness and energy that captivated the audience. The tragic element, always close to the comic in such settings, emerged when, as they wrapped a bandage around an arm, the doctor shared a story with the nurse about an elderly woman who was searching through the hospital for her son after days and nights spent on battlefields, through ambulances, and amidst experiences that would have overwhelmed most women.

'She will be here directly, and I dread her coming, for I'm afraid the poor lad who has just gone is her boy. I'd rather face a cannon than these brave women, with their hope and courage and great sorrow,' says the surgeon.

'She'll be here any minute, and I dread her arrival because I'm afraid the poor guy who just left is her son. I’d rather face a cannon than these strong women, with their hope, courage, and deep sorrow,' says the surgeon.

'Ah, these poor mothers break my heart!' adds the nurse, wiping her eyes on her big apron; and with the words Mrs Meg came in.

'Oh, these poor mothers break my heart!' the nurse says, wiping her eyes on her big apron; and just then, Mrs. Meg walked in.

There was the same dress, the basket and umbrella, the rustic speech, the simple manners; but all were made pathetic by the terrible experience which had changed the tranquil old woman to that haggard figure with wild eyes, dusty feet, trembling hands, and an expression of mingled anguish, resolution, and despair which gave the homely figure a tragic dignity and power that touched all hearts. A few broken words told the story of her vain search, and then the sad quest began again. People held their breath as, led by the nurse, she went from bed to bed, showing in her face the alternations of hope, dread, and bitter disappointment as each was passed. On a narrow cot was a long figure covered with a sheet, and here she paused to lay one hand on her heart and one on her eyes, as if to gather courage to look at the nameless dead. Then she drew down the sheet, gave a long shivering sigh of relief, saying softly:

There was the same dress, the basket and umbrella, the rustic speech, the simple manners; but everything looked heartbreaking because of the terrible experience that had transformed the peaceful old woman into a worn-out figure with wild eyes, dusty feet, trembling hands, and an expression filled with mixed anguish, determination, and despair, giving her an unexpected tragic dignity and power that touched everyone. A few broken words revealed the story of her fruitless search, and then the sorrowful quest began again. People held their breath as, guided by the nurse, she moved from bed to bed, displaying on her face the fluctuating emotions of hope, fear, and deep disappointment with each one she passed. On a narrow cot lay a long figure covered with a sheet, and there she paused to lay one hand on her heart and one on her eyes, as if trying to gather the courage to look at the unknown dead. Then she pulled back the sheet, let out a long, shuddering sigh of relief, and said softly:

'Not my son, thank God! but some mother's boy.' And stooping down, she kissed the cold forehead tenderly.

'Not my son, thank God! But someone's boy.' And bending down, she kissed the cold forehead gently.

Somebody sobbed there, and Miss Cameron shook two tears out of her eyes, anxious to lose no look or gesture as the poor soul, nearly spent with the long strain, struggled on down the long line. But her search was happily ended for, as if her voice had roused him from his feverish sleep, a gaunt, wild-eyed man sat up in his bed, and stretching his arms to her, cried in a voice that echoed through the room:

Somebody was crying there, and Miss Cameron wiped away two tears from her eyes, eager to catch every expression or movement as the exhausted person, almost depleted from the prolonged strain, continued down the long line. But her search ended happily; as if her voice had pulled him from his restless sleep, a thin, wild-eyed man sat up in his bed and stretched his arms towards her, shouting in a voice that filled the room:

'Mother, mother! I knew you'd come to me!'

'Mom, Mom! I knew you'd come for me!'

She did go to him, with a cry of love and joy that thrilled every listener, as she gathered him in her arms with the tears and prayers and blessing such as only a fond and faithful old mother could give.

She went to him with a joyful cry that excited everyone listening, wrapping her arms around him with tears, prayers, and blessings that only a devoted and loving mother could offer.

The last scene was a cheerful contrast to this; for the country kitchen was bright with Christmas cheer, the wounded hero, with black patch and crutches well displayed, sat by the fire in the old chair whose familiar creak was soothing to his ear; pretty Dolly was stirring about, gaily trimming dresser, settle, high chimney-piece, and old-fashioned cradle with mistletoe and holly; while the mother rested beside her son, with that blessed baby on her knee. Refreshed by a nap and nourishment, this young actor now covered himself with glory by his ecstatic prancings, incoherent remarks to the audience, and vain attempts to get to the footlights, as he blinked approvingly at these brilliant toys. It was good to see Mrs Meg pat him on the back, cuddle the fat legs out of sight, and appease his vain longings with a lump of sugar, till Baby embraced her with a grateful ardour that brought him a round of applause all for his little self.

The last scene was a cheerful contrast to this; the country kitchen was filled with Christmas spirit. The wounded hero, sporting a black patch and using crutches, sat by the fire in the familiar old chair, which creaked soothingly to his ears. Pretty Dolly was bustling around, happily decorating the dresser, the settle, the tall fireplace, and the old-fashioned cradle with mistletoe and holly. Meanwhile, their mother rested beside her son, with the cherished baby on her lap. After a nap and a snack, this young star took the spotlight with his joyful dancing, excited chatter to the audience, and clumsy attempts to reach the footlights, all while blinking happily at the delightful toys. It was heartwarming to see Mrs. Meg pat him on the back, hide his chubby legs from view, and satisfy his little desires with a piece of sugar until Baby hugged her with such gratitude that it earned him a round of applause all for himself.

A sound of singing outside disturbs the happy family, and, after a carol in the snowy moonlight, a flock of neighbours troop in with Christmas gifts and greetings. Much by-play made this a lively picture; for Sam's sweetheart hovered round him with a tenderness the Marquise did not show the Baron; and Dolly had a pretty bit under the mistletoe with her rustic adorer, who looked so like Ham Peggotty in his cowhide boots, rough jacket, and dark beard and wig, that no one would have recognized Ted but for the long legs, which no extent of leather could disguise. It ended with a homely feast, brought by the guests; and as they sat round the table covered with doughnuts and cheese, pumpkin-pie, and other delicacies, Sam rises on his crutches to propose the first toast, and holding up his mug of cider, says, with a salute, and a choke in his voice: 'Mother, God bless her!' All drink it standing, Dolly with her arm round the old woman's neck, as she hides her happy tears on her daughter's breast; while the irrepressible baby beat rapturously on the table with a spoon, and crowed audibly as the curtain went down.

A sound of singing outside interrupts the happy family, and after a carol in the snowy moonlight, a group of neighbors walks in with Christmas gifts and greetings. Playful interactions made this a lively scene; Sam's girlfriend hovered around him with a tenderness that the Marquise didn't show the Baron; and Dolly had a sweet moment under the mistletoe with her rustic admirer, who looked so much like Ham Peggotty in his cowhide boots, rough jacket, and dark beard and wig, that no one would have recognized Ted if it weren't for his long legs, which no amount of leather could hide. It concluded with a cozy feast brought by the guests; and as they sat around the table filled with doughnuts and cheese, pumpkin pie, and other treats, Sam rose on his crutches to propose the first toast, holding up his mug of cider, he said, with a salute and a catch in his voice: 'Mother, God bless her!' Everyone drank it standing, with Dolly's arm around the old woman's neck, as she hid her happy tears on her daughter's shoulder; while the unstoppable baby joyfully banged on the table with a spoon and cheered loudly as the curtain fell.

They had it up again in a jiffy to get a last look at the group about that central figure, which was showered with bouquets, to the great delight of the infant Roscius; till a fat rosebud hit him on the nose, and produced the much-dreaded squall, which, fortunately, only added to the fun at that moment.

They quickly set it up again to get one last look at the group surrounding that central figure, who was showered with flowers, much to the delight of the little Roscius; until a chubby flower hit him on the nose, causing the dreaded fuss, which, luckily, only added to the fun at that moment.

'Well, that will do for a beginning,' said Beaumont, with a sigh of relief, as the curtain descended for the last time, and the actors scattered to dress for the closing piece.

"Well, that’s a good start," said Beaumont, with a sigh of relief, as the curtain fell for the last time, and the actors hurried off to change for the final performance.

'As an experiment, it is a success. Now we can venture to begin our great American drama,' answered Mrs Jo, full of satisfaction and grand ideas for the famous play—which, we may add, she did not write that year, owing to various dramatic events in her own family.

'As an experiment, it's a success. Now we can confidently start our great American drama,' replied Mrs. Jo, filled with satisfaction and big ideas for the famous play—which, we should mention, she didn't write that year due to various dramatic events in her own family.

The Owlsdark Marbles closed the entertainment, and, being something new, proved amusing to this very indulgent audience. The gods and goddesses on Parnassus were displayed in full conclave; and, thanks to Mrs Amy's skill in draping and posing, the white wigs and cotton-flannel robes were classically correct and graceful, though sundry modern additions somewhat marred the effect, while adding point to the showman's learned remarks. Mr Laurie was Professor Owlsdark in cap and gown; and, after a high-flown introduction, he proceeded to exhibit and explain his marbles. The first figure was a stately Minerva; but a second glance produced a laugh, for the words 'Women's Rights' adorned her shield, a scroll bearing the motto 'Vote early and often' hung from the beak of the owl perched on her lance, and a tiny pestle and mortar ornamented her helmet. Attention was drawn to the firm mouth, the piercing eye, the awe-inspiring brow, of the strong-minded woman of antiquity, and some scathing remarks made upon the degeneracy of her modern sisters who failed to do their duty. Mercury came next, and was very fine in his airy attitude, though the winged legs quivered as if it was difficult to keep the lively god in his place. His restless nature was dilated upon, his mischievous freaks alluded to, and a very bad character given to the immortal messenger-boy; which delighted his friends and caused the marble nose of the victim to curl visibly with scorn when derisive applause greeted a particularly hard hit. A charming little Hebe stood next, pouring nectar from a silver teapot into a blue china tea-cup. She also pointed a moral; for the Professor explained that the nectar of old was the beverage which cheers but does not inebriate, and regretted that the excessive devotion of American women to this classic brew proved so harmful, owing to the great development of brain their culture produced. A touch at modern servants, in contrast to this accomplished table-girl, made the statue's cheeks glow under the chalk, and brought her a hearty round as the audience recognized Dolly and the smart soubrette.

The Owlsdark Marbles wrapped up the entertainment, and being something fresh, they entertained this very indulgent crowd. The gods and goddesses on Parnassus were presented in full assembly; and thanks to Mrs. Amy's talent in draping and posing, the white wigs and cotton-flannel robes looked classically correct and elegant, although some modern additions slightly detracted from the overall effect while highlighting the showman's learned commentary. Mr. Laurie took on the role of Professor Owlsdark in cap and gown; after a grand introduction, he began to showcase and explain his marbles. The first figure was a majestic Minerva; but a second look prompted laughter, as the words "Women's Rights" decorated her shield, a scroll with the motto "Vote early and often" hung from the beak of the owl perched on her spear, and a tiny pestle and mortar adorned her helmet. The strong-minded woman of antiquity drew attention with her firm mouth, piercing eye, and imposing brow, leading to some sharp commentary on the decline of her modern counterparts who failed to fulfill their duties. Next came Mercury, striking a fine pose with his airy demeanor, although the winged legs wobbled as if it was hard to keep the lively god stable. His restless spirit was elaborated upon, his mischievous antics mentioned, and a rather bad reputation was cast upon the immortal messenger-boy, which amused his friends and made the marble nose of the subject curl in disdain when mocking applause followed a particularly sharp jab. A charming little Hebe followed, pouring nectar from a silver teapot into a blue china teacup. She also had a moral to convey; the Professor explained that the nectar of old was the drink that cheers but doesn't intoxicate, lamenting that American women's excessive affection for this classic brew was detrimental due to the significant mental growth their culture fostered. A jab at modern servants, in contrast to this skilled table-girl, made the statue's cheeks flush under the chalk, earning her a hearty round of applause as the audience recognized Dolly and the clever soubrette.

Jove in all his majesty followed, as he and his wife occupied the central pedestals in the half-circle of immortals. A splendid Jupiter, with hair well set up off the fine brow, ambrosial beard, silver thunderbolts in one hand, and a well-worn ferule in the other. A large stuffed eagle from the museum stood at his feet; and the benign expression of his august countenance showed that he was in a good humour—as well he might be, for he was paid some handsome compliments upon his wise rule, the peaceful state of his kingdom, and the brood of all-accomplished Pallases that yearly issued from his mighty brain. Cheers greeted this and other pleasant words, and caused the thunderer to bow his thanks; for 'Jove nods', as everyone knows, and flattery wins the heart of gods and men.

Jupiter, in all his glory, followed as he and his wife took their places at the central pedestals in the half-circle of immortals. He looked magnificent, with his hair neatly styled off his fine brow, an ambrosial beard, silver thunderbolts in one hand, and a well-worn staff in the other. A large stuffed eagle from the museum stood at his feet, and the friendly expression on his noble face showed he was in a great mood—rightly so, as he was receiving some flattering compliments about his wise leadership, the peaceful state of his kingdom, and the exceptional Pallas Athena figures that emerged from his powerful intellect each year. Cheers welcomed these and other kind words, prompting the thunderer to bow his thanks; after all, 'Jupiter nods,' as everyone knows, and flattery wins the hearts of gods and men alike.

Mrs Juno, with her peacocks, darning-needle, pen, and cooking-spoon, did not get off so easily; for the Professor was down on her with all manner of mirth-provoking accusations, criticisms, and insults even. He alluded to her domestic infelicity, her meddlesome disposition, sharp tongue, bad temper, and jealousy, closing, however, with a tribute to her skill in caring for the wounds and settling the quarrels of belligerent heroes, as well as her love for youths in Olympus and on earth. Gales of laughter greeted these hits, varied by hisses from some indignant boys, who would not bear, even in joke, any disrespect to dear Mother Bhaer, who, however, enjoyed it all immensely, as the twinkle in her eye and the irrepressible pucker of her lips betrayed.

Mrs. Juno, with her peacocks, darning-needle, pen, and cooking spoon, didn’t get off that easy; the Professor came at her with all kinds of funny accusations, criticisms, and even insults. He mentioned her home troubles, her meddlesome nature, sharp tongue, bad temper, and jealousy, but ended by praising her ability to mend the wounds and resolve the fights of feuding heroes, as well as her affection for young men both in Olympus and on earth. Gales of laughter erupted at his quips, mixed with hisses from a few upset boys who couldn’t tolerate any disrespect to dear Mother Bhaer, who, however, was thoroughly enjoying it all, as her sparkling eyes and the uncontainable pucker of her lips showed.

A jolly Bacchus astride of his cask took Vulcan's place, and appeared to be very comfortable with a beer-mug in one hand, a champagne bottle in the other, and a garland of grapes on his curly head. He was the text of a short temperance lecture, aimed directly at a row of smart young gentlemen who lined the walls of the auditorium. George Cole was seen to dodge behind a pillar at one point, Dolly nudged his neighbour at another, and there was laughter all along the line as the Professor glared at them through his big glasses, and dragged their bacchanalian orgies to the light and held them up to scorn.

A cheerful Bacchus perched on his cask took Vulcan's spot and looked pretty relaxed with a beer mug in one hand, a champagne bottle in the other, and a wreath of grapes on his curly head. He served as the subject of a brief lecture on temperance, directed right at a group of stylish young men who filled the walls of the auditorium. George Cole was spotted ducking behind a pillar at one point, Dolly nudged his neighbor at another, and there was laughter all around as the Professor glared at them through his big glasses, exposing their wild revelries to the light and holding them up for ridicule.

Seeing the execution he had done, the learned man turned to the lovely Diana, who stood as white and still as the plaster stag beside her, with sandals, bow, and crescent; quite perfect, and altogether the best piece of statuary in the show. She was very tenderly treated by the paternal critic who, merely alluding to her confirmed spinsterhood, fondness for athletic sports, and oracular powers, gave a graceful little exposition of true art and passed on to the last figure.

Seeing the execution he had completed, the knowledgeable man turned to the beautiful Diana, who stood as pale and motionless as the plaster stag next to her, with sandals, a bow, and a crescent; absolutely perfect, and by far the best sculpture in the display. She was handled very delicately by the fatherly critic who, simply mentioning her confirmed single status, passion for sports, and prophetic abilities, gave a graceful little explanation of true art and moved on to the last figure.

This was Apollo in full fig, his curls skilfully arranged to hide a well-whitened patch over the eye, his handsome legs correctly poised, and his gifted fingers about to draw divine music from the silvered gridiron which was his lyre. His divine attributes were described, as well as his little follies and failings, among which were his weakness for photography and flute-playing, his attempts to run a newspaper, and his fondness for the society of the Muses; which latter slap produced giggles and blushes among the girl-graduates, and much mirth among the stricken youths; for misery loves company, and after this they began to rally.

This was Apollo in all his glory, his curls expertly styled to cover a nicely whitened spot over his eye, his attractive legs perfectly positioned, and his talented fingers ready to pull beautiful music from the silver gridiron that was his lyre. His divine qualities were noted, along with his little quirks and shortcomings, including his love for photography and playing the flute, his attempts to run a newspaper, and his enjoyment of the Muses' company. This last detail caused giggles and blushes among the female graduates, and a lot of laughter among the smitten young men; after all, misery loves company, and soon they began to perk up.

Then, with a ridiculous conclusion, the Professor bowed his thanks; and after several recalls the curtain fell, but not quickly enough to conceal Mercury, wildly waving his liberated legs, Hebe dropping her teapot, Bacchus taking a lovely roll on his barrel, and Mrs Juno rapping the impertinent Owlsdark on the head with Jove's ruler.

Then, with a silly finish, the Professor bowed in thanks; and after several calls for him to come back, the curtain fell, but not quickly enough to hide Mercury, wildly waving his free legs, Hebe dropping her teapot, Bacchus taking a delightful tumble off his barrel, and Mrs. Juno tapping the cheeky Owlsdark on the head with Jove's ruler.

While the audience filed out to supper in the hall, the stage was a scene of dire confusion as gods and goddesses, farmers and barons, maids and carpenters, congratulated one another on the success of their labours. Assuming various costumes, actors and actresses soon joined their guests, to sip bounteous draughts of praise with their coffee, and cool their modest blushes with ice-cream. Mrs Meg was a proud and happy woman when Miss Cameron came to her as she sat by Josie, with Demi serving both, and said, so cordially that it was impossible to doubt the sincerity of her welcome words:

While the audience filed out to dinner in the hall, the stage was a chaotic scene as gods and goddesses, farmers and nobles, maids and carpenters congratulated each other on the success of their efforts. Dressed in various costumes, actors and actresses soon joined their guests to sip generous servings of praise with their coffee and cool their modest blushes with ice cream. Mrs. Meg was a proud and happy woman when Miss Cameron approached her while she sat next to Josie, with Demi serving both, and said, so warmly that it was impossible to doubt the sincerity of her welcoming words:

'Mrs Brooke, I no longer wonder where your children get their talent. I make my compliments to the Baron and next summer you must let me have little “Dolly” as a pupil when we are at the beach.'

'Mrs. Brooke, I’m no longer surprised at where your kids get their talent. Please give my regards to the Baron, and next summer you have to let me take little “Dolly” as a student while we’re at the beach.'

One can easily imagine how this offer was received, as well as the friendly commendation bestowed by the same kind critic on the work of Beaumont and Fletcher, who hastened to explain that this trifle was only an attempt to make nature and art go hand in hand, with little help from fine writing or imposing scenery. Everybody was in the happiest mood, especially 'little Dolly', who danced like a will-o'-the-wisp with light-footed Mercury and Apollo as he promenaded with the Marquise on his arm, who seemed to have left her coquetry in the green room with her rouge.

You can easily picture how this offer was received, along with the friendly praise given by the same kind critic to the work of Beaumont and Fletcher, who quickly clarified that this light piece was just an effort to blend nature and art, with minimal reliance on fancy writing or impressive sets. Everyone was in a great mood, especially 'little Dolly', who danced like a flickering sprite alongside light-footed Mercury and Apollo as he strolled with the Marquise on his arm, who appeared to have left her flirtation behind in the green room with her makeup.

When all was over, Mrs Juno said to Jove, to whose arm she clung as they trudged home along the snowy paths: 'Fritz dear, Christmas is a good time for new resolutions, and I've made one never to be impatient or fretful with my beloved husband again. I know I am, though you won't own it; but Laurie's fun had some truth in it, and I felt hit in a tender spot. Henceforth I am a model wife, else I don't deserve the dearest, best man ever born'; and being in a dramatic mood, Mrs Juno tenderly embraced her excellent Jove in the moonlight, to the great amusement of sundry lingerers behind them.

When it was all done, Mrs. Juno said to Jove, whose arm she held as they walked home along the snowy paths: "Fritz, dear, Christmas is a great time for new resolutions, and I've decided never to be impatient or fussy with my beloved husband again. I know I can be, even if you won't admit it; but Laurie's joke had some truth to it, and it hit me in a sensitive spot. From now on, I’ll be a model wife, or I don’t deserve the most wonderful man ever." Feeling dramatic, Mrs. Juno lovingly hugged her amazing Jove in the moonlight, much to the amusement of a few onlookers behind them.

So all three plays might be considered successes, and that merry Christmas night a memorable one in the March family; for Demi got an unspoken question answered, Josie's fondest wish was granted, and, thanks to Professor Owlsdark's jest, Mrs Jo made Professor Bhaer's busy life quite a bed of roses by the keeping of her resolution. A few days later she had her reward for this burst of virtue in Dan's letter, which set her fears at rest and made her very happy, though she was unable to tell him so, because he sent her no address.

So all three plays could be seen as successes, and that joyful Christmas night was unforgettable for the March family; Demi got an unspoken question answered, Josie's biggest dream came true, and thanks to Professor Owlsdark's joke, Mrs. Jo created a much more pleasant life for Professor Bhaer by sticking to her resolution. A few days later, she received her reward for this moment of virtue in Dan's letter, which eased her worries and made her very happy, even though she couldn’t tell him so because he didn't give her an address.





Chapter 15. WAITING

'My wife, I have bad news for thee,' said Professor Bhaer, coming in one day early in January.

'My wife, I have bad news for you,' said Professor Bhaer, coming in one day early in January.

'Please tell it at once. I can't bear to wait, Fritz,' cried Mrs Jo, dropping her work and standing up as if to take the shot bravely.

"Please tell me right now. I can't stand the waiting, Fritz," said Mrs. Jo, dropping her work and getting up as if she were ready to face the news head-on.

'But we must wait and hope, heart's-dearest. Come and let us bear it together. Emil's ship is lost, and as yet no news of him.'

'But we have to wait and hope, my dearest. Come, let’s get through this together. Emil's ship is gone, and we still haven't heard anything about him.'

It was well Mr Bhaer had taken his wife into his strong arms, for she looked ready to drop, but bore up after a moment, and sitting by her good man, heard all that there was to tell. Tidings had been sent to the shipowners at Hamburg by some of the survivors, and telegraphed at once by Franz to his uncle. As one boat-load was safe, there was hope that others might also escape, though the gale had sent two to the bottom. A swift-sailing steamer had brought these scanty news, and happier ones might come at any hour; but kind Franz had not added that the sailors reported the captain's boat as undoubtedly wrecked by the falling mast, since the smoke hid its escape, and the gale soon drove all far asunder. But this sad rumour reached Plumfield in time; and deep was the mourning for the happyhearted Commodore, never to come singing home again. Mrs Jo refused to believe it, stoutly insisting that Emil would outlive any storm and yet turn up safe and gay. It was well she clung to this hopeful view, for poor Mr Bhaer was much afflicted by the loss of his boy, because his sister's sons had been his so long he scarcely knew a different love for his very own. Now was a chance for Mrs Juno to keep her word; and she did, speaking cheerily of Emil, even when hope waxed faint and her heart was heavy. If anything could comfort the Bhaers for the loss of one boy, it would have been the affection and sorrow shown by all the rest. Franz kept the cable busy with his varying messages, Nat sent loving letters from Leipzig, and Tom harassed the shipping agents for news. Even busy Jack wrote them with unusual warmth; Dolly and George came often, bearing the loveliest flowers and the daintiest bon-bons to cheer Mrs Bhaer and sweeten Josie's grief; while good-hearted Ned travelled all the way from Chicago to press their hands and say, with a tear in his eye: 'I was so anxious to hear all about the dear old boy, I couldn't keep away.'

It was a good thing Mr. Bhaer had his wife in his strong arms, because she looked like she was about to collapse. But after a moment, she gathered herself and sat next to her caring husband, ready to hear everything there was to know. Some survivors had sent news to the shipowners in Hamburg, which Franz quickly telegraphed to his uncle. Since one boatload was safe, there was hope that others might also escape, even though the storm had claimed two boats. A fast steamer had delivered this limited information, and better news could arrive at any moment; however, kind Franz hadn’t mentioned that sailors reported the captain's boat was likely lost due to a falling mast, as the smoke obscured its escape, and the storm soon scattered everyone. But this sad rumor reached Plumfield in time, and there was deep mourning for the cheerful Commodore, who would never come home singing again. Mrs. Jo refused to accept it, firmly believing that Emil would survive any storm and eventually show up safe and happy. It was fortunate she held onto this hopeful perspective, because poor Mr. Bhaer was deeply troubled by the loss of his boy; his sister's sons had been his for so long that he hardly knew a different love for his own child. Now was a chance for Mrs. Jo to keep her promise; and she did, speaking positively about Emil, even when hope was dwindling and her heart was heavy. If anything could comfort the Bhaers amidst the loss of one boy, it was the love and sorrow shown by everyone else. Franz kept the telegraph busy with his constant updates, Nat sent affectionate letters from Leipzig, and Tom pestered the shipping agents for news. Even busy Jack wrote to them with unexpected warmth; Dolly and George visited often, bringing beautiful flowers and delightful sweets to lift Mrs. Bhaer’s spirits and ease Josie's grief; while kind-hearted Ned traveled all the way from Chicago to shake their hands and say, with a tear in his eye, "I was so anxious to hear all about the dear old boy, I couldn't stay away."

'That's right comfortable, and shows me that if I didn't teach my boys anything else, I did give them the brotherly love that will make them stand by one another all their lives,' said Mrs Jo, when he had gone.

"That's really comforting, and it shows me that if I didn’t teach my boys anything else, I did give them the brotherly love that will make them support each other throughout their lives," said Mrs. Jo, after he had left.

Rob answered reams of sympathizing letters, which showed how many friends they had; and the kindly praises of the lost man would have made Emil a hero and a saint, had they all been true. The elders bore it quietly, having learned submission in life's hard school; but the younger people rebelled; some hoped against hope and kept up, others despaired at once, and little Josie, Emil's pet cousin and playmate, was so broken-hearted nothing could comfort her. Nan dosed in vain, Daisy's cheerful words went by like the wind, and Bess's devices to amuse her all failed utterly. To cry in mother's arms and talk about the wreck, which haunted her even in her sleep, was all she cared to do; and Mrs Meg was getting anxious when Miss Cameron sent Josie a kind note bidding her learn bravely her first lesson in real tragedy, and be like the self-sacrificing heroines she loved to act. That did the little girl good, and she made an effort in which Teddy and Octoo helped her much; for the boy was deeply impressed by this sudden eclipse of the firefly whose light and life all missed when they were gone, and lured her out every day for long drives behind the black mare, who shook her silvery bells till they made such merry music Josie could not help listening to it, and whisked her over the snowy roads at a pace which set the blood dancing in her veins and sent her home strengthened and comforted by sunshine, fresh air, and congenial society—three aids young sufferers seldom can resist.

Rob responded to countless sympathetic letters, which showed just how many friends they had; and the kind praise for the lost man would have made Emil a hero and a saint, if only it were all true. The older folks took it in stride, having learned to accept hardship in life; but the younger ones rebelled. Some clung to hope while others gave up right away, and little Josie, Emil's beloved cousin and playmate, was so heartbroken that nothing could ease her pain. Nan tried to comfort her in vain, Daisy's cheerful words flew past her like the wind, and Bess's attempts to entertain her completely fell flat. All she wanted was to cry in her mother's arms and talk about the tragedy that haunted her even in her dreams, which worried Mrs. Meg. Then, Miss Cameron sent Josie a thoughtful note encouraging her to bravely learn her first lesson in real tragedy and to be like the self-sacrificing heroines she loved to portray. This uplifted the little girl, and she put in an effort, greatly helped by Teddy and Octoo; the boy was deeply affected by the sudden loss of the firefly whose light and life everyone missed when she was gone. He encouraged her to join him for long drives every day behind the black mare, who jingled her silvery bells, creating a cheerful melody that Josie couldn't resist. The mare whisked her over the snowy roads at a pace that made her blood race and sent her home feeling renewed and comforted by sunshine, fresh air, and friendly company—three things that young sufferers rarely can resist.

As Emil was helping nurse Captain Hardy, safe and well, aboard the ship, all this sorrow would seem wasted; but it was not, for it drew many hearts more closely together by a common grief, taught some patience, some sympathy, some regret for faults that lie heavy on the conscience when the one sinned against is gone, and all of them the solemn lesson to be ready when the summons comes. A hush lay over Plumfield for weeks, and the studious faces on the hill reflected the sadness of those in the valley. Sacred music sounded from Parnassus to comfort all who heard; the brown cottage was beseiged with gifts for the little mourner, and Emil's flag hung at half-mast on the roof where he last sat with Mrs Jo.

As Emil was helping nurse Captain Hardy back aboard the ship, safe and sound, all this sadness might seem pointless; but it wasn't, because it brought many hearts closer together through shared grief, taught some patience, some empathy, and some regret for the mistakes that weigh heavily on the conscience when the person wronged is gone. It was also a solemn reminder to be prepared when the call comes. A quietness settled over Plumfield for weeks, and the serious expressions on the hill mirrored the sorrow of those in the valley. Sacred music played from Parnassus to comfort everyone who listened; the brown cottage was flooded with gifts for the little mourner, and Emil's flag flew at half-mast on the roof where he last sat with Mrs. Jo.

So the weeks went heavily by till suddenly, like a thunderbolt out of a clear sky, came the news, 'All safe, letters on the way.' Then up went the flag, out rang the college bells, bang went Teddy's long-unused cannon, and a chorus of happy voices cried 'Thank God', as people went about, laughing, crying, and embracing one another in a rapture of delight. By and by the longed-for letters came, and all the story of the wreck was told; briefly by Emil, eloquently by Mrs Hardy, gratefully by the captain, while Mary added a few tender words that went straight to their hearts and seemed the sweetest of all. Never were letters so read, passed round, admired, and cried over as these; for Mrs Jo carried them in her pocket when Mr Bhaer did not have them in his, and both took a look at them when they said their prayers at night. Now the Professor was heard humming like a big bee again as he went to his classes, and the lines smoothed out of Mother Bhaer's forehead, while she wrote this real story to anxious friends and let her romances wait. Now messages of congratulation flowed in, and beaming faces showed everywhere. Rob amazed his parents by producing a poem which was remarkably good for one of his years, and Demi set it to music that it might be sung when the sailor boy returned. Teddy stood on his head literally, and tore about the neighbourhood on Octoo, like a second Paul Revere—only his tidings were good. But best of all, little Josie lifted up her head as the snowdrops did, and began to bloom again, growing tall and quiet, with the shadow of past sorrow to tone down her former vivacity and show that she had learned a lesson in trying to act well her part on the real stage, where all have to take their share in the great drama of life.

So the weeks dragged on until suddenly, out of nowhere, came the news, 'All safe, letters on the way.' Then the flag went up, the college bells rang out, Teddy's long-unused cannon went off, and a chorus of happy voices shouted 'Thank God,' as people went around, laughing, crying, and hugging each other in joy. Eventually, the long-awaited letters arrived, and the whole story of the wreck was shared; briefly by Emil, eloquently by Mrs. Hardy, gratefully by the captain, while Mary added a few heartfelt words that touched their hearts and seemed the sweetest of all. Never were letters read, passed around, admired, and cried over like these; Mrs. Jo kept them in her pocket when Mr. Bhaer didn’t have them, and both took a look at them when they said their prayers at night. Now the Professor was heard humming like a big bee again as he went to his classes, and the lines vanished from Mother Bhaer’s forehead as she wrote this real story to anxious friends and set her romances aside. Now messages of congratulations poured in, and smiling faces appeared everywhere. Rob surprised his parents by producing a poem that was impressively good for his age, and Demi set it to music so it could be sung when the sailor boy returned. Teddy literally stood on his head and ran around the neighborhood on Octoo, like a second Paul Revere—except his news was good. But best of all, little Josie lifted her head like the snowdrops and began to bloom again, growing tall and calm, with the shadow of past sorrow to temper her former liveliness and show that she had learned a lesson in trying to play her part well on the real stage, where everyone must participate in the great drama of life.

Now another sort of waiting began; for the travellers were on their way to Hamburg, and would stay there awhile before coming home, as Uncle Hermann owned the Brenda, and the captain must report to him. Emil must remain to Franz's wedding, deferred till now because of the season of mourning, so happily ended. These plans were doubly welcome and pleasant after the troublous times which went before, and no spring ever seemed so beautiful as this one; for, as Teddy put it:

Now another kind of waiting started; the travelers were heading to Hamburg and would stay there for a bit before returning home since Uncle Hermann owned the Brenda, and the captain needed to report to him. Emil had to stick around for Franz's wedding, which had been postponed due to the mourning season, now happily over. These plans were especially welcome and enjoyable after the difficult times that had passed, and no spring ever felt as beautiful as this one; as Teddy put it:

    'Now is the winter of our discontent
     Made glorious by these sons of Bhaer!'
'Now is the winter of our unhappiness  
Made glorious by these sons of Bhaer!'

Franz and Emil being regarded in the light of elder brothers by the real 'sons of Bhaer'.

Franz and Emil are seen as older brothers by the true 'sons of Bhaer'.

There was great scrubbing and dusting among the matrons as they set their houses in order not only for Class Day, but to receive the bride and groom, who were to come to them for the honeymoon trip. Great plans were made, gifts prepared, and much joy felt at the prospect of seeing Franz again; though Emil, who was to accompany them, would be the greater hero. Little did the dear souls dream what a surprise was in store for them, as they innocently laid their plans and wished all the boys could be there to welcome home their eldest and their Casablanca.

There was a lot of scrubbing and dusting happening among the women as they got their homes ready not just for Class Day, but to welcome the bride and groom, who were coming to stay with them for their honeymoon. Big plans were made, gifts were prepared, and everyone was excited about seeing Franz again, although Emil, who would be joining them, would be the bigger hero. Little did these sweet folks realize the surprise that awaited them as they happily made their arrangements, wishing all the guys could be there to welcome home their oldest and their Casablanca.

While they wait and work so happily, let us see how our other absent boys are faring as they too wait and work and hope for better days. Nat was toiling steadily along the path he had wisely chosen, though it was by no means strewn with flowers—quite thorny was it, in fact, and hard to travel, after the taste of ease and pleasure he had got when nibbling at forbidden fruit. But his crop of wild oats was a light one, and he resolutely reaped what he had sowed, finding some good wheat among the tares. He taught by day; he fiddled night after night in the dingy little theatre, and he studied so diligently that his master was well pleased, and kept him in mind as one to whom preferment was due, if any chance occurred. Gay friends forgot him; but the old ones stood fast, and cheered him up when Heimweh and weariness made him sad. As spring came on things mended—expenses grew less, work pleasanter, and life more bearable than when wintry storms beat on his thinly clad back, and frost pinched the toes that patiently trudged in old boots. No debts burdened him; the year of absence was nearly over; and if he chose to stay, Herr Bergmann had hopes for him that would bring independence for a time at least. So he walked under the lindens with a lighter heart, and in the May evenings went about the city with a band of strolling students, making music before houses where he used to sit as guest. No one recognized him in the darkness, though old friends often listened to the band; and once Minna threw him money, which he humbly received as part of his penance, being morbid on the subject of his sins.

While they wait and work happily, let's check in on how our other absent boys are doing as they also wait, work, and hope for better days. Nat was steadily making his way along the path he had wisely chosen, even though it was definitely not an easy one—quite the opposite, in fact, and tough to travel after tasting the comfort and pleasure of indulging in forbidden fruit. However, his wild oats were a light crop, and he determinedly accepted the consequences of his actions, discovering some good outcomes among the bad. He taught during the day, played music night after night in a dingy little theater, and studied so hard that his teacher was pleased and thought of him for any opportunities that might arise. His cheerful friends forgot about him, but the old ones remained loyal and encouraged him when homesickness and fatigue brought him down. As spring arrived, things improved—expenses dropped, work became more enjoyable, and life felt more manageable compared to the wintry storms that battered his thin clothing and the frost that nipped at the toes of his worn-out boots. He had no debts weighing him down; his year of absence was almost over, and if he decided to stay, Herr Bergmann had hopes for him that might lead to some independence for at least a while. So he walked under the linden trees with a lighter heart, and on May evenings, he roamed the city with a group of wandering students, playing music in front of houses where he used to be a guest. No one recognized him in the darkness, although old friends often listened to the band; and once Minna tossed him some money, which he gratefully accepted as part of his penance, feeling guilty about his past mistakes.

His reward came sooner than he expected, and was greater than he deserved, he thought, though his heart leaped with joy when his master one day informed him that he was chosen, with several other of his most promising pupils, to join the musical society which was to take part in the great festival in London the next July. Here was not only honour for the violinist but happiness for the man, as it brought him nearer home, and would open a chance of further promotion and profit in his chosen profession.

His reward came faster than he expected and was greater than he deserved, he thought, though he felt a rush of joy when his master informed him one day that he had been chosen, along with several other promising students, to join the music society that would perform at the big festival in London the following July. This was not only an honor for the violinist but also a source of happiness for him, as it brought him closer to home and opened up opportunities for further advancement and profit in his chosen career.

'Make thyself useful to Bachmeister there in London with thy English, and if all goes well with him, he will be glad to take thee to America, whither he goes in the early autumn for winter concerts. Thou hast done well these last months, and I have hopes of thee.'

'Make yourself useful to Bachmeister there in London with your English, and if everything goes well for him, he’ll be happy to take you to America, where he’s headed in early autumn for winter concerts. You've done well these past few months, and I have high hopes for you.'

As the great Bergmann seldom praised his pupils, these words filled Nat's soul with pride and joy, and he worked yet more diligently than before to fulfil his master's prophecy. He thought the trip to England happiness enough, but found room for more when, early in June, Franz and Emil paid him a flying visit, bringing all sorts of good news, kind wishes, and comfortable gifts for the lonely fellow, who could have fallen on their necks and cried like a girl at seeing his old mates again. How glad he was to be found in his little room busy at his proper work, not living like an idle gentleman on borrowed money! How proud he was to tell his plans, assure them that he had no debts, and receive their praises for his improvement in music, their respect for his economy and steadfastness in well-doing! How relieved when, having honestly confessed his shortcomings, they only laughed, and owned that they also had known like experiences, and were the wiser for them. He was to go to the wedding late in June, and join his comrades in London. As best man, he could not refuse the new suit Franz insisted on ordering for him; and a cheque from home about that time made him feel like a millionaire—and a happy one; for this was accompanied by such kind letters full of delight in his success, he felt that he had earned it, and waited for his joyful holiday with the impatience of a boy.

As the great Bergmann rarely praised his students, Nat felt immense pride and joy from those words, and he worked even harder than before to make his master's prediction come true. He thought the trip to England was happiness enough, but even more joy came when, early in June, Franz and Emil dropped by for a quick visit, bringing all kinds of good news, warm wishes, and thoughtful gifts for the lonely guy, who could have hugged them and cried like a girl at seeing his old friends again. He was thrilled to be found in his little room, busy with his work, instead of living like a lazy gentleman on borrowed money! He felt proud to share his plans, reassure them that he had no debts, and receive their compliments for his progress in music and their respect for his frugality and commitment to doing well! He felt relieved when, after honestly admitting his shortcomings, they just laughed and acknowledged that they had gone through similar experiences and had grown wiser for it. He was set to attend the wedding in late June and join his friends in London. As best man, he couldn't say no to the new suit Franz insisted on ordering for him; and a check from home around that time made him feel like a millionaire—and a happy one; because it came with such kind letters filled with excitement about his success. He felt he had earned it and was eagerly awaiting his joyous holiday with the excitement of a kid.

Dan meantime was also counting the weeks till August, when he would be free. But neither marriage-bells nor festival music awaited him; no friends would greet him as he left the prison; no hopeful prospect lay before him; no happy home-going was to be his. Yet his success was far greater than Nat's, though only God and one good man saw it. It was a hard-won battle; but he would never have to fight so terrible a one again; for though enemies would still assail from within and from without, he had found the little guide-book that Christian carried in his bosom, and Love, Penitence, and Prayer, the three sweet sisters, had given him the armour which would keep him safe. He had not learned to wear it yet, and chafed against it, though he felt its value, thanks to the faithful friend who had stood by him all that bitter year.

Dan was also counting down the weeks until August, when he would finally be free. But there were no wedding bells or festival music waiting for him; no friends would greet him as he left the prison; no hopeful future lay ahead; no happy homecoming was in store for him. Yet his success was far greater than Nat's, though only God and one good man recognized it. It was a tough battle to win; but he would never have to fight such a horrible one again; for even though enemies would still attack from within and outside, he had discovered the little guidebook that Christian kept close to his heart, and Love, Penitence, and Prayer, the three caring sisters, had given him the armor that would keep him safe. He hadn’t learned to wear it properly yet and felt restricted by it, though he recognized its worth, thanks to the loyal friend who had stood by him through that difficult year.

Soon he was to be free again, worn and scarred in the fray, but out among men in the blessed sun and air. When he thought of it Dan felt as if he could not wait, but must burst that narrow cell and fly away, as the caddis-worms he used to watch by the brookside shed their stony coffins, to climb the ferns and soar into the sky. Night after night he lulled himself to sleep with planning how, when he had seen Mary Mason according to his promise, he would steer straight for his old friends, the Indians, and in the wilderness hide his disgrace and heal his wounds. Working to save the many would atone for the sin of killing one, he thought; and the old free life would keep him safe from the temptations that beset him in cities.

Soon he would be free again, worn and scarred from the struggle, but out among people in the bright sun and fresh air. Just thinking about it made Dan feel like he couldn’t wait and had to break out of that cramped cell and fly away, like the caddis-worms he used to watch by the brookside as they shed their stony cases to climb the ferns and soar into the sky. Night after night, he lulled himself to sleep planning how, after he had seen Mary Mason as he promised, he would head straight for his old friends, the Indians, and hide his shame in the wilderness to heal his wounds. He thought that working to help many would make up for the sin of killing one, and that his old free life would protect him from the temptations that surrounded him in the cities.

'By and by, when I'm all right again, and have something to tell that I'm not ashamed of, I'll go home,' he said, with a quicker beat of the impetuous heart that longed to be there so intensely, he found it as hard to curb as one of his unbroken horses on the plains. 'Not yet. I must get over this first. They'd see and smell and feel the prison taint on me, if I went now, and I couldn't look them in the face and hide the truth. I can't lose Ted's love, Mother Bhaer's confidence, and the respect of the girls, for they did respect my strength, anyway; but now they wouldn't touch me.' And poor Dan looked with a shudder at the brown fist he clenched involuntarily as he remembered what it had done since a certain little white hand had laid in it confidingly. 'I'll make 'em proud of me yet; and no one shall ever know of this awful year. I can wipe it out, and I will, so help me God!' And the clenched hand was held up as if to take a solemn oath that this lost year should yet be made good, if resolution and repentance could work the miracle.

'When I’m feeling better and have something to share that I’m proud of, I’ll go home,' he said, with a stronger beat of his passionate heart that wanted to be there so much that it was as hard to control as one of his wild horses on the plains. 'Not yet. I need to get through this first. They'd see and sense the prison's mark on me if I went now, and I couldn’t face them without hiding the truth. I can’t lose Ted’s love, Mother Bhaer's trust, and the respect of the girls, because they did respect my strength anyway; but now they wouldn’t want to be near me.' And poor Dan looked with a shiver at the brown fist he clenched involuntarily as he recalled what it had done since a certain little white hand had placed its trust in it. 'I’ll make them proud of me yet; and no one shall ever learn about this terrible year. I can erase it, and I will, so help me God!' And the clenched hand was raised as if to take a solemn vow that this lost year would be made right if determination and remorse could work the miracle.





Chapter 16. IN THE TENNIS-COURT

Athletic sports were in high favour at Plumfield; and the river where the old punt used to wabble about with a cargo of small boys, or echo to the shrill screams of little girls trying to get lilies, now was alive with boats of all kinds, from the slender wherry to the trim pleasure-craft, gay with cushions, awnings, and fluttering pennons. Everyone rowed, and the girls as well as the youths had their races, and developed their muscles in the most scientific manner. The large, level meadow near the old willow was now the college playground, and here baseball battles raged with fury, varied by football, leaping, and kindred sports fitted to split the fingers, break the ribs, and strain the backs of the too ambitious participants. The gentler pastimes of the damsels were at a safe distance from this Champ de Mars; croquet mallets clicked under the elms that fringed the field, rackets rose and fell energetically in several tennis-courts, and gates of different heights were handy to practise the graceful bound by which every girl expected to save her life some day when the mad bull, which was always coming but never seemed to arrive, should be bellowing at her heels.

Athletic sports were really popular at Plumfield; and the river where the old punt used to wobble around with a group of little boys, or echoed with the high-pitched screams of little girls trying to pick lilies, was now buzzing with all kinds of boats, from slim rowboats to stylish pleasure crafts, decked out with cushions, awnings, and fluttering flags. Everyone was rowing, and both girls and boys participated in races, building their strength in the most effective way. The large, flat meadow near the old willow had become the college playground, where baseball games were played with excitement, along with football, jumping, and other sports that could lead to splintered fingers, broken ribs, and strained backs for those who were a bit too ambitious. The gentler activities for the girls were set at a safe distance from this battlefield; croquet mallets clicked under the elms bordering the field, and rackets were swung energetically on several tennis courts, while gates of various heights were ready for practicing the graceful leap that every girl hoped would save her one day from the raging bull that was always on its way but never actually showed up.

One of these tennis grounds was called 'Jo's Court', and here the little lady ruled like a queen; for she was fond of the game, and being bent on developing her small self to the highest degree of perfection, she was to be found at every leisure moment with some victim hard at it. On a certain pleasant Saturday afternoon she had been playing with Bess and beating her; for, though more graceful, the Princess was less active than her cousin, and cultivated her roses by quieter methods.

One of these tennis courts was called 'Jo's Court', and here the little lady ruled like a queen; she loved the game and, eager to develop herself to the fullest, could be found at every free moment with some unfortunate player. On a nice Saturday afternoon, she had been playing with Bess and winning; even though the Princess was more graceful, she was less agile than her cousin, tending to her roses in a more relaxed way.

'Oh dear! you are tired, and every blessed boy is at that stupid baseball match. 'What shall I do?' sighed Josie, pushing back the great red hat she wore, and gazing sadly round her for more worlds to conquer.

'Oh no! You look exhausted, and every single boy is at that boring baseball game. What am I going to do?' Josie sighed, pushing back the big red hat she was wearing and looking around sadly for new adventures.

'I'll play presently, when I'm a little cooler. But it is dull work for me, as I never win,' answered Bess, fanning herself with a large leaf.

"I'll play soon, once I cool down a bit. But it's boring for me since I never win," replied Bess, fanning herself with a large leaf.

Josie was about to sit down beside her on the rustic seat and wait, when her quick eye saw afar off two manly forms arrayed in white flannel; their blue legs seemed bearing them towards the battle going on in the distance; but they never reached the fray; for with a cry of joy, Jo raced away to meet them, bent on securing this heaven-sent reinforcement. Both paused as she came flying up, and both raised their hats; but oh, the difference there was in the salutes! The stout youth pulled his off lazily and put it on again at once, as if glad to get the duty over; the slender being, with the crimson tie, lifted his with a graceful bend, and held it aloft while he accosted the rosy, breathless maid, thus permitting her to see his raven locks smoothly parted, with one little curl upon the brow. Dolly prided himself upon that bow, and practised it before his glass, but did not bestow it upon all alike, regarding it as a work of art, fit only for the fairest and most favoured of his female admirers; for he was a pretty youth, and fancied himself an Adonis.

Josie was about to sit down next to her on the rustic seat and wait when her sharp eyes spotted two handsome figures in the distance, both dressed in white flannel. Their blue legs seemed to carry them towards the battle happening far away, but they never made it to the fight. With a joyful shout, Jo ran to meet them, eager to secure this unexpected reinforcement. Both paused as she came rushing up and lifted their hats; but oh, the difference in their gestures! The stocky guy took his off lazily and put it back on right away, as if relieved to be done with the effort. The tall one, wearing the crimson tie, gracefully tipped his hat and held it high while he greeted the rosy-cheeked, breathless girl, allowing her to see his smooth, dark hair styled with a little curl on his forehead. Dolly took pride in that bow and practiced it in front of the mirror, but he didn’t show it to just anyone, seeing it as a piece of art meant only for the most beautiful and favored of his female admirers; he was a good-looking young man and thought of himself as an Adonis.

Eager Josie evidently did not appreciate the honour he did her, for with a nod she begged them both to 'come along and play tennis, not go and get all hot and dirty with the boys'. These two adjectives won the day; for Stuffy was already warmer than he liked to be, and Dolly had on a new suit which he desired to keep immaculate as long as possible, conscious that it was very becoming.

Eager Josie clearly didn’t understand the honor he was giving her, because with a nod she urged them both to "come on and play tennis, not go get all sweaty and dirty with the boys." Those two words won out; Stuffy was already feeling hotter than he wanted to be, and Dolly was wearing a new outfit that he wanted to keep spotless for as long as he could, knowing it looked great on him.

'Charmed to oblige,' answered the polite one, with another bend.

'Happy to help,' replied the polite one, with another bow.

'You play, I'll rest,' added the fat boy, yearning for repose and gentle converse with the Princess in the cooling shade.

'You play, I'll take a break,' said the chubby boy, longing for rest and easy conversation with the Princess in the cool shade.

'Well, you can comfort Bess, for I've beaten her all to bits and she needs amusing. I know you've got something nice in your pocket, George; give her some, and 'Dolphus can have her racket. Now then, fly round'; and driving her prey before her, Josie returned in triumph to the court.

'Well, you can cheer up Bess, because I've totally worn her out and she needs some entertainment. I know you've got something nice in your pocket, George; give her a treat, and 'Dolphus can take her racket. Now then, go on'; and leading her friend along, Josie returned in triumph to the court.

Casting himself ponderously upon the bench, which creaked under his weight, Stuffy—as we will continue to call him, though no one else dared to use the old name now—promptly produced the box of confectionery, without which he never travelled far, and regaled Bess with candied violets and other dainties, while Dolly worked hard to hold his own against a most accomplished antagonist. He would have beaten her if an unlucky stumble, which produced an unsightly stain upon the knee of those new shorts, had not distracted his mind and made him careless. Much elated at her victory, Josie permitted him to rest, and offered ironical consolation for the mishap which evidently weighed upon his mind.

Sinking heavily onto the bench, which creaked beneath him, Stuffy—what we’ll continue to call him, even though no one else dared use the old name anymore—quickly pulled out his box of sweets, which he never traveled without, and treated Bess to candied violets and other treats while Dolly worked hard to keep up with a very skilled opponent. He might have won if an unfortunate stumble hadn’t created an unsightly stain on the knee of his new shorts, distracting him and making him careless. Feeling quite pleased with her win, Josie let him take a break and offered him sarcastic comfort for the mishap that clearly bothered him.

'Don't be an old Betty; it can be cleaned. You must have been a cat in some former state, you are so troubled about dirt; or a tailor, and lived for clothes.'

'Don't be such a fussbudget; it can be cleaned. You must have been a cat in a past life to be so worried about dirt; or maybe a tailor who lived for clothes.'

'Come now, don't hit a fellow when he is down,' responded Dolly from the grass where he and Stuffy now lay to make room for both girls on the seat. One handkerchief was spread under him, and his elbow leaned upon another, while his eyes were sadly fixed upon the green and brown spot which afflicted him. 'I like to be neat; don't think it civil to cut about in old shoes and grey flannel shirts before ladies. Our fellows are gentlemen, and dress as such,' he added, rather nettled at the word 'tailor'; for he owed one of those too attractive persons an uncomfortably big bill.

"Come on, don’t kick someone when they’re down," Dolly said from the grass where he and Stuffy now lay to make room for the two girls on the seat. One handkerchief was spread beneath him, and his elbow rested on another, while his eyes were sadly fixed on the green and brown spot that bothered him. "I like to be tidy; I don’t think it’s polite to wander around in old shoes and gray flannel shirts in front of ladies. Our guys are gentlemen and dress that way," he added, a bit irritated by the word "tailor," since he owed one of those too appealing people an uncomfortably large bill.

'So are ours; but good clothes alone don't make a gentleman here. We require a good deal more,' flashed Josie, in arms at once to defend her college. 'You will hear of some of the men in “old boots and grey flannel” when you and your fine gentlemen are twiddling your ties and scenting your hair in obscurity. I like old boots and wear them, and I hate dandies; don't you, Bess?'

'So do ours; but just having nice clothes doesn’t make someone a gentleman here. We need a lot more than that,' Josie retorted, ready to defend her college. 'You’ll hear about some of the guys in “old boots and gray flannel” while you and your fancy gentlemen are fiddling with your ties and spritzing your hair in obscurity. I like old boots and wear them, and I can’t stand dandies; can you, Bess?'

'Not when they are kind to me, and belong to our old set,' answered Bess, with a nod of thanks to Dolly, who was carefully removing an inquisitive caterpillar from one of her little russet shoes.

'Not when they're nice to me and part of our old group,' replied Bess, giving a nod of thanks to Dolly, who was carefully taking an inquisitive caterpillar off one of her little brown shoes.

'I like a lady who is always polite, and doesn't snap a man's head off if he has a mind of his own; don't you, George?' asked Dolly, with his best smile for Bess and a Harvard stare of disapprobation for Josie.

'I like a woman who is always polite and doesn't lash out at a guy for having his own opinions; don't you, George?' asked Dolly, giving his best smile to Bess and a disapproving Harvard stare at Josie.

A tranquil snore was Stuffy's sole reply, and a general laugh restored peace for the moment. But Josie loved to harass the lords of creation who asserted themselves too much, and bided her time for another attack till she had secured more tennis. She got another game; for Dolly was a sworn knight of dames, so he obeyed her call, leaving Bess to sketch George as he lay upon his back, his stout legs crossed, and his round red face partially eclipsed by his hat. Josie got beaten this time and came back rather cross, so she woke the peaceful sleeper by tickling his nose with a straw till he sneezed himself into a sitting posture, and looked wrathfully about for 'that confounded fly'.

A peaceful snore was Stuffy's only response, and a general laugh brought back the calm for a moment. But Josie loved to tease the overconfident types and waited for another chance to attack until she had secured more tennis. She got another game; Dolly was a loyal knight to the ladies, so he answered her call, leaving Bess to sketch George as he lay on his back, his chunky legs crossed, and his round red face mostly covered by his hat. Josie got beaten this time and returned rather grumpy, so she woke the peaceful sleeper by tickling his nose with a straw until he sneezed himself upright and looked around angrily for "that annoying fly."

'Come, sit up and let us have a little elegant conversation; you “howling swells” ought to improve our minds and manners, for we are only poor “country girls in dowdy gowns and hats”,' began the gad-fly, opening the battle with a sly quotation from one of Dolly's unfortunate speeches about certain studious damsels who cared more for books than finery.

'Come on, sit up and let’s have a nice conversation; you “howling swells” should help us improve our minds and manners, because we’re just poor “country girls in frumpy gowns and hats,”' started the gad-fly, kicking off the exchange with a clever reference to one of Dolly’s unfortunate comments about certain studious girls who cared more about books than looking fancy.

'I didn't mean you! Your gowns are all right, and those hats the latest thing out,' began poor 'Dolphus, convicting himself by the incautious exclamation.

'I didn't mean you! Your dresses are fine, and those hats are the latest trend,' began poor 'Dolphus, incriminating himself with his careless remark.

'Caught you that time; I thought you fellows were all gentlemen, civil as well as nice. But you are always sneering at girls who don't dress well and that is a very unmanly thing to do; my mother said so'; and Josie felt that she had dealt a shrewd blow at the elegant youth who bowed at many shrines if they were well-decorated ones.

'Got you that time; I thought you guys were all gentlemen, polite as well as nice. But you're always making fun of girls who don't dress well, and that's a really unmanly thing to do; my mom said so'; and Josie felt like she had landed a clever jab at the stylish guy who worshipped at many shrines, as long as they were fancy ones.

'Got you there, old boy, and she's right. You never hear me talk about clothes and such twaddle,' said Stuffy, suppressing a yawn, and feeling for another bon-bon wherewith to refresh himself.

"Gotcha there, old buddy, and she's right. You never hear me talking about clothes and that nonsense," Stuffy said, stifling a yawn and looking for another candy to perk himself up.

'You talk about eating, and that is even worse for a man. You will marry a cook and keep a restaurant some day,' laughed Josie, down on him at once.

"You talk about eating, and that's even worse for a guy. You're going to marry a cook and run a restaurant one day," laughed Josie, immediately putting him down.

This fearful prediction kept him silent for several moments; but Dolly rallied, and wisely changing the subject, carried war into the enemy's camp.

This scary prediction left him quiet for a few moments; but Dolly bounced back and, wisely switching the subject, took the fight to the enemy's territory.

'As you wanted us to improve your manners, allow me to say that young ladies in good society don't make personal remarks or deliver lectures. Little girls who are not out do it, and think it witty; but I assure you it's not good form.'

'Since you wanted us to help you refine your manners, let me point out that young ladies in polite society don't make personal comments or give lectures. Little girls who haven't come out do this and consider it clever, but I assure you it's not acceptable.'

Josie paused a moment to recover from the shock of being called 'a little girl', when all the honours of her fourteenth birthday were fresh upon her; and Bess said, in the lofty tone which was infinitely more crushing than Jo's impertinence:

Josie took a moment to collect herself after being called 'a little girl,' especially since she had just celebrated her fourteenth birthday with all its honors. Bess spoke in a condescending tone that was far more crushing than Jo's rudeness:

'That is true; but we have lived all our lives with superior people, so we have no society talk like your young ladies. We are so accustomed to sensible conversation, and helping one another by telling our faults, that we have no gossip to offer you.'

'That's true; but we've spent our whole lives around people who are more advanced than us, so we don’t engage in the same kinds of social chit-chat like your young ladies do. We're so used to having meaningful conversations and supporting each other by pointing out our flaws that we have no gossip to share with you.'

When the Princess reproved, the boys seldom resented it; so Dolly held his peace, and Josie burst out, following her cousin's lead, which she thought a happy one:

When the Princess scolded, the boys rarely took offense; so Dolly kept quiet, and Josie chimed in, following her cousin's example, which she considered a good one:

'Our boys like to have us talk with them, and take kindly any hints we give. They don't think they know everything and are quite perfect at eighteen, as I've observed the Harvard men do, especially the very young ones.'

'Our boys enjoy chatting with us and appreciate any advice we offer. They don't act like they know everything or are perfect at eighteen, like I've noticed the Harvard men do, especially the really young ones.'

Josie took immense satisfaction in that return shot; and Dolly showed that he was hit, by the nettled tone in which he answered, with a supercilious glance at the hot, dusty, and noisy crowd on the baseball ground: 'The class of fellows you have here need all the polish and culture you can give them; and I'm glad they get it. Our men are largely from the best families all over the country, so we don't need girls to teach us anything.'

Josie felt really proud of that comeback; and Dolly made it clear he was affected, judging by the irritated way he responded, along with a condescending look at the loud, dirty crowd at the baseball field: 'The kind of guys you have here need all the refinement and education you can give them, and I’m glad they’re getting it. Our guys mostly come from the best families from across the country, so we don’t need girls to teach us anything.'

'It's a pity you don't have more of such “fellows” as ours. They value and use well what college gives them, and aren't satisfied to slip through, getting all the fun they can and shirking the work. Oh, I've heard you “men” talk, and heard your fathers say they wish they hadn't wasted time and money just that you might say you'd been through college. As for the girls, you'll be much better off in all ways when they do get in, and keep you lazy things up to the mark, as we do here.'

"It's too bad you don't have more people like our 'fellows.' They truly appreciate what college offers and make good use of it, instead of just coasting through for the fun of it and avoiding their responsibilities. I've listened to you 'men' talk, and I've heard your fathers express regret over wasting time and money just so you could claim to have gone to college. As for the girls, you'll be way better off in every way when they finally join in and keep you lazy ones on your toes, just like we do here."

'If you have such a poor opinion of us, why do you wear our colour?' asked Dolly, painfully conscious that he was not improving the advantages his Alma Mater offered him, but bound to defend her.

'If you think so poorly of us, why do you wear our colors?' asked Dolly, painfully aware that he wasn't making the most of what his school had to offer, but feeling compelled to defend it.

'I don't; my hat is scarlet, not crimson. Much you know about a colour,' scoffed Josie.

'I don't; my hat is bright red, not dark red. You really don't know much about colors,' scoffed Josie.

'I know that a cross cow would soon set you scampering, if you flaunted that red tile under her nose,' retorted Dolly.

"I know that an angry cow would definitely make you run if you waved that red tile in front of her," Dolly shot back.

'I'm ready for her. Can your fine young ladies do this? or you either?' and burning to display her latest accomplishment, Josie ran to the nearest gate, put one hand on the top rail, and vaulted over as lightly as a bird.

'I'm ready for her. Can your lovely young ladies do this? Or can you?' Eager to show off her latest feat, Josie dashed to the nearest gate, placed one hand on the top rail, and jumped over as gracefully as a bird.

Bess shook her head, and Stuffy languidly applauded; but Dolly scorning to be braved by a girl, took a flying leap and landed on his feet beside Josie, saying calmly: 'Can you do that?'

Bess shook her head, and Stuffy lazily clapped; but Dolly, refusing to be outdone by a girl, took a leap and landed on his feet next to Josie, asking calmly, "Can you do that?"

'Not yet; but I will by and by.'

'Not yet; but I will eventually.'

As his foe looked a little crestfallen, Dolly relented, and affably added sundry feats of a like nature, quite unconscious that he had fallen into a dreadful snare; for the dull red paint on the gate, not being used to such vigorous handling, came off in streaks upon his shoulders when he turned a backward swing and came up smiling, to be rewarded with the aggravating remark:

As his opponent appeared a bit down, Dolly softened and casually mentioned a few similar accomplishments, completely unaware that he had stepped into a terrible trap; the dull red paint on the gate, not accustomed to such rough handling, came off in streaks on his shoulders when he turned back and smiled, only to be met with the annoying comment:

'If you want to know what crimson is, look at your back; it's nicely stamped on and won't wash out, I think.'

'If you want to know what crimson is, check your back; it's clearly marked there and I don't think it will wash out.'

'The deuce it won't!' cried Dolly, trying to get an impossible view, and giving it up in great disgust.

"The hell it won't!" shouted Dolly, attempting to get an impossible view and giving up in frustration.

'I guess we'd better be going, Dolf,' said peaceable Stuffy, feeling that it would be wise to retreat before another skirmish took place, as his side seemed to be getting the worst of it.

"I guess we should get going, Dolf," said calm Stuffy, sensing that it would be smart to back off before another argument broke out, since his team seemed to be losing.

'Don't hurry, I beg; stay and rest; you must need it after the tremendous amount of brain work you've done this week. It is time for our Greek. Come, Bess. Good afternoon, gentlemen.' And, with a sweeping courtesy, Josie led the way, with her hat belligerently cocked up, and her racket borne like a triumphal banner over one shoulder; for having had the last word, she felt that she could retire with the honours of war.

"Don't rush, please; stay and relax; you definitely need it after all the intense work you've done this week. It's time for our Greek lesson. Come on, Bess. Good afternoon, gentlemen." And with a grand bow, Josie led the way, her hat tilted defiantly and her racket slung over one shoulder like a champion's flag; having had the final say, she felt she could leave with the glory of victory.

Dolly gave Bess his best bow, with the chill on; and Stuffy subsided luxuriously, with his legs in the air, murmuring in a dreamy tone:

Dolly gave Bess his best bow, feeling a bit formal; and Stuffy settled in comfortably, with his legs up in the air, murmuring in a dreamy voice:

'Little Jo is as cross as two sticks today. I'm going in for another nap: too hot to play anything.'

'Little Jo is as cranky as ever today. I'm going for another nap; it's way too hot to do anything.'

'So it is. Wonder if Spitfire was right about these beastly spots?' And Dolly sat down to try dry cleansing with one of his handkerchiefs. 'Asleep?' he asked, after a few moments of this cheerful occupation, fearing that his chum might be too comfortable when he was in a fume himself.

'So it is. I wonder if Spitfire was correct about these annoying spots?' And Dolly sat down to try to clean them off with one of his handkerchiefs. 'Are you asleep?' he asked, after a few moments of this cheerful task, worried that his friend might be too comfortable while he was in a bad mood himself.

'No. I was thinking that Jo wasn't far wrong about shirking. 'Tis a shame to get so little done, when we ought to be grinding like Morton and Torry and that lot. I never wanted to go to college; but my governor made me. Much good it will do either of us!' answered Stuffy, with a groan; for he hated work, and saw two more long years of it before him.

'No. I was thinking that Jo wasn't wrong about avoiding work. It's a shame to get so little done when we should be working hard like Morton and Torry and those guys. I never wanted to go to college, but my dad made me. It won't do either of us much good!' answered Stuffy with a groan, as he hated work and saw two more long years of it ahead of him.

'Gives a man prestige, you know. No need to dig. I mean to have a gay old time, and be a “howling swell”, if I choose. Between you and me though, it would be no end jolly to have the girls along. Study be hanged! But if we've got to turn the grindstone, it would be mighty nice to have some of the little dears to lend a hand. Wouldn't it now?'

"Gives a guy some respect, you know? No need to overthink it. I mean to have a great time and be a total standout, if that's what I want. But between you and me, it would be so much fun to have the girls join us. Forget studying! But if we have to put in the effort, it would be really nice to have some of the lovely ladies help out. Don't you think?"

'I'd like three this minute—one to fan me, one to kiss me, and one to give me some iced lemonade!' sighed Stuffy, with a yearning glance towards the house, whence no succour appeared.

"I want three right now—one to fan me, one to kiss me, and one to bring me some iced lemonade!" Stuffy sighed, looking longingly at the house, from which no help was coming.

'How would root-beer do?' asked a voice behind them, which made Dolly spring to his feet and Stuffy roll over like a startled porpoise.

"How about root beer?" asked a voice from behind them, which made Dolly jump to his feet and Stuffy roll over like a startled porpoise.

Sitting on the stile that crossed the wall near by was Mrs Jo, with two jugs slung over her shoulder by a strap, several tin mugs in her hand, and an old-fashioned sun-bonnet on her head.

Sitting on the stile that crossed the wall nearby was Mrs. Jo, with two jugs slung over her shoulder by a strap, several tin mugs in her hand, and an old-fashioned sunbonnet on her head.

'I knew the boys would be killing themselves with ice-water; so I strolled down with some of my good, wholesome beer. They drank like fishes. But Silas was with me; so my cruse still holds out. Have some?'

'I knew the guys would be drowning themselves with ice water, so I made my way down with some of my good, refreshing beer. They drank like fish. But Silas was with me, so I've still got plenty left. Want some?'

'Yes, thanks, very much. Let us pour it.' And Dolly held the cup while Stuffy joyfully filled it; both very grateful, but rather afraid she had heard what went before the wish she fulfilled.

'Yes, thank you so much. Let’s pour it.' And Dolly held the cup while Stuffy happily filled it; both very grateful, but somewhat worried that she had heard what was said before the wish she granted.

She proved that she had by saying, as they stood drinking her health, while she sat between them, looking like a middle-aged vivandiere, with her jugs and mugs:

She showed that she had by saying, as they stood toasting to her health, while she sat between them, looking like a middle-aged barmaid, with her jugs and mugs:

'I was glad to hear you say you would like to have girls at your college; but I hope you will learn to speak more respectfully of them before they come; for that will be the first lesson they will teach you.'

'I was happy to hear you say that you want to have girls at your college; but I hope you learn to speak about them more respectfully before they arrive, because that's the first lesson they will teach you.'

'Really, ma'am, I was only joking,' began Stuffy, gulping down his beer in a hurry.

'Honestly, ma'am, I was just kidding,' Stuffy started, quickly chugging his beer.

'So was I. I'm sure I—I'm devoted to 'em,' stuttered Dolly, panic-stricken; for he saw that he was in for a lecture of some sort.

'So was I. I'm sure I—I'm devoted to them,' stuttered Dolly, panic-stricken; for he realized that he was about to get some kind of lecture.

'Not in the right way. Frivolous girls may like to be called “little dears” and things of that sort; but the girls who love study wish to be treated like reasonable beings, not dolls to flirt with. Yes, I'm going to preach; that's my business; so stand up and take it like men.'

'Not in the right way. Playful girls might enjoy being called “little dears” and similar terms; but the girls who are passionate about studying want to be treated as sensible individuals, not dolls to be toyed with. Yes, I'm going to give a speech; that’s my role; so stand up and accept it like adults.'

Mrs Jo laughed; but she was in earnest; for by various hints and signs during the past winter she knew that the boys were beginning to 'see life' in the way she especially disapproved. Both were far from home, had money enough to waste, and were as inexperienced, curious, and credulous as most lads of their age. Not fond of books, therefore without the safeguard which keeps many studious fellows out of harm; one self-indulgent, indolent, and so used to luxury that pampering of the senses was an easy thing; the other vain, as all comely boys are, full of conceit, and so eager to find favour in the eyes of his comrades that he was ready for anything which would secure it. These traits and foibles made both peculiarly liable to the temptations which assail pleasure-loving and weak-willed boys. Mrs Jo knew them well, and had dropped many a warning word since they went to college; but till lately they seemed not to understand some of her friendly hints; now she was sure they would, and meant to speak out: for long experience with boys made her both bold and skilful in handling some of the dangers usually left to silence, till it is too late for anything but pity and reproach.

Mrs. Jo laughed, but she was serious; because over the past winter, she had noticed various hints and signs that the boys were starting to "see life" in a way she really didn't approve of. Both were far from home, had enough money to spend, and were as inexperienced, curious, and gullible as most young guys their age. Not being fond of books meant they lacked the protective shield that keeps many studious fellows from getting into trouble. One was self-indulgent, lazy, and so used to luxury that it was easy for him to indulge his senses; the other was vain, like most attractive boys, full of himself, and eager to impress his friends, willing to do anything to gain their favor. These traits made both particularly vulnerable to the temptations that target pleasure-seeking and weak-willed boys. Mrs. Jo knew them well and had offered many warnings since they went to college; but until recently, they didn't seem to catch on to some of her friendly hints. Now she was sure they would, and she planned to speak up: her long experience with boys made her both bold and skilled in addressing dangers that are usually left unspoken until it's too late for anything but pity and blame.

'I'm going to talk to you like a mother, because yours are far away; and there are things that mothers can manage best, if they do their duty,' she solemnly began from the depths of the sunbonnet.

"I'm going to talk to you like a mom, since yours are far away; and there are things that moms handle best, if they do their job," she seriously began from beneath the sunbonnet.

'Great Scott! We're in for it now!' thought Dolly, in secret dismay; while Stuffy got the first blow by trying to sustain himself with another mug of beer.

"Wow! We're in trouble now!" thought Dolly, secretly worried; while Stuffy took the first hit by trying to hold himself up with another mug of beer.

'That won't hurt you; but I must warn you about drinking other things, George. Overeating is an old story; and a few more fits of illness will teach you to be wise. But drinking is a more serious thing, and leads to worse harm than any that can afflict your body alone. I hear you talk about wines as if you knew them and cared more for them than a boy should; and several times I've heard jokes that meant mischief. For heaven's sake, don't begin to play with this dangerous taste “for fun”, as you say, or because it's the fashion, and the other fellows do. Stop at once, and learn that temperance in all things is the only safe rule.'

"That won't hurt you; but I need to warn you about drinking other things, George. Overeating is an old issue; and a few more sicknesses will help you learn to be smart. But drinking is a more serious matter and leads to worse damage than what your body alone can suffer. I hear you talk about wines like you know them and care about them more than a young guy should; and I've caught you making jokes that have bad intentions. Please, don’t start messing around with this risky habit “for fun,” as you say, or just because it’s trendy and the other guys are doing it. Stop right now and understand that moderation in everything is the only safe way."

'Upon my honour, I only take wine and iron. I need a tonic, mother says, to repair the waste of brain-tissue while I'm studying,' protested Stuffy, putting down the mug as if it burnt his fingers.

'Honestly, I only drink wine and iron. I need a tonic, my mom says, to help fix the brain cells I’m using up while I study,' Stuffy protested, putting down the mug as if it had burned his fingers.

'Good beef and oatmeal will repair your tissues much better than any tonic of that sort. Work and plain fare are what you want; and I wish I had you here for a few months out of harm's way. I'd Banting you, and fit you to run without puffing, and get on without four or five meals a day. What an absurd hand that is for a man! You ought to be ashamed of it!' And Mrs Jo caught up the plump fist, with deep dimples at each knuckle, which was fumbling distressfully at the buckle of the belt girt about a waist far too large for a youth of his age.

'Good beef and oatmeal will heal your body way better than any tonic. What you really need is hard work and simple meals; I wish I could have you here for a few months away from all the trouble. I'd help you get in shape and fit enough to run without getting out of breath, and to manage with only a few meals a day. It's ridiculous for a guy to eat that much! You should be embarrassed!' And Mrs. Jo grabbed the chubby hand, with deep dimples at each knuckle, which was nervously trying to adjust the buckle of the belt around a waist that's way too big for a kid his age.

'I can't help it—we all grow fat; it's in the family,' said Stuffy in self-defence.

"I can't help it—we all get overweight; it's in the family," said Stuffy in self-defense.

'All the more reason you should live carefully. Do you want to die early, or be an invalid all your life?'

'This is even more reason for you to live carefully. Do you want to die young or be disabled for the rest of your life?'

'No, ma'am!'

'No, ma'am!'

Stuffy looked so scared that Mrs Jo could not be hard upon his budding sins, for they lay at his overindulgent mother's door line in a great measure; so she softened the tone of her voice, and added, with a little slap on the fat hand, as she used to do when it was small enough to pilfer lumps of sugar from her bowl:

Stuffy looked so terrified that Mrs. Jo couldn't be too tough on his minor wrongdoings, since they were largely the result of his overly indulgent mother; so she softened her tone and added, giving a little slap on his chubby hand, just like she used to when it was small enough to sneak pieces of sugar from her bowl:

'Then be careful; for a man writes his character in his face; and you don't want gluttony and intemperance in yours, I know.'

'So be careful; a man's character is written on his face, and you definitely don’t want gluttony and excess to show up on yours, I know.'

'I'm sure I don't! Please make out a wholesome bill of fare, and I'll stick to it, if I can. I am getting stout, and I don't like it; and my liver's torpid, and I have palpitations and headache. Overwork, mother says; but it may be overeating.' And Stuffy gave a sigh of mingled regret for the good things he renounced, and relief as he finished loosening his belt as soon as his hand was free.

"I'm sure I don't! Please create a healthy menu, and I'll stick to it, if I can. I'm gaining weight, and I don't like it; my liver's sluggish, and I have palpitations and headaches. Overwork, my mom says; but it could be overeating." And Stuffy sighed with regret for the delicious things he was giving up, and relief as he finished loosening his belt as soon as his hand was free.

'I will; follow it, and in a year you'll be a man and not a meal-bag. Now, Dolly'; and Mrs Jo turned to the other culprit, who shook in his shoes and wished he hadn't come.

'I will; follow it, and in a year you'll be a man and not a meal-bag. Now, Dolly'; and Mrs. Jo turned to the other culprit, who shook in his shoes and wished he hadn't come.

'Are you studying French as industriously as you were last winter?'

'Are you studying French as hard as you were last winter?'

'No ma'am; I don't care for it—that is, I, I'm busy with G-Greek just now,' answered Dolly, beginning bravely, quite in the dark as to what that odd question meant till a sudden memory made him stutter and look at his shoes with deep interest.

'No ma'am; I'm not into it—that is, I'm busy with Greek right now,' answered Dolly, starting off confidently, completely unaware of what that strange question meant until a sudden memory made him stutter and fixate on his shoes with great interest.

'Oh, he doesn't study it; only reads French novels and goes to the theatre when the opera bouffe is here,' said Stuffy, innocently confirming Mrs Jo's suspicions.

"Oh, he doesn't study it; he just reads French novels and goes to the theater when the opera bouffe is in town," said Stuffy, innocently confirming Mrs. Jo's suspicions.

'So I understood; and that is what I want to speak about. Ted had a sudden desire to learn French in that way, from something you said, Dolly; so I went myself, and was quite satisfied that it was no place for a decent boy. Your men were out in full force; and I was glad to see that some of the younger ones looked as ashamed as I felt. The older fellows enjoyed it, and when we came out were waiting to take those painted girls to supper. Did you ever go with them?'

'So I got it; and that’s what I want to talk about. Ted suddenly wanted to learn French because of something you said, Dolly; so I went myself and was pretty sure it wasn’t a place for a decent guy. Your guys were out in full force; and I was relieved to see that some of the younger ones looked as embarrassed as I felt. The older guys were having a good time, and when we left, they were ready to take those painted girls out to dinner. Did you ever go with them?'

'Once.'

'One time.'

'Did you like it?'

'Did you enjoy it?'

'No 'm; I—I came away early,' stammered Dolly, with a face as red as his splendid tie.

'No, I'm—I left early,' stammered Dolly, her face as red as his bright tie.

'I'm glad you have not lost the grace of blushing yet; but you will soon, if you keep up this sort of study and forget to be ashamed. The society of such women will unfit you for that of good ones, and lead you into trouble and sin and shame. Oh, why don't the city fathers stop that evil thing, when they know the harm it does? It made my heart ache to see those boys, who ought to be at home and in their beds, going off for a night of riot which would help to ruin some of them for ever.'

'I'm glad you still have the ability to blush; but you won't for long if you keep this up and forget to feel ashamed. Hanging out with those kinds of women will make you less suitable for the company of good ones and lead you into trouble and disgrace. Oh, why don’t the city officials put an end to that harmful activity when they know the damage it causes? It broke my heart to see those boys who should be at home in their beds heading out for a night of wildness that could ruin some of them for good.'

The youths looked scared at Mrs Jo's energetic protest against one of the fashionable pleasures of the day, and waited in conscience-stricken silence—Stuffy glad that he never went to those gay suppers, and Dolly deeply grateful that he 'came away early'. With a hand on either shoulder, and all the terrors smoothed from her brow, Mrs Jo went on in her most motherly tone, anxious to do for them what no other woman would, and do it kindly:

The young people looked worried at Mrs. Jo's passionate objection to one of the popular pastimes of the time and waited in guilty silence—Stuffy relieved that he never attended those lively dinners, and Dolly sincerely thankful that he "left early." With a hand on each shoulder and all the worries eased from her face, Mrs. Jo continued in her warmest motherly tone, eager to do for them what no other woman would and do it kindly:

'My dear boys, if I didn't love you, I would not say these things. I know they are not pleasant; but my conscience won't let me hold my peace when a word may keep you from two of the great sins that curse the world and send so many young men to destruction. You are just beginning to feel the allurement of them, and soon it will be hard to turn away. Stop now, I beg of you, and not only save yourselves but help others by a brave example. Come to me if things worry you; don't be afraid or ashamed; I have heard many sadder confessions than any you are ever likely to bring me, and been able to comfort many poor fellows, gone wrong for want of a word in time. Do this, and you will be able to kiss your mothers with clean lips, and by and by have the right to ask innocent girls to love you.'

My dear boys, if I didn’t care about you, I wouldn’t say these things. I know they’re not easy to hear, but my conscience won’t let me stay quiet when just a few words could help you avoid two of the major sins that plague the world and lead so many young men to ruin. You’re just starting to feel their pull, and soon it’ll be hard to walk away. Please, stop now, not just to save yourselves but to set a strong example for others. Come to me if you’re feeling troubled; don’t be afraid or embarrassed; I’ve heard much sadder confessions than anything you might ever share, and I’ve helped many guys who went off track just because they needed a little guidance in time. Do this, and you’ll be able to kiss your mothers with clean lips, and eventually, you’ll have the right to ask innocent girls to love you.

'Yes'm, thank you. I suppose you're right; but it's pretty hard work to toe the mark when ladies give you wine and gentlemen take their daughters to see Aimee,' said Dolly, foreseeing tribulations ahead though he knew it was time to 'pull up'.

"Yes, thank you. I guess you're right; but it's really tough to stay in line when ladies offer you wine and gentlemen bring their daughters to see Aimee," said Dolly, anticipating challenges ahead even though he knew it was time to 'get serious'.

'So it is; but all the more honour to those who are brave and wise enough to resist public opinion, and the easy-going morals of bad or careless men and women. Think of the persons whom you respect most, and in imitating them you will secure the respect of those who look up to you. I'd rather my boys should be laughed at and cold-shouldered by a hundred foolish fellows than lose what, once gone, no power can give them back—innocence and self-respect. I don't wonder you find it “hard to toe the mark”, when books, pictures, ball-rooms, theatres, and streets offer temptations; yet you can resist, if you try. Last winter Mrs Brooke used to worry about John's being out so late reporting; but when she spoke to him about the things he must see and hear on his way to and fro from the office at midnight, he said in his sober way, “I know what you mean, mother; but no fellow need to go wrong unless he wants to.”

So it's true; but that just makes it more admirable for those who are brave and wise enough to stand against public opinion and the laid-back morals of careless people. Think about the people you respect the most, and by trying to be like them, you'll earn the respect of those who look up to you. I’d rather my boys be laughed at and ignored by a hundred foolish people than lose something that, once gone, can never be regained—innocence and self-respect. I understand why you find it “hard to toe the mark,” considering all the temptations in books, pictures, ballrooms, theaters, and streets; but you can resist if you really want to. Last winter, Mrs. Brooke would worry about John being out so late reporting; but when she talked to him about the things he might see and hear on his way to and from the office at midnight, he said calmly, “I know what you mean, Mother; but no guy has to go wrong unless he wants to.”

'That's like the Deacon!' exclaimed Stuffy, with an approving smile on his fat face.

"That's just like the Deacon!" Stuffy exclaimed, a pleased smile spreading across his chubby face.

'I'm glad you told me that. He's right; and it's because he doesn't want to go wrong we all respect him so,' added Dolly, looking up now with an expression which assured his Mentor that the right string had been touched, and a spirit of emulation roused, more helpful, perhaps, than any words of hers. Seeing this, she was satisfied, and said, as she prepared to leave the bar before which her culprits had been tried and found guilty, but recommended to mercy:

'I'm glad you told me that. He's right; and it's because he doesn't want to mess up that we all respect him so,' added Dolly, looking up now with an expression that told his Mentor the right note had been struck, and a sense of competition stirred up, more helpful, perhaps, than anything she could say. Seeing this, she felt satisfied and said, as she got ready to leave the bar where her culprits had been tried and found guilty, but recommended for mercy:

'Then be to others what John is to you—a good example. Forgive me for troubling you, my dear lads, and remember my little preachment. I think it will do you good, though I may never know it. Chance words spoken in kindness often help amazingly; and that's what old people are here for—else their experience is of little use. Now, come and find the young folk. I hope I shall never have to shut the gates of Plumfield upon you, as I have on some of your “gentlemen”. I mean to keep my boys and girls safe if I can, and this a wholesome place where the good old-fashioned virtues are lived and taught.'

Then be to others what John is to you—a good example. Forgive me for bothering you, my dear boys, and remember my little advice. I think it will help you, even if I never find out. Random kind words often make a huge difference; and that's what older people are here for—otherwise, their experience isn't very useful. Now, come and find the young people. I hope I never have to close the gates of Plumfield on you, like I have on some of your “gentlemen.” I mean to keep my boys and girls safe if I can, and this is a good place where the solid old-fashioned values are lived and taught.

Much impressed by that dire threat, Dolly helped her from her perch with deep respect; and Stuffy relieved her of her empty jugs, solemnly vowing to abstain from all fermented beverages except root-beer, as long as feeble flesh could hold out. Of course they made light of 'Mother Bhaer's lecture' when they were alone—that was to be expected of 'men of our class' but in their secret souls they thanked her for giving their boyish consciences a jog, and more than once afterward had cause to remember gratefully that half-hour in the tennis court.

Much impressed by that serious threat, Dolly helped her down from her spot with deep respect, and Stuffy took her empty jugs, solemnly promising to avoid all alcoholic drinks except root beer for as long as he could manage. Naturally, they made fun of 'Mother Bhaer's lecture' when they were alone—that was to be expected from 'men of our type'—but in their secret hearts, they were grateful to her for giving their youthful consciences a nudge, and more than once afterward they had reason to remember that half-hour in the tennis court with appreciation.





Chapter 17. AMONG THE MAIDS

Although this story is about Jo's boys, her girls cannot be neglected, because they held a high place in this little republic, and especial care was taken to fit them to play their parts worthily in the great republic which offered them wider opportunities and more serious duties. To many the social influence was the better part of the training they received; for education is not confined to books, and the finest characters often graduate from no college, but make experience their master, and life their book. Others cared only for the mental culture, and were in danger of over-studying, under the delusion which pervades New England that learning must be had at all costs, forgetting that health and real wisdom are better. A third class of ambitious girls hardly knew what they wanted, but were hungry for whatever could fit them to face the world and earn a living, being driven by necessity, the urgency of some half-conscious talent, or the restlessness of strong young natures to break away from the narrow life which no longer satisfied.

Although this story is about Jo's boys, her girls can't be overlooked, as they held an important position in this small community. Special care was taken to prepare them to play their roles effectively in the larger society, which presented them with broader opportunities and more significant responsibilities. For many, the social influence was the most valuable part of their training, since education isn’t just about textbooks, and the best individuals often graduate without ever stepping foot in a college, learning from experience and using life as their guide. Others focused solely on intellectual development and risked over-studying, under the misconception prevalent in New England that knowledge must be pursued at all costs, overlooking the value of health and genuine wisdom. A third group of ambitious girls barely knew what they wanted but were eager for anything that could help them face the world and earn a living, driven by necessity, the urgency of some partly recognized talent, or the restlessness of strong young spirits wanting to escape the limited life that no longer fulfilled them.

At Plumfield all found something to help them; for the growing institution had not yet made its rules as fixed as the laws of the Medes and Persians, and believed so heartily in the right of all sexes, colours, creeds, and ranks to education, that there was room for everyone who knocked, and a welcome to the shabby youths from up country, the eager girls from the West, the awkward freedman or woman from the South, or the well-born student whose poverty made this college a possibility when other doors were barred. There still was prejudice, ridicule, neglect in high places, and prophecies of failure to contend against; but the Faculty was composed of cheerful, hopeful men and women who had seen greater reforms spring from smaller roots, and after stormy seasons blossom beautifully, to add prosperity and honour to the nation. So they worked on steadily and bided their time, full of increasing faith in their attempt as year after year their numbers grew, their plans succeeded, and the sense of usefulness in this most vital of all professions blessed them with its sweet rewards.

At Plumfield, everyone found something that helped them; the growing institution hadn’t made its rules as rigid as the laws of the Medes and Persians and fully believed in the right of all genders, races, religions, and social classes to an education. There was space for anyone who reached out, and they welcomed the scrappy youths from the countryside, eager girls from the West, the awkward freedman or woman from the South, and the well-born students whose financial struggles made this college a viable option when other doors were closed. There was still prejudice, ridicule, and neglect from higher-ups, along with forecasts of failure to overcome; however, the Faculty was made up of cheerful, hopeful men and women who had witnessed greater reforms grow from smaller beginnings and eventually flourish beautifully, contributing prosperity and honor to the nation. So they worked steadily and waited for their time, filled with increasing faith in their mission as their numbers grew year after year, their plans succeeded, and the sense of usefulness in this essential profession blessed them with its sweet rewards.

Among the various customs which had very naturally sprung up was one especially useful and interesting to 'the girls', as the young women liked to be called. It all grew out of the old sewing hour still kept up by the three sisters long after the little work-boxes had expanded into big baskets full of household mending. They were busy women, yet on Saturdays they tried to meet in one of the three sewing-rooms; for even classic Parnassus had its nook where Mrs Amy often sat among her servants, teaching them to make and mend, thereby giving them a respect for economy, since the rich lady did not scorn to darn her hose, and sew on buttons. In these household retreats, with books and work, and their daughters by them, they read and sewed and talked in the sweet privacy that domestic women love, and can make so helpful by a wise mixture of cooks and chemistry, table linen and theology, prosaic duties and good poetry.

Among the various customs that naturally developed was one especially useful and interesting to “the girls,” as the young women preferred to be called. It all came from the old sewing hour that the three sisters continued long after their little work-boxes had turned into large baskets full of household mending. They were busy women, yet on Saturdays, they made an effort to gather in one of the three sewing rooms; even classic Parnassus had its corner where Mrs. Amy often sat with her servants, teaching them to sew and repair, instilling a sense of appreciation for frugality, since the wealthy lady didn’t hesitate to darn her socks and sew on buttons. In these cozy home spaces, surrounded by books and projects, and with their daughters nearby, they read, sewed, and chatted in the sweet privacy that domestic women cherish, skillfully blending everyday tasks with cooking, table settings, and thoughtful discussions on everything from practical matters to good poetry.

Mrs Meg was the first to propose enlarging this little circle; for as she went her motherly rounds among the young women she found a sad lack of order, skill, and industry in this branch of education. Latin, Greek, the higher mathematics, and science of all sorts prospered finely; but the dust gathered on the work-baskets, frayed elbows went unheeded, and some of the blue stockings sadly needed mending. Anxious lest the usual sneer at learned women should apply to 'our girls', she gently lured two or three of the most untidy to her house, and made the hour so pleasant, the lesson so kindly, that they took the hint, were grateful for the favour, and asked to come again. Others soon begged to make the detested weekly duty lighter by joining the party, and soon it was a privilege so much desired that the old museum was refitted with sewing-machines, tables, rocking-chair, and a cheerful fireplace, so that, rain or shine, the needles might go on undisturbed.

Mrs. Meg was the first to suggest expanding this small group. As she went about her motherly duties among the young women, she noticed a troubling lack of organization, skill, and diligence in this area of education. While subjects like Latin, Greek, advanced math, and various sciences thrived, dust was collecting on the sewing baskets, frayed sleeves were overlooked, and some of the blue stockings were in serious need of repair. Worried that the usual criticism of educated women might also apply to "our girls," she gently invited two or three of the most disorganized to her home, making the hour so enjoyable and the lesson so warm that they took the hint, appreciated the invitation, and asked to return. Before long, others were eager to lighten the dreaded weekly chore by joining the group, and it soon became such a sought-after privilege that the old museum was updated with sewing machines, tables, rocking chairs, and a cozy fireplace, ensuring that, rain or shine, the sewing would continue uninterrupted.

Here Mrs Meg was in her glory, and stood wielding her big shears like a queen as she cut out white work, fitted dresses, and directed Daisy, her special aide, about the trimming of hats, and completing the lace and ribbon trifles which add grace to the simplest costume and save poor or busy girls so much money and time. Mrs Amy contributed taste, and decided the great question of colours and complexions; for few women, even the most learned, are without that desire to look well which makes many a plain face comely, as well as many a pretty one ugly for want of skill and knowledge of the fitness of things. She also took her turn to provide books for the readings, and as art was her forte she gave them selections from Ruskin, Hamerton, and Mrs Jameson, who is never old. Bess read these aloud as her contribution, and Josie took her turn at the romances, poetry, and plays her uncles recommended. Mrs Jo gave little lectures on health, religion, politics, and the various questions in which all should be interested, with copious extracts from Miss Cobbe's Duties of Women, Miss Brackett's Education of American Girls, Mrs Duffy's No Sex in Education, Mrs Woolson's Dress Reform, and many of the other excellent books wise women write for their sisters, now that they are waking up and asking: 'What shall we do?'

Here Mrs. Meg was in her element, wielding her big shears like a queen as she cut out white work, fitted dresses, and directed Daisy, her special assistant, on trimming hats and finishing lace and ribbon details that add elegance to even the simplest outfit, saving poor or busy girls a lot of money and time. Mrs. Amy brought her sense of style and tackled the important issue of colors and skin tones; after all, few women, even the most knowledgeable, can resist the desire to look good, which can make an ordinary face attractive and a pretty one less appealing due to a lack of skill and understanding of what suits them. She also took her turn providing books for their readings, and since art was her strong suit, she chose selections from Ruskin, Hamerton, and Mrs. Jameson, who is always relevant. Bess read these aloud as her contribution, while Josie picked the romances, poetry, and plays recommended by her uncles. Mrs. Jo delivered brief lectures on health, religion, politics, and various issues that everyone should care about, using plenty of excerpts from Miss Cobbe's *Duties of Women*, Miss Brackett's *Education of American Girls*, Mrs. Duffy's *No Sex in Education*, Mrs. Woolson's *Dress Reform*, and many other insightful books that wise women write for their sisters, now that they are awakening and asking: 'What should we do?'

It was curious to see the prejudices melt away as ignorance was enlightened, indifference change to interest, and intelligent minds set thinking, while quick wits and lively tongues added spice to the discussions which inevitably followed. So the feet that wore the neatly mended hose carried wiser heads than before, the pretty gowns covered hearts warmed with higher purposes, and the hands that dropped the thimbles for pens, lexicons, and celestial globes, were better fitted for life's work, whether to rock cradles, tend the sick, or help on the great work of the world.

It was interesting to see the prejudices fade away as ignorance was replaced with knowledge, indifference turned into interest, and sharp minds began to ponder, while quick wits and lively conversations brought excitement to the discussions that followed. So the feet in the neatly mended stockings carried wiser minds than before, the pretty dresses covered hearts filled with greater ambitions, and the hands that dropped thimbles for pens, dictionaries, and globes were better equipped for life's tasks, whether it was to rock cradles, care for the sick, or contribute to the important work of the world.

One day a brisk discussion arose concerning careers for women. Mrs Jo had read something on the subject and asked each of the dozen girls sitting about the room, what she intended to do on leaving college. The answers were as usual: 'I shall teach, help mother, study medicine, art,' etc.; but nearly all ended with:

One day, a lively discussion broke out about careers for women. Mrs. Jo had read something on the topic and asked each of the twelve girls sitting in the room what they planned to do after college. The answers were typical: 'I’ll teach, help my mom, study medicine, art,' etc.; but almost all concluded with:

'Till I marry.'

'Until I get married.'

'But if you don't marry, what then?' asked Mrs Jo, feeling like a girl again as she listened to the answers, and watched the thoughtful, gay, or eager faces.

"But if you don't get married, what happens then?" asked Mrs. Jo, feeling youthful once more as she listened to the responses and observed the thoughtful, cheerful, or eager expressions.

'Be old maids, I suppose. Horrid, but inevitable, since there are so many superfluous women,' answered a lively lass, too pretty to fear single blessedness unless she chose it.

"Be old maids, I guess. Awful, but unavoidable, since there are so many unnecessary women," replied a lively girl, too beautiful to worry about being single unless she decided to be.

'It is well to consider that fact, and fit yourselves to be useful, not superfluous women. That class, by the way, is largely made up of widows, I find; so don't consider it a slur on maidenhood.'

'It’s important to think about that and prepare yourselves to be helpful, not unnecessary women. By the way, that group is mostly made up of widows, so don’t take it as an insult to single women.'

'That's a comfort! Old maids aren't sneered at half as much as they used to be, since some of them have grown famous and proved that woman isn't a half but a whole human being, and can stand alone.'

'That's a relief! Old maids aren't looked down on nearly as much as they used to be, since some of them have become famous and shown that a woman is a complete human being, capable of standing on her own.'

'Don't like it all the same. We can't all be like Miss Nightingale, Miss Phelps, and the rest.'

'Not everyone is the same. We can't all be like Miss Nightingale, Miss Phelps, and the others.'

So what can we do but sit in a corner and look on?' asked a plain girl with a dissatisfied expression.

"So what can we do except sit in a corner and watch?" asked a plain girl with a frustrated expression.

'Cultivate cheerfulness and content, if nothing else. But there are so many little odd jobs waiting to be done that nobody need “sit idle and look on”, unless she chooses,' said Mrs Meg, with a smile, laying on the girl's head the new hat she had just trimmed.

"Cultivate happiness and contentment, if nothing else. But there are so many little tasks waiting to be done that no one needs to ‘just sit around and watch’, unless they want to," said Mrs. Meg, with a smile, placing the new hat she had just styled on the girl's head.

'Thank you very much. Yes, Mrs Brooke, I see; it's a little job, but it makes me neat and happy—and grateful,' she added, looking up with brighter eyes as she accepted the labour of love and the lesson as sweetly as they were given.

'Thank you so much. Yes, Mrs. Brooke, I see; it's a small task, but it makes me organized and happy—and grateful,' she said, looking up with brighter eyes as she accepted the act of kindness and the lesson as sweetly as they were offered.

'One of the best and most beloved women I know has been doing odd jobs for the Lord for years, and will keep at it till her dear hands are folded in her coffin. All sorts of things she does—picks up neglected children and puts them in safe homes, saves lost girls, nurses poor women in trouble, sews, knits, trots, begs, works for the poor day after day with no reward but the thanks of the needy, the love and honour of the rich who make Saint Matilda their almoner. That's a life worth living; and I think that quiet little woman will get a higher seat in Heaven than many of those of whom the world has heard.'

One of the best and most beloved women I know has been doing odd jobs for the Lord for years, and she’ll keep doing it until her dear hands are folded in her coffin. She does all sorts of things—she picks up neglected kids and finds them safe homes, helps lost girls, nurses struggling women, sews, knits, runs around, begs, and works for the poor every day with no reward except for the thanks of those in need, and the love and respect of the wealthy who make Saint Matilda their charity worker. That's a life worth living; and I believe that quiet little woman will earn a higher place in Heaven than many people the world knows about.

'I know it's lovely, Mrs Bhaer; but it's dull for young folks. We do want a little fun before we buckle to,' said a Western girl with a wide-awake face.

'I know it's nice, Mrs. Bhaer; but it's boring for young people. We want to have a little fun before we settle down,' said a Western girl with an alert face.

'Have your fun, my dear; but if you must earn your bread, try to make it sweet with cheerfulness, not bitter with the daily regret that it isn't cake. I used to think mine was a very hard fate because I had to amuse a somewhat fretful old lady; but the books I read in that lonely library have been of immense use to me since, and the dear old soul bequeathed me Plumfield for my “cheerful service and affectionate care”. I didn't deserve it, but I did use to try to be jolly and kind, and get as much honey out of duty as I could, thanks to my dear mother's help and advice.'

"Have your fun, my dear; but if you have to earn a living, try to make it sweet with positivity, not bitter with the daily regret that it isn’t something better. I used to think my situation was really tough because I had to keep a somewhat irritable old lady entertained; but the books I read in that lonely library have been incredibly helpful to me since then, and the dear old soul left me Plumfield for my “cheerful service and affectionate care.” I didn’t deserve it, but I always tried to be cheerful and kind, and get as much positivity out of my responsibilities as I could, thanks to my dear mother's support and advice."

'Gracious! if I could earn a place like this, I'd sing all day and be an angel; but you have to take your chance, and get nothing for your pains, perhaps. I never do,' said the Westerner, who had a hard time with small means and large aspirations.

"Wow! If I could get a spot like this, I'd sing all day and be amazing; but you have to take your shot, and probably won't get anything for your effort. I never do," said the Westerner, who struggled with limited resources and big dreams.

'Don't do it for the reward; but be sure it will come, though not in the shape you expect. I worked hard for fame and money one winter; but I got neither, and was much disappointed. A year afterwards I found I had earned two prizes: skill with my pen, and Professor Bhaer.'

'Don’t do it for the reward; just know it will come, although not in the way you expect. I put in a lot of effort for fame and money one winter; but I got neither and was really disappointed. A year later, I realized I had gained two prizes: writing skill and Professor Bhaer.'

Mrs Jo's laugh was echoed blithely by the girls, who liked to have these conversations enlivened by illustrations from life.

Mrs. Jo's laugh was happily echoed by the girls, who enjoyed having these conversations made lively with real-life examples.

'You are a very lucky woman,' began the discontented damsel, whose soul soared above new hats, welcome as they were, but did not quite know where to steer.

'You are such a lucky woman,' started the unhappy girl, whose spirit rose above new hats, as nice as they were, but wasn't quite sure where to go.

'Yet her name used to be “Luckless Jo”, and she never had what she wanted till she had given up hoping for it,' said Mrs Meg.

"Yet her name used to be 'Luckless Jo,' and she never got what she wanted until she stopped hoping for it," said Mrs. Meg.

'I'll give up hoping, then, right away, and see if my wishes will come. I only want to help my folks, and get a good school.'

"I'll stop hoping right now and see if my wishes come true. I just want to help my family and get a good education."

'Take this proverb for your guide: “Get the distaff ready, and the Lord will send the flax”,' answered Mrs Jo.

'Use this saying as your guide: “Get the distaff ready, and the Lord will send the flax,”' replied Mrs. Jo.

'We'd better all do that, if we are to be spinsters,' said the pretty one, adding gaily, 'I think I should like it, on the whole—they are so independent. My Aunt Jenny can do just what she likes, and ask no one's leave; but Ma has to consult Pa about everything. Yes, I'll give you my chance, Sally, and be a “superfluum”, as Mr Plock says.'

"We should all do that if we're going to be single women," said the pretty one, adding cheerfully, "I think I’d actually like that overall—they’re so independent. My Aunt Jenny can do whatever she wants without asking anyone’s permission, but Mom has to check with Dad about everything. Yes, I’ll pass my chance to you, Sally, and be a 'superfluous person,' as Mr. Plock says."

'You'll be one of the first to go into bondage, see if you aren't. Much obliged, all the same.'

'You'll be one of the first to be tied up, just wait and see. Thanks a lot, though.'

'Well, I'll get my distaff ready, and take whatever flax the Fates send—single, or double-twisted, as the powers please.'

'Well, I'll prepare my spindle and take whatever flax fate sends—whether it's single or double-twisted, as the gods wish.'

'That is the right spirit, Nelly. Keep it up, and see how happy life will be with a brave heart, a willing hand, and plenty to do.'

'That’s the right attitude, Nelly. Keep it going, and watch how joyful life becomes with a brave heart, a willing hand, and lots to do.'

'No one objects to plenty of domestic work or fashionable pleasure, I find; but the minute we begin to study, people tell us we can't bear it, and warn us to be very careful. I've tried the other things, and got so tired I came to college; though my people predict nervous exhaustion and an early death. Do you think there is any danger?' asked a stately girl, with an anxious glance at the blooming face reflected in the mirror opposite.

'No one seems to mind when we do a lot of household chores or enjoy trendy activities, but as soon as we start studying, people say we might not handle it well and caution us to be careful. I’ve done the other things and got so worn out that I came to college, even though my family predicts I'll end up nervous and die young. Do you think there's any real risk?' asked a confident girl, looking worriedly at her vibrant reflection in the mirror across from her.

'Are you stronger or weaker than when you came two years ago, Miss Winthrop?'

'Are you stronger or weaker than you were two years ago, Miss Winthrop?'

'Stronger in body, and much happier in mind. I think I was dying of ennui; but the doctors called it inherited delicacy of constitution. That is why mamma is so anxious, and I wish not to go too fast.'

Stronger in body and much happier in mind. I think I was dying of boredom; but the doctors called it an inherited weakness in my health. That's why Mom is so worried, and I don’t want to rush things.

'Don't worry, my dear; that active brain of yours was starving for good food; it has plenty now, and plain living suits you better than luxury and dissipation. It is all nonsense about girls not being able to study as well as boys. Neither can bear cramming; but with proper care both are better for it; so enjoy the life your instinct led you to, and we will prove that wise headwork is a better cure for that sort of delicacy than tonics, and novels on the sofa, where far too many of our girls go to wreck nowadays. They burn the candle at both ends; and when they break down they blame the books, not the balls.'

"Don’t worry, my dear; that active mind of yours was starving for good stimulation; it has plenty now, and a simple life suits you better than luxury and excess. It’s all nonsense to say that girls can’t study as well as boys. Neither can handle cramming; but with the right support, both can benefit from it. So embrace the life your instincts lead you to, and we’ll show that using your brain is a better remedy for that kind of sensitivity than tonics or lounging on the couch with novels, which is where too many of our girls fall apart these days. They’re burning the candle at both ends; and when they burn out, they blame the books, not the parties."

'Dr Nan was telling me about a patient of hers who thought she had heart-complaint, till Nan made her take off her corsets, stopped her coffee and dancing all night, and made her eat, sleep, walk, and live regularly for a time; and now she's a brilliant cure. Common sense versus custom, Nan said.'

Dr. Nan was telling me about a patient of hers who thought she had a heart problem until Nan had her take off her corsets, stopped her from drinking coffee and dancing all night, and made her eat, sleep, walk, and live regularly for a while; and now she's completely better. Common sense over tradition, Nan said.

'I've had no headaches since I came here, and can do twice as much studying as I did at home. It's the air, I think, and the fun of going ahead of the boys,' said another girl, tapping her big forehead with her thimble, as if the lively brain inside was in good working order and enjoyed the daily gymnastics she gave it.

"I haven't had any headaches since I got here, and I can study twice as much as I did at home. I think it's the fresh air and the excitement of getting ahead of the boys," said another girl, tapping her forehead with her thimble, as if the lively brain inside was functioning well and enjoyed the daily workouts she gave it.

'Quality, not quantity, wins the day, you know. Our brains may be smaller, but I don't see that they fall short of what is required of them; and if I'm not mistaken, the largest-headed man in our class is the dullest,' said Nelly, with a solemn air which produced a gale of merriment; for all knew that the young Goliath she mentioned had been metaphorically slain by this quick-witted David on many a battle-field, to the great disgust of himself and his mates.

'Quality, not quantity, is what counts, you know. Our brains might be smaller, but I don’t think they’re lacking in what’s needed; and if I’m not wrong, the guy with the biggest head in our class is the least clever,' said Nelly, with a serious expression that sparked a wave of laughter; for everyone knew that this young giant she referred to had been metaphorically defeated by this sharp-thinking David on many occasions, much to his annoyance and that of his friends.

'Mrs Brooke, do I gauge on the right or the wrong side?' asked the best Greek scholar of her class, eyeing a black silk apron with a lost expression.

"Mrs. Brooke, am I measuring on the right side or the wrong side?" asked the top Greek scholar in her class, staring at a black silk apron with a confused look.

'The right, Miss Pierson; and leave a space between the tucks; it looks prettier so.'

'The right, Miss Pierson; and leave a space between the tucks; it looks prettier that way.'

'I'll never make another; but it will save my dresses from ink-stains, so I'm glad I've got it'; and the erudite Miss Pierson laboured on, finding it a harder task than any Greek root she ever dug up.

"I won't make another one, but it will protect my dresses from ink stains, so I'm happy to have it." Miss Pierson, who was quite knowledgeable, continued working on it, finding it a tougher challenge than any Greek root she had ever explored.

'We paper-stainers must learn how to make shields, or we are lost. I'll give you a pattern of the pinafore I used to wear in my “blood-and-thunder days”, as we call them,' said Mrs Jo, trying to remember what became of the old tin-kitchen which used to hold her works.

'We paper-stainers need to figure out how to make shields, or we’re done for. I'll share the pattern of the pinafore I used to wear in my “blood-and-thunder days,” as we like to call them,' said Mrs. Jo, trying to recall what happened to the old tin kitchen that used to contain her supplies.

'Speaking of writers reminds me that my ambition is to be a George Eliot, and thrill the world! It must be so splendid to know that one has such power, and to hear people own that one possesses a “masculine intellect”! I don't care for most women's novels, but hers are immense; don't you think so, Mrs Bhaer?' asked the girl with the big forehead, and torn braid on her skirt.

"Talking about writers makes me think that I want to be like George Eliot and amaze the world! It must be amazing to realize you have that kind of power and to hear people say you have a 'masculine intellect!' I'm not into most women's novels, but hers are incredible; don't you agree, Mrs. Bhaer?" asked the girl with the big forehead and the torn braid on her skirt.

'Yes; but they don't thrill me as little Charlotte Bronte's books do. The brain is there, but the heart seems left out. I admire, but I don't love, George Eliot; and her life is far sadder to me than Miss Bronte's, because, in spite of the genius, love, and fame, she missed the light without which no soul is truly great, good, or happy.'

'Yes; but they don't excite me like the books by little Charlotte Brontë do. The intellect is present, but the emotion seems absent. I respect George Eliot, but I don’t love her; her life feels much sadder to me than Miss Brontë's because, despite her talent, love, and recognition, she lacked the light needed for any soul to be truly great, good, or happy.'

'Yes'm, I know; but still it's so romantic and sort of new and mysterious, and she was great in one sense. Her nerves and dyspepsia do rather destroy the illusion; but I adore famous people and mean to go and see all I can scare up in London some day.'

'Yes ma'am, I get it; but it's just so romantic and kind of new and mysterious, and she was impressive in a way. Her anxiety and stomach issues do take away from the magic a bit; but I love famous people and plan to go see as many as I can find in London someday.'

'You will find some of the best of them busy about just the work I recommend to you; and if you want to see a great lady, I'll tell you that Mrs Laurence means to bring one here today. Lady Abercrombie is lunching with her, and after seeing the college is to call on us. She especially wanted to see our sewing-school, as she is interested in things of this sort, and gets them up at home.'

'You'll find some of the best people busy with exactly the work I’m suggesting to you; and if you want to meet a prominent lady, I should mention that Mrs. Laurence plans to bring one here today. Lady Abercrombie is having lunch with her, and after visiting the college, she’ll come to see us. She specifically wanted to check out our sewing school because she’s interested in projects like this and organizes them at her own place.'

'Bless me! I always imagined lords and ladies did nothing but ride round in a coach and six, go to balls, and be presented to the Queen in cocked hats, and trains and feathers,' exclaimed an artless young person from the wilds of Maine, whither an illustrated paper occasionally wandered.

'Oh my! I always thought that lords and ladies only rode around in fancy carriages, attended balls, and were presented to the Queen in stylish hats, elegant gowns, and feathers,' said a naive young woman from the remote areas of Maine, where an illustrated magazine would occasionally show up.

'Not at all; Lord Abercrombie is over here studying up our American prison system, and my lady is busy with the schools—both very high-born, but the simplest and most sensible people I've met this long time. They are neither of them young nor handsome, and dress plainly; so don't expect anything splendid. Mr Laurence was telling me last night about a friend of his who met my lord in the hall, and owing to a rough greatcoat and a red face, mistook him for a coachman, and said: “Now, my man, what do you want here?” Lord Abercrombie mildly mentioned who he was, and that he had come to dinner. And the poor host was much afflicted, saying afterward: “Why didn't he wear his stars and garters? then a fellow would know he was a lord.”'

'Not at all; Lord Abercrombie is over here studying our American prison system, and my lady is busy with the schools—both very well-born, but the simplest and most sensible people I've met in a long time. They're neither of them young nor good-looking, and they dress simply; so don't expect anything fancy. Mr. Laurence was telling me last night about a friend of his who ran into my lord in the hall, and because of his rough greatcoat and red face, mistook him for a coachman and said: “Now, my man, what do you want here?” Lord Abercrombie calmly mentioned who he was and that he had come for dinner. The poor host was quite embarrassed, saying afterward: “Why didn't he wear his stars and garters? Then a fellow would know he was a lord.”'

The girls laughed again, and a general rustle betrayed that each was prinking a bit before the titled guest arrived. Even Mrs Jo settled her collar, and Mrs Meg felt if her cap was right, while Bess shook out her curls and Josie boldly consulted the glass; for they were women, in spite of philosophy and philanthropy.

The girls laughed again, and a general rustle showed that each one was tidying up a bit before the guest of honor arrived. Even Mrs. Jo adjusted her collar, and Mrs. Meg checked if her cap was on straight, while Bess fluffed her curls and Josie confidently looked in the mirror; because they were women, despite their philosophy and philanthropy.

'Shall we all rise?' asked one girl, deeply impressed by the impending honour.

"Shall we all get up?" asked one girl, truly moved by the upcoming honor.

'It would be courteous.'

'It would be polite.'

'Shall we shake hands?'

'Should we shake hands?'

'No, I'll present you en masse, and your pleasant faces will be introduction enough.'

'No, I'll introduce you all together, and your friendly faces will be introduction enough.'

'I wish I'd worn my best dress. Ought to have told us,' whispered Sally.

"I wish I had worn my best dress. You should have told us," whispered Sally.

'Won't my folks be surprised when I tell them we have had a real lady to call on us?' said another.

"Won't my parents be surprised when I tell them we've had a real lady visit us?" said another.

'Don't look as if you'd never seen a gentlewoman before, Milly. We are not all fresh from the wilderness,' added the stately damsel who, having Mayflower ancestors, felt that she was the equal of all the crowned heads of Europe.

"Don’t look like you’ve never seen a lady before, Milly. We’re not all just out of the wild," added the dignified young woman, who, having Mayflower ancestors, believed she was the equal of all the crowned heads of Europe.

'Hush, she's coming! Oh, my heart, what a bonnet!' cried the gay girl in a stage whisper; and every eye was demurely fixed upon the busy hands as the door opened to admit Mrs Laurence and her guest.

'Hush, she’s coming! Oh, my gosh, what a hat!' shouted the cheerful girl in a stage whisper; and every eye was politely focused on the busy hands as the door opened to let in Mrs. Laurence and her guest.

It was rather a shock to find, after the general introduction was over, that this daughter of a hundred earls was a stout lady in a plain gown, and a rather weather-beaten bonnet, with a bag of papers in one hand and a note-book in the other. But the face was full of benevolence, the sonorous voice very kind, the genial manners very winning, and about the whole person an indescribable air of high breeding which made beauty of no consequence, costume soon forgotten, and the moment memorable to the keen-eyed girls whom nothing escaped.

It was quite a surprise to discover, after the general introduction wrapped up, that this daughter of a hundred earls was a robust woman in a simple dress and a slightly worn bonnet, holding a bag of papers in one hand and a notebook in the other. However, her face radiated kindness, her deep voice was very warm, and her friendly demeanor was quite charming. There was an indescribable sense of elegance about her that made her appearance unimportant, her outfit quickly overlooked, and the moment unforgettable for the sharp-eyed girls who noticed everything.

A little chat about the rise, growth, and success of this particular class, and then Mrs Jo led the conversation to the English lady's work, anxious to show her pupils how rank dignifies labour, and charity blesses wealth.

A brief discussion about the rise, growth, and success of this particular class, and then Mrs. Jo steered the conversation toward the English lady's work, eager to show her students how status elevates work, and generosity enriches wealth.

It was good for these girls to hear of the evening-schools supported and taught by women whom they knew and honoured; of Miss Cobbe's eloquent protest winning the protection of the law for abused wives; Mrs Butler saving the lost; Mrs Taylor, who devoted one room in her historic house to a library for the servants; Lord Shaftesbury, busy with his new tenement-houses in the slums of London; of prison reforms; and all the brave work being done in God's name by the rich and great for the humble and the poor. It impressed them more than many quiet home lectures would have done, and roused an ambition to help when their time should come, well knowing that even in glorious America there is still plenty to be done before she is what she should be—truly just, and free, and great. They were also quick to see that Lady Abercrombie treated all there as her equals, from stately Mrs Laurence, to little Josie, taking notes of everything and privately resolving to have some thick-soled English boots as soon as possible. No one would have guessed that she had a big house in London, a castle in Wales, and a grand country seat in Scotland, as she spoke of Parnassus with admiration, Plumfield as a 'dear old home', and the college as an honour to all concerned in it. At that, of course, every head went up a little, and when my lady left, every hand was ready for the hearty shake the noble Englishwoman gave them, with words they long remembered:

It was inspiring for these girls to hear about the evening schools supported and taught by women they knew and admired; about Miss Cobbe's powerful appeal that secured legal protection for abused wives; Mrs. Butler helping those who were lost; Mrs. Taylor, who dedicated one room in her historic house to a library for the servants; Lord Shaftesbury, busy with his new tenement houses in the slums of London; prison reforms; and all the courageous work being done in God's name by the wealthy and influential for the humble and the poor. It made a stronger impression on them than many quiet home lectures would have, and sparked a desire to help when their time came, fully aware that even in glorious America there was still much to be done before it became what it should be—truly just, free, and great. They also quickly noticed that Lady Abercrombie treated everyone there as equals, from the dignified Mrs. Laurence to little Josie, who was jotting down notes and privately deciding to get some sturdy English boots as soon as possible. No one would have guessed that she owned a large house in London, a castle in Wales, and a grand country estate in Scotland, as she spoke with admiration about Parnassus, referred to Plumfield as a 'dear old home,' and considered the college an honor to everyone involved. At that, of course, every head lifted a bit, and when Lady Abercrombie left, every hand was ready for the warm handshake from the noble Englishwoman, accompanied by words they would remember for a long time:

'I am very pleased to see this much-neglected branch of a woman's education so well conducted here, and I have to thank my friend Mrs Laurence for one of the most charming pictures I've seen in America—Penelope among her maids.'

'I am very pleased to see this much-neglected area of a woman's education being so well handled here, and I have to thank my friend Mrs. Laurence for one of the most delightful paintings I've seen in America—Penelope with her maids.'

A group of smiling faces watched the stout boots trudge away, respectful glances followed the shabby bonnet till it was out of sight, and the girls felt a truer respect for their titled guest than if she had come in the coach and six, with all her diamonds on.

A group of smiling faces watched the sturdy boots walk away, respectful looks followed the worn bonnet until it was out of sight, and the girls felt a deeper respect for their titled guest than if she had arrived in a fancy coach with all her jewels on.

'I feel better about the “odd jobs” now. I only wish I could do them as well as Lady Abercrombie does,' said one.

"I feel better about the 'odd jobs' now. I just wish I could do them as well as Lady Abercrombie does," said one.

'I thanked my stars my buttonholes were nice, for she looked at them and said: “Quite workmanlike, upon my word,” added another, feeling that her gingham gown had come to honour.

'I was grateful that my buttonholes looked nice because she commented on them and said, “Very well done, I must say,” which made another person feel that her gingham dress was getting the recognition it deserved.'

'Her manners were as sweet and kind as Mrs Brooke's. Not a bit stiff or condescending, as I expected. I see now what you meant, Mrs Bhaer, when you said once that well-bred people were the same all the world over.'

'Her manners were just as sweet and kind as Mrs. Brooke's. Not at all stiff or condescending like I expected. I understand now what you meant, Mrs. Bhaer, when you once said that well-bred people are the same everywhere in the world.'

Mrs Meg bowed her thanks for the compliment, and Mrs Bhaer said:

Mrs. Meg thanked her with a nod for the compliment, and Mrs. Bhaer said:

'I know them when I see them, but never shall be a model of deportment myself. I'm glad you enjoyed the little visit. Now, if you young people don't want England to get ahead of us in many ways, you must bestir yourselves and keep abreast; for our sisters are in earnest, you see, and don't waste time worrying about their sphere, but make it wherever duty calls them.'

'I recognize them when I see them, but I will never be a model of behavior myself. I'm glad you enjoyed the little visit. Now, if you young people don't want England to surpass us in many ways, you need to get active and keep up; because our sisters are serious about this, and they don't waste time worrying about their roles, but create their own wherever duty leads them.'

'We will do our best, ma'am,' answered the girls heartily, and trooped away with their work-baskets, feeling that though they might never be Harriet Martineaus, Elizabeth Brownings, or George Eliots, they might become noble, useful, and independent women, and earn for themselves some sweet title from the grateful lips of the poor, better than any a queen could bestow.

'We’ll do our best, ma'am,' the girls replied enthusiastically, and they went off with their work-baskets, feeling that even if they never became Harriet Martineaus, Elizabeth Brownings, or George Eliots, they could still become noble, useful, and independent women, earning from the grateful words of the poor a title sweeter than any a queen could give.





Chapter 18. CLASS DAY

The clerk of the weather evidently has a regard for young people, and sends sunshine for class days as often as he can. An especially lovely one shone over Plumfield as this interesting anniversary came round, bringing the usual accompaniments of roses, strawberries, white-gowned girls, beaming youths, proud friends, and stately dignitaries full of well-earned satisfaction with the yearly harvest. As Laurence College was a mixed one, the presence of young women as students gave to the occasion a grace and animation entirely wanting where the picturesque half of creation appear merely as spectators. The hands that turned the pages of wise books also possessed the skill to decorate the hall with flowers; eyes tired with study shone with hospitable warmth on the assembling guests; and under the white muslins beat hearts as full of ambition, hope, and courage as those agitating the broadcloth of the ruling sex.

The weather clerk clearly has a soft spot for young people and sends sunshine for class days whenever he can. An especially beautiful day shone over Plumfield as this exciting anniversary arrived, bringing the usual mix of roses, strawberries, girls in white dresses, cheerful young men, proud friends, and dignitaries filled with well-deserved pride in the annual accomplishments. Since Laurence College was co-ed, the presence of female students added a charm and energy that was completely missing when the female half of society only watched from the sidelines. The hands that turned the pages of important books also had the talent to decorate the hall with flowers; eyes tired from studying sparkled with warm hospitality toward the arriving guests; and beneath the white dresses, hearts were just as full of ambition, hope, and courage as those under the formal suits of the guys.

College Hill, Parnassus, and old Plum swarmed with cheery faces, as guests, students, and professors hurried to and fro in the pleasant excitement of arriving and receiving. Everyone was welcomed cordially, whether he rolled up in a fine carriage, or trudged afoot to see the good son or daughter come to honour on the happy day that rewarded many a mutual sacrifice. Mr Laurie and his wife were on the reception committee, and their lovely house was overflowing. Mrs Meg, with Daisy and Jo as aides, was in demand among the girls, helping on belated toilettes, giving an eye to spreads, and directing the decorations. Mrs Jo had her hands full as President's lady, and the mother of Ted; for it took all the power and skill of that energetic woman to get her son into his Sunday best.

College Hill, Parnassus, and old Plum were filled with cheerful faces as guests, students, and professors hurried around in the delightful excitement of arrivals and greetings. Everyone received a warm welcome, whether they arrived in a fancy carriage or walked in to see their good son or daughter honored on the joyful day that celebrated many shared sacrifices. Mr. Laurie and his wife were on the reception committee, and their beautiful home was bustling with activity. Mrs. Meg, along with Daisy and Jo as helpers, was busy with the girls, assisting with last-minute preparations, keeping an eye on the snacks, and overseeing the decorations. Mrs. Jo had her hands full as the President's wife and Ted's mother; it took all the energy and skill of that dynamic woman to get her son into his Sunday best.

Not that he objected to be well arrayed; far from it; he adored good clothes, and owing to his great height already revelled in a dress-suit, bequeathed him by a dandy friend. The effect was very funny; but he would wear it in spite of the jeers of his mates, and sighed vainly for a beaver, because his stern parent drew the line there. He pleaded that English lads of ten wore them and were 'no end nobby'; but his mother only answered, with a consoling pat of the yellow mane:

Not that he minded looking sharp; quite the opposite; he loved nice clothes, and because he was so tall, he already enjoyed wearing a tuxedo given to him by a stylish friend. It looked pretty funny; but he wore it anyway despite the teasing from his friends, and he longed for a top hat, since his strict father wouldn’t allow it. He argued that English boys his age wore them and looked really posh; but his mother just replied with a comforting pat on his messy hair:

'My child, you are absurd enough now; if I let you add a tall hat, Plumfield wouldn't hold either of us, such would be the scorn and derision of all beholders. Content yourself with looking like the ghost of a waiter, and don't ask for the most ridiculous head-gear in the known world.'

'My child, you're being pretty ridiculous right now; if I let you wear a tall hat, Plumfield wouldn't be able to contain us, considering the mockery and laughter from everyone around. Just be satisfied with looking like a ghost of a waiter, and please don’t ask for the silliest hat in existence.'

Denied this noble badge of manhood, Ted soothed his wounded soul by appearing in collars of an amazing height and stiffness, and ties which were the wonder of all female eyes. This freak was a sort of vengeance on his hard-hearted mother; for the collars drove the laundress to despair, never being just right, and the ties required such art in the tying that three women sometimes laboured long before—like Beau Brummel—he turned from a heap of 'failures' with the welcome words: 'That will do.' Rob was devoted on these trying occasions, his own toilet being distinguished only by its speed, simplicity, and neatness. Ted was usually in a frenzy before he was suited, and roars, whistles, commands, and groans were heard from the den wherein the Lion raged and the Lamb patiently toiled. Mrs Jo bore it till boots were hurled and a rain of hair-brushes set in, then, fearing for the safety of her eldest, she would go to the rescue, and by a wise mixture of fun and authority finally succeed in persuading Ted that he was 'a thing of beauty', if not 'a joy for ever'. At last he would stalk majestically forth, imprisoned in collars compared to which those worn by Dickens's afflicted Biler were trifles not worth mentioning. The dresscoat was a little loose in the shoulders, but allowed a noble expanse of glossy bosom to be seen, and with a delicate handkerchief negligently drooping at the proper angle, had a truly fine effect. Boots that shone, and likewise pinched, appeared at one end of the 'long, black clothes-pin'—as Josie called him—-and a youthful but solemn face at the other, carried at an angle which, if long continued, would have resulted in spinal curvature. Light gloves, a cane, and—oh, bitter drop in the cup of joy!—an ignominious straw hat, not to mention a choice floweret in the buttonhole, and a festoon of watchguard below, finished off this impressive boy.

Denied this prestigious mark of manhood, Ted comforted his bruised ego by sporting extraordinarily high and stiff collars, along with ties that captivated all the women around him. This eccentricity was his way of getting back at his unyielding mother; the collars drove the laundress mad since they were never just right, and the ties required such skill in tying that sometimes three women would work for ages before—like Beau Brummel—he'd turn away from a pile of 'failures' with the gratifying words: 'That will do.' Rob was dedicated during these challenging moments, his own attire being marked only by its speed, simplicity, and neatness. Ted was usually in a frenzy before he found the right look, with roars, whistles, commands, and groans echoing from the room where the Lion raged and the Lamb patiently toiled. Mrs. Jo tolerated it until boots were thrown and a shower of hairbrushes began to fly; then, concerned for her eldest's safety, she would step in to help him. Through a smart mix of humor and authority, she would eventually convince Ted that he was 'a thing of beauty,' if not 'a joy forever.' Finally, he would strut out magnificently, trapped in collars that made those worn by Dickens's unfortunate Biler seem trivial. The dress coat was a bit loose in the shoulders but showcased a grand expanse of gleaming chest, and with a delicate handkerchief casually drooping at just the right angle, it created a truly striking appearance. Boots that shone and pinched were at one end of the 'long, black clothes-pin'—as Josie called him—and a youthful but serious face was at the other, held at such an angle that, if maintained, could lead to back problems. Light gloves, a cane, and—oh, the bitter twist in the cup of joy!—an embarrassing straw hat, not to mention a carefully chosen flower in the buttonhole and a decorative watch chain below, completed this impressive young man.

'How's that for style?' he asked, appearing to his mother and cousins whom he was to escort to the hall on this particular occasion.

'How's that for style?' he asked, looking at his mother and cousins, whom he was supposed to escort to the hall on this particular occasion.

A shout of laughter greeted him, followed by exclamations of horror; for he had artfully added the little blond moustache he often wore when acting. It was very becoming, and seemed the only balm to heal the wound made by the loss of the beloved hat.

A burst of laughter welcomed him, quickly followed by cries of shock; he had cleverly added the little blonde mustache he often wore while performing. It looked great on him and seemed to be the only remedy for the pain of losing his cherished hat.

'Take it off this moment, you audacious boy! What would your father say to such a prank on this day when we must all behave our best?' said Mrs Jo, trying to frown, but privately thinking that among the many youths about her none were so beautiful and original as her long son.

'Take it off right now, you bold boy! What would your father think of such a prank on a day when we all need to be on our best behavior?' said Mrs. Jo, attempting to frown but secretly believing that among all the young people around her, none were as handsome and unique as her long son.

'Let him wear it, Aunty; it's so becoming. No one will ever guess he isn't eighteen at least,' cried Josie, to whom disguise of any sort was always charming.

"Let him wear it, Auntie; it looks so good on him. No one will ever guess he isn't at least eighteen," Josie exclaimed, as she always found any sort of disguise charming.

'Father won't observe it; he'll be absorbed in his big-wigs and the girls. No matter if he does, he'll enjoy the joke and introduce me as his oldest son. Rob is nowhere when I'm in full fig'; and Ted took the stage with a tragic stalk, like Hamlet in a tail-coat and choker.

'Dad won’t notice it; he’ll be too caught up with his important friends and the girls. Even if he does, he’ll laugh it off and introduce me as his oldest son. Rob is nowhere to be seen when I'm dressed to the nines; and Ted took the stage with a dramatic stride, like Hamlet in a tailcoat and choker.'

'My son, obey me!' and when Mrs Jo spoke in that tone her word was law. Later, however, the moustache appeared, and many strangers firmly believed that there were three young Bhaers. So Ted found one ray of joy to light his gloom.

'My son, listen to me!' and when Mrs. Jo spoke like that, her word was final. Later on, though, the mustache showed up, and a lot of strangers genuinely thought there were three young Bhaers. So Ted discovered one spark of happiness to brighten his sadness.

Mr Bhaer was a proud and happy man when, at the appointed hour, he looked down upon the parterre of youthful faces before him, thinking of the 'little gardens' in which he had hopefully and faithfully sowed good seed years ago, and from which this beautiful harvest seemed to have sprung. Mr March's fine old face shone with the serenest satisfaction, for this was the dream of his life fulfilled after patient waiting; and the love and reverence in the countenances of the eager young men and women looking up at him plainly showed that the reward he coveted was his in fullest measure. Laurie always effaced himself on these occasions as much as courtesy would permit; for everyone spoke gratefully in ode, poem, and oration of the founder of the college and noble dispenser of his beneficence. The three sisters beamed with pride as they sat among the ladies, enjoying, as only women can, the honour done the men they loved; while 'the original Plums', as the younger ones called themselves, regarded the whole affair as their work, receiving the curious, admiring, or envious glances of strangers with a mixture of dignity and delight rather comical to behold.

Mr. Bhaer was a proud and happy man when, at the scheduled time, he looked down at the crowd of young faces in front of him, thinking about the 'little gardens' where he had hopefully and faithfully planted good seeds years ago, and from which this beautiful harvest seemed to have grown. Mr. March's handsome old face radiated serene satisfaction because this was the dream of his life coming true after a long wait; the love and respect in the faces of the eager young men and women looking up at him clearly showed that the recognition he desired was fully his. Laurie always tried to stay in the background on these occasions as much as politeness allowed; everyone spoke gratefully in song, poem, and speech about the founder of the college and his generous giving. The three sisters beamed with pride as they sat among the ladies, enjoying, as only women can, the honor given to the men they loved; while 'the original Plums,' as the younger ones called themselves, viewed the whole event as their achievement, receiving the curious, admiring, or envious looks from strangers with a mix of dignity and delight that was quite amusing to see.

The music was excellent, and well it might be when Apollo waved the baton. The poems were—as usual on such occasions—of varied excellence, as the youthful speakers tried to put old truths into new words, and made them forceful by the enthusiasm of their earnest faces and fresh voices. It was beautiful to see the eager interest with which the girls listened to some brilliant brother-student, and applauded him with a rustle as of wind over a bed of flowers. It was still more significant and pleasant to watch the young men's faces when a slender white figure stood out against the background of black-coated dignitaries, and with cheeks that flushed and paled, and lips that trembled till earnest purpose conquered maiden fear, spoke to them straight out of a woman's heart and brain concerning the hopes and doubts, the aspirations and rewards all must know, desire, and labour for. This clear, sweet voice seemed to reach and rouse all that was noblest in the souls of these youths, and to set a seal upon the years of comradeship which made them sacred and memorable for ever.

The music was fantastic, and it surely should be when Apollo waved the baton. The poems were, as usual on these occasions, of mixed quality, as the young speakers attempted to express old truths in new ways, made powerful by the enthusiasm in their eager faces and fresh voices. It was lovely to see how the girls listened with keen interest to a brilliant male student and applauded him softly, like a breeze rustling through a bed of flowers. It was even more meaningful and enjoyable to observe the young men’s expressions when a slender white figure stood out among the group of black-coated dignitaries. With cheeks that flushed and paled, and lips that trembled until determination overcame shyness, she spoke directly from a woman’s heart and mind about the hopes and doubts, aspirations and rewards that everyone must recognize, desire, and strive for. This clear, beautiful voice seemed to awaken and inspire the noblest qualities in the souls of these young men, creating a bond of camaraderie that would remain sacred and unforgettable forever.

Alice Heath's oration was unanimously pronounced the success of the day; for without being flowery or sentimental, as is too apt to be the case with these first efforts of youthful orators, it was earnest, sensible, and so inspiring that she left the stage in a storm of applause, the good fellows being as much fired by her stirring appeal to 'march shoulder to shoulder', as if she had chanted the 'Marseillaise' then and there. One young man was so excited that he nearly rushed out of his seat to receive her as she hastened to hide herself among her mates, who welcomed her with faces full of tender pride and tearful eye. A prudent sister detained him, however, and in a moment he was able to listen with composure to the President's remarks.

Alice Heath's speech was declared the success of the day by everyone; rather than being overly dramatic or sentimental, which often happens with young speakers' first attempts, it was sincere, sensible, and so motivating that she left the stage to a wave of applause. The audience was as energized by her powerful call to 'march shoulder to shoulder' as if she had sung the 'Marseillaise' on the spot. One young man was so moved that he almost jumped out of his seat to greet her as she hurried to join her friends, who welcomed her with prideful smiles and teary eyes. However, a wise sister held him back, and soon he was able to calmly listen to the President's comments.

They were worth listening to, for Mr Bhaer spoke like a father to the children whom he was dismissing to the battle of life; and his tender, wise, and helpful words lingered in their hearts long after the praise was forgotten. Then came other exercises peculiar to Plumfield, and the end. Why the roof did not fly off when the sturdy lungs of the excited young men pealed out the closing hymn will for ever be a mystery; but it remained firm, and only the fading garlands vibrated as the waves of music rolled up and died away, leaving sweet echoes to haunt the place for another year.

They were worth listening to, because Mr. Bhaer spoke to the kids like a father sending them off to face the challenges of life; his kind, wise, and supportive words stayed with them long after the compliments were forgotten. Then came other activities unique to Plumfield, and that marked the end. How the roof didn’t blow off when the excited young men belted out the closing hymn will always be a mystery; but it stayed intact, and only the fading garlands shook as the waves of music rolled in and faded away, leaving sweet echoes to linger in the space for another year.

Dinners and spreads consumed the afternoon, and at sunset came a slight lull as everyone sought some brief repose before the festivities of the evening began. The President's reception was one of the enjoyable things in store, also dancing on Parnassus, and as much strolling, singing, and flirting, as could be compressed into a few hours by youths and maidens just out of school.

Dinners and snacks filled the afternoon, and at sunset there was a brief pause as everyone looked for a little rest before the evening's celebrations began. The President's reception was one of the highlights to look forward to, along with dancing at Parnassus, and as much walking, singing, and flirting as could be crammed into a few hours by young people just out of school.

Carriages were rolling about, and gay groups on piazzas, lawns, and window-seats idly speculated as to who the distinguished guests might be. The appearance of a very dusty vehicle loaded with trunks at Mr Bhaer's hospitably open door caused much curious comment among the loungers, especially as two rather foreign-looking gentlemen sprang out, followed by two young ladies, all four being greeted with cries of joy and much embracing by the Bhaers. Then they all disappeared into the house, the luggage followed, and the watchers were left to wonder who the mysterious strangers were, till a fair collegian declared that they must be the Professor's nephews, one of whom was expected on his wedding journey.

Carriages were moving around, and cheerful groups on piazzas, lawns, and window seats were casually wondering who the special guests could be. The sight of a very dusty vehicle packed with trunks at Mr. Bhaer's welcoming open door sparked a lot of curious chatter among the onlookers, especially when two somewhat foreign-looking men jumped out, followed by two young women, all four being welcomed with cheers and warm hugs by the Bhaers. Then they all went inside, the luggage followed, and the onlookers were left guessing who the mysterious newcomers were, until a fair college student declared that they must be the Professor's nephews, one of whom was expected on his honeymoon trip.

She was right; Franz proudly presented his blonde and buxom bride, and she was hardly kissed and blessed when Emil led up his bonny English Mary, with the rapturous announcement:

She was right; Franz proudly showed off his beautiful blonde bride, and she had barely received a kiss and blessing when Emil brought forth his lovely English Mary, with the excited announcement:

'Uncle, Aunt Jo, here's another daughter! Have you room for my wife, too?'

'Uncle, Aunt Jo, here's another daughter! Do you have space for my wife as well?'

There could be no doubt of that; and Mary was with difficulty rescued from the glad embraces of her new relatives, who, remembering all the young pair had suffered together, felt that this was the natural and happy ending of the long voyage so perilously begun.

There was no doubt about it; and Mary was hardly freed from the joyful hugs of her new relatives, who, recalling everything the young couple had endured together, believed that this was the natural and happy conclusion to the long journey that had started so dangerously.

'But why not tell us, and let us be ready for two brides instead of one?' asked Mrs Jo, looking as usual rather demoralizing in a wrapper and crimping-pins, having rushed down from her chamber, where she was preparing for the labours of the evening.

'But why not tell us, and let us prepare for two brides instead of one?' asked Mrs. Jo, looking as usual rather disheveled in a robe and hairpins, having rushed down from her room, where she was getting ready for the tasks of the evening.

'Well, I remembered what a good joke you all considered Uncle Laurie's marriage, and I thought I'd give you another nice little surprise,' laughed Emil. 'I'm off duty, and it seemed best to take advantage of wind and tide, and come along as convoy to the old boy here. We hoped to get in last night, but couldn't fetch it, so here we are in time for the end of the jollification, anyway.'

'Well, I remembered how much of a laugh you all had about Uncle Laurie's marriage, and I thought I'd give you another nice surprise,' laughed Emil. 'I’m off duty, and it seemed like a good idea to take advantage of the wind and tide and come along to support the old guy here. We hoped to arrive last night, but we couldn’t make it, so here we are just in time for the end of the celebration, anyway.'

'Ah, my sons, it is too feeling-full to see you both so happy and again in the old home. I haf no words to outpour my gratitude, and can only ask of the dear Gott in Himmel to bless and keep you all,' cried Professor Bhaer, trying to gather all four into his arms at once, while tears rolled down his cheeks, and his English failed him.

'Oh, my sons, it’s so overwhelming to see you both so happy and back in the old home. I have no words to express my gratitude, and can only ask dear God in Heaven to bless and keep you all,' cried Professor Bhaer, trying to gather all four of them into his arms at once, while tears rolled down his cheeks, and his English failed him.

An April shower cleared the air and relieved the full hearts of the happy family; then of course everyone began to talk—Franz and Ludmilla in German with uncle, Emil and Mary with the aunts; and round this group gathered the young folk, clamouring to hear all about the wreck, and the rescue, and the homeward voyage. It was a very different story from the written one; and as they listened to Emil's graphic words, with Mary's soft voice breaking in now and then to add some fact that brought out the courage, patience, and self-sacrifice he so lightly touched upon, it became a solemn and pathetic thing to see and hear these happy creatures tell of that great danger and deliverance.

An April shower freshened the air and lifted the spirits of the happy family; then, naturally, everyone started talking—Franz and Ludmilla spoke in German with Uncle, while Emil and Mary chatted with the aunts; and around this group gathered the young folks, eager to hear all about the shipwreck, the rescue, and the journey back home. It was a very different story from the one that was written; and as they listened to Emil's vivid descriptions, with Mary's gentle voice occasionally chiming in to add facts that highlighted the courage, patience, and self-sacrifice he lightly mentioned, it became both a solemn and touching experience to see and hear these joyful people recount that great danger and their deliverance.

'I never hear the patter of rain now that I don't want to say my prayers; and as for women, I'd like to take my hat off to every one of 'em, for they are braver than any man I ever saw,' said Emil, with the new gravity that was as becoming to him as the new gentleness with which he treated everyone.

"I never hear the sound of rain without wanting to say my prayers; and as for women, I want to take my hat off to every single one of them, because they're braver than any man I've ever seen," said Emil, with a new seriousness that suited him as well as the new kindness he showed to everyone.

'If women are brave, some men are as tender and self-sacrificing as women. I know one who in the night slipped his share of food into a girl's pocket, though starving himself, and sat for hours rocking a sick man in his arms that he might get a little sleep. No, love, I will tell, and you must let me!' cried Mary, holding in both her own the hand he laid on her lips to silence her.

'If women can be brave, some men can be just as gentle and selfless as women. I know one who, at night, slipped his food into a girl's pocket, even though he was starving himself, and spent hours rocking a sick man in his arms so he could get some sleep. No, love, I have to tell, and you have to let me!' Mary exclaimed, holding both her hands over the one he placed on her lips to quiet her.

'Only did my duty. If that torment had lasted much longer I might have been as bad as poor Barry and the boatswain. Wasn't that an awful night?' And Emil shuddered as he recalled it.

'All I did was my duty. If that suffering had gone on any longer, I might have ended up as messed up as poor Barry and the boatswain. That was a terrible night, wasn't it?' Emil shuddered as he remembered it.

'Don't think of it, dear. Tell about the happy days on the Urania, when papa grew better and we were all safe and homeward bound,' said Mary, with the trusting look and comforting touch which seemed to banish the dark and recall the bright side of that terrible experience.

'Don't think about it, dear. Talk about the happy days on the Urania, when dad got better and we were all safe and on our way home,' Mary said, with a reassuring look and a comforting touch that seemed to push away the darkness and bring back the bright side of that awful experience.

Emil cheered up at once, and sitting with his arm about his 'dear lass', in true sailor fashion told the happy ending of the tale.

Emil perked up immediately, and with his arm around his 'dear girl,' in classic sailor style, he shared the happy ending of the story.

'Such a jolly old time as we had at Hamburg! Uncle Hermann couldn't do enough for the captain, and while mamma took care of him, Mary looked after me. I had to go into dock for repairs; fire hurt my eyes, and watching for a sail and want of sleep made 'em as hazy as a London fog. She was pilot and brought me in all right, you see, only I couldn't part company, so she came aboard as first mate, and I'm bound straight for glory now.'

"We had such a great time in Hamburg! Uncle Hermann went above and beyond for the captain, and while Mom took care of him, Mary looked after me. I needed to go into the dock for repairs; the smoke hurt my eyes, and staying up watching for a sail made them as blurry as a London fog. She was the pilot and got me in safely, but I couldn't let her go, so she came aboard as my first mate, and I'm heading straight for glory now."

'Hush! that's silly, dear,' whispered Mary, trying in her turn to stop him, with English shyness about tender topics. But he took the soft hand in his, and proudly surveying the one ring it wore, went on with the air of an admiral aboard his flagship.

"Hush! That's silly, sweetheart," whispered Mary, trying to stop him in her own way, with that typical English shyness about sensitive subjects. But he took her gentle hand in his, and, proudly looking at the single ring she wore, continued with the confidence of an admiral on his flagship.

'The captain proposed waiting a spell; but I told him we weren't like to see any rougher weather than we'd pulled through together, and if we didn't know one another after such a year as this, we never should. I was sure I shouldn't be worth my pay without this hand on the wheel; so I had my way, and my brave little woman has shipped for the long voyage. God bless her!'

'The captain suggested we wait a bit; but I told him we weren’t likely to face any tougher weather than what we had already gotten through together, and if we didn’t know each other by now after a year like this, we never would. I was sure I wouldn’t earn my pay without my hand on the wheel; so I got my way, and my brave little woman has signed on for the long journey. God bless her!'

'Shall you really sail with him?' asked Daisy, admiring her courage, but shrinking with cat-like horror from the water.

"Are you really going to sail with him?" Daisy asked, admiring her own bravery but recoiling with a cat-like dread from the water.

'I'm not afraid,' answered Mary, with a loyal smile. 'I've proved my captain in fair weather and in foul, and if he is ever wrecked again, I'd rather be with him than waiting and watching ashore.'

"I'm not afraid," Mary replied, smiling reassuringly. "I've stood by my captain through good times and bad, and if he ever gets wrecked again, I'd rather be with him than waiting and watching from the shore."

'A true woman, and a born sailor's wife! You are a happy man, Emil, and I'm sure this trip will be a prosperous one,' cried Mrs Jo, delighted with the briny flavour of this courtship. 'Oh, my dear boy, I always felt you'd come back, and when everyone else despaired I never gave up, but insisted that you were clinging to the main-top jib somewhere on that dreadful sea'; and Mrs Jo illustrated her faith by grasping Emil with a truly Pillycoddian gesture.

"A true woman and a natural sailor's wife! You're a lucky man, Emil, and I know this trip is going to be a successful one," exclaimed Mrs. Jo, thrilled by the salty taste of this romance. "Oh, my dear boy, I always knew you would come back, and while everyone else lost hope, I never gave up. I was sure you were hanging onto the main-top jib somewhere out on that terrible sea," and Mrs. Jo showed her belief by holding Emil in a very affectionate way.

'Of course I was!' answered Emil heartily; 'and my “main-top jib” in this case was the thought of what you and Uncle said to me. That kept me up; and among the million thoughts that came to me during those long nights none was clearer than the idea of the red strand, you remember—English navy, and all that. I liked the notion, and resolved that if a bit of my cable was left afloat, the red stripe should be there.'

"Of course I was!" Emil replied enthusiastically. "And my 'main-top jib' in this situation was the idea of what you and Uncle told me. That kept me motivated, and out of all the thoughts I had during those long nights, none was clearer than the idea of the red strand, remember—English navy and all that. I liked the concept and decided that if a piece of my cable was left out there, the red stripe would be present."

'And it was, my dear, it was! Captain Hardy testifies to that, and here is your reward'; and Mrs Jo kissed Mary with a maternal tenderness which betrayed that she liked the English rose better than the blue-eyed German Kornblumen, sweet and modest though it was.

'And it was, my dear, it was! Captain Hardy confirms that, and here is your reward'; and Mrs. Jo kissed Mary with a motherly warmth that showed she preferred the English rose over the sweet and modest blue-eyed German Kornblumen, even though it was lovely.

Emil surveyed the little ceremony with complacency, saying, as he looked about the room which he never thought to see again: 'Odd, isn't it, how clearly trifles come back to one in times of danger? As we floated there, half-starved, and in despair, I used to think I heard the bells ringing here, and Ted tramping downstairs, and you calling, “Boys, boys, it's time to get up!” I actually smelt the coffee we used to have, and one night I nearly cried when I woke from a dream of Asia's ginger cookies. I declare, it was one of the bitterest disappointments of my life to face hunger with that spicy smell in my nostrils. If you've got any, do give me one!'

Emil looked around at the small ceremony with satisfaction, saying, as he took in the room he never thought he’d see again: “Isn't it strange how clearly little things come back to us in times of trouble? As we drifted there, half-starved and desperate, I would think I heard the bells ringing here, Ted walking down the stairs, and you calling, ‘Boys, boys, it’s time to get up!’ I could almost smell the coffee we used to have, and one night I almost cried when I woke up from a dream about Asia’s ginger cookies. Honestly, it was one of the biggest disappointments of my life to be facing hunger with that spicy scent in my nose. If you have any, please give me one!”

A pitiful murmur broke from all the aunts and cousins, and Emil was at once borne away to feast on the desired cookies, a supply always being on hand. Mrs Jo and her sister joined the other group, glad to hear what Franz was saying about Nat.

A sad murmur came from all the aunts and cousins, and Emil was quickly taken away to enjoy the cookies he wanted, which were always available. Mrs. Jo and her sister joined the other group, happy to hear what Franz was saying about Nat.

'The minute I saw how thin and shabby he was, I knew that something was wrong; but he made light of it, and was so happy over our visit and news that I let him off with a brief confession, and went to Professor Baumgarten and Bergmann. From them I learned the whole story of his spending more money than he ought and trying to atone for it by unnecessary work and sacrifice. Baumgarten thought it would do him good, so kept his secret till I came. It did him good, and he's paid his debts and earned his bread by the sweat of his brow, like an honest fellow.'

The moment I noticed how thin and worn out he looked, I realized something was off; but he brushed it off and was so happy to see us and hear the news that I let him go with a quick confession. I went to see Professor Baumgarten and Bergmann. They filled me in on the whole situation about him spending more than he should and trying to make up for it with unnecessary work and sacrifices. Baumgarten thought it would be beneficial for him, so he kept it a secret until I got there. It did help him, and he’s paid off his debts and earned his keep through hard work, like a decent person.

'I like that much in Nat. It is, as I said, a lesson, and he learns it well. He proves himself a man, and has deserved the place Bergmann offers him,' said Mr Bhaer, looking well pleased as Franz added some facts already recorded.

"I really appreciate that about Nat. As I mentioned, it's a lesson, and he's picking it up well. He's showing himself to be a man, and he's earned the position that Bergmann is offering him," said Mr. Bhaer, looking quite pleased as Franz added some details that were already noted.

'I told you, Meg, that he had good stuff in him, and love for Daisy would keep him straight. Dear lad, I wish I had him here this moment!' cried Mrs Jo, forgetting in delight the doubts and anxieties which had troubled her for months past.

"I told you, Meg, that he had good potential, and love for Daisy would keep him on the right path. Dear boy, I wish he were here right now!" cried Mrs. Jo, momentarily forgetting the doubts and worries that had been bothering her for months.

'I am very glad, and suppose I shall give in as I always do, especially now that the epidemic rages so among us. You and Emil have set all their heads in a ferment, and Josie will be demanding a lover before I can turn round,' answered Mrs Meg, in a tone of despair.

'I’m really glad, and I guess I’ll give in like I always do, especially now that the epidemic is going around so much. You and Emil have gotten everyone all worked up, and Josie will be asking for a boyfriend before I know it,' Mrs. Meg replied, sounding hopeless.

But her sister saw that she was touched by Nat's trials, and hastened to add the triumphs, that the victory might be complete, for success is always charming.

But her sister noticed that she was affected by Nat's struggles, and quickly added the successes, so that the victory could be complete, because success is always appealing.

'This offer of Herr Bergmann is a good one, isn't it?' she asked, though Mr Laurie had already satisfied her on that point when Nat's letter brought the news.

'This offer from Mr. Bergmann is a good one, right?' she asked, even though Mr. Laurie had already confirmed that for her when Nat's letter arrived with the news.

'Very fine in every way. Nat will get capital drill in Bachmeister's orchestra, see London in a delightful way, and if he suits come home with them, well started among the violins. No great honour, but a sure thing and a step up. I congratulated him, and he was very jolly over it, saying, like the true lover he is: “Tell Daisy; be sure and tell her all about it.” I'll leave that to you, Aunt Meg, and you can also break it gently to her that the old boy had a fine blond beard. Very becoming; hides his weak mouth, and gives a noble air to his big eyes and “Mendelssohnian brow”, as a gushing girl called it. Ludmilla has a photo of it for you.'

'Everything is going great. Nat will get solid practice in Bachmeister's orchestra, experience London in a wonderful way, and if he fits in, he might come home with them, well started among the violins. Not a huge honor, but a sure thing and a good step up. I congratulated him, and he was really happy about it, saying, like the true romantic he is: “Tell Daisy; be sure and tell her everything about it.” I'll leave that to you, Aunt Meg, and you can also let her down easy about the fact that the old man has a nice blonde beard. It suits him well; it hides his weak mouth and gives a noble look to his big eyes and “Mendelssohnian brow,” as a gushing girl put it. Ludmilla has a photo of it for you.'

This amused them; and they listened to many other interesting bits of news which kind Franz, even in his own happiness, had not forgotten to remember for his friend's sake. He talked so well, and painted Nat's patient and pathetic shifts so vividly, that Mrs Meg was half won; though if she had learned of the Minna episode and the fiddling in beer-gardens and streets, she might not have relented so soon. She stored up all she heard, however, and, womanlike, promised herself a delicious talk with Daisy, in which she would allow herself to melt by degrees, and perhaps change the doubtful 'We shall see' to a cordial 'He has done well; be happy, dear'.

This made them laugh, and they listened to many other interesting bits of news that kind Franz, even in his own happiness, had remembered for his friend's sake. He spoke so well and described Nat's patient and sad attempts so vividly that Mrs. Meg was starting to soften; though if she had found out about the Minna incident and the playing music in beer gardens and on the streets, she might not have been so quick to warm up. Still, she took in everything she heard and, being a woman, promised herself an enjoyable conversation with Daisy, during which she would gradually let her guard down, and maybe change her uncertain 'We'll see' to a warm 'He has done well; be happy, dear.'

In the midst of this agreeable chat the sudden striking of a clock recalled Mrs Jo from romance to reality, and she exclaimed, with a clutch at her crimping-pins:

In the middle of this pleasant conversation, the sudden ringing of a clock snapped Mrs. Jo back to reality, and she exclaimed, grabbing at her crimping pins:

'My blessed people, you must eat and rest; and I must dress, or receive in this disgraceful rig. Meg, will you take Ludmilla and Mary upstairs and see to them? Franz knows the way to the dining-room. Fritz, come with me and be made tidy, for what with heat and emotion, we are both perfect wrecks.'

'My dear people, you need to eat and rest; I need to get ready, or deal with this embarrassing outfit. Meg, will you take Ludmilla and Mary upstairs and take care of them? Franz knows the way to the dining room. Fritz, come with me and let’s tidy ourselves up, because with all this heat and emotion, we’re both a mess.'





Chapter 19. WHITE ROSES

While the travellers refreshed, and Mrs President struggled into her best gown, Josie ran into the garden to gather flowers for the brides. The sudden arrival of these interesting beings had quite enchanted the romantic girl, and her head was full of heroic rescues, tender admiration, dramatic situations, and feminine wonder as to whether the lovely creatures would wear their veils or not. She was standing before a great bush of white roses, culling the most perfect for the bouquets which she meant to tie with the ribbon festooned over her arm, and lay on the toilette tables of the new cousins, as a delicate attention. A step startled her, and looking up she saw her brother coming down the path with folded arms, bent head, and the absent air of one absorbed in deep thought.

While the travelers took a break and Mrs. President struggled into her best dress, Josie ran out to the garden to pick flowers for the brides. The sudden arrival of these fascinating people had completely enchanted the romantic girl, filling her mind with heroic rescues, tender admiration, dramatic situations, and curious thoughts about whether the beautiful women would wear their veils. She stood in front of a large bush of white roses, selecting the most perfect blooms for the bouquets she planned to tie with the ribbon draped over her arm and place on the vanity tables of her new cousins as a thoughtful gesture. A noise made her jump, and when she looked up, she saw her brother walking down the path with his arms crossed, head down, and a distant look that suggested he was lost in deep thought.

'Sophy Wackles,' said the sharp child, with a superior smile, as she sucked her thumb just pricked by a too eager pull at the thorny branches.

'Sophy Wackles,' said the clever child, with a smug grin, as she sucked her thumb, just nicked by a too eager tug at the thorny branches.

'What are you at here, Mischief?' asked Demi, with an Irvingesque start, as he felt rather than saw a disturbing influence in his day-dream.

'What are you doing here, Mischief?' asked Demi, with a startled expression, as he felt rather than saw an unsettling presence in his daydream.

'Getting flowers for “our brides”. Don't you wish you had one?' answered Josie, to whom the word 'mischief' suggested her favourite amusement.

'Getting flowers for “our brides.” Don't you wish you had one?' replied Josie, to whom the word 'mischief' brought to mind her favorite pastime.

'A bride or a flower?' asked Demi calmly, though he eyed the blooming bush as if it had a sudden and unusual interest for him.

"A bride or a flower?" Demi asked calmly, though he looked at the blooming bush as if it suddenly intrigued him.

'Both; you get the one, and I'll give you the other.'

'Both; you take one, and I'll give you the other.'

'Wish I could!' and Demi picked a little bud, with a sigh that went to Josie's warm heart.

"Wish I could!" Demi said, picking a little bud with a sigh that touched Josie's warm heart.

'Why don't you, then? It's lovely to see people so happy. Now's a good time to do it if you ever mean to. She will be going away for ever soon.'

'Why don't you do it, then? It's great to see people so happy. Now is a good time to act if you ever plan to. She'll be leaving for good soon.'

'Who?' and Demi pulled a half-opened bud, with a sudden colour in his own face; which sign of confusion delighted little Jo.

'Who?' Demi said, pulling a half-opened bud, a sudden flush of color appearing on his face; this moment of confusion delighted little Jo.

'Don't be a hypocrite. You know I mean Alice. Now, Jack, I'm fond of you, and want to help; it's so interesting—all these lovers and weddings and things, and we ought to have our share. So you take my advice and speak up like a man, and make sure of Alice before she goes.'

'Don't be a hypocrite. You know I mean Alice. Now, Jack, I like you, and I want to help; it's all so interesting—these lovers and weddings and everything, and we should have our part in it. So take my advice and speak up like a man, and make sure you get Alice before she leaves.'

Demi laughed at the seriousness of the small girl's advice; but he liked it, and showed that it suited him by saying blandly, instead of snubbing her as usual:

Demi laughed at how serious the little girl was with her advice; but he liked it, and instead of brushing her off like he usually did, he calmly replied:

'You are very kind, child. Since you are so wise, could you give me a hint how I'd better 'speak up', as you elegantly express it?'

'You’re very kind, kid. Since you’re so smart, could you give me a hint on how I should ‘speak up,’ as you put it so nicely?'

'Oh, well, there are various ways, you know. In plays the lovers go down on their knees; but that's awkward when they have long legs. Ted never does it well, though I drill him for hours. You could say, “Be mine, be mine!” like the old man who threw cucumbers over the wall to Mrs Nickleby, if you want to be gay and easy; or you could write a poetical pop. You've tried it, I dare say.'

'Oh, there are different ways, you know. In plays, the lovers typically get down on their knees, but that’s a bit awkward when they have long legs. Ted never does it well, even though I practice with him for hours. You could say, “Be mine, be mine!” like the old man who tossed cucumbers over the wall to Mrs. Nickleby if you want to be cheerful and casual; or you could write a poetic pop. You’ve probably tried that, I bet.'

'But seriously, Jo, I do love Alice, and I think she knows it. I want to tell her so; but I lose my head when I try, and don't care to make a fool of myself. Thought you might suggest some pretty way; you read so much poetry and are so romantic.'

'But seriously, Jo, I really love Alice, and I think she knows it. I want to tell her, but I get flustered when I try and don’t want to embarrass myself. I thought you might have some clever ideas; you read so much poetry and are so romantic.'

Demi tried to express himself clearly, but forgot his dignity and his usual reserve in the sweet perplexity of his love, and asked his little sister to teach him how to put the question which a single word can answer. The arrival of his happy cousins had scattered all his wise plans and brave resolutions to wait still longer. The Christmas play had given him courage to hope, and the oration today had filled him with tender pride; but the sight of those blooming brides and beaming grooms was too much for him, and he panted to secure his Alice without an hour's delay. Daisy was his confidante in all things but this; a brotherly feeling of sympathy had kept him from telling her his hopes, because her own were forbidden. His mother was rather jealous of any girl he admired; but knowing that she liked Alice, he loved on and enjoyed his secret alone, meaning soon to tell her all about it.

Demi tried to express himself clearly, but in the sweet confusion of his love, he let go of his dignity and usual reserve, and asked his little sister to help him find the right words for a question that could be answered with just one word. The arrival of his happy cousins had scattered all his smart plans and brave resolutions to wait a bit longer. The Christmas play had given him the courage to hope, and today's speech had filled him with tender pride; but seeing all those happy brides and grooms overwhelmed him, and he was desperate to secure his Alice without delay. Daisy was his confidante in everything but this; a brotherly sense of sympathy had held him back from sharing his hopes with her since her own were off-limits. His mother was somewhat jealous of any girl he liked, but knowing she liked Alice, he held on to his feelings and savored his secret, planning to share everything with her soon.

Now suddenly Josie and the rose-bush seemed to suggest a speedy end to his tender perplexities; and he was moved to accept her aid as the netted lion did that of the mouse.

Now suddenly, Josie and the rosebush seemed to offer a quick solution to his tender dilemmas; and he felt compelled to accept her help like the caged lion did from the mouse.

'I think I'll write,' he was slowly beginning, after a pause during which both were trying to strike out a new and brilliant idea.

"I think I'll write," he began slowly, after a pause while both were trying to come up with a new and brilliant idea.

'I've got it! perfectly lovely! just suit her, and you too, being a poet!' cried Josie, with a skip.

"I've got it! It's absolutely amazing! It will be perfect for her, and for you too, being a poet!" Josie exclaimed, skipping with excitement.

'What is it? Don't be ridiculous, please,' begged the bashful lover, eager, but afraid of this sharp-tongued bit of womanhood.

'What is it? Don't be silly, please,' pleaded the shy lover, eager but nervous around this sharp-tongued woman.

'I read in one of Miss Edgeworth's stories about a man who offers three roses to his lady—a bud, a half-blown, and a full-blown rose. I don't remember which she took; but it's a pretty way; and Alice knows about it because she was there when we read it. Here are all kinds; you've got the two buds, pick the sweetest rose you can find, and I'll tie them up and put them in her room. She is coming to dress with Daisy, so I can do it nicely.'

'I read in one of Miss Edgeworth's stories about a man who gives three roses to his lady—a bud, a partially opened one, and a fully bloomed rose. I can't recall which one she chose, but it's a charming idea; and Alice knows about it since she was there when we read it. Here are all the different kinds; you have two buds, choose the sweetest rose you can find, and I'll tie them together and put them in her room. She's coming to get ready with Daisy, so I can do it nicely.'

Demi mused a moment with his eyes on the bridal bush, and a smile came over his face so unlike any it had ever worn before, that Josie was touched, and looked away as if she had no right to see the dawn of the great passion which, while it lasts, makes a young man as happy as a god.

Demi thought for a moment, gazing at the bridal bush, and a smile appeared on his face that was completely different from any he'd worn before. Josie felt moved and looked away, as though she had no right to witness the beginning of the intense passion that can make a young man as happy as a god while it lasts.

'Do it,' was all he said, and gathered a full-blown rose to finish his floral love-message.

"Do it," was all he said, and picked a fully bloomed rose to complete his floral love note.

Charmed to have a finger in this romantic pie, Josie tied a graceful bow of ribbon about the stems, and finished her last nosegay with much content, while Demi wrote upon a card:

Charmed to be involved in this romantic endeavor, Josie tied a beautiful bow of ribbon around the stems and finished her last bouquet with great satisfaction, while Demi wrote on a card:

DEAR ALICE, You know what the flowers mean. Will you wear one, or all tonight, and make me still prouder, fonder, and happier than I am?

DEAR ALICE, You know what the flowers represent. Will you wear one, or all of them tonight, and make me even prouder, fonder, and happier than I already am?

Yours entirely,

Yours completely,

JOHN

JOHN

Offering this to his sister, he said in a tone that made her feel the deep importance of her mission:

Offering this to his sister, he said in a tone that made her feel the weight of her mission:

'I trust you, Jo. This means everything to me. No jokes, dear, if you love me.'

'I trust you, Jo. This means so much to me. No jokes, dear, if you love me.'

Josie's answer was a kiss that promised all things; and then she ran away to do her 'gentle spiriting', like Ariel, leaving Demi to dream among the roses like Ferdinand.

Josie's response was a kiss that promised everything; then she took off to do her 'gentle spiriting,' like Ariel, leaving Demi to daydream among the roses like Ferdinand.

Mary and Ludmilla were charmed with their bouquets; and the giver had the delight of putting some of the flowers into the dark hair and the light as she played maid at the toilettes of 'our brides', which consoled her for a disappointment in the matter of veils.

Mary and Ludmilla were delighted with their bouquets; and the person who gave them had the joy of putting some of the flowers into the dark hair and the light hair as she played maid at the preparations of 'our brides', which made up for her disappointment with the veils.

No one helped Alice dress; for Daisy was in the next room with her mother; and not even their loving eyes saw the welcome which the little posy received, nor the tears and smiles and blushes that came and went as she read the note and pondered what answer she should give. There was no doubt about the one she wished to give; but duty held her back; for at home there was an invalid mother and an old father. She was needed there, with all the help she could now bring by the acquirements four years of faithful study had given her. Love looked very sweet, and a home of her own with John a little heaven on earth; but not yet. And she slowly laid away the full-blown rose as she sat before the mirror, thinking over the great question of her life.

No one helped Alice get dressed; Daisy was in the next room with her mom, and not even their caring gazes noticed the warm welcome the little bouquet received, or the tears, smiles, and blushes that came and went as she read the note and thought about what answer she should give. There was no doubt about the one she wanted to give; but duty held her back because at home, her mother was unwell and her father was old. They needed her there, with all the help she could provide from the skills she had gained over four years of dedicated study. Love seemed so sweet, and a home of her own with John felt like a little piece of heaven on earth; but not yet. And she slowly put the fully bloomed rose aside as she sat in front of the mirror, contemplating the significant question of her life.

Was it wise and kind to ask him to wait, to bind him by any promise, or even to put into words the love and honour she felt for him? No; it would be more generous to make the sacrifice alone, and spare him the pain of hope deferred. He was young; he would forget; and she would do her duty better, perhaps, if no impatient lover waited for her. With eyes that saw but dimly, and a hand that lingered on the stem he had stripped of thorns, she laid the half-blown flower by the rose, and asked herself if even the little bud might be worn. It looked very poor and pale beside the others; yet being in the self-sacrificing mood which real love brings, she felt that even a small hope was too much to give, if she could not follow it up with more.

Was it wise and kind to ask him to wait, to tie him to any promise, or even to express in words the love and respect she felt for him? No; it would be more generous to make the sacrifice on her own and spare him the pain of waiting. He was young; he would move on; and she would probably fulfill her duty better if no impatient lover was waiting for her. With eyes that saw only faintly, and a hand that lingered on the stem he had stripped of thorns, she placed the half-open flower next to the rose and wondered if even the little bud could be worn. It looked pretty weak and pale compared to the others; yet in the self-sacrificing mood that real love brings, she felt that even a small hope was too much to give if she couldn’t support it with something more.

As she sat looking sadly down on the symbols of an affection that grew dearer every moment, she listened half unconsciously to the murmur of voices in the adjoining room. Open windows, thin partitions, and the stillness of summer twilight made it impossible to help hearing, and in a few moments more she could not refrain; for they were talking of John.

As she sat there, feeling sad while gazing at the reminders of a love that grew more precious every moment, she listened, almost without realizing it, to the soft voices coming from the next room. The open windows, thin walls, and quiet summer evening made it impossible not to overhear, and soon enough she couldn't hold back; they were talking about John.

'So nice of Ludmilla to bring us all bottles of real German cologne! Just what we need after this tiring day! Be sure John has his! He likes it so!'

'How nice of Ludmilla to bring us all bottles of real German cologne! Just what we need after this tiring day! Make sure John gets his! He loves it!'

'Yes, mother. Did you see him jump up when Alice ended her oration? He'd have gone to her if I hadn't held him back. I don't wonder he was pleased and proud. I spoilt my gloves clapping, and quite forgot my dislike of seeing women on platforms, she was so earnest and unconscious and sweet after the first moment.'

'Yes, mom. Did you see him jump up when Alice finished her speech? He would have gone to her if I hadn't stopped him. I can understand why he was happy and proud. I ruined my gloves clapping and completely forgot my dislike of seeing women on stages; she was so genuine and unaware of herself and charming after that first moment.'

'Has he said anything to you, dear?'

'Has he said anything to you, sweetheart?'

'No; and I guess why. The kind boy thinks it would make me unhappy. It wouldn't. But I know his ways; so I wait, and hope all will go well with him.'

'No; and I think I know why. The kind boy believes it would make me unhappy. It wouldn’t. But I understand his intentions; so I wait and hope everything goes well for him.'

'It must. No girl in her senses would refuse our John, though he isn't rich, and never will be. Daisy, I've been longing to tell you what he did with his money. He told me last night, and I've had no time since to tell you. He sent poor young Barton to the hospital, and kept him there till his eyes were saved—a costly thing to do. But the man can work now and care for his old parents. He was in despair, sick and poor, and too proud to beg; and our dear boy found it out, and took every penny he had, and never told even his mother till she made him.'

'It has to. No girl in her right mind would turn down our John, even though he’s not wealthy and probably never will be. Daisy, I've been dying to tell you what he did with his money. He shared it with me last night, and I haven't had a chance to tell you since. He sent poor young Barton to the hospital and kept him there until they saved his eyesight—a really expensive thing to do. But now the man can work and take care of his elderly parents. He was in despair, sick and broke, and too proud to ask for help; but our wonderful boy found out and gave every penny he had, never even telling his mother until she pressed him to.'

Alice did not hear what Daisy answered, for she was busy with her own emotions—happy ones now, to judge from the smile that shone in her eyes and the decided gesture with which she put the little bud in her bosom, as if she said: 'He deserves some reward for that good deed, and he shall have it.'

Alice didn’t catch what Daisy said because she was caught up in her own feelings—happy ones now, judging by the smile in her eyes and the firm gesture with which she placed the little bud in her bosom, as if to say: 'He deserves some kind of reward for that good deed, and he will get it.'

Mrs Meg was speaking, and still of John, when she could hear again:

Mrs. Meg was talking, still about John, when she could hear again:

'Some people would call it unwise and reckless, when John has so little; but I think his first investment a safe and good one, for “he who giveth to the poor lendeth to the Lord”; and I was so pleased and proud, I wouldn't spoil it by offering him a penny.'

'Some people might say it's foolish and careless, given how little John has; but I believe his first investment is both safe and smart, because “whoever gives to the poor lends to the Lord”; and I was so happy and proud that I wouldn’t ruin it by giving him a penny.'

'It is his having nothing to offer that keeps him silent, I think. He is so honest, he won't ask till he has much to give. But he forgets that love is everything. I know he's rich in that; I see and feel it; and any woman should be glad to get it.'

'It's the fact that he has nothing to offer that keeps him quiet, I think. He's so honest that he won't ask for anything until he has a lot to give. But he forgets that love is everything. I know he's abundant in that; I see it and feel it; and any woman would be lucky to receive it.'

'Right, dear. I felt just so, and was willing to work and wait with and for my John.'

'Right, dear. I felt exactly that way and was willing to work and wait with and for my John.'

'So she will be, and I hope they will find it out. But she is so dutiful and good, I'm afraid she won't let herself be happy. You would like it, mother?'

'So she will be, and I hope they figure it out. But she’s so responsible and kind, I’m afraid she won’t allow herself to be happy. You’d like it, mom?'

'Heartily; for a better, nobler girl doesn't live. She is all I want for my son; and I don't mean to lose the dear, brave creature if I can help it. Her heart is big enough for both love and duty; and they can wait more happily if they do it together—for wait they must, of course.'

'Honestly, there isn’t a better, nobler girl out there. She’s everything I want for my son, and I’m not going to let go of this wonderful, brave person if I can help it. Her heart is big enough for both love and responsibility, and they’ll be able to wait more happily if they do it together—because wait they must, of course.'

'I'm so glad his choice suits you, mother, and he is spared the saddest sort of disappointment.'

"I'm really happy that his choice works for you, Mom, and he avoids the worst kind of disappointment."

Daisy's voice broke there; and a sudden rustle, followed by a soft murmur, seemed to tell that she was in her mother's arms, seeking and finding comfort there.

Daisy's voice trailed off; and a sudden rustle, followed by a soft murmur, seemed to indicate that she was in her mother's arms, looking for and finding comfort there.

Alice heard no more, and shut her window with a guilty feeling but a shining face; for the proverb about listeners failed here, and she had learned more than she dared to hope. Things seemed to change suddenly; she felt that her heart was large enough for both love and duty; she knew now that she would be welcomed by mother and sister; and the memory of Daisy's less happy fate, Nat's weary probation, the long delay, and possible separation for ever—all came before her so vividly that prudence seemed cruelty; self-sacrifice, sentimental folly; and anything but the whole truth, disloyalty to her lover. As she thought thus, the half-blown rose went to join the bud; and then, after a pause, she slowly kissed the perfect rose, and added it to the tell-tale group, saying to herself with a sort of sweet solemnity, as if the words were a vow:

Alice heard no more and closed her window with a guilty feeling but a bright smile; for the saying about eavesdroppers didn’t apply here, and she had learned more than she dared to hope for. Everything seemed to shift suddenly; she felt that her heart was big enough for both love and duty; she now knew she would be welcomed by her mom and sister; and the memory of Daisy's less fortunate fate, Nat's tiring wait, the long delay, and the possibility of being separated forever—all flashed before her so clearly that caution felt like cruelty; self-sacrifice seemed like sentimental nonsense; and anything less than the whole truth felt like betrayal to her boyfriend. As she thought about this, the half-open rose joined the bud; then, after a moment, she slowly kissed the perfect rose and added it to the revealing group, telling herself with a sort of sweet seriousness, as if the words were a promise:

'I'll love and work and wait with and for my John.'

'I will love, work, and wait with and for my John.'

It was well for her that Demi was absent when she stole down to join the guests who soon began to flow through the house in a steady stream. The new brightness which touched her usually thoughtful face was easily explained by the congratulations she received as orator, and the slight agitation observable, when a fresh batch of gentlemen approached soon passed, as none of them noticed the flowers she wore over a very happy heart. Demi meantime was escorting certain venerable personages about the college, and helping his grandfather entertain them with discussion of the Socratic method of instruction, Pythagoras, Pestalozzi, Froebel, and the rest, whom he devoutly wished at the bottom of the Red Sea, and no wonder, for his head and his heart were full of love and roses, hopes and fears. He piloted the 'potent, grave, and reverend seigniors' safely down to Plumfield at last, and landed them before his uncle and aunt Bhaer, who were receiving in state, the one full of genuine delight in all men and things, the other suffering martyrdom with a smile, as she stood shaking hand after hand, and affecting utter unconsciousness of the sad fact that ponderous Professor Plock had camped upon the train of her state and festival velvet gown.

It was a good thing Demi was gone when she quietly slipped out to join the guests who began to flow through the house in a steady stream. The new brightness on her usually thoughtful face was easily explained by the congratulations she received as the speaker, and the slight nervousness she showed when a new group of gentlemen approached quickly faded since none of them noticed the flowers she wore over her very happy heart. Meanwhile, Demi was busy showing some older dignitaries around the college and helping his grandfather entertain them with discussions about the Socratic method, Pythagoras, Pestalozzi, Froebel, and others, whom he secretly wished were at the bottom of the Red Sea. No wonder, as his head and heart were filled with love and roses, hopes, and fears. He finally guided the "powerful, serious, and respected gentlemen" safely to Plumfield and brought them before his uncle and aunt Bhaer, who were welcoming guests in style. One was genuinely joyful about everything and everyone, while the other was enduring a kind of torture with a smile as she shook hand after hand, completely unaware that the heavy Professor Plock had stepped on the train of her elegant state and festival gown.

With a long sigh of relief Demi glanced about him for the beloved girl. Most persons would have looked some time before any particular angel could be discovered among the white-robed throng in parlours, hall, and study; but his eye went—like the needle to the pole—to the corner where a smooth dark head, with its braided crown, rose like a queen's, he thought, above the crowd which surrounded her. Yes, she has a flower at her throat; one, two, oh, blessed sight! he saw it all across the room, and gave a rapturous sigh which caused Miss Perry's frizzled crop to wave with a sudden gust. He did not see the rose, for it was hidden by a fold of lace; and it was well, perhaps, that bliss came by instalments, or he might have electrified the assembled multitude by flying to his idol, there being no Daisy to clutch him by the coat-tail. A stout lady, thirsting for information, seized him at that thrilling moment, and he was forced to point out celebrities with a saintly patience which deserved a better reward than it received; for a certain absence of mind and incoherence of speech at times caused the ungrateful dowager to whisper to the first friend she met after he had escaped:

With a long sigh of relief, Demi looked around for the girl he loved. Most people would have taken a while to spot any particular angel among the crowd of people in white robes in the parlors, hall, and study; but his gaze went straight to the corner where a smooth dark head with a braided crown stood out like a queen's above the throng surrounding her. Yes, she has a flower at her throat; one, two, oh, what a wonderful sight! He could see it all the way across the room and let out a joyous sigh that made Miss Perry's frizzy hair sway in an unexpected gust. He didn’t notice the rose, as it was hidden by a fold of lace; maybe it was good that happiness came in bits, or he might have shocked everyone by rushing to his idol, especially since there was no Daisy to hold him back. Just then, a stout lady eager for information grabbed him at that exciting moment, and he had to point out celebrities with a saintly patience that deserved a better reward than it got; for his occasional absent-mindedness and jumbling of words led the ungrateful dowager to whisper to the first friend she met after he got away:

'I saw no wine at any of the spreads; but it is plain that young Brooke has had too much. Quite gentlemanly, but evidently a trifle intoxicated, my dear.'

'I didn’t see any wine at any of the gatherings; but it’s clear that young Brooke has had a bit too much. Quite respectable, but clearly a little tipsy, my dear.'

Ah, so he was! but with a diviner wine than any that ever sparkled at a class-day lunch, though many collegians know the taste of it; and when the old lady was disposed of, he gladly turned to find the young one, bent on having a single word. He saw her standing by the piano now, idly turning over music as she talked with several gentlemen. Hiding his impatience under an air of scholastic repose, Demi hovered near, ready to advance when the happy moment came, wondering meantime why elderly persons persisted in absorbing young ones instead of sensibly sitting in corners with their contemporaries. The elderly persons in question retired at length, but only to be replaced by two impetuous youths who begged Miss Heath to accompany them to Parnassus and join the dance. Demi thirsted for their blood, but was appeased by hearing George and Dolly say, as they lingered a moment after her refusal:

Ah, he really was! But with a more exquisite wine than any that ever sparkled at a class-day lunch, even though many students know what it tastes like; and when the old lady was out of the way, he eagerly looked for the young one, determined to get a word in. He saw her by the piano now, casually flipping through sheet music while chatting with several guys. Hiding his impatience behind a calm, scholarly demeanor, Demi lingered nearby, ready to step in when the moment was right, meanwhile wondering why older people insisted on monopolizing the attention of young people instead of wisely sitting in corners with their peers. The older folks eventually left, but they were quickly replaced by two eager young men who urged Miss Heath to join them for a dance. Demi simmered with jealousy, but felt more at ease when he heard George and Dolly say, as they paused a moment after her refusal:

'Really, you know, I'm quite converted to co-education and almost wish I'd remained here. It gives a grace to study, a sort of relish even to Greek to see charming girls at it,' said Stuffy, who found the feast of learning so dry, any sauce was welcome; and he felt as if he had discovered a new one.

"Honestly, you know, I'm really on board with co-education and almost wish I'd stayed here. It adds a certain charm to studying, even makes Greek a bit more enjoyable to see attractive girls engaged in it," said Stuffy, who found the pursuit of knowledge so dull that any distraction was welcome; he felt like he had discovered a new one.

'Yes, by Jove! we fellows will have to look out or you'll carry off all the honours. You were superb today, and held us all like magic, though it was so hot there, I really think I couldn't have stood it for anyone else,' added Dolly, labouring to be gallant and really offering a touching proof of devotion; for the heat melted his collar, took the curl out of his hair, and ruined his gloves.

"Yeah, by gosh! We guys need to watch out or you'll take all the accolades. You were amazing today and had us all captivated, even though it was so hot that I honestly think I couldn't have done it for anyone else," added Dolly, trying to be charming and genuinely showing a sweet sign of loyalty; because the heat melted his collar, straightened his hair, and ruined his gloves.

'There is room for all; and if you will leave us the books, we will cheerfully yield the baseball, boating, dancing, and flirting, which seem to be the branches you prefer,' answered Alice sweetly.

"There’s room for everyone; and if you let us have the books, we’ll happily give up baseball, boating, dancing, and flirting, which seem to be the things you like best," Alice replied sweetly.

'Ah, now you are too hard upon us! We can't grind all the time and you ladies don't seem to mind taking a turn at the two latter “branches” you mention,' returned Dolly, with a glance at George which plainly said, 'I had her there.'

'Oh, come on, you're being too tough on us! We can't work all the time, and you ladies don't seem to mind taking a turn at the other two “branches” you mentioned,' replied Dolly, giving George a look that clearly said, 'I got her on that one.'

'Some of us do in our first years. Later we give up childish things, you see. Don't let me keep you from Parnassus'; and a smiling nod dismissed them, smarting under the bitter consciousness of youth.

'Some of us do in our first years. Later we give up childish things, you know. Don't let me hold you back from Parnassus'; and a smiling nod sent them off, feeling the sting of youthful awareness.

'You got it there, Doll. Better not try to fence with these superior girls. Sure to be routed, horse, foot, and dragoons,' said Stuffy, lumbering away, somewhat cross with too many spreads.

'You’ve got it, Doll. You really shouldn’t try to compete with these top-notch girls. You’re bound to be defeated, all around,' said Stuffy, lumbering away, a bit annoyed from too many spreads.

'So deuced sarcastic! Don't believe she's much older than we are. Girls grow up quicker, so she needn't put on airs and talk like a grandmother,' muttered Dolly, feeling that he had sacrificed his kids upon the altar of an ungrateful Pallas.

'So incredibly sarcastic! I bet she’s not much older than us. Girls mature faster, so she doesn’t need to act all superior and talk like she’s a grandmother,' muttered Dolly, feeling that he had given up his kids for the sake of an ungrateful Pallas.

'Come along and let's find something to eat. I'm faint with so much talking. Old Plock cornered me and made my head spin with Kant and Hegel and that lot.'

'Come on, let's grab something to eat. I'm feeling faint from all this talking. Old Plock kept me cornered and made my head spin with Kant and Hegel and all that stuff.'

'I promised Dora West I'd give her a turn. Must look her up; she's a jolly little thing, and doesn't bother about anything but keeping in step.'

'I promised Dora West I'd give her a chance. I should check in on her; she's a cheerful little thing and doesn't worry about anything except keeping in sync.'

And arm in arm the boys strolled away, leaving Alice to read music as diligently as if society had indeed no charms for her. As she bent to turn a page, the eager young man behind the piano saw the rose and was struck speechless with delight. A moment he gazed, then hastened to seize the coveted place before a new detachment of bores arrived.

And arm in arm, the guys walked away, leaving Alice to read music as if socializing didn't interest her at all. As she leaned down to turn a page, the eager young man at the piano noticed the rose and was speechless with joy. He stared for a moment, then quickly rushed to take the desired spot before another group of annoying people showed up.

'Alice, I can't believe it—did you understand—how shall I ever thank you?' murmured Demi, bending as if he, too, read the song, not a note or word of which did he see, however.

'Alice, I can't believe it—did you understand—how will I ever thank you?' Demi whispered, leaning in as if he were also reading the song, even though he couldn’t see a single note or word of it.

'Hush! not now. I understood—I don't deserve it—we are too young, we must wait, but—I'm very proud and happy, John!'

'Hush! Not now. I get it—I don't deserve it—we're too young, we need to wait, but—I'm really proud and happy, John!'

What would have happened after that tender whisper I tremble to think, if Tom Bangs had not come bustling up, with the cheerful remark:

What would have happened after that gentle whisper I shudder to imagine, if Tom Bangs hadn't come rushing over with a cheerful comment:

'Music? just the thing. People are thinning out, and we all want a little refreshment. My brain fairly reels with the 'ologies and 'isms I've heard discussed tonight. Yes, give us this; sweet thing! Scotch songs are always charming.'

'Music? Exactly what we need. People are leaving, and we all want a little break. My head is spinning with all the 'ologies and 'isms I've heard talked about tonight. Yes, let's have this; it's delightful! Scottish songs are always a joy.'

Demi glowered; but the obtuse boy never saw it, and Alice, feeling that this would be a safe vent for sundry unruly emotions, sat down at once, and sang the song which gave her answer better than she could have done:

Demi scowled; but the clueless boy never noticed, and Alice, sensing that this would be a good way to release some pent-up feelings, sat down right away and sang the song that expressed her answer better than she could have.

                BIDE A WEE

    'The puir auld folk at home, ye mind,
    Are frail and failing sair;
    And weel I ken they'd miss me, lad,
    Gin I come hame nae mair.
    The grist is out, the times are hard,
    The kine are only three;
    I canna leave the auld folk now.
    We'd better bide a wee.

    'I fear me sair they're failing baith;
    For when I sit apart,
    They talk o' Heaven so earnestly,
    It well nigh breaks my heart.
    So, laddie, dinna urge me now,
    It surely winna be;
    I canna leave the auld folk yet.
    We'd better bide a wee.'
                BIDE A WEE

    'The poor old folks back home, you know,
    Are weak and really struggling;
    And I know they'd miss me, kid,
    If I never came back home.
    The grain's all gone, times are tough,
    We only have three cows;
    I can't leave the old folks now.
    We'd better wait a bit.

    'I really worry they're both getting worse;
    When I sit by myself,
    They talk about Heaven so earnestly,
    It almost breaks my heart.
    So, kid, don't push me now,
    It definitely won’t work;
    I can't leave the old folks yet.
    We'd better wait a bit.'

The room was very still before the first verse ended; and Alice skipped the next, fearing she could not get through; for John's eyes were on her, showing that he knew she sang for him and let the plaintive little ballad tell what her reply must be. He took it as she meant it, and smiled at her so happily that her heart got the better of her voice, and she rose abruptly, saying something about the heat.

The room was completely silent before the first verse finished; Alice skipped the next line, worried she wouldn't be able to continue because John's eyes were on her, showing he knew she was singing for him. The sad little song revealed her true feelings. He understood her intention and smiled at her so warmly that her emotions overwhelmed her voice. She suddenly stood up, mentioning something about the heat.

'Yes, you are tired; come out and rest, my dearest'; and with a masterful air Demi took her into the starlight, leaving Tom to stare after them winking as if a sky-rocket had suddenly gone off under his nose.

'Yes, you’re tired; come out and take a break, my dear'; and with a confident demeanor, Demi led her into the starlight, leaving Tom to stare after them, blinking as if a firework had just gone off right in front of him.

'Bless my soul! the Deacon really meant business last summer and never told me. Won't Dora laugh?' And Tom departed in hot haste to impart and exult over his discovery.

"Wow! The Deacon was actually serious last summer and never told me. Won't Dora find that hilarious?" And Tom rushed off eagerly to share and celebrate his discovery.

What was said in the garden was never exactly known; but the Brooke family sat up very late that night, and any curious eye at the window would have seen Demi receiving the homage of his womankind as he told his little romance. Josie took great credit to herself in the matter, insisting that she had made the match; Daisy was full of the sweetest sympathy and joy, and Mrs Meg so happy that when Jo had gone to dream of bridal veils, and Demi sat in his room blissfully playing the air of 'Bide a Wee', she had her talk about Nat, ending with her arms round her dutiful daughter and these welcome words as her reward:

What was said in the garden was never known for sure; but the Brooke family stayed up very late that night, and any curious onlooker at the window would have seen Demi receiving the admiration of the women in his life as he shared his little love story. Josie took great pride in the situation, claiming she had brought them together; Daisy was filled with the sweetest sympathy and joy, and Mrs. Meg was so happy that when Jo went off to dream about wedding veils, and Demi sat in his room happily playing the tune of "Bide a Wee," she had her conversation about Nat, ending with her arms around her dutiful daughter and those heartwarming words as her reward:

'Wait till Nat comes home, and then my good girl shall wear white roses too.'

'Wait until Nat comes home, and then my good girl will wear white roses too.'





Chapter 20. LIFE FOR LIFE

The summer days that followed were full of rest and pleasure for young and old, as they did the honours of Plumfield to their happy guests. While Franz and Emil were busy with the affairs of Uncle Hermann and Captain Hardy, Mary and Ludmilla made friends everywhere; for, though very unlike, both were excellent and charming girls. Mrs Meg and Daisy found the German bride a Hausfrau after their own hearts, and had delightful times learning new dishes, hearing about the semi-yearly washes and the splendid linen-room at Hamburg, or discussing domestic life in all its branches. Ludmilla not only taught, but learned, many things, and went home with many new and useful ideas in her blonde head.

The summer days that followed were filled with relaxation and enjoyment for everyone, young and old, as they welcomed their happy guests at Plumfield. While Franz and Emil were busy taking care of Uncle Hermann and Captain Hardy's matters, Mary and Ludmilla made friends everywhere; even though they were quite different, both were wonderful and charming young women. Mrs. Meg and Daisy found the German bride to be a homemaker after their own hearts, and they had a great time learning new recipes, hearing about the biannual laundry and the impressive linen closet in Hamburg, or discussing all aspects of domestic life. Ludmilla not only taught but also learned many things, and she returned home with a lot of new and practical ideas in her blonde head.

Mary had seen so much of the world that she was unusually lively for an English girl; while her various accomplishments made her a most agreeable companion. Much good sense gave her ballast; and the late experiences of danger and happiness added a sweet gravity at times, which contrasted well with her natural gaiety. Mrs Jo was quite satisfied with Emil's choice, and felt sure this true and tender pilot would bring him safe to port through fair or stormy weather. She had feared that Franz would settle down into a comfortable, moneymaking burgher, and be content with that; but she soon saw that his love of music and his placid Ludmilla put much poetry into his busy life, and kept it from being too prosaic. So she felt at rest about these boys, and enjoyed their visit with real, maternal satisfaction; parting with them in September most regretfully, yet hopefully, as they sailed away to the new life that lay before them.

Mary had traveled so much that she was more lively than the typical English girl; her many talents made her a fantastic companion. Her good sense kept her grounded, and her recent experiences of danger and happiness sometimes gave her a sweet seriousness that contrasted nicely with her natural cheerfulness. Mrs. Jo was very pleased with Emil's choice and felt certain that this genuine and caring person would guide him safely through good times and bad. She had worried that Franz would settle into a comfortable, money-making routine and be satisfied with that; but she quickly realized that his love for music and his calm companion, Ludmilla, added a touch of poetry to his busy life, preventing it from becoming too dull. So, she felt at ease about these boys and enjoyed their visit with genuine, maternal joy, parting with them in September with a sense of regret, yet hope, as they set off toward the new life that awaited them.

Demi's engagement was confided to the immediate family only, as both were pronounced too young to do anything but love and wait. They were so happy that time seemed to stand still for them, and after a blissful week they parted bravely—Alice to home duties, with a hope that sustained and cheered her through many trials; and John to his business, full of a new ardour which made all things possible when such a reward was offered.

Demi's engagement was shared only with close family, since both were considered too young to do anything but love and wait. They were so happy that time felt like it stood still for them, and after a wonderful week, they said goodbye bravely—Alice returning to her home responsibilities, with a hope that lifted her spirits through many challenges; and John going to his work, filled with a new passion that made everything seem possible when such a reward was at stake.

Daisy rejoiced over them, and was never tired of hearing her brother's plans for the future. Her own hope soon made her what she used to be—a cheery, busy creature, with a smile, kind word, and helping hand for all; and as she went singing about the house again, her mother felt that the right remedy for past sadness had been found. The dear Pelican still had doubts and fears, but kept them wisely to herself, preparing sundry searching tests to be applied when Nat came home, and keeping a sharp eye on the letters from London; for some mysterious hint had flown across the sea, and Daisy's content seemed reflected in Nat's present cheerful state of mind.

Daisy was thrilled about them and never tired of hearing her brother’s plans for the future. Her own hope soon turned her back into the cheerful, busy person she used to be, always ready with a smile, a kind word, and a helping hand for everyone. As she sang around the house again, her mother felt that they had found the right remedy for their past sadness. The dear Pelican still had doubts and fears but wisely kept them to herself, preparing various tests to apply when Nat came home, and keeping a close eye on the letters from London. Some mysterious hint had crossed the ocean, and Daisy's happiness seemed to reflect in Nat's current cheerful state of mind.

Having passed through the Werther period, and tried a little Faust—of which experience he spoke to his Marguerite as if it had included an acquaintance with Mephistopheles, Blocksburg, and Auerbach's wine-cellar—he now felt that he was a Wilhelm Meister, serving his apprenticeship to the great masters of life. As she knew the truth of his small sins and honest repentance, Daisy only smiled at the mixture of love and philosophy he sent her, knowing that it was impossible for a young man to live in Germany without catching the German spirit.

Having gone through his Werther phase and dabbled a bit in Faust—talking about it with Marguerite as if he had actually met Mephistopheles, seen Blocksburg, and visited Auerbach's wine cellar—he now felt like a Wilhelm Meister, learning from the great masters of life. Daisy, aware of his minor misdeeds and genuine remorse, simply smiled at the blend of love and philosophy he expressed to her, understanding that it was impossible for a young man to live in Germany without absorbing the German spirit.

'His heart is all right; and his head will soon grow clear when he gets out of the fog of tobacco, beer, and metaphysics he's been living in. England will wake up his common sense, and good salt air blow his little follies all away,' said Mrs Jo, much pleased with the good prospects of her violinist—whose return was delayed till spring, to his private regret, but professional advancement.

'His heart is fine; and his mind will clear up soon once he gets out of the haze of tobacco, beer, and the complicated ideas he’s been caught up in. England will help him regain his common sense, and the fresh sea air will blow away his little quirks,' said Mrs. Jo, happily optimistic about her violinist’s future—whose return was pushed back until spring, much to his personal disappointment, but beneficial for his career.

Josie had a month with Miss Cameron at the seaside, and threw herself so heartily into the lesson given her that her energy, promise, and patience laid the foundation of a friendship which was of infinite value to her in the busy, brilliant years to come; for little Jo's instincts were right; and the dramatic talent of the Marches was to blossom by and by into an actress, virtuous, and beloved.

Josie spent a month with Miss Cameron at the beach and fully committed to the lessons she was given. Her enthusiasm, potential, and perseverance created the foundation for a friendship that would prove invaluable in the busy, exciting years ahead. Little Jo's instincts were spot on, and the dramatic talent of the March sisters would eventually flourish into a career for an actress who was virtuous and beloved.

Tom and his Dora were peacefully ambling altar-ward; for Bangs senior was so afraid his son would change his mind again and try a third profession, that he gladly consented to an early marriage, as a sort of anchor to hold the mercurial Thomas fast. Aforesaid Thomas could not complain of cold shoulders now; for Dora was a most devoted and adoring little mate, and made life so pleasant to him that his gift for getting into scrapes seemed lost, and he bade fair to become a thriving man, with undeniable talent for the business he had chosen.

Tom and his Dora were peacefully walking toward the altar; Bangs senior was so afraid his son would change his mind again and try a third career that he happily agreed to an early marriage as a way to keep the unpredictable Thomas grounded. Thomas couldn't complain about feeling neglected now; Dora was a devoted and loving partner, making life so enjoyable for him that his knack for getting into trouble seemed to disappear, and he looked set to become a successful man, with real talent for the career he had chosen.

'We shall be married in the autumn, and live with my father for a while. The governor is getting on, you know, and my wife and I must look after him. Later we shall have an establishment of our own,' was a favourite speech of his about this time, and usually received with smiles; for the idea of Tommy Bangs at the head of an 'establishment' was irresistibly funny to all who knew him.

'We’re going to get married in the fall and stay with my dad for a bit. The governor is getting older, you know, and my wife and I need to take care of him. Eventually, we’ll have our own place,' was a favorite thing he would say around this time, and it usually earned smiles; the thought of Tommy Bangs running his own 'establishment' was just too funny for everyone who knew him.

Things were in this flourishing condition, and Mrs Jo was beginning to think her trials were over for that year, when a new excitement came. Several postal cards had arrived at long intervals from Dan, who gave them 'Care of M. Mason, etc.', as his address. By this means he was able to gratify his longing for home news, and to send brief messages to quiet their surprise at his delay in settling. The last one, which came in September, was dated 'Montana', and simply said:

Things were going well, and Mrs. Jo was starting to think her challenges for the year were behind her when a new excitement arrived. Several postcards from Dan had come in sporadically, with his address listed as 'Care of M. Mason, etc.'. This way, he could satisfy his need for updates from home and send short notes to ease their worries about his slow progress. The last one, which arrived in September, was dated 'Montana' and simply said:

Here at last, trying mining again; but not going to stay long. All sorts of luck. Gave up the farm idea. Tell plans soon. Well, busy, and very happy. D. K.

Here at last, trying mining again; but not planning to stay long. All kinds of luck. I gave up on the farm idea. I'll share plans soon. Well, I'm busy and very happy. D. K.

If they had known what the heavy dash under 'happy' meant, that postal would have been a very eloquent bit of pasteboard; for Dan was free, and had gone straight away to the liberty he panted for. Meeting an old friend by accident, he obliged him at a pinch by acting as overseer for a time, finding the society even of rough miners very sweet, and something in the muscular work wonderfully pleasant, after being cooped up in the brush-shop so long. He loved to take a pick and wrestle with rock and earth till he was weary—which was very soon; for that year of captivity had told upon his splendid physique. He longed to go home, but waited week after week to get the prison taint off him and the haggard look out of his face. Meanwhile he made friends of masters and men; and as no one knew his story, he took his place again in the world gratefully and gladly—with little pride now, and no plans but to do some good somewhere, and efface the past.

If they had realized what the heavy dash under 'happy' meant, that postcard would have been a very powerful piece of cardboard; because Dan was free and had gone straight to the freedom he craved. When he accidentally bumped into an old friend, he helped him out by stepping in as a supervisor for a while, finding the company of rough miners quite pleasant, and enjoying the physical work immensely after being stuck in the brush shop for so long. He loved swinging a pickaxe and battling with rock and dirt until he was exhausted—which happened pretty quickly; that year of confinement had taken a toll on his amazing physique. He wanted to go home but waited week after week to shake off the prison's mark and the worn-out look from his face. In the meantime, he made friends with both bosses and workers, and since no one knew his story, he re-entered society gratefully and happily—with little pride now and no plans except to do some good somewhere and erase the past.

Mrs Jo was having a grand clearing-out of her desk one October day, while the rain poured outside, and peace reigned in her mansion. Coming across the postals, she pondered over them, and then put them carefully away in the drawer labelled 'Boys' Letters', saying to herself, as she bundled eleven requests for autographs into the waste-paper basket:

Mrs. Jo was doing a big clean-out of her desk one October day while the rain poured outside, and everything was peaceful in her mansion. As she found the postcards, she thought about them, then carefully placed them in the drawer labeled 'Boys' Letters,' telling herself, as she tossed eleven requests for autographs into the trash,

'It is quite time for another card, unless he is coming to tell his plans. I'm really curious to know what he has been about all this year, and how he's getting on now.'

'It's about time for another card, unless he's coming to share his plans. I'm really curious to know what he's been up to all year and how he's doing now.'

That last wish was granted within an hour; for Ted came rushing in, with a newspaper in one hand, a collapsed umbrella in the other, and a face full of excitement, announcing, all in one breathless jumble:

That last wish was granted within an hour; for Ted came rushing in, with a newspaper in one hand, a broken umbrella in the other, and an excited look on his face, announcing, all in one breathless jumble:

'Mine caved in—twenty men shut up—no way out—wives crying—water rising—Dan knew the old shaft—risked his life—got 'em out—most killed—papers full of it—I knew he'd be a hero—hurray for old Dan!'

'The mine collapsed—twenty men trapped—no escape—wives crying—water rising—Dan knew the old shaft—risked his life—got them out—most were killed—the papers are full of it—I knew he’d be a hero—hurray for old Dan!'

'What? Where? When? Who? Stop roaring, and let me read!' commanded his mother, entirely bewildered.

'What? Where? When? Who? Stop yelling, and let me read!' commanded his mother, completely confused.

Relinquishing the paper, Ted allowed her to read for herself, with frequent interruptions from him—and Rob, who soon followed, eager for the tale. It was nothing new; but courage and devotion always stir generous hearts, and win admiration; so the account was both graphic and enthusiastic; and the name of Daniel Kean, the brave man who saved the lives of others at the risk of his own, was on many lips that day. Very proud were the faces of these friends as they read how their Dan was the only one who, in the first panic of the accident, remembered the old shaft that led into the mine—walled up, but the only hope of escape, if the men could be got out before the rising water drowned them; how he was lowered down alone, telling the others to keep back till he saw if it was safe; how he heard the poor fellows picking desperately for their lives on the other side, and by knocks and calls guided them to the right spot; then headed the rescue party, and working like a hero, got the men out in time. On being drawn up last of all, the worn rope broke, and he had a terrible fall, being much hurt, but was still alive. How the grateful women kissed his blackened face and bloody hands, as the men bore him away in triumph, and the owners of the mine promised a handsome reward, if he lived to receive it!

Relinquishing the paper, Ted let her read it herself, with frequent interruptions from him—and Rob, who quickly joined, eager for the story. It was nothing new; but courage and devotion always touch generous hearts and earn admiration; so the account was both vivid and enthusiastic; and the name of Daniel Kean, the brave man who saved others at the risk of his own life, was on many lips that day. Their friends wore proud expressions as they read how their Dan was the only one who, in the first panic of the accident, remembered the old shaft that led into the mine—walled up, but the only hope of escape, if the men could be rescued before the rising water drowned them; how he went down alone, telling the others to stay back until he could check if it was safe; how he heard the poor guys desperately fighting for their lives on the other side, and by knocking and calling, guided them to the right spot; then led the rescue party, and working like a hero, managed to get the men out in time. When he was the last one to be pulled up, the worn rope broke, and he fell hard, getting seriously injured, but he was still alive. How the grateful women kissed his blackened face and bloody hands, as the men carried him away in triumph, and the mine owners promised a generous reward, if he survived to receive it!

'He must live; he shall, and come home to be nursed as soon as he can stir, if I go and bring him myself! I always knew he'd do something fine and brave, if he didn't get shot or hung for some wild prank instead,' cried Mrs Jo, much excited.

'He has to live; he will, and come home to be taken care of as soon as he can move, even if I have to go get him myself! I always knew he'd do something great and courageous, unless he gets shot or hanged for some crazy stunt instead,' cried Mrs. Jo, feeling very excited.

'Do go, and take me with you, Mum. I ought to be the one, Dan's so fond of me and I of him,' began Ted, feeling that this would be an expedition after his own heart.

'Please go, and take me with you, Mom. I should be the one; Dan likes me so much and I like him too,' started Ted, sensing that this would be an adventure he would really enjoy.

Before his mother could reply, Mr Laurie came in, with almost as much noise and flurry as Teddy the second, exclaiming as he waved the evening paper:

Before his mother could respond, Mr. Laurie walked in, making almost as much noise and commotion as Teddy the second, waving the evening paper and exclaiming:

'Seen the news, Jo? What do you think? Shall I go off at once, and see after that brave boy?'

'Have you seen the news, Jo? What do you think? Should I go right away and check on that brave boy?'

'I wish you would. But the thing may not be all true—rumour lies so. Perhaps a few hours will bring an entirely new version of the story.'

'I wish you would. But that might not be entirely true—rumors can be deceptive. Maybe a few hours will bring a completely new version of the story.'

'I've telephoned to Demi for all he can find out; and if it's true, I'll go at once. Should like the trip. If he's able, I'll bring him home; if not, I'll stay and see to him. He'll pull through. Dan will never die of a fall on his head. He's got nine lives, and not lost half of them yet.'

"I've called Demi to find out everything he can; and if it's true, I'll go right away. I'd really like the trip. If he can, I'll bring him back; if not, I'll stay and take care of him. He'll be fine. Dan will never die from a head injury. He's got nine lives and hasn't used half of them yet."

'If you go, uncle, mayn't I go with you? I'm just spoiling for a journey; and it would be such larks to go out there with you, and see the mines and Dan, and hear all about it, and help. I can nurse. Can't I, Rob?' cried Teddy, in his most wheedlesome tones.

"If you go, Uncle, can I come with you? I'm really itching for a trip; it would be so much fun to go there with you, see the mines and Dan, hear all about it, and help out. I can take care of things. Right, Rob?" Teddy exclaimed in his most charming voice.

'Pretty well. But if mother can't spare you, I'm ready if uncle needs anyone,' answered Rob, in his quiet way, looking much fitter for the trip than excitable Ted.

'Pretty well. But if mom can't spare you, I'm ready if Uncle needs anyone,' replied Rob, in his calm manner, looking much more fit for the trip than the excitable Ted.

'I can't spare either of you. My boys get into trouble, unless I keep them close at home. I've no right to hold the others; but I won't let you out of my sight, or something will happen. Never saw such a year, with wrecks and weddings and floods and engagements, and every sort of catastrophe!' exclaimed Mrs Jo.

"I can't let either of you go. My boys get into trouble unless I keep them close to home. I have no right to keep the others here, but I won’t let you out of my sight, or something bad will happen. I've never seen a year like this, with wrecks, weddings, floods, engagements, and every kind of disaster!" exclaimed Mrs. Jo.

'If you deal in girls and boys, you must expect this sort of thing, ma'am. The worst is over, I hope, till these lads begin to go off. Then I'll stand by you; for you'll need every kind of support and comfort, specially if Ted bolts early,' laughed Mr Laurie, enjoying her lamentations.

'If you're involved with girls and boys, you have to expect this kind of thing, ma'am. The worst is over, I hope, until these guys start to leave. Then I'll be there for you; you'll need all the support and comfort you can get, especially if Ted takes off early,' laughed Mr. Laurie, finding amusement in her complaints.

'I don't think anything can surprise me now; but I am anxious about Dan, and feel that someone had better go to him. It's a rough place out there, and he may need careful nursing. Poor lad, he seems to get a good many hard knocks! But perhaps he needs them as “a mellerin' process”, as Hannah used to say.'

'I don't think anything can surprise me now, but I'm worried about Dan, and I feel like someone should go to him. It's a tough place out there, and he might need some tender care. Poor guy, he seems to get hit pretty hard! But maybe he needs it as part of his "mellowing process," as Hannah used to say.'

'We shall hear from Demi before long, and then I'll be off.' With which cheerful promise Mr Laurie departed; and Ted, finding his mother firm, soon followed, to coax his uncle to take him.

'We'll hear from Demi soon, and then I'm out of here.' With that cheerful promise, Mr. Laurie left; and Ted, seeing that his mother was resolute, quickly followed to persuade his uncle to take him along.

Further inquiry confirmed and added interest to the news. Mr Laurie was off at once; and Ted went into town with him, still vainly imploring to be taken to his Dan. He was absent all day; but his mother said, calmly:

Further investigation confirmed and added intrigue to the news. Mr. Laurie left immediately, and Ted went into town with him, still desperately pleading to be taken to his Dan. He was gone all day; but his mother said, calmly:

'Only a fit of the sulks because he is thwarted. He's safe with Tom or Demi, and will come home hungry and meek at night. I know him.'

'Just a little sulking because he’s frustrated. He feels secure with Tom or Demi and will come home hungry and humble at night. I know him.'

But she soon found that she could still be surprised; for evening brought no Ted, and no one had seen him. Mr Bhaer was just setting off to find his lost son, when a telegram arrived, dated at one of the way-stations on Mr Laurie's route:

But she soon realized that she could still be surprised; for evening came with no Ted, and no one had seen him. Mr. Bhaer was just getting ready to search for his missing son when a telegram arrived, dated from one of the stops on Mr. Laurie's route:

    Found Ted in the cars. Take him along. Write tomorrow.

        T.  LAURENCE
    Found Ted in the cars. Take him with you. Write tomorrow.

        T. LAURENCE

'Ted bolted sooner than you expected, mother. Never mind—uncle will take good care of him, and Dan be very glad to see him,' said Rob, as Mrs Jo sat, trying to realize that her youngest was actually on his way to the wild West.

"Ted left quicker than you thought, Mom. It's okay—Uncle will look after him, and Dan will be really happy to see him," said Rob, as Mrs. Jo sat there, trying to come to terms with the fact that her youngest was really off to the Wild West.

'Disobedient boy! He shall be severely punished, if I ever get him again. Laurie winked at this prank; I know he did. Just like him. Won't the two rascals have a splendid time? Wish I was with them! Don't believe that crazy boy took even a night-gown with him, or an overcoat. Well, there will be two patients for us to nurse when they get back, if they ever do. Those reckless express trains always go down precipices, and burn up, or telescope. Oh! my Ted, my precious boy, how can I let him go so far away from me?'

'Disobedient boy! He's going to be in a lot of trouble if I ever catch him again. Laurie definitely enjoyed that prank; I know he did. Typical of him. Won't those two troublemakers have an amazing time? I wish I could join them! I can't believe that wild kid didn’t even pack a nightgown or an overcoat. Well, we'll have two patients to take care of when they come back, if they even make it. Those reckless express trains always go off cliffs, catch fire, or crash into each other. Oh! my Ted, my precious boy, how can I let him go so far away from me?'

And mother-like, Mrs Jo forgot the threatened chastisement in tender lamentations over the happy scapegrace, now whizzing across the continent in high feather at the success of his first revolt. Mr Laurie was much amused at his insisting that those words, 'when Ted bolts', put the idea into his head; and therefore the responsibility rested upon his shoulders. He assumed it kindly from the moment he came upon the runaway asleep in a car, with no visible luggage but a bottle of wine for Dan and a blacking-brush for himself; and as Mrs Jo suspected, the 'two rascals' did have a splendid time. Penitent letters arrived in due season, and the irate parents soon forgot to chide in their anxiety about Dan, who was very ill, and did not know his friends for several days. Then he began to mend; and everyone forgave the bad boy when he proudly reported that the first conscious words Dan said were: 'Hallo, Ted!' with a smile of pleasure at seeing a familiar face bent over him.

And like a mother, Mrs. Jo forgot the promised punishment in her tender worries for the cheerful troublemaker, now zooming across the country, thrilled with the success of his first rebellion. Mr. Laurie found it amusing that he insisted those words, "when Ted bolts," planted the idea in his mind; so, the blame rested on him. He took it on kindly from the moment he found the runaway asleep in a train car, with no visible luggage except a bottle of wine for Dan and a shoe polish brush for himself; and as Mrs. Jo suspected, the "two troublemakers" had a fantastic time. Apologies arrived in due time, and the upset parents soon forgot to scold in their concern for Dan, who was very sick and didn't recognize his friends for several days. Then he started to get better; everyone forgave the naughty boy when he proudly reported that the first words Dan said, waking up, were: "Hey, Ted!" with a smile of joy at seeing a familiar face beside him.

'Glad he went, and I won't scold any more. Now, what shall we put in the box for Dan?' And Mrs Jo worked off her impatience to get hold of the invalid by sending comforts enough for a hospital.

'I'm glad he left, and I won’t scold anymore. Now, what should we put in the box for Dan?' And Mrs. Jo channeled her impatience to see the invalid by sending enough comforts for a hospital.

Cheering accounts soon began to come, and at length Dan was pronounced able to travel, but seemed in no haste to go home, though never tired of hearing his nurses talk of it.

Cheerful reports started coming in, and eventually Dan was declared fit to travel, but he didn’t seem eager to head home, even though he never got tired of hearing his nurses talk about it.

'Dan is strangely altered,' wrote Laurie to Jo; 'not by this illness alone, but by something which has evidently gone before. I don't know what, and leave you to ask; but from his ravings when delirious I fear he has been in some serious trouble the past year. He seems ten years older, but improved, quieter, and so grateful to us. It is pathetic to see the hunger in his eyes as they rest on Ted, as if he couldn't see enough of him. He says Kansas was a failure, but can't talk much; so I bide my time. The people here love him very much, and he cares for that sort of thing now; used to scorn any show of emotion, you know; now he wants everyone to think well of him, and can't do enough to win affection and respect. I may be all wrong. You will soon find out. Ted is in clover, and the trip has done him a world of good. Let me take him to Europe when we go? Apron-strings don't agree with him any better than they did with me when I proposed to run away to Washington with you some century ago. Aren't you sorry you didn't?'

'Dan has changed a lot,' Laurie wrote to Jo; 'not just from this illness, but from something that's clearly happened before. I don't know what it is, so I’ll leave that to you to ask him; but based on his ramblings when he was delirious, I’m worried he’s been through some serious trouble in the past year. He seems ten years older, but in a good way—calmer and really appreciative of us. It's heartbreaking to see the longing in his eyes when he looks at Ted, like he can’t get enough of him. He says Kansas was a failure, but he can't say much about it, so I’m waiting for the right moment. The people here adore him, and he actually cares about that now; he used to look down on any display of emotion, you know; but now he wants everyone to think highly of him and he’s doing everything he can to earn their affection and respect. I might be completely wrong. You’ll find out soon enough. Ted is doing great, and the trip has really benefitted him. Can I take him to Europe with us? Being tied down doesn’t suit him anymore than it did with me when I asked to run away to Washington with you ages ago. Don’t you wish you had?'

This private letter set Mrs Jo's lively fancy in a ferment, and she imagined every known crime, affliction, and complication which could possibly have befallen Dan. He was too feeble to be worried with questions now, but she promised herself most interesting revelations when she got him safe at home; for the 'firebrand' was her most interesting boy. She begged him to come, and spent more time in composing a letter that should bring him, than she did over the most thrilling episodes in her 'works'.

This private letter stirred up Mrs. Jo's lively imagination, and she envisioned every possible crime, hardship, and complication that could have happened to Dan. He was too weak to handle questions right now, but she promised herself she’d get some fascinating stories out of him once he was safely home; after all, the 'firebrand' was her most intriguing boy. She urged him to come, spending more time crafting a letter to convince him than she did on the most exciting parts of her 'works'.

No one but Dan saw the letter; but it did bring him, and one November day Mr Laurie helped a feeble man out of a carriage at the door of Plumfield, and Mother Bhaer received the wanderer like a recovered son; while Ted, in a disreputable-looking hat and an astonishing pair of boots, performed a sort of war-dance round the interesting group.

No one except Dan saw the letter; but it did bring him, and one November day Mr. Laurie helped a weak man out of a carriage at the door of Plumfield, and Mother Bhaer welcomed the wanderer like a long-lost son; meanwhile, Ted, in a shabby-looking hat and an amazing pair of boots, did a sort of celebration dance around the intriguing group.

'Right upstairs and rest; I'm nurse now, and this ghost must eat before he talks to anyone,' commanded Mrs Jo, trying not to show how shocked she was at this shorn and shaven, gaunt and pallid shadow of the stalwart man she parted with.

'Go upstairs and get some rest; I'm the nurse now, and this ghost needs to eat before he talks to anyone,' insisted Mrs. Jo, doing her best not to reveal how shocked she was by the shorn, shaven, gaunt, and pale shadow of the strong man she had said goodbye to.

He was quite content to obey, and lay on the long lounge in the room prepared for him, looking about as tranquilly as a sick child restored to its own nursery and mother's arms, while his new nurse fed and refreshed him, bravely controlling the questions that burned upon her tongue. Being weak and weary, he soon fell asleep; and then she stole away to enjoy the society of the 'rascals', whom she scolded and petted, pumped and praised, to her heart's content.

He was happy to comply and lay on the long couch in the room set up for him, looking around as peacefully as a sick child back in its own nursery and mother's arms, while his new nurse took care of him, skillfully holding back the questions she wanted to ask. Feeling weak and tired, he quickly fell asleep; then she quietly left to enjoy the company of the 'little troublemakers,' whom she scolded and spoiled, questioned and praised, to her heart's delight.

'Jo, I think Dan has committed some crime and suffered for it,' said Mr Laurie, when Ted had departed to show his boots and tell glowing tales of the dangers and delights of the miners' life to his mates. 'Some terrible experience has come to the lad, and broken his spirit. He was quite out of his head when we arrived, and I took the watching, so I heard more of those sad wanderings than anyone else. He talked of the “warden”, some trail, a dead man, and Blair and Mason, and would keep offering me his hand, asking me if I would take it and forgive him. Once, when he was very wild, I held his arms, and he quieted in a moment, imploring me not to “put the handcuffs on”. I declare, it was quite awful sometimes to hear him in the night talk of old Plum and you, and beg to be let out and go home to die.'

"Jo, I think Dan has committed a crime and is suffering because of it," Mr. Laurie said after Ted had left to show off his boots and share exciting stories about the dangers and thrills of miners' life with his friends. "Something terrible has happened to the boy, and it’s broken his spirit. He was completely out of it when we got there, and I was on watch, so I heard more of his sad ramblings than anyone else. He talked about the 'warden', some trail, a dead man, and Blair and Mason, and he kept reaching out for my hand, asking me if I would take it and forgive him. Once, when he was really frantic, I held his arms, and he calmed down in an instant, pleading with me not to 'put the handcuffs on.' I swear, it was truly dreadful at times to hear him at night talking about old Plum and you, begging to be let out so he could go home and die."

'He isn't going to die, but live to repent of anything he may have done; so don't harrow me up with these dark hints, Teddy. I don't care if he's broken the Ten Commandments, I'll stand by him, and so will you, and we'll set him on his feet and make a good man of him yet. I know he's not spoilt, by the look in his poor face. Don't say a word to anyone, and I'll have the truth before long,' answered Mrs Jo, still loyal to her bad boy, though much afflicted by what she had heard.

'He's not going to die; he's going to live and regret whatever he might have done. So don’t distress me with these gloomy suggestions, Teddy. I don't care if he’s broken all the Ten Commandments; I’ll support him, and so will you, and we’ll help him get back on his feet and become a good man yet. I can see from the look on his sad face that he’s not beyond saving. Don’t mention this to anyone, and I’ll find out the truth soon enough,' Mrs. Jo replied, still loyal to her troublesome boy, even though she was deeply troubled by what she had heard.

For some days Dan rested, and saw few people; then good care, cheerful surroundings, and the comfort of being at home began to tell, and he seemed more like himself, though still very silent as to his late experiences, pleading the doctor's orders not to talk much. Everyone wanted to see him; but he shrank from any but old friends, and 'wouldn't lionize worth a cent', Ted said, much disappointed that he could not show off his brave Dan.

For a few days, Dan rested and kept to himself; then, with good care, a positive atmosphere, and the comfort of home, he started to feel more like his old self, although he was still pretty quiet about what he had been through, citing the doctor's orders to avoid talking too much. Everyone wanted to see him, but he only wanted to be around old friends, and Ted was disappointed that he couldn't show off his brave Dan, saying he 'wouldn't glamorize worth a cent'.

'Wasn't a man there who wouldn't have done the same, so why make a row over me?' asked the hero, feeling more ashamed than proud of the broken arm, which looked so interesting in a sling.

"Wasn’t there a guy who wouldn’t have done the same? So why make a fuss over me?" asked the hero, feeling more embarrassed than proud of the broken arm, which looked so cool in a sling.

'But isn't it pleasant to think that you saved twenty lives, Dan, and gave husbands, sons, and fathers back to the women who loved them?' asked Mrs Jo one evening as they were alone together after several callers had been sent away.

"But isn't it nice to think that you saved twenty lives, Dan, and gave husbands, sons, and fathers back to the women who loved them?" asked Mrs. Jo one evening as they were alone together after several visitors had been sent away.

'Pleasant! it's all that kept me alive, I do believe; yes, I'd rather have done it than be made president or any other big bug in the world. No one knows what a comfort it is to think I've saved twenty men to more than pay for—' There Dan stopped short, having evidently spoken out of some strong emotion to which his hearer had no key.

'Pleasant! It's the only thing that kept me going, I really think; yeah, I’d choose to do that over being president or any other big deal in the world. No one understands how comforting it is to know I’ve saved twenty men, which more than makes up for—' There Dan abruptly trailed off, clearly having shared something important that his listener couldn’t grasp.

'I thought you'd feel so. It is a splendid thing to save life at the risk of one's own, as you did, and nearly lose it,' began Mrs Jo, wishing he had gone on with that impulsive speech which was so like his old manner.

'I figured you'd think that way. It’s an amazing thing to save a life at the risk of your own, like you did, and almost lose yours in the process,' started Mrs. Jo, hoping he would continue with that spontaneous speech that reminded her of his old self.

'“He that loseth his life shall gain it”,' muttered Dan, staring at the cheerful fire which lighted the room, and shone on his thin face with a ruddy glow.

'“Whoever loses their life will find it,”' muttered Dan, staring at the cheerful fire that lit up the room and cast a warm glow on his thin face.

Mrs Jo was so startled at hearing such words from his lips that she exclaimed joyfully:

Mrs. Jo was so surprised to hear those words from him that she exclaimed joyfully:

'Then you did read the little book I gave you, and kept your promise?'

'So, you read the little book I gave you and kept your promise?'

'I read it a good deal after a while. I don't know much yet, but I'm ready to learn; and that's something.'

'I read it quite a bit after some time. I don't know much yet, but I'm eager to learn; and that's a start.'

'It's everything. Oh, my dear, tell me about it! I know something lies heavy on your heart; let me help you bear it, and so make the burden lighter.'

'It's everything. Oh, my dear, tell me about it! I know something is weighing heavily on your heart; let me help you carry it, and together we can make the burden lighter.'

'I know it would; I want to tell; but some things even you couldn't forgive; and if you let go of me, I'm afraid I can't keep afloat.'

'I know it would; I want to tell you; but some things even you couldn't forgive; and if you let go of me, I'm afraid I won't be able to stay afloat.'

'Mothers can forgive anything! Tell me all, and be sure that I will never let you go, though the whole world should turn from you.'

'Mothers can forgive anything! Tell me everything, and know that I will never let you go, even if the whole world turns its back on you.'

Mrs Jo took one of the big wasted hands in both of hers and held it fast, waiting silently till that sustaining touch warmed poor Dan's heart, and gave him courage to speak. Sitting in his old attitude, with his head in his hands, he slowly told it all, never once looking up till the last words left his lips.

Mrs. Jo took one of Dan's large, wasted hands in both of hers and held it tightly, waiting quietly until her comforting touch warmed his heart and gave him the courage to speak. Sitting in his usual position with his head in his hands, he slowly shared everything, never once looking up until the last words left his lips.

'Now you know; can you forgive a murderer, and keep a jail-bird in your house?'

'Now you know; can you forgive a murderer and let a convict stay in your house?'

Her only answer was to put her arms about him, and lay the shorn head on her breast, with eyes so full of tears they could but dimly see the hope and fear that made his own so tragical.

Her only response was to wrap her arms around him and rest his shaved head on her chest, her eyes filled with tears that barely allowed her to see the hope and fear that made his own expression so heartbreaking.

That was better than any words; and poor Dan clung to her in speechless gratitude, feeling the blessedness of mother love—that divine gift which comforts, purifies, and strengthens all who seek it. Two or three great, bitter drops were hidden in the little woollen shawl where Dan's cheek rested, and no one ever knew how soft and comfortable it felt to him after the hard pillows he had known so long. Suffering of both mind and body had broken will and pride, and the lifted burden brought such a sense of relief that he paused a moment to enjoy it in dumb delight.

That was better than any words; and poor Dan held onto her in silent gratitude, feeling the blessing of a mother's love—that divine gift that comforts, purifies, and strengthens everyone who seeks it. Two or three big, bitter tears were hidden in the little wool shawl where Dan's cheek rested, and no one ever knew how soft and cozy it felt to him after the hard pillows he had put up with for so long. The suffering of both mind and body had shattered his will and pride, and the lifted burden brought such a sense of relief that he paused for a moment to bask in it with silent joy.

'My poor boy, how you have suffered all this year, when we thought you free as air! Why didn't you tell us, Dan, and let us help you? Did you doubt your friends?' asked Mrs Jo, forgetting all other emotions in sympathy, as she lifted up the hidden face, and looked reproachfully into the great hollow eyes that met her own frankly now.

'My poor boy, you’ve had such a tough year, while we thought you were free as a bird! Why didn’t you tell us, Dan, so we could help you? Did you doubt your friends?' Mrs. Jo asked, setting aside all other feelings in her sympathy, as she lifted his hidden face and looked reproachfully into his deep, hollow eyes, which now met hers openly.

'I was ashamed. I tried to bear it alone rather than shock and disappoint you, as I know I have, though you try not to show it. Don't mind; I must get used to it'; and Dan's eyes dropped again as if they could not bear to see the trouble and dismay his confession painted on his best friend's face.

'I felt ashamed. I tried to handle it on my own instead of shocking and disappointing you, even though I know I have, even if you try to hide it. Don't worry; I have to learn to accept it'; and Dan's eyes fell again as if they couldn't bear to see the trouble and disappointment his confession showed on his best friend's face.

'I am shocked and disappointed by the sin, but I am also very glad and proud and grateful that my sinner has repented, atoned, and is ready to profit by the bitter lesson. No one but Fritz and Laurie need ever know the truth; we owe it to them, and they will feel as I do,' answered Mrs Jo, wisely thinking that entire frankness would be a better tonic than too much sympathy.

"I'm shocked and disappointed by the mistake, but I'm also really glad, proud, and grateful that my loved one has recognized their wrongdoing, made amends, and is ready to learn from this tough experience. Only Fritz and Laurie need to know the truth; we owe it to them, and they'll feel the same way I do," Mrs. Jo replied, wisely thinking that complete honesty would be a better remedy than excessive sympathy.

'No, they won't; men never forgive like women. But it's right. Please tell 'em for me, and get it over. Mr Laurence knows it, I guess. I blabbed when my wits were gone; but he was very kind all the same. I can bear their knowing; but oh, not Ted and the girls!' Dan clutched her arm with such an imploring face that she hastened to assure him no one should know except the two old friends, and he calmed down as if ashamed of his sudden panic.

'No, they won't; men never forgive like women do. But it's fair. Please let them know for me and get it over with. Mr. Laurence probably knows. I spilled the beans when I wasn't thinking straight; but he was really nice about it. I can handle them knowing, but oh, not Ted and the girls!' Dan grabbed her arm with such a desperate look that she quickly reassured him that no one else would find out except for the two old friends, and he relaxed as if embarrassed by his sudden anxiety.

'It wasn't murder, mind you, it was in self-defence; he drew first, and I had to hit him. Didn't mean to kill him; but it doesn't worry me as much as it ought, I'm afraid. I've more than paid for it, and such a rascal is better out of the world than in it, showing boys the way to hell. Yes, I know you think that's awful in me; but I can't help it. I hate a scamp as I do a skulking coyote, and always want to get a shot at 'em. Perhaps it would have been better if he had killed me; my life is spoilt.'

'It wasn't murder, just so you know, it was self-defense; he made the first move, and I had to strike back. I didn't mean to kill him, but honestly, it doesn't bother me as much as it probably should. I've more than atoned for it, and a guy like that is better off dead than alive, leading kids down the wrong path. Yeah, I know you think that's terrible of me, but I can’t change how I feel. I dislike a dirtbag as much as I do a sneaky coyote, and I always want to take a shot at them. Maybe it would have been better if he had taken me out; my life is ruined.'

All the old prison gloom seemed to settle like a black cloud on Dan's face as he spoke, and Mrs Jo was frightened at the glimpse it gave her of the fire through which he had passed to come out alive, but scarred for life. Hoping to turn his mind to happier things, she said cheerfully:

All the old prison gloom seemed to hang like a dark cloud on Dan's face as he spoke, and Mrs. Jo was scared by the glimpse it gave her of the ordeal he had gone through to come out alive, but marked for life. Hoping to shift his focus to happier thoughts, she said cheerfully:

'No, it isn't; you have learned to value it more and use it better for this trial. It is not a lost year, but one that may prove the most helpful of any you ever know. Try to think so, and begin again; we will help, and have all the more confidence in you for this failure. We all do the same and struggle on.'

'No, it isn't; you have learned to value it more and use it better for this experience. It isn't a wasted year, but one that could turn out to be the most beneficial of any you will ever have. Try to think that way, and start fresh; we will support you and have even more confidence in you because of this setback. We all go through the same thing and keep pushing forward.'

'I never can be what I was. I feel about sixty, and don't care for anything now I've got here. Let me stay till I'm on my legs, then I'll clear out and never trouble you any more,' said Dan despondently.

'I can never be who I used to be. I feel like I'm sixty, and I don't care about anything now that I'm here. Just let me stay until I get back on my feet, then I'll leave and won't bother you anymore,' Dan said, feeling hopeless.

'You are weak and low in your mind; that will pass, and by and by you will go to your missionary work among the Indians with all the old energy and the new patience, self-control, and knowledge you have gained. Tell me more about that good chaplain and Mary Mason and the lady whose chance word helped you so much. I want to know all about the trials of my poor boy.'

'You feel weak and down right now; that will change, and soon you’ll be back to your missionary work with the Native Americans, bringing all the old energy along with the new patience, self-control, and knowledge you've gained. Tell me more about that great chaplain, Mary Mason, and the lady whose casual comment helped you so much. I want to hear everything about the struggles of my dear boy.'

Won by her tender interest, Dan brightened up and talked on till he had poured out all the story of that bitter year, and felt better for the load he lifted off.

Won over by her caring attention, Dan perked up and kept talking until he had shared the entire story of that painful year, feeling lighter after sharing the weight he had been carrying.

If he had known how it weighed upon his hearer's heart, he would have held his peace; but she hid her sorrow till she had sent him to bed, comforted and calm; then she cried her heart out, to the great dismay of Fritz and Laurie, till they heard the tale and could mourn with her; after which they all cheered up and took counsel together how best to help this worst of all the 'catastrophes' the year had brought them.

If he had known how much it affected his listener, he would have stayed quiet; but she kept her sadness hidden until she had put him to bed, feeling comforted and calm. Then she let her tears flow, much to Fritz and Laurie’s surprise, until they learned what had happened and could grieve with her. After that, they all perked up and talked about how to best deal with this worst of all the “catastrophes” the year had brought them.





Chapter 21. ASLAUGA'S KNIGHT

It was curious to see the change which came over Dan after that talk. A weight seemed off his mind; and though the old impetuous spirit flashed out at times, he seemed intent on trying to show his gratitude and love and honour to these true friends by a new humility and confidence very sweet to them, very helpful to him. After hearing the story from Mrs Jo, the Professor and Mr Laurie made no allusion to it beyond the hearty hand-grasp, the look of compassion, the brief word of good cheer in which men convey sympathy, and a redoubled kindness which left no doubt of pardon. Mr Laurie began at once to interest influential persons in Dan's mission, and set in motion the machinery which needs so much oiling before anything can be done where Government is concerned. Mr Bhaer, with the skill of a true teacher, gave Dan's hungry mind something to do, and helped him understand himself by carrying on the good chaplain's task so paternally that the poor fellow often said he felt as if he had found a father. The boys took him to drive, and amused him with their pranks and plans; while the women, old and young, nursed and petted him till he felt like a sultan with a crowd of devoted slaves, obedient to his lightest wish. A very little of this was enough for Dan, who had a masculine horror of 'molly-coddling', and so brief an acquaintance with illness that he rebelled against the doctor's orders to keep quiet; and it took all Mrs Jo's authority and the girls' ingenuity to keep him from leaving his sofa long before strained back and wounded head were well. Daisy cooked for him; Nan attended to his medicines; Josie read aloud to while away the long hours of inaction that hung so heavily on his hands; while Bess brought all her pictures and casts to amuse him, and, at his special desire, set up a modelling-stand in his parlour and began to mould the buffalo head he gave her. Those afternoons seemed the pleasantest part of his day; and Mrs Jo, busy in her study close by, could see the friendly trio and enjoy the pretty pictures they made. The girls were much flattered by the success of their efforts, and exerted themselves to be very entertaining, consulting Dan's moods with the feminine tact most women creatures learn before they are out of pinafores. When he was gay, the room rang with laughter; when gloomy, they read or worked in respectful silence till their sweet patience cheered him up again; and when in pain they hovered over him like 'a couple of angels', as he said. He often called Josie 'little mother', but Bess was always 'Princess'; and his manner to the two cousins was quite different. Josie sometimes fretted him with her fussy ways, the long plays she liked to read, and the maternal scoldings she administered when he broke the rules; for having a lord of creation in her power was so delightful to her that she would have ruled him with a rod of iron if he had submitted. To Bess, in her gentler ministrations, he never showed either impatience or weariness, but obeyed her least word, exerted himself to seem well in her presence, and took such interest in her work that he lay looking at her with unwearied eyes; while Josie read to him in her best style unheeded.

It was interesting to see how Dan changed after that conversation. He seemed lighter, and even though his old impulsive nature would come out at times, he focused on showing gratitude, love, and respect to his true friends with a new sense of humility and confidence that was very touching for them and incredibly beneficial for him. After Mrs. Jo shared the story, the Professor and Mr. Laurie didn't mention it again, but their heartfelt handshake, compassionate looks, a few words of encouragement, and renewed kindness removed any doubts about forgiveness. Mr. Laurie immediately started getting influential people interested in Dan's mission and set in motion the complicated processes that require a lot of preparation before anything can happen in government matters. Mr. Bhaer, with the skill of a true teacher, gave Dan's eager mind something to focus on, helping him understand himself while taking on the good chaplain's role so lovingly that Dan often said he felt like he had found a father. The boys took him out for drives and entertained him with their antics and ideas, while the women, both young and old, cared for him and pampered him until he felt like a sultan surrounded by devoted servants, ready to fulfill his every wish. Dan needed very little of this kind of attention since he had a strong aversion to being coddled, and since he had only recently experienced illness, he resisted the doctor's orders to rest. It took all of Mrs. Jo's authority and the girls' cleverness to keep him from getting off the sofa long before his injured back and head had healed. Daisy cooked for him; Nan managed his medications; Josie read aloud to pass the long hours of inactivity that weighed heavily on him; Bess brought her art supplies and at his request set up a modeling stand in his room to start sculpting the buffalo head he had given her. Those afternoons were the best part of his day, and Mrs. Jo, busy in her study nearby, could see the friendly trio and enjoy the lovely scenes they created. The girls felt flattered by their success and worked hard to be entertaining, attuning to Dan's moods with the intuitive skill most women acquire before growing up. When he was cheerful, the room was filled with laughter; when he was down, they would read or work in respectful silence until their sweet patience lifted his spirits; and when he was in pain, they hovered around him like "a couple of angels," as he put it. He often called Josie "little mother," but always referred to Bess as "Princess," and his demeanor toward the two cousins was quite different. Josie sometimes annoyed him with her fussiness, the lengthy plays she liked to read, and the motherly scolds she gave when he broke the rules; having power over a "lord of creation" thrilled her so much that she would have tried to control him strictly if he had allowed it. With Bess, who was gentler in her care, he never showed impatience or fatigue; he followed her every word, made an effort to seem well in her presence, and took such an interest in her work that he would lie there, watching her with unwavering attention, while Josie read to him in her best style, going unnoticed.

Mrs Jo observed this, and called them 'Una and the Lion', which suited them very well, though the lion's mane was shorn, and Una never tried to bridle him. The elder ladies did their part in providing delicacies and supplying all his wants; but Mrs Meg was busy at home, Mrs Amy preparing for the trip to Europe in the spring, and Mrs Jo hovering on the brink of a 'vortex'—for the forthcoming book had been sadly delayed by the late domestic events. As she sat at her desk, settling papers or meditatively nibbling her pen while waiting for the divine afflatus to descend upon her, she often forgot her fictitious heroes and heroines in studying the live models before her, and thus by chance looks, words, and gestures discovered a little romance unsuspected by anyone else.

Mrs. Jo noticed this and called them 'Una and the Lion,' which suited them perfectly, even though the lion's mane was cut short and Una never attempted to put a bridle on him. The older ladies contributed by providing treats and meeting all his needs; however, Mrs. Meg was busy at home, Mrs. Amy was getting ready for a trip to Europe in the spring, and Mrs. Jo was on the edge of a 'vortex'—because her upcoming book had been significantly delayed by recent family events. While sitting at her desk, organizing papers or thoughtfully nibbling on her pen as she waited for inspiration to strike, she often forgot about her fictional characters as she observed the real-life models in front of her, and through chance looks, words, and gestures, she uncovered a little romance that no one else had noticed.

The portiere between the rooms was usually drawn aside, giving a view of the group in the large bay-window—Bess at one side, in her grey blouse, busy with her tools; Josie at the other side with her book; and between, on the long couch, propped with many cushions, lay Dan in a many-hued eastern dressing-gown presented by Mr Laurie and worn to please the girls, though the invalid much preferred an old jacket 'with no confounded tail to bother over'. He faced Mrs Jo's room, but never seemed to see her, for his eyes were on the slender figure before him, with the pale winter sunshine touching her golden head, and the delicate hands that shaped the clay so deftly. Josie was just visible, rocking violently in a little chair at the head of the couch, and the steady murmur of her girlish voice was usually the only sound that broke the quiet of the room, unless a sudden discussion arose about the book or the buffalo.

The curtain between the rooms was usually pulled back, revealing the group in the big bay window—Bess on one side, in her gray blouse, busy with her tools; Josie on the other side with her book; and in between, on the long couch, propped up with plenty of cushions, lay Dan in a colorful eastern robe given to him by Mr. Laurie, which he wore to please the girls, even though he much preferred an old jacket "without any annoying tail to deal with." He faced Mrs. Jo's room but never seemed to notice her, as his eyes were fixed on the slender figure in front of him, with the pale winter sunshine highlighting her golden hair and the delicate hands that shaped the clay so skillfully. Josie was barely visible, rocking back and forth vigorously in a small chair at the head of the couch, and the steady murmur of her youthful voice was usually the only sound that disrupted the room's quiet, unless a sudden debate broke out about the book or the buffalo.

Something in the big eyes, bigger and blacker than ever in the thin white face, fixed, so steadily on one object, had a sort of fascination for Mrs Jo after a time, and she watched the changes in them curiously; for Dan's mind was evidently not on the story, and he often forgot to laugh or exclaim at the comic or exciting crises. Sometimes they were soft and wistful, and the watcher was very glad that neither damsel caught that dangerous look for when they spoke it vanished; sometimes it was full of eager fire, and the colour came and went rebelliously, in spite of his attempt to hide it with an impatient gesture of hand or head; but oftenest it was dark, and sad, and stern, as if those gloomy eyes looked out of captivity at some forbidden light or joy. This expression came so often that it worried Mrs Jo, and she longed to go and ask him what bitter memory overshadowed those quiet hours. She knew that his crime and its punishment must lie heavy on his mind; but youth, and time, and new hopes would bring comfort, and help to wear away the first sharpness of the prison brand. It lifted at other times, and seemed almost forgotten when he joked with the boys, talked with old friends, or enjoyed the first snows as he drove out every fair day. Why should the shadow always fall so darkly on him in the society of these innocent and friendly girls? They never seemed to see it, and if either looked or spoke, a quick smile came like a sunburst through the clouds to answer them. So Mrs Jo went on watching, wondering, and discovering, till accident confirmed her fears.

Something about the big eyes, bigger and blacker than ever against the pale face, was kind of mesmerizing for Mrs. Jo after a while, and she watched the changes in them with curiosity; Dan's mind was clearly not on the story, and he often forgot to laugh or react during the funny or exciting moments. Sometimes his eyes were soft and wistful, and she was relieved that neither girl noticed the dangerous look because it disappeared when they spoke; other times, they were filled with eager fire, and the color flickered in and out defiantly, despite his attempts to mask it with an impatient gesture of his hand or head; but most often, they were dark, sad, and serious, as if those gloomy eyes were looking out from captivity at something forbidden and joyful. This expression appeared so frequently that it troubled Mrs. Jo, and she longed to ask him what painful memory hung over those quiet moments. She knew that his crime and its consequences must weigh heavily on his mind, but youth, time, and new hopes would bring comfort and help ease the initial sting of the prison mark. At other times, he seemed to lift the weight, almost forgetting it when he joked with the boys, chatted with old friends, or enjoyed the first snows as he drove out on every nice day. Why did the shadow always loom so darkly over him in the company of these innocent and friendly girls? They never seemed to notice it, and if either of them looked or spoke, a quick smile would break through like sunlight piercing the clouds to answer them. So Mrs. Jo continued to watch, wonder, and discover, until a chance event confirmed her worries.

Josie was called away one day, and Bess, tired of working, offered to take her place if he cared for more reading.

Josie was called away one day, and Bess, fed up with working, offered to take her spot if he wanted to do more reading.

'I do; your reading suits me better than Jo's. She goes so fast my stupid head gets in a muddle and soon begins to ache. Don't tell her; she's a dear little soul, and so good to sit here with a bear like me.'

'I do; your reading works better for me than Jo's. She goes so fast that my dumb head gets all confused and quickly starts to hurt. Please don't tell her; she's a sweet girl, and it's so nice to sit here with a grump like me.'

The smile was ready as Bess went to the table for a new book, the last story being finished.

The smile was ready as Bess headed to the table for a new book, having just finished the last story.

'You are not a bear, but very good and patient, we think. It is always hard for a man to be shut up, mamma says, and must be terrible for you, who have always been so free.'

'You’re not a bear, but we think you’re very good and patient. It’s always tough for a person to be confined, mom says, and it must be awful for you, who have always been so free.'

If Bess had not been reading titles she would have seen Dan shrink as if her last words hurt him. He made no answer; but other eyes saw and understood why he looked as if he would have liked to spring up and rush away for one of his long races up the hill, as he used to do when the longing for liberty grew uncontrollable. Moved by a sudden impulse, Mrs Jo caught up her work-basket and went to join her neighbours, feeling that a non-conductor might be needed; for Dan looked like a thundercloud full of electricity.

If Bess hadn’t been reading titles, she would have noticed Dan shrink as if her last words had hurt him. He didn’t respond, but others could see and understand why he looked like he wanted to jump up and run away for one of his long races up the hill, just like he used to do when his longing for freedom became unbearable. Driven by a sudden urge, Mrs. Jo grabbed her work-basket and went to join her neighbors, sensing that a neutral presence might be needed; Dan looked like a thunderstorm ready to unleash its electricity.

'What shall we read, Aunty? Dan doesn't seem to care. You know his taste; tell me something quiet and pleasant and short. Josie will be back soon,' said Bess, still turning over the books piled on the centre-table.

'What should we read, Aunty? Dan doesn't seem to care. You know his taste; tell me something calm, nice, and short. Josie will be back soon,' said Bess, still looking through the books stacked on the coffee table.

Before Mrs Jo could answer, Dan pulled a shabby little volume from under his pillow, and handing it to her said: 'Please read the third one; it's short and pretty—I'm fond of it.' The book opened at the right place, as if the third story had been often read, and Bess smiled as she saw the name.

Before Mrs. Jo could respond, Dan pulled out a worn little book from under his pillow and handed it to her, saying, "Please read the third one; it's short and nice—I'm really fond of it." The book opened to the right page, as if the third story had been read many times, and Bess smiled when she saw the name.

'Why, Dan, I shouldn't think you'd care for this romantic German tale. There is fighting in it; but it is very sentimental, if I remember rightly.'

'Why, Dan, I wouldn’t think you’d be into this romantic German story. There’s some fighting in it, but it’s pretty sentimental, if I recall correctly.'

'I know it; but I've read so few stories, I like the simple ones best. Had nothing else to read sometimes; I guess I know it all by heart, and never seem to be tired of those fighting fellows, and the fiends and angels and lovely ladies. You read “Aslauga's Knight”, and see if you don't like it. Edwald was rather too soft for my fancy; but Froda was first-rate and the spirit with the golden hair always reminded me of you.'

'I get it; but I've read so few stories, I prefer the simple ones the most. Sometimes I had nothing else to read, so I guess I know them all by heart, and I never seem to get tired of those fighters, the demons and angels, and beautiful ladies. You should read “Aslauga's Knight” and see if you don't like it. Edwald was a bit too soft for my taste; but Froda was excellent, and the spirit with the golden hair always reminded me of you.'

As Dan spoke Mrs Jo settled herself where she could watch him in the glass, and Bess took a large chair facing him, saying, as she put up her hands to retie the ribbon that held the cluster of thick, soft curls at the back of her head:

As Dan talked, Mrs. Jo positioned herself where she could see him in the mirror, and Bess took a big chair facing him, saying, as she raised her hands to redo the ribbon that secured the cluster of thick, soft curls at the back of her head:

'I hope Aslauga's hair wasn't as troublesome as mine, for it's always tumbling down. I'll be ready in a minute.'

'I hope Aslauga's hair isn't as much of a hassle as mine, because mine is always falling down. I’ll be ready in a minute.'

'Don't tie it up; please let it hang. I love to see it shine that way. It will rest your head, and be just right for the story, Goldilocks,' pleaded Dan, using the childish name and looking more like his boyish self than he had done for many a day.

'Don't tie it up; please let it hang. I love to see it shine that way. It will rest your head and be just right for the story, Goldilocks,' Dan pleaded, using the childish name and looking more like his boyish self than he had in a long time.

Bess laughed, shook down her pretty hair, and began to read, glad to hide her face a little; for compliments made her shy, no matter who paid them. Dan listened intently on; and Mrs Jo, with eyes that went often from her needle to the glass, could see, without turning, how he enjoyed every word as if it had more meaning for him than for the other listeners. His face brightened wonderfully, and soon wore the look that came when anything brave or beautiful inspired and touched his better self. It was Fouque's charming story of the knight Froda, and the fair daughter of Sigurd, who was a sort of spirit, appearing to her lover in hours of danger and trial, as well as triumph and joy, till she became his guide and guard, inspiring him with courage, nobleness, and truth, leading him to great deeds in the field, sacrifices for those he loved, and victories over himself by the gleaming of her golden hair, which shone on him in battle, dreams, and perils by day and night, till after death he finds the lovely spirit waiting to receive and to reward him.

Bess laughed, tossed her beautiful hair back, and started to read, happy to hide her face a bit; compliments made her shy, no matter who gave them. Dan listened intently, and Mrs. Jo, glancing back and forth from her needle to the glass, could see, without looking directly, how much he enjoyed every word as if it meant more to him than to the other listeners. His face lit up wonderfully, soon wearing the expression that came when something brave or beautiful stirred and inspired his better self. It was Fouque's charming story about the knight Froda and the beautiful daughter of Sigurd, who was a sort of spirit, appearing to her lover in times of danger and trial, as well as in triumph and joy, until she became his guide and protector, filling him with courage, nobility, and truth, leading him to great deeds in battle, sacrifices for those he loved, and victories over himself by the shine of her golden hair, which illuminated him in battle, dreams, and dangers, both day and night, until after death he finds the lovely spirit waiting to welcome and reward him.

Of all the stories in the book this was the last one would have supposed Dan would like best, and even Mrs Jo was surprised at his perceiving the moral of the tale through the delicate imagery and romantic language by which it was illustrated. But as she looked and listened she remembered the streak of sentiment and refinement which lay concealed in Dan like the gold vein in a rock, making him quick to feel and to enjoy fine colour in a flower, grace in an animal, sweetness in women, heroism in men, and all the tender ties that bind heart to heart; though he was slow to show it, having no words to express the tastes and instincts which he inherited from his mother. Suffering of soul and body had tamed his stronger passions, and the atmosphere of love and pity now surrounding him purified and warmed his heart till it began to hunger for the food neglected or denied so long. This was plainly written in his too expressive face, as, fancying it unseen, he let it tell the longing after beauty, peace, and happiness embodied for him in the innocent fair girl before him.

Of all the stories in the book, this was the last one anyone would have thought Dan would like best, and even Mrs. Jo was surprised that he recognized the moral of the tale through the delicate imagery and romantic language used to illustrate it. But as she watched and listened, she remembered the streak of sentiment and refinement hidden in Dan, like a gold vein in a rock, making him quick to feel and enjoy the beauty in a flower, the grace in an animal, the sweetness in women, the heroism in men, and all the tender connections that bond hearts, even though he was slow to show it since he had no words to express the tastes and instincts he inherited from his mother. The suffering of his soul and body had tamed his stronger passions, and the atmosphere of love and compassion now surrounding him purified and warmed his heart until it began to yearn for the nourishment it had long neglected or been denied. This was clearly written on his expressive face, as he, thinking he was unseen, let it reveal his longing for beauty, peace, and happiness, embodied for him in the innocent girl standing in front of him.

The conviction of this sad yet natural fact came to Mrs Jo with a pang, for she felt how utterly hopeless such a longing was; since light and darkness were not farther apart than snow-white Bess and sin-stained Dan. No dream of such a thing disturbed the young girl, as her entire unconsciousness plainly showed. But how long would it be before the eloquent eyes betrayed the truth? And then what disappointment for Dan, what dismay for Bess, who was as cool and high and pure as her own marbles, and shunned all thought of love with maidenly reserve.

The realization of this sad but natural fact hit Mrs. Jo hard, as she understood how completely pointless such a yearning was; light and darkness were not farther apart than innocent Bess and flawed Dan. The young girl was completely unaware of any such thoughts, which was obvious. But how long would it be before her expressive eyes revealed the truth? And then what disappointment for Dan, and what shock for Bess, who was as cool, proud, and pure as her own marbles, avoiding any thoughts of love with a modest distance.

'How hard everything is made for my poor boy! How can I spoil his little dream, and take away the spirit of good he is beginning to love and long for? When my own dear lads are safely settled I'll never try another, for these things are heart-breaking, and I can't manage any more,' thought Mrs Jo, as she put the lining into Teddy's coat-sleeve upside down, so perplexed and grieved was she at this new catastrophe.

'How difficult everything is for my poor boy! How can I ruin his little dream and take away the good spirit he's starting to love and crave? Once my own dear sons are safely settled, I'll never try this again, because these things are heartbreaking, and I can't handle any more,' thought Mrs. Jo, as she accidentally put the lining into Teddy's coat sleeve upside down, feeling so troubled and upset by this new disaster.

The story was soon done, and as Bess shook back her hair, Dan asked as eagerly as a boy:

The story was quickly finished, and as Bess tossed her hair back, Dan asked with the eagerness of a young boy:

'Don't you like it?'

"Don't you enjoy it?"

'Yes, it's very pretty, and I see the meaning of it; but Undine was always my favourite.'

'Yes, it's really beautiful, and I understand what it means; but Undine has always been my favorite.'

'Of course, that's like you—lilies and pearls and souls and pure water. Sintram used to be mine; but I took a fancy to this when I was—ahem—rather down on my luck one time, and it did me good, it was so cheerful and sort of spiritual in its meaning, you know.'

'Of course, that’s just like you—lilies and pearls and souls and clear water. Sintram used to be mine; but I got attached to this when I was—well—a bit down on my luck one time, and it really helped me, it was so uplifting and had a kind of spiritual meaning, you know.'

Bess opened her blue eyes in wonder at this fancy of Dan's for anything 'spiritual'; but she only nodded, saying: 'Some of the little songs are sweet and might be set to music.'

Bess opened her blue eyes in awe at Dan's interest in anything 'spiritual'; but she just nodded, saying, 'Some of the little songs are sweet and could be set to music.'

Dan laughed; 'I used to sing the last one to a tune of my own sometimes at sunset:

Dan laughed. "I used to sing the last one to a tune of my own sometimes at sunset:"

    '“Listening to celestial lays,
      Bending thy unclouded gaze
      On the pure and living light,
      Thou art blest, Aslauga's Knight!”
 
    "“Listening to heavenly songs,  
      Focusing your clear gaze  
      On the pure and vibrant light,  
      You are blessed, Aslauga's Knight!”

'And I was,' he added, under his breath, as he glanced towards the sunshine dancing on the wall.

'And I was,' he added quietly, as he looked at the sunlight flickering on the wall.

'This one suits you better now'; and glad to please him by her interest, Bess read in her soft voice:

'This one works better for you now'; and happy to make him happy with her interest, Bess read in her gentle voice:

    '“Healfast, healfast, ye hero wounds;
      O knight, be quickly strong!
      Beloved strife
      For fame and life,
      Oh, tarry not too long!”'
 “Heal quickly, heal quickly, you wounded hero;  
      Oh knight, regain your strength fast!  
      Cherished battle  
      For glory and life,  
      Oh, don't take too long!”

'I'm no hero, never can be, and “fame and life” can't do much for me. Never mind, read me that paper, please. This knock on the head has made a regular fool of me.'

'I'm not a hero, I never will be, and “fame and life” don't mean much to me. Anyway, could you read me that paper, please? This blow to the head has made a complete fool out of me.'

Dan's voice was gentle; but the light was gone out of his face now, and he moved restlessly as if the silken pillows were full of thorns. Seeing that his mood had changed, Bess quietly put down the book, took up the paper, and glanced along the columns for something to suit him.

Dan's voice was soft, but the brightness had faded from his face, and he shifted uncomfortably as if the soft pillows were filled with thorns. Noticing his change in mood, Bess quietly set the book aside, picked up the newspaper, and scanned the columns for something that might cheer him up.

'You don't care for the money market, I know, nor musical news. Here's a murder; you used to like those; shall I read it? One man kills another—,'

'You don't care about the money market, I know, or the latest music news. Here's a murder; you used to enjoy those; should I read it? One man kills another—,'

'No!'

'No!'

Only a word, but it gave Mrs Jo a thrill, and for a moment she dared not glance at the tell-tale mirror. When she did Dan lay motionless with one hand over his eyes, and Bess was happily reading the art news to ears that never heard a word. Feeling like a thief who has stolen something very precious, Mrs Jo slipped away to her study, and before long Bess followed to report that Dan was fast asleep.

Only a word, but it gave Mrs. Jo a thrill, and for a moment she didn’t dare to look at the revealing mirror. When she finally did, Dan lay still with one hand over his eyes, and Bess was happily reading the art news to ears that never heard a word. Feeling like a thief who has stolen something very precious, Mrs. Jo quietly slipped away to her study, and before long, Bess followed to report that Dan was fast asleep.

Sending her home, with the firm resolve to keep her there as much as possible, Mother Bhaer had an hour of serious thought all alone in the red sunset; and when a sound in the next room led her there, she found that the feigned sleep had become real repose; for Dan lay breathing heavily, with a scarlet spot on either cheek, and one hand clinched on his broad breast. Yearning over him with a deeper pity than ever before, she sat in the little chair beside him, trying to see her way out of this tangle, till his hand slipped down, and in doing so snapped a cord he wore about his neck and let a small case drop to the floor.

Sending her home, with a strong determination to keep her there as much as possible, Mother Bhaer spent an hour in deep thought all alone in the red sunset. When a noise from the next room drew her in, she found that what had started as feigned sleep had turned into real rest; Dan was lying there, breathing heavily, with a red spot on each cheek and one hand clenched on his broad chest. Overwhelmed with a deeper pity than ever, she took a seat in the little chair beside him, trying to figure her way out of this mess, until his hand slipped down, snapping a cord he had around his neck, causing a small case to fall to the floor.

Mrs Jo picked it up, and as he did not wake, sat looking at it, idly wondering what charm it held; for the case was of Indian workmanship and the broken cord, of closely woven grass, sweet scented and pale yellow.

Mrs. Jo picked it up, and since he didn’t wake up, she sat there looking at it, casually wondering what charm it had; the case was made in India and the broken cord was tightly woven grass, sweet-smelling and pale yellow.

'I won't pry into any more of the poor fellow's secrets. I'll mend and put it back, and never let him know I've seen his talisman.'

'I won't dig into any more of the poor guy's secrets. I'll fix it and put it back, and I won't let him know I've seen his talisman.'

As she spoke she turned the little wallet to examine the fracture, and a card fell into her lap. It was a photograph, cut to fit its covering, and two words were written underneath the face, 'My Aslauga'. For an instant Mrs Jo fancied that it might be one of herself, for all the boys had them; but as the thin paper fell away, she saw the picture Demi took of Bess that happy summer day. There was no doubt now, and with a sigh she put it back, and was about to slip it into Dan's bosom so that not even a stitch should betray her knowledge, when as she leaned towards him, she saw that he was looking straight at her with an expression that surprised her more than any of the strange ones she had ever seen in that changeful face before.

As she spoke, she turned the little wallet to look at the crack, and a card fell into her lap. It was a photo, cut to fit its cover, and two words were written underneath the image: 'My Aslauga.' For a moment, Mrs. Jo thought it might be one of her, since all the boys had them; but as the thin paper fell away, she recognized the picture Demi took of Bess that happy summer day. There was no doubt now, and with a sigh, she put it back and was about to slip it into Dan's pocket so that not even a thread would reveal her knowledge. However, as she leaned toward him, she noticed that he was looking right at her with an expression that surprised her more than any other strange looks she had seen on that ever-changing face before.

'Your hand slipped down; it fell; I was putting it back,' explained Mrs Jo, feeling like a naughty child caught in mischief.

'Your hand slipped down; it fell; I was putting it back,' explained Mrs. Jo, feeling like a mischievous child caught in trouble.

'You saw the picture?'

'Did you see the picture?'

'Yes.'

'Yes.'

'And know what a fool I am?'

'And do you realize what an idiot I am?'

'Yes, Dan, and am so grieved—'

'Yes, Dan, and I'm so upset—'

'Don't worry about me. I'm all right—glad you know, though I never meant to tell you. Of course it is only a crazy fancy of mine, and nothing can ever come of it. Never thought there would. Good Lord! what could that little angel ever be to me but what she is—a sort of dream of all that's sweet and good?'

'Don't worry about me. I'm fine—I'm glad you know, even though I never intended to tell you. Of course, it's just a silly idea of mine, and nothing will ever come of it. I never thought it would. Good grief! What could that little angel ever mean to me besides what she is—a kind of dream of everything that's sweet and good?'

More afflicted by the quiet resignation of his look and tone than by the most passionate ardour, Mrs Jo could only say, with a face full of sympathy:

More affected by the quiet resignation in his expression and tone than by the strongest passion, Mrs. Jo could only say, with a sympathetic face:

'It is very hard, dear, but there is no other way to look at it. You are wise and brave enough to see that, and to let the secret be ours alone.'

'It's really tough, my dear, but there's no other way to see it. You are wise and brave enough to understand that and to keep this secret just between us.'

'I swear I will! not a word nor a look if I can help it. No one guesses, and if it troubles no one, is there any harm in my keeping this, and taking comfort in the pretty fancy that kept me sane in that cursed place?'

'I promise I won't! Not a word or a glance if I can avoid it. No one suspects, and if it doesn’t bother anyone, what’s the harm in me holding onto this and finding comfort in the lovely thought that kept me sane in that awful place?'

Dan's face was eager now, and he hid away the little worn case as if defying any hand to take it from him. Anxious to know everything before giving counsel or comfort, Mrs Jo said quietly:

Dan's face looked eager now, and he tucked away the little worn case as if daring anyone to try to take it from him. Wanting to know everything before offering advice or comfort, Mrs. Jo said quietly:

'Keep it, and tell me all about the “fancy”. Since I have stumbled on your secret, let me know how it came, and how I can help to make it lighter to bear.'

"Hang onto it and fill me in on the 'fancy.' Now that I've discovered your secret, tell me how it happened and how I can help make it easier to handle."

'You'll laugh; but I don't mind. You always did find out our secrets and give us a lift. Well, I never cared much for books, you know; but down yonder when the devil tormented me I had to do something or go stark mad, so I read both the books you gave me. One was beyond me, till that good old man showed me how to read it; but the other, this one, was a comfort, I tell you. It amused me, and was as pretty as poetry. I liked 'em all, and most wore out Sintram. See how used up he is! Then I came to this, and it sort of fitted that other happy part of my life, last summer—here.'

'You'll laugh, but I don't mind. You always managed to uncover our secrets and lift our spirits. Well, I never really cared much for books, you know; but down there, when the devil was tormenting me, I had to do something or I'd go completely mad, so I read both the books you gave me. One was too much for me until that good old man showed me how to read it; but the other, this one, was a comfort, I tell you. It entertained me and was as beautiful as poetry. I liked them all, and I practically wore out Sintram. Look at how battered he is! Then I got to this one, and it kind of matched that happier time in my life, last summer—here.'

Dan stopped a moment as the words lingered on his lips; then, with a long breath, went on, as if it was hard to lay bare the foolish little romance he had woven about a girl, a picture, and a child's story there in the darkness of the place which was as terrible to him as Dante's Inferno, till he found his Beatrice.

Dan paused for a moment as the words hung on his lips; then, taking a deep breath, he continued, as if it was difficult to reveal the silly little fantasy he had created about a girl, a picture, and a children's story in the darkness of that place, which felt as awful to him as Dante's Inferno, until he found his Beatrice.

'I couldn't sleep, and had to think about something, so I used to fancy I was Folko, and see the shining of Aslauga's hair in the sunset on the wall, the gum of the watchman's lamp, and the light that came in at dawn. My cell was high. I could see a bit of sky; sometimes there was a star in it, and that was most as good as a face. I set great store by that patch of blue, and when a white cloud went by, I thought it was the prettiest thing in all this world. I guess I was pretty near a fool; but those thoughts and things helped me through, so they are all solemn true to me, and I can't let them go. The dear shiny head, the white gown, the eyes like stars, and sweet, calm ways that set her as high above me as the moon in heaven. Don't take it away! it's only a fancy, but a man must love something, and I'd better love a spirit like her than any of the poor common girls who would care for me.'

I couldn't sleep and needed to think about something, so I imagined I was Folko, seeing the shine of Aslauga's hair in the sunset on the wall, the glow of the watchman's lamp, and the light that came at dawn. My cell was high up. I could see a bit of sky; sometimes there was a star in it, and that was almost as good as seeing a face. I valued that patch of blue, and when a white cloud drifted by, I thought it was the prettiest thing in the world. I guess I was a bit foolish, but those thoughts and images helped me get through, so they feel very real to me, and I can't let them go. The dear shiny head, the white gown, the eyes like stars, and her sweet, calm demeanor set her so high above me, like the moon in the sky. Don’t take it away! It’s just a fancy, but a man has to love something, and I'd rather love a spirit like hers than any ordinary girl who might be interested in me.

The quiet despair in Dan's voice pierced Mrs Jo to the heart; but there was no hope and she gave none. Yet she felt that he was right, and that his hapless affection might do more to uplift and purify him than any other he might know. Few women would care to marry Dan now, except such as would hinder, not help, him in the struggle which life would always be to him; and it was better to go solitary to his grave than become what she suspected his father had been—a handsome, unprincipled, and dangerous man, with more than one broken heart to answer for.

The quiet despair in Dan's voice hit Mrs. Jo hard; but there was no hope, and she didn’t offer any. Still, she believed he was right, and that his unfortunate love might do more to lift and purify him than any other kind he might find. Few women would want to marry Dan now, except those who would hinder, not help, him in the constant struggle that life would always be for him; and it was better for him to face his end alone than to become what she suspected his father had been—a charming, unprincipled, and dangerous man, responsible for more than one broken heart.

'Yes, Dan, it is wise to keep this innocent fancy, if it helps and comforts you, till something more real and possible comes to make you happier. I wish I could give you any hope; but we both know that the dear child is the apple of her father's eye, the pride of her mother's heart, and that the most perfect lover they can find will hardly seem to them worthy of their precious daughter. Let her remain for you the high, bright star that leads you up and makes you believe in heaven.' Mrs Jo broke down there; it seemed so cruel to destroy the faint hope Dan's eyes betrayed, that she could not moralize when she thought of his hard life and lonely future. Perhaps it was the wisest thing she could have done, for in her hearty sympathy he found comfort for his own loss, and very soon was able to speak again in the manly tone of resignation to the inevitable that showed how honest was his effort to give up everything but the pale shadow of what, for another, might have been a happy possibility.

"Yes, Dan, it’s smart to hold onto this innocent dream if it helps and comforts you until something more real and achievable comes along to make you happier. I wish I could give you some hope, but we both know that the dear child is her father's pride and joy, and her mother's heart, and that the best partner they can find will hardly seem good enough for their precious daughter. Let her continue to be the bright star that guides you and makes you believe in something better." Mrs. Jo broke down there; it felt so harsh to shatter the faint hope reflected in Dan's eyes that she couldn’t bring herself to offer advice when she thought of his tough life and lonely future. Maybe it was the best thing she could have done, because in her genuine sympathy, he found comfort for his own loss, and before long, he was able to speak again with a strong tone of acceptance of the inevitable, showing how hard he was trying to let go of everything but the faint trace of what could have been a happy future for someone else.

They talked long and earnestly in the twilight; and this second secret bound them closer than the first; for in it there was neither sin nor shame—only the tender pain and patience which has made saints and heroes of far worse men than our poor Dan. When at length they rose at the summons of a bell, all the sunset glory had departed, and in the wintry sky there hung one star, large, soft, and clear, above a snowy world. Pausing at the window before she dropped the curtains, Mrs Jo said cheerfully:

They talked for a long time in the fading light; and this second secret brought them even closer than the first because it involved neither sin nor shame—only the gentle pain and patience that have turned far worse men than our poor Dan into saints and heroes. When they finally stood up at the sound of a bell, all the beauty of the sunset had faded away, and in the cold sky, one large, soft, and clear star hung over a snowy world. Pausing at the window before she closed the curtains, Mrs. Jo said cheerfully:

'Come and see how beautiful the evening star is, since you love it so.' And as he stood behind her, tall and pale, like the ghost of his former self, she added softly: 'And remember, dear, if the sweet girl is denied you, the old friend is always here—to love and trust and pray for you.'

'Come and see how beautiful the evening star is, since you love it so.' And as he stood behind her, tall and pale, like a ghost of his former self, she added softly: 'And remember, dear, if the sweet girl is unavailable to you, the old friend is always here—to love, trust, and pray for you.'

This time she was not disappointed; and had she asked any reward for many anxieties and cares, she received it when Dan's strong arm came round her, as he said, in a voice which showed her that she had not laboured in vain to pluck her firebrand from the burning:

This time she wasn't let down; and if she had requested a reward for her many worries and cares, she got it when Dan's strong arm wrapped around her, as he said in a voice that made it clear she hadn't worked in vain to pull her firebrand from the flames:

'I never can forget that; for she's helped to save my soul, and make me dare to look up there and say:

'I can never forget that; because she's helped save my soul and made me brave enough to look up there and say:

“God bless her!”'

“God bless her!”





Chapter 22. POSITIVELY LAST APPEARANCE

'Upon my word, I feel as if I lived in a powder-magazine, and don't know which barrel will explode next, and send me flying,' said Mrs Jo to herself next day, as she trudged up to Parnassus to suggest to her sister that perhaps the most charming of the young nurses had better return to her marble gods before she unconsciously added another wound to those already won by the human hero. She told no secrets; but a hint was sufficient; for Mrs Amy guarded her daughter as a pearl of great price, and at once devised a very simple means of escape from danger. Mr Laurie was going to Washington on Dan's behalf, and was delighted to take his family with him when the idea was carelessly suggested. So the conspiracy succeeded finely; and Mrs Jo went home, feeling more like a traitor than ever. She expected an explosion; but Dan took the news so quietly, it was plain that he cherished no hope; and Mrs Amy was sure her romantic sister had been mistaken. If she had seen Dan's face when Bess went to say good-bye, her maternal eye would have discovered far more than the unconscious girl did. Mrs Jo trembled lest he should betray himself; but he had learned self-control in a stern school, and would have got through the hard moment bravely, only, when he took both hands, saying heartily:

"I swear, I feel like I'm living in a powder keg, and I don't know which barrel is going to blow up next and send me flying," Mrs. Jo said to herself the next day as she walked up to Parnassus to suggest to her sister that perhaps the most charming of the young nurses should return to her marble gods before she unintentionally added another wound to those already sustained by the human hero. She shared no secrets, but a hint was enough; Mrs. Amy protected her daughter like a valuable treasure and immediately came up with a simple way to avoid danger. Mr. Laurie was going to Washington on Dan’s behalf and was thrilled to take his family with him when the idea was casually mentioned. So the plan worked out perfectly, and Mrs. Jo went home feeling more like a traitor than ever. She expected a scene, but Dan took the news so calmly that it was clear he had no hope, and Mrs. Amy was sure her romantic sister was mistaken. If she had seen Dan's face when Bess went to say goodbye, her motherly instincts would have noticed far more than the oblivious girl did. Mrs. Jo worried that he might let his feelings slip; however, he had learned self-control in a tough environment and would have handled the hard moment bravely, only, when he took both her hands, saying sincerely:

'Good-bye, Princess. If we don't meet again, remember your old friend Dan sometimes,' she, touched by his late danger and the wistful look he wore, answered with unusual warmth: 'How can I help it, when you make us all so proud of you? God bless your mission, and bring you safely home to us again!'

'Goodbye, Princess. If we don't see each other again, don't forget your old friend Dan sometimes,' she said, moved by his recent peril and the nostalgic expression on his face. She responded with unexpected warmth: 'How could I not, when you make us all so proud? God bless your mission and bring you back home to us safely!'

As she looked up at him with a face full of frank affection and sweet regret, all that he was losing rose so vividly before him that Dan could not resist the impulse to take the 'dear goldy head' between his hands and kiss it, with a broken 'Good-bye'; then hurried back to his room, feeling as if it were the prison-cell again, with no glimpse of heaven's blue to comfort him.

As she looked up at him, her face filled with genuine affection and a touch of sadness, everything he was losing became so clear to him that Dan couldn't help but take her 'sweet golden head' in his hands and kiss it, murmuring a broken 'Good-bye'; then he rushed back to his room, feeling like it was a prison cell again, with no sight of heaven's blue to ease his heart.

This abrupt caress and departure rather startled Bess; for she felt with a girl's quick instinct that there was something in that kiss unknown before, and looked after him with sudden colour in her cheeks and new trouble in her eyes. Mrs Jo saw it, and fearing a very natural question answered it before it was put.

This sudden touch and quick departure surprised Bess; she sensed with a girl's keen intuition that there was something in that kiss she hadn't experienced before. She watched him leave, her cheeks flushing and worry appearing in her eyes. Mrs. Jo noticed this and, anticipating a very obvious question, answered it before it could be asked.

'Forgive him, Bess. He has had a great trouble, and it makes him tender at parting with old friends; for you know he may never come back from the wild world he is going to.'

'Forgive him, Bess. He's been through a lot, and it makes him emotional about saying goodbye to old friends; because you know he might never return from the wild world he's heading into.'

'You mean the fall and danger of death?' asked Bess, innocently.

"You mean the risk of falling and dying?" Bess asked, innocently.

'No, dear; a greater trouble than that. But I cannot tell you any more—except that he has come through it bravely; so you may trust and respect him, as I do.'

'No, dear; it's a bigger issue than that. But I can't share more—only that he has gone through it bravely; so you can trust and respect him, just like I do.'

'He has lost someone he loved. Poor Dan! We must be very kind to him.'

'He has lost someone he loved. Poor Dan! We need to be really kind to him.'

Bess did not ask the question, but seemed content with her solution of the mystery—which was so true that Mrs Jo confirmed it by a nod, and let her go away believing that some tender loss and sorrow wrought the great change all saw in Dan, and made him so slow to speak concerning the past year.

Bess didn't ask the question, but she seemed satisfied with her explanation of the mystery—which was so accurate that Mrs. Jo nodded in agreement, allowing her to leave believing that some deep loss and sadness caused the significant change everyone noticed in Dan, making him hesitant to talk about the past year.

But Ted was less easily satisfied, and this unusual reticence goaded him to desperation. His mother had warned him not to trouble Dan with questions till he was quite well; but this prospect of approaching departure made him resolve to have a full, clear, and satisfactory account of the adventures which he felt sure must have been thrilling, from stray words Dan let fall in his fever. So one day when the coast was clear, Master Ted volunteered to amuse the invalid, and did so in the following manner:

But Ted was harder to please, and this unusual silence pushed him to desperation. His mom had told him not to bother Dan with questions until he was fully recovered, but the thought of Dan leaving made him decide he needed a complete, clear, and satisfying story about the adventures he was sure had to be exciting, based on bits and pieces Dan mentioned while he was feverish. So one day when things were calm, Ted stepped up to entertain the patient, and he did it like this:

'Look here, old boy, if you don't want me to read, you've got to talk, and tell me all about Kansas, and the farms, and that part. The Montana business I know, but you seem to forget what went before. Brace up, and let's have it,' he began, with an abruptness which roused Dan from a brown study most effectually.

"Hey, listen up, if you don't want me to read, you need to talk and tell me all about Kansas, the farms, and that whole area. I’m familiar with the Montana stuff, but you seem to forget what came before. Get it together and let’s hear it," he started, with a suddenness that snapped Dan out of his deep thoughts.

'No, I don't forget; it isn't interesting to anyone but myself. I didn't see any farms—gave it up,' he said slowly.

'No, I don’t forget; it’s not interesting to anyone but me. I didn't see any farms—I let that go,' he said slowly.

'Why?'

'Why?'

'Other things to do.'

'Other things to check out.'

'What?'

'What?'

'Well, brush-making for one thing.'

'Well, for one thing, brush-making.'

'Don't chaff a fellow. Tell true.'

'Don't mess with someone. Tell the truth.'

'I truly did.'

"I really did."

'What for?'

'What's the purpose?'

'To keep out of mischief, as much as anything.'

'To avoid getting into trouble, more than anything else.'

'Well, of all the queer things—and you've done a lot—that's the queerest,' cried Ted, taken aback at this disappointing discovery. But he didn't mean to give up yet, and began again.

'Well, of all the strange things—and you've done a lot—that's the strangest,' shouted Ted, shocked by this disappointing discovery. But he wasn’t ready to give up yet, and started again.

'What mischief, Dan?'

'What's up, Dan?'

'Never you mind. Boys shouldn't bother.'

'Don't worry about it. Boys shouldn't trouble themselves.'

'But I do want to know, awfully, because I'm your pal, and care for you no end. Always did. Come, now, tell me a good yarn. I love scrapes. I'll be mum as an oyster if you don't want it known.'

'But I really want to know, a lot, because I'm your friend and I care about you a ton. Always have. Come on, tell me a good story. I love adventures. I’ll keep quiet as a clam if you don't want anyone to know.'

'Will you?' and Dan looked at him, wondering how the boyish face would change if the truth were suddenly told him.

'Will you?' Dan asked, looking at him, curious about how the boyish face would react if the truth was revealed all of a sudden.

'I'll swear it on locked fists, if you like. I know it was jolly, and I'm aching to hear.'

"I'll swear it on my clenched fists, if that works for you. I know it was great, and I can't wait to hear."

'You are as curious as a girl. More than some—Josie and—and Bess never asked a question.'

'You're as curious as a girl. More than some—Josie and—and Bess never asked a question.'

'They don't care about rows and things; they liked the mine business, heroes, and that sort. So do I, and I'm as proud as Punch over it; but I see by your eyes that there was something else before that, and I'm bound to find out who Blair and Mason are, and who was hit and who ran away, and all the rest of it.'

'They don't care about boring details; they liked the mining business, heroes, and that kind of thing. So do I, and I'm really proud of it; but I can tell from your expression that there was something else that happened before that, and I need to find out who Blair and Mason are, who got hurt, who fled, and all the rest of it.'

'What!' cried Dan, in a tone that made Ted jump.

"What!" Dan exclaimed, his tone making Ted jump.

'Well, you used to mutter about 'em in your sleep, and Uncle Laurie wondered. So did I; but don't mind, if you can't remember, or would rather not.'

'Well, you used to mumble about them in your sleep, and Uncle Laurie was curious. So was I; but it’s fine if you can’t remember or would rather not.'

'What else did I say? Queer, what stuff a man will talk when his wits are gone.'

'What else did I say? It's funny what a person will say when they're out of their mind.'

'That's all I heard; but it seemed interesting, and I just mentioned it, thinking it might refresh your memory a bit,' said Teddy, very politely; for Dan's frown was heavy at that moment.

"That's all I heard, but it sounded interesting, so I just brought it up, thinking it might jog your memory a little," Teddy said politely, since Dan's frown was strong at that moment.

It cleared off at this reply, and after a look at the boy squirming with suppressed impatience in his chair, Dan made up his mind to amuse him with a game of cross-purposes and half-truths, hoping to quench his curiosity, and so get peace.

It cleared up after this response, and after seeing the boy fidgeting with suppressed impatience in his chair, Dan decided to entertain him with a game of cross-purposes and half-truths, hoping to satisfy his curiosity and gain some peace.

'Let me see; Blair was a lad I met in the cars, and Mason a poor fellow who was in a—well, a sort of hospital where I happened to be. Blair ran off to his brothers, and I suppose I might say Mason was hit, because he died there. Does that suit you?'

'Let me think; Blair was a guy I met on the train, and Mason was a poor guy who was in a—well, a kind of hospital where I happened to be. Blair ran off to his brothers, and I guess I could say Mason was struck, because he died there. Does that work for you?'

'No, it doesn't. Why did Blair run? and who hit the other fellow? I'm sure there was a fight somewhere, wasn't there?'

'No, it doesn't. Why did Blair run? And who hit the other guy? I'm sure there was a fight somewhere, right?'

'Yes!

Yes!

'I guess I know what it was about.'

'I think I know what it was about.'

'The devil, you do! Let's hear you guess. Must be amusing,' said Dan, affecting an ease he did not feel.

"The devil, you do! Go ahead, take a guess. It must be funny," said Dan, pretending to be relaxed despite not feeling that way.

Charmed to be allowed to free his mind, Ted at once unfolded the boyish solution of the mystery which he had been cherishing, for he felt that there was one somewhere.

Charmed to be able to clear his mind, Ted immediately revealed the youthful solution to the mystery he had been holding onto, as he sensed there was an answer somewhere.

'You needn't say yes, if I guess right and you are under oath to keep silent. I shall know by your face, and never tell. Now see if I'm not right. Out there they have wild doings, and it's my belief you were in some of 'em. I don't mean robbing mails, and KluKluxing, and that sort of thing; but defending the settlers, or hanging some scamp, or even shooting a few, as a fellow must sometimes, in self-defence. Ah, ha! I've hit it, I see. Needn't speak; I know the flash of your old eye, and the clench of your big fist.' And Ted pranced with satisfaction.

'You don’t have to say yes if I’m right and you're obligated to stay quiet. I’ll be able to tell from your face, and I won’t say a word. Now let’s see if I’m correct. Out there, things have been wild, and I believe you were involved in some of it. I’m not talking about robbing mail or Klu Klux Klan stuff, but defending the settlers, or hanging a troublemaker, or even having to shoot a few people in self-defense, as one does sometimes. Aha! I got it, I can tell. No need to speak; I recognize the spark in your old eyes and the strength in your big fists.' And Ted bounced with satisfaction.

'Drive on, smart boy, and don't lose the trail,' said Dan, finding a curious sense of comfort in some of these random words, and longing, but not daring, to confirm the true ones. He might have confessed the crime, but not the punishment that followed, the sense of its disgrace was still so strong upon him.

"Keep going, smart kid, and don’t lose the path," Dan said, feeling an odd sense of comfort in some of these random words, and wanting, but not daring, to affirm the real ones. He could have admitted to the crime, but not the punishment that came after; the weight of its shame was still so heavy on him.

'I knew I should get it; can't deceive me long,' began Ted, with such an air of pride Dan could not help a short laugh.

"I knew I should get it; you can't fool me for long," Ted started, with such a sense of pride that Dan couldn't help but chuckle briefly.

'It's a relief, isn't it, to have it off your mind? Now, just confide in me and it's all safe, unless you've sworn not to tell.'

"It's a relief, isn't it, to have it off your mind? Now, just share it with me, and it's all safe, unless you've promised not to tell."

'I have.'

"I do."

'Oh, well, then don't'; and Ted's face fell, but he was himself again in a moment and said, with the air of a man of the world: 'It's all right—I understand—honour binds—silence to death, etc. Glad you stood by your mate in the hospital. How many did you kill?'

'Oh, well, then don't,' Ted's expression dropped, but he quickly recovered and said, with the confidence of an experienced man, 'It's fine—I get it—honor is important—silence is golden, etc. I'm glad you supported your friend in the hospital. How many did you take out?'

'Only one.'

'Just one.'

'Bad lot, of course?'

'Bad batch, right?'

'A damned rascal.'

'A complete nuisance.'

'Well, don't look so fierce; I've no objection. Wouldn't mind popping at some of those bloodthirsty blackguards myself. Had to dodge and keep quiet after it, I suppose.'

'Well, don’t look so intense; I have no issue with it. I wouldn’t mind taking a shot at some of those ruthless guys myself. I guess I had to be careful and stay quiet after that.'

'Pretty quiet for a long spell.'

Pretty quiet for a long time.

'Got off all right in the end, and headed for your mines and did that jolly brave thing. Now, I call that decidedly interesting and capital. I'm glad to know it; but I won't blab.'

'You got away just fine in the end and went to your mines to do that really brave thing. I think that's really interesting and great. I'm glad to hear it; but I won't spill the beans.'

'Mind you don't. Look here. Ted, if you'd killed a man, would it trouble you—a bad one, I mean?'

'Be careful not to. Listen, Ted, if you had killed someone, would it bother you—someone really bad, I mean?'

The lad opened his mouth to say, 'Not a bit,' but checked that answer as if something in Dan's face made him change his mind. 'Well, if it was my duty in war or self-defence, I suppose I shouldn't; but if I'd pitched into him in a rage, I guess I should be very sorry. Shouldn't wonder if he sort of haunted me, and remorse gnawed me as it did Aram and those fellows. You don't mind, do you? It was a fair fight, wasn't it?'

The guy opened his mouth to say, 'Not at all,' but paused, as if something in Dan's expression made him reconsider. 'Well, if it was my duty in war or self-defense, I guess I shouldn't feel bad; but if I attacked him out of anger, I think I would feel really awful. I wouldn’t be surprised if he haunted me, and guilt ate away at me like it did with Aram and his friends. You don't mind, do you? It was a fair fight, right?'

'Yes, I was in the right; but I wish I'd been out of it. Women don't see it that way, and look horrified at such things. Makes it hard; but it don't matter.'

'Yeah, I was in the right; but I wish I hadn’t been involved. Women don’t see it that way and look shocked by stuff like that. It makes things difficult; but it doesn’t really matter.'

'Don't tell 'em; then they can't worry,' said Ted, with the nod of one versed in the management of the sex.

"Don't tell them; that way, they won't worry," said Ted, nodding like someone who knows how to handle the situation with women.

'Don't intend to. Mind you keep your notions to yourself, for some of 'em are wide of the mark. Now you may read if you like'; and there the talk ended; but Ted took great comfort in it, and looked as wise as an owl afterwards.

"Don't plan on it. Just keep your thoughts to yourself because some of them are way off. Now you can read if you want," and that was the end of the conversation; but Ted felt really good about it and looked as smart as an owl afterward.

A few quiet weeks followed, during which Dan chafed at the delay; and when at length word came that his credentials were ready, he was eager to be off, to forget a vain love in hard work, and live for others, since he might not for himself.

A few quiet weeks passed, during which Dan grew restless about the delay; and when he finally got the word that his credentials were ready, he was eager to leave, to forget a pointless love through hard work, and to live for others, since he couldn't do so for himself.

So one wild March morning our Sintram rode away, with horse and hound, to face again the enemies who would have conquered him, but for Heaven's help and human pity.

So one crazy March morning, our Sintram rode out with his horse and hound to confront again the enemies who would have defeated him, if not for Heaven's help and human kindness.

'Ah, me! it does seem as if life was made of partings, and they get harder as we go on,' sighed Mrs Jo, a week later, as she sat in the long parlour at Parnassus one evening, whither the family had gone to welcome the travellers back.

'Oh, woe is me! It really feels like life is just one farewell after another, and they get tougher as time goes on,' sighed Mrs. Jo a week later, as she sat in the long living room at Parnassus one evening, where the family had gathered to welcome the travelers back.

'And meetings too, dear; for here we are, and Nat is on his way at last. Look for the silver lining, as Marmee used to say, and be comforted,' answered Mrs Amy, glad to be at home and find no wolves prowling near her sheepfold.

'And meetings too, dear; for here we are, and Nat is finally on his way. Look for the silver lining, as Marmee used to say, and be comforted,' replied Mrs. Amy, happy to be home and finding no wolves lurking near her sheepfold.

'I've been so worried lately, I can't help croaking. I wonder what Dan thought at not seeing you again? It was wise; but he would have enjoyed another look at home faces before he went into the wilderness,' said Mrs Jo regretfully.

"I've been really worried lately; I can't help but complain. I wonder what Dan thought about not seeing you again? It was smart, but he would have liked to see familiar faces one more time before heading into the wilderness," said Mrs. Jo regretfully.

'Much better so. We left notes and all we could think of that he might need, and slipped away before he came. Bess really seemed relieved; I'm sure I was'; and Mrs Amy smoothed an anxious line out of her white forehead, as she smiled at her daughter, laughing happily among her cousins.

'Much better this way. We left notes and everything we thought he might need, and sneaked away before he arrived. Bess really looked relieved; I know I was too; and Mrs. Amy smoothed out a worried crease from her pale forehead as she smiled at her daughter, who was laughing joyfully with her cousins.'

Mrs Jo shook her head as if the silver lining of that cloud was hard to find; but she had no time to croak again, for just then Mr Laurie came in looking well pleased at something.

Mrs. Jo shook her head as if the silver lining of that cloud was hard to find, but she didn't have time to complain again, because just then Mr. Laurie came in looking really pleased about something.

'A new picture has arrived; face towards the music-room, good people, and tell me how you like it. I call it “Only a fiddler”, after Andersen's story. What name will you give it?'

'A new picture has arrived; face the music room, everyone, and tell me what you think of it. I’ve named it “Only a Fiddler,” inspired by Andersen's story. What title would you give it?'

As he spoke he threw open the wide doors, and just beyond they saw a young man standing, with a beaming face, and a violin in his hand. There was no doubt about the name to this picture, and with the cry 'Nat! Nat!' there was a general uprising. But Daisy reached him first, and seemed to have lost her usual composure somewhere on the way, for she clung to him, sobbing with the shock of a surprise and joy too great for her to bear quietly. Everything was settled by that tearful and tender embrace, for, though Mrs Meg speedily detached her daughter, it was only to take her place; while Demi shook Nat's hand with brotherly warmth, and Josie danced round them like Macbeth's three witches in one, chanting in her most tragic tones:

As he spoke, he swung open the wide doors, and just beyond, they saw a young man standing there, smiling brightly, with a violin in his hand. There was no doubt about who he was, and with the shout 'Nat! Nat!' everyone jumped up. But Daisy reached him first and seemed to have lost her usual calmness along the way, because she clung to him, crying from the overwhelming surprise and joy. Everything was settled with that tearful and affectionate hug, since, although Mrs. Meg quickly pulled her daughter away, it was only to take her place; meanwhile, Demi shook Nat's hand warmly like a brother, and Josie danced around them like a single version of Macbeth’s three witches, chanting in her most dramatic voice:

'Chirper thou wast; second violin thou art; first thou shalt be. Hail, all hail!'

'You were a chirper; you are second violin; you will be first. Hail, all hail!'

This caused a laugh, and made things gay and comfortable at once. Then the usual fire of questions and answers began, to be kept up briskly while the boys admired Nat's blond beard and foreign clothes, the girls his improved appearance—for he was ruddy with good English beef and beer, and fresh with the sea-breezes which had blown him swiftly home—and the older folk rejoiced over his prospects. Of course all wanted to hear him play; and when tongues tired, he gladly did his best for them, surprising the most critical by his progress in music even more than by the energy and self-possession which made a new man of bashful Nat. By and by when the violin—that most human of all instruments—had sung to them the loveliest songs without words, he said, looking about him at these old friends with what Mr Bhaer called a 'feeling-full' expression of happiness and content:

This made everyone laugh and instantly lightened the mood. Then the usual back-and-forth of questions and answers started, continuing energetically as the boys admired Nat's blond beard and fashionable clothes, while the girls commented on how much better he looked—he was healthy from all the good English food and beer, and fresh from the sea breezes that had brought him home swiftly. The older folks were pleased with his future prospects. Naturally, everyone wanted to hear him play; and when people grew tired of talking, he happily showcased his skills, impressing even the toughest critics with his musical progress, as well as the confidence that transformed shy Nat into a new version of himself. Eventually, when the violin—truly the most expressive of all instruments—had delivered the loveliest wordless melodies, he looked around at these familiar faces with what Mr. Bhaer called a 'feeling-full' expression of happiness and contentment:

'Now let me play something that you will all remember though you won't love it as I do'; and standing in the attitude which Ole Bull has immortalized, he played the street melody he gave them the first night he came to Plumfield. They remembered it, and joined in the plaintive chorus, which fitly expressed his own emotions:

'Now let me play something that you will all remember even if you don't love it as much as I do'; and standing in the pose that Ole Bull has made famous, he played the street melody he had shared with them on his first night at Plumfield. They remembered it and joined in the sorrowful chorus that perfectly captured his feelings:

    'Oh my heart is sad and weary
     Everywhere I roam,
     Longing for the old plantation
     And for the old folks at home.'
    'Oh, my heart is heavy and tired  
     Everywhere I go,  
     Missing the old plantation  
     And the family back home.'

'Now I feel better,' said Mrs Jo, as they all trooped down the hill soon after. 'Some of our boys are failures, but I think this one is going to be a success, and patient Daisy a happy girl at last. Nat is your work, Fritz, and I congratulate you heartily.'

'Now I feel better,' said Mrs. Jo, as they all walked down the hill a little while later. 'Some of our boys haven't worked out, but I think this one is going to succeed, and patient Daisy will finally be a happy girl. Nat is your doing, Fritz, and I sincerely congratulate you.'

'Ach, we can but sow the seed and trust that it falls on good ground. I planted, perhaps, but you watched that the fowls of the air did not devour it, and brother Laurie watered generously; so we will share the harvest among us, and be glad even for a small one, heart's-dearest.'

'Ah, we can only plant the seed and hope it lands in good soil. I may have planted it, but you made sure the birds didn't eat it, and brother Laurie watered it well; so we will share the harvest together and be grateful even for a small one, my dearest.'

'I thought the seed had fallen on very stony ground with my poor Dan; but I shall not be surprised if he surpasses all the rest in the real success of life, since there is more rejoicing over one repentant sinner than many saints,' answered Mrs Jo, still clinging fast to her black sheep although a whole flock of white ones trotted happily before her.

'I thought the seed had landed on really rocky soil with my poor Dan; but I wouldn't be surprised if he ends up succeeding more than everyone else in life, since there’s more joy over one person who repents than over many saints,' replied Mrs. Jo, still holding on tightly to her black sheep, even though a whole flock of white ones happily trotted in front of her.

It is a strong temptation to the weary historian to close the present tale with an earthquake which should engulf Plumfield and its environs so deeply in the bowels of the earth that no youthful Schliemann could ever find a vestige of it. But as that somewhat melodramatic conclusion might shock my gentle readers, I will refrain, and forestall the usual question, 'How did they end?' by briefly stating that all the marriages turned out well. The boys prospered in their various callings; so did the girls, for Bess and Josie won honours in their artistic careers, and in the course of time found worthy mates. Nan remained a busy, cheerful, independent spinster, and dedicated her life to her suffering sisters and their children, in which true woman's work she found abiding happiness. Dan never married, but lived, bravely and usefully, among his chosen people till he was shot defending them, and at last lay quietly asleep in the green wilderness he loved so well, with a lock of golden hair upon his breast, and a smile on his face which seemed to say that Aslauga's Knight had fought his last fight and was at peace. Stuffy became an alderman, and died suddenly of apoplexy after a public dinner. Dolly was a society man of mark till he lost his money, when he found congenial employment in a fashionable tailoring establishment. Demi became a partner, and lived to see his name above the door, and Rob was a professor at Laurence College; but Teddy eclipsed them all by becoming an eloquent and famous clergyman, to the great delight of his astonished mother. And now, having endeavoured to suit everyone by many weddings, few deaths, and as much prosperity as the eternal fitness of things will permit, let the music stop, the lights die out, and the curtain fall for ever on the March family.

It’s a strong temptation for the tired historian to end this story with an earthquake that would swallow Plumfield and its surroundings so deeply that no future Schliemann could ever find a trace of it. However, since that somewhat dramatic conclusion might shock my gentle readers, I’ll hold back and address the usual question, 'How did they end?' by briefly stating that all the marriages turned out well. The boys thrived in their various jobs; so did the girls, as Bess and Josie earned accolades in their artistic careers and eventually found suitable partners. Nan remained a busy, cheerful, independent woman and dedicated her life to helping her struggling sisters and their children, in which genuine women's work she found lasting happiness. Dan never married but lived bravely and meaningfully among his chosen people until he was shot while defending them; he finally rested peacefully in the green wilderness he loved, with a lock of golden hair on his chest and a smile on his face that seemed to say that Aslauga's Knight had fought his last battle and was at peace. Stuffy became an alderman and died suddenly from a stroke after a public dinner. Dolly was a prominent social figure until he lost his money, after which he found suitable work in a trendy tailoring shop. Demi became a partner and lived to see his name on the door, and Rob was a professor at Laurence College; but Teddy outshone them all by becoming an eloquent and famous clergyman, much to the delight of his astonished mother. And now, having tried to please everyone with many weddings, few deaths, and as much prosperity as the natural order will allow, let the music stop, the lights fade away, and the curtain fall forever on the March family.










Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!